Skip to main content

Full text of "Old English libraries; the making, collection and use of books during the middle ages"

See other formats


Presented  to  the 

UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO 
LIBRARY 

by  the 

ONTARIO  LEGISLATIVE 
LIBRARY 

1980 


THE    ANTIQUARY'S    BOOKS 

GENERAL  EDITOR:  J.  CHARLES  COX,  LL.D.,  F.S.A. 


OLD   ENGLISH    LIBRARIES 


tame  antcotflttnrt  mcrrto  Arm  to 


ABBOT   WHETHAMSTEDE 


OLD   ENGLIS1 
LIBRARIES      a!U. 

THE  MAKING,  COLLECTION,  AND  USE  OF  BOOKS 
DURING   THE    MIDDLE    AGES 


BY 


ERNEST  A.  SAVAGE 


WITH    FIFTY-TWO   ILLUSTRATIONS 


METHUEN   &   CO.    LTD. 

36    ESSEX    STREET    W.C. 

LONDON 


First  Published  in  ipn 


PREFACE 

WITH  the  arrangement  and  equipment  of 
libraries  this  essay  has  little  to  do  :  the 
ground  being  already  covered  adequately 
by  Dr.  Clark  in  his  admirable  monograph  on  The 
Care  of  Books.  Herein  is  described  the  making, 
use,  and  circulation  of  books  considered  as  a  means 
of  literary  culture.  It  seemed  possible  to  throw  a 
useful  sidelight  on  literary  history,  and  to  introduce 
some  human  interest  into  the  study  of  bibliography, 
if  the  place  held  by  books  in  the  life  of  the  Middle 
Ages  could  be  indicated.  Such,  at  all  events,  was 
my  aim,  but  I  am  far  from  sure  of  my  success  in 
carrying  it  out ;  and  I  offer  this  book  merely  as 
a  discursive  and  popular  treatment  of  a  subject 
which  seems  to  me  of  great  interest. 

The  book  has  suffered  from  one  unhappy  circum- 
stance. It  was  planned  in  collaboration  with  my 
friend  Mr.  James  Hutt,  M.A.,  but  unfortunately, 
owing  to  a  breakdown  of  health,  Mr.  Hutt  was  only 
able  to  help  me  in  the  composition  of  the  chapter 
on  the  Libraries  of  Oxford,  which  is  chiefly  his  work. 
Had  it  been  possible  for  Mr.  Hutt  to  share  all  the 
labour  with  me,  this  book  would  have  been  put 
before  the  public  with  more  confidence. 


vi  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

More  footnote  references  appear  in  this  volume 
than  in  most  of  the  series  of  "Antiquary's  Books." 
One  consideration  specially  urged  me  to  take  this 
course.  The  subject  has  been  treated  briefly,  and 
it  seemed  essential  to  cite  as  many  authorities  as 
possible,  so  that  readers  who  were  in  the  mood  might 
obtain  further  information  by  following  them  up. 

In  a  book  covering  a  long  period  and  touching 
national  and  local  history  at  many  points,  I  cannot 
hope  to  have  escaped  errors  ;  and  I  shall  be  grateful 
if  readers  will  bring  them  to  my  notice. 

I  need  hardly  say  I  am  especially  indebted  to 
the  splendid  work  accomplished  by  Dr.  Montague 
Rhodes  James,  the  Provost  of  King's  College,  in 
editing  The  Ancient  Libraries  of  Canterbury  and 
Dover,  and  in  compiling  the  great  series  of  descrip- 
tive catalogues  of  manuscripts  in  Cambridge  and 
other  colleges.  I  have  long  marvelled  at  Dr.  James' 
patient  research  ;  at  his  steady  perseverance  in  an 
aim  which,  even  when  attained — as  it  now  has  been— 
could  only  win  him  the  admiration  and  esteem  of 
a  few  scholars  and  lovers  of  old  books. 

I  have  to  thank  Mr.  Hutt  for  much  general 
help,  and  for  reading  all  the  proof  slips.  To  Canon 
C.  M.  Church,  M.A.,  of  Wells,  I  am  indebted  for 
his  kindness  in  answering  inquiries,  for  lending  me 
the  illustration  of  the  exterior  of  Wells  Cathedral 
Library,  and  for  permitting  me  to  reproduce  a  plan 
from  his  book  entitled  Chapters  in  the  Early  History 
of  the  Church  of  Wells.  The  Historic  Society  of 


PREFACE  vii 

Lancashire  and  Cheshire  have  kindly  allowed  me 
to  reproduce  a  part  of  their  plan  of  Birkenhead 
Priory.  Illustrations  were  also  kindly  lent  by  the 
Clarendon  Press,  the  Cambridge  University  Press, 
Mr.  John  Murray,  Mr.  Fisher  Unwin,  the  Editor 
of  The  Connoisseur,  and  Mr.  G.  Coffey,  of  the  Royal 
Irish  Academy.  A  small  portion  of  the  first  chapter 
has  appeared  in  The  Library,  and  is  reprinted  by 
kind  permission  of  the  editors.  Mr.  C.  W.  Sutton, 
M.A.,  City  Librarian  of  Manchester,  has  been  in 
every  way  kind  and  patient  in  helping  me.  So  too 
has  Mr.  Strickland  Gibson,  M.A.,  of  the  Bodleian 
Library,  especially  in  connexion  with  the  chapter  on 
Oxford  Libraries.  Thanks  are  due  also  to  the 
Deans  of  Hereford,  Lincoln,  and  Durham,  to  Mr. 
Tapley  -  Soper,  City  Librarian  of  Exeter,  and  to 
Mr.  W.  T.  Carter,  Public  Librarian  of  Warwick  ; 
also  to  my  brother,  V.  M.  Savage,  for  his  drawings. 
The  general  editor  of  this  series,  the  Rev.  J.  Charles 
Cox,  LL.D.,  F.S.A.,  gave  me  much  help  by  reading 
the  manuscript  and  proofs ;  and  I  am  grateful  to  him 
for  many  courtesies  and  suggestions. 

ERNEST  A.  SAVAGE 


CONTENTS 


CHAP.  PAGE 

I.  THE  USE  OF  BOOKS  IN  EARLY  IRISH  MONASTERIES  i 


II.  THE  ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS            .           .  23 

III.  LIBRARIES  OF  THE  GREAT  ABBEYS— BOOK-LOVERS  AMONG 

THE  MENDICANTS— DISPERSAL  OF  MONKISH  LIBRARIES  45 

IV.  BOOK  MAKING  AND    COLLECTING    IN  THE  RELIGIOUS 

HOUSES        .......  73 

V.  CATHEDRAL  AND  CHURCH  LIBRARIES        .  .  .109 

VI.  ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES  :  OXFORD      ....  133 

VII.  ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:  CAMBRIDGE            .           .           .  155 

VIII.  ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:  THEIR  ECONOMY    .  .  .165 

IX.  THE    USE   OF    BOOKS    TOWARDS    THE    END    OF    THE 

MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD        .           .           .           .           .  173 

X.  THE  BOOK  TRADE     ...                     .           .  199 

XI.  THE    CHARACTER    OF   THE    MEDIEVAL    LIBRARY,   AND 

THE  EXTENT  OF  CIRCULATION  OF  BOOKS        .           .  209 
ix 


x  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

PAGE 

APPENDIX  A.  PRICES  OF  BOOKS  AND  MATERIALS  FOR  BOOK- 
MAKING     .  .  .  .  .  .243 


APPENDIX  B.  LIST  OF  CERTAIN  CLASSIC  AUTHORS  FOUND  IN 

MEDIEVAL  CATALOGUES  .  .  .  .258 

APPENDIX  C.  LIST  OF  MEDIEVAL  COLLECTIONS  OF  BOOKS      .    263 
APPENDIX  D.  LIST  OF  THE  PRINCIPAL  REFERENCE  WORKS         286 


LIST  OF  ILLUSTRATIONS  IN  THE  TEXT 

PAGE 

WRITING  IN  BOOK  OF  KELLS         .  .  .  .  .14 

From  THOMPSON'S  Greek  and  Latin  Palceography 

WRITING  IN  BOOK  OF  ARMAGH     .  .  .  .  .15 

From  THOMPSON'S  Greek  and  Latin  Palceography 

WRITING  IN  GR^ECO-LATIN  ACTS,  PROBABLY  USED  BY  BEDE    .      27 

From  MS.  Bodl.  Laud.  Gr.  35,  f.  63 

WRITING  IN  BENEDICTIONAL  OF  ST.  ETHELWOLD         .  .      43 

From  Archceologia,  xxiv. 

PLAN  OF  SCRIPTORIUM,  BIRKENHEAD  PRIORY    .  .  -74 

Redrawn   from    Trans,  of  the  Lancashire  and  Cheshire  Historic 
Society 

ANCIENT  STALL,  OR  CARRELL,  IN  BISHOP'S  CANNINGS  CHURCH, 

WILTS       ........      77 

From  Cox  AND  HARVEY'S  English  Church  Furniture 

TABLET  CASE  AND  WAXED  TABLET          .  .  .  .84 

From  COFFEY'S  Celtic  Antiquities  in  the  Museum  of  the  R.LA. 

PLAN    SHOWING    DISPOSITION    OF    BOOKS    IN     CISTERCIAN 

HOUSES    ........      93 

Redrawn  from  GASQUET'S  English  Monastic  Life 

PLAN  SHOWING  PROBABLE  SITUATION  OF  LIBRARY  OF  WELLS 

CATHEDRAL  IN  THE  THIRTEENTH  CENTURY  .  .122 

Redrawn    from    Canon    CHURCH'S    Chapters    in    the    History   of 
Wells  Cathedral 

BERKBLOCK  VIEW  OF  DUKE  HUMFREY'S  LIBRARY  .     140 

From  MS.  Bodl.  13 

AUTOGRAPH  OF  DUKE  HUMFREY  OF  GLOUCESTER  .     191 

From  MS.  Harl.  1705,  f.  960 

RECORD  OF  SALE  OF  BOOK  CAPTURED  AT  POITIERS      .  .    234 

From  MS.   Reg.   19,  D  ii.  opposite  f.  i 
xi 


LIST    OF    PLATES 


ABBOT  WHETHAMSTEDE       .....  Frontispiece 

From  MS.  Cott.  Nero,  D  vii.  f.  270 

PLATE  FACING   PAGE 

I.  (a)  ANCIENT  SATCHEL  OF  IRISH  MISSAL,  CORPUS  CHRISTI 

COLLEGE,  OXFORD      .  .  .  .  .12 

By  permission  of  the  Governing  Body 

(£)  COVER  OF  STOWE  MISSAL          .  .  .  .12 

Museum  of  Royal  Irish  Academy,  Dublin  (A.D.   1023-1052) 

II.  ILLUMINATED  PAGE  OF  BOOK  OF  KELLS  .  .  .14 

From  WESTWOOD'S  Facsimiles 

III.  THE   SHRINE  OF  THE   CATHACH   PSALTER,  ELEVENTH 

CENTURY      .......      16 

From  The  Connoisseur,  by  permission  of  the  Editor 

IV.  CUMDACH    OF    ST.    MOLAISE'S    GOSPELS  :    FRONT   AND 

BOTTOM        .......      20 

From  COFFEY'S  Celtic  Antiquities  in  Museum  of  Royal  Irish 
Academy,  by  permission  of  the  Council 

V.  BENEDICTIONAL    OF    ST.    ETHELWOLD  :    NATIVITY    OF 

ST.  JOHN  THE  BAPTIST     .  .  .  .  .42 

From  Arch&ologia ,  xxiv. 

VI.  BENEDICTIONAL  OF  ST.  ETHELWOLD  :  THE  ASCENSION  .      44 

From  Arck&ologitt,  xxiv. 

VII.  (a)  ABBOT  ROGER  DE  NORTHONE  WITH  HIS  BOOKS       .      48 

From  MS.  Cott.  Nero,  D  vii.  f.  i83 

(b)  ABBOT  GARIN  WITH  HIS  BOOKS  .  .  .48 

From  MS.  Cott.  Claud.  E  iv.  pt.  i.,  f.   125^ 

VIII.  ABBOT  SIMON  OF  ST.  ALBANS  AT  HIS  BOOK-CHEST       .      50 

From  MS.  Cott.  Claud.  E  iv.  pt.  i.  f.  124 
xii 


LIST  OF  PLATES  xiii 

PLATE  FACING   PAGE 

IX.  GREY   FRIARS,   LONDON   (CHRIST'S   HOSPITAL)  :    OLD 

HALL  AND  WHITTINGTON'S  LIBRARY  .  .  -54 

From  Trollope's  History  of  Christ's  Hospital 

X.  GREY  FRIARS  CATALOGUE  OF  CONVENTUAL  LIBRARIES      58 

From  MS.  Bodl.  Tanner,  165,  f.   ng 

XI.  TWELFTH   CENTURY   ILLUMINATION   FROM   BURY  ST. 

EDMUND'S  ABBEY  .  .  .  .  .64 

From   MS.   2,   f.   28 1£,   Corpus  Christi  College,  Cambridge, 
by  permission  of  the  Master  and  Fellows 

XII.  WESTMINSTER  ILLUMINATION,  THIRTEENTH  CENTURY      68 

From  MS.  Reg.  2  A  xii.  f.  14,  Brit.  Mus. 

XIII.  THE  CLOISTERS,  GLOUCESTER,  SHOWING  CARRELLS     .      76 

From  MURRAY'S  Cathedrals 

XIV.  A  SCRIBE  AND  HIS  TOOLS,  FROM  A  VERY  ANCIENT  MS.      82 

From  MS.  Harl.  2820,  f.   120 

XV   FURNESS  ABBEY  :  CLOISTERS  AND  CHAPTER  HOUSE    .      94 

XVI.  FACSIMILE  OF  LIBRARY  CATALOGUE  OF  SYON  MONAS- 
TERY        .......    104 

From  BATESON'S  Catalogue  of  Syon  Monastery 

XVII.  MEDIEVAL  BINDING:  MR.  YATES  THOMPSON'S  HEGE- 

SIPPUS       .  .  .  .  .  .  .108 

From  BATESON'S  Mediceval  England 

XVIII.  ANCIENT  BOOK-BOX  IN  EXETER  CATHEDRAL    .  .    110 

Photo  by  HEATH  &  BRADNEE,  Exeter 

XIX.  CHAINED  BOOKS,  HEREFORD  CATHEDRAL  LIBRARY     .    116 

By  permission  of  the  Dean  of  Hereford 

XX.  OLD  LIBRARY,  LINCOLN  CATHEDRAL      .  .  .118 

Photo  by  G.    HADLEIGH,    Lincoln.      By   permission  of  the 
Dean  of  Lincoln 

XXI.  WELLS  CATHEDRAL:  LIBRARY  OVER  CLOISTER  .     122 

Photo  by  T.  W.  PHILLIPS,  Wells 


xiv  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

PLATE  FACING   PAGE 

XXII.  ST.  MARY'S    CHURCH,    OXFORD  :    FIRST    HOME    OF 

UNIVERSITY  LIBRARY.  .  .  .  .132 

Photo  by  H.  W.  TAUNT,  Oxford 

XXIII.  (a)  ILLUMINATOR  OF  ST.  ALBANS          .  .  .134 

From  MS.  Cott.  Nero,  D  iii.  f.  105 

(b)  DOCUMENT  BEARING  THE  NAMES  OF  MEMBERS 

OF  THE  BOOK-TRADE,  c.  1180       .  .  .134 

From  BARNARD'S  Companion  to  English  History 

XXIV.  (a)  DUKE  HUMFREY  AND  ELEANOR  OF  GLOUCESTER 

JOINING  THE  CONFRATERNITY  OF  ST.  ALBANS  .    138 

From  MS.  Cott.  Nero,  D  vii.  f.  154^ 

(b}  ANCIENT  ROOF  OF  DUKE  HUMFREY'S  LIBRARY  .    138 

Photo  by  JAS.  HUTT,  M.A. 

XXV.  DUKE  HUMFREY'S  LIBRARY,  OXFORD  .  .  .142 

Photo  by  H.  W.  TAUNT 

XXVI.  LIBRARY  OF  CORPUS  CHRISTI  COLLEGE,  OXFORD     .    144 
Photo  by  H.  W.  TAUNT 

XXVII.  MERTON  COLLEGE  LIBRARY,  OXFORD  .  .  .152 

Photo  by  H.  W.  TAUNT 

XXVIII.  PUBLIC  SCHOOLS  AND  LIBRARY  OF  THE  UNIVERSITY, 

CAMBRIDGE       .  .  .  .  .  .156 

From  LOGGAN'S  Cantab.  Illus. 

XXIX.  LIBRARY   OF   CORPUS   CHRISTI   COLLEGE,   OXFORD, 

FROM  MASTER'S  GARDEN      .  .  .  .170 

Photo  by  H.  W.  TAUNT 

XXX.  CARMELITE  IN  HIS  STUDY         .  .  .  .184 

From  MS.  Reg.  14  E  i.  f.  3,  Brit.  Mus. 

XXXI.  A  SCRIBE  (ST.  MARK  WRITING  HIS  GOSPEL),  FROM 

THE  BEDFORD  HOURS  .  .  .  .196 

From  Add.  MS.  18850,  f.  24,  Brit.  Mus. 


LIST  OF  PLATES  xv 

PLATE  FACING    PAGE 

XXXII.  A    SCRIBE   AT   WORK,    FROM    EADWINE'S    PSALTER, 

c.  1150    .  .  .  .  .  .  .    202 

From  BATESON'S  Mediceval  England 

XXXIII.  ENGLISH  ILLUMINATED  WORK  UNDER  FRENCH  IN- 

FLUENCE, FROM  TENISON  PSALTER.  .  .214 

From  MS.  Add.  24686,  f.  12,  Brit.  Mus. 

XXXIV.  FRESCO  OF  THE  SEVEN  LIBERAL  ARTS,  BY  T.  GADDI, 

CHURCH  OF  S.  M.  NOVELLA,  FLORENCE    .  .    222 

Photo  by  ALINARI 

XXXV.  ANCIENT  VELLUM  BOOK-MARKER        .  .  .    230 

From  MS.  49,  Corpus  Christ!  College,  Camb.,   by  per- 
mission of  the  Master  and  Fellows 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


CHAPTER   I 

INTRODUCTORY— THE   USE   OF   BOOKS   IN 
EARLY   IRISH   MONASTERIES 

"What  tyme  ]?at  abbeies  were  first  ordeyned 
and  monkis  were  first  gadered  to  gydre." 

— Inscribed  in  MS.  of  Life  of  Barlaam  and  Josaphat^ 
Peterhouse,  Camb. 

§i 

TO  people  of  modern  times  early  monachism  must  seem 
an  unbeautiful  and  even  offensive  life.  True  piety 
was  exceptional,  fanaticism  the  rule.  Ideals  which 
were  surely  false  impelled  men  to  lead  a  life  of  idleness  and 
savage  austerity, — to  sink  very  near  the  level  of  beasts,  as 
did  the  Nitrian  hermits  when  they  murdered  Hypatia  in 
Alexandria.  But  this  view  does  not  give  the  whole  truth. 
To  shut  out  a  wicked  and  sensual  world,  with  its  manifold 
temptations,  seemed  the  only  possible  way  to  live  purely. 
To  get  far  beyond  the  influence  of  a  barbaric  society,  utterly 
antagonistic  to  peaceful  religious  observance,  was  clearly  the 
surest  means  of  achieving  personal  holiness.  Monachism 
was  a  system  designed  for  these  ends.  Throughout  the 
Middle  Ages  it  was  the  refuge — the  only  refuge — for  the 
man  who  desired  to  flee  from  sin.  Such,  at  any  rate,  was 
the  truly  religious  man's  view.  And  if  monkish  retreats 
sheltered  some  ignorant  fanatics,  they  also  attracted  many 


2  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

representatives  of  the  culture  and  learning  of  the  time. 
This  was  bound  to  be  so.  At  all  times  solitude  has  been 
pleasant  to  the  student  and  thinker,  or  to  the  moody  lover 
of  books. 

By  great  good  fortune,  then,  the  studious  occupations 
which  did  so  much  to  soften  monkish  austerities  in  the 
Middle  Ages,  were  recognised  early  as  needful  to  the  system. 
Even  the  ascetics  by  the  Red  Sea  and  in  Nitria  did  not 
deprive  themselves  of  all  literary  solace,  although  the  more 
fanatical  would  abjure  it,  and  many  would  be  too  poor  to 
have  it.  The  Rule  of  Pachomius,  founder  of  the  settlements 
of  Tabenna,  required  the  brethren's  books  to  be  kept  in  a 
cupboard  and  regulated  lending  them.  These  libraries  are 
referred  to  in  Benedict's  own  Rule.  We  hear  of  St.  Pachomius 
destroying  a  copy  of  Origen,  because  the  teaching  in  it  was 
obnoxious  ;  of  Abba  Bischoi  writing  an  ascetic  work,  a  copy  of 
which  is  extant ;  of  anchorites  under  St.  Macarius  of  Alex- 
andria transcribing  books ;  and  of  St.  Jerome  collecting  a 
library  summo  studio  et  labore,  copying  manuscripts  and  study- 
ing Hebrew  at  his  hermitage  even  after  a  formal  renunciation 
of  the  classics,  and  then  again,  at  the  end  of  his  life,  bringing 
together  another  library  at  Bethlehem  monastery,  and 
instructing  boys  in  grammar  and  in  classic  authors.  Basil 
the  Great,  when  founding  eremitical  settlements  on  the 
river  Iris  in  Pontus,  spent  some  time  in  making  selections 
from  Origen.  St.  Melania  the  younger  wrote  books  which 
were  noted  for  their  beauty  and  accuracy.  And  when 
Athanasius  introduced  Eastern  monachism  into  Italy,  and 
St.  Martin  of  Tours  and  John  Cassian  carried  it  farther 
afield  into  Gaul,  the  same  work  went  on.  In  the  cells 
and  caves  of  Martin's  community  at  Marmoutier  the 
younger  monks  occupied  their  time  in  writing  and  sacred 
study,  and  the  older  monks  in  prayer.1  Sulpicius  Severus 

1  Healy,  46. 


INTRODUCTORY  3 

(V.  353-425),  the  ecclesiastical  historian,  preferred  retire- 
ment, literary  study,  and  the  friendship  and  teaching  of 
St.  Martin  to  worldly  pursuits.  At  the  famous  island 
community  of  Lerins,  in  South  Gaul,  were  instructed 
some  of  the  most  celebrated  scholars  of  the  West,  among 
them  St.  Hilary.  "  Such  were  their  piety  and  learning  that 
all  the  cities  round  about  strove  emulously  to  have  monks 
from  Lerins  for  their  bishops."  l  Another  centre  of  studious 
occupation  was  the  monastery  of  Germanus  of  Auxerre  ; 
while  near  Vienne  was  a  community  where  St.  Avitus 
(c.  525)  could  earn  the  high  reputation  for  holiness  and  learn- 
ing which  won  him  a  metropolitan  see.  Many  other  facts 
and  incidents  prove  the  literary  pursuits  of  the  Gallic  ascetics  ; 
as,  for  example,  the  reputation  the  nuns  of  Aries  in  the 
sixth  century  won  for  their  writing ;  and  the  curious  story 
of  Apollinaris  Sidonius  driving  after  a  monk  who  was 
carrying  a  manuscript  to  Britain,  stopping  him,  and  there 
and  then  dictating  to  secretaries  a  copy  of  the  precious 
book  which  had  so  nearly  escaped  him.2 


I  n 

Monachism  of  this  Eastern  type  came  from  Gaul  to 
Ireland.3  St.  Patrick  received  his  sacred  education  at 
Marmoutier ;  under  Germanus  at  Auxerre ;  and  possibly 
at  Lerins.  His  companions  on  his  mission  to  Ireland,  and 
the  missionaries  who  followed  him,  nearly  all  came  from 
the  same  centres.  Naturally,  therefore,  the  same  practices 
would  be  observed,  not  only  in  regard  to  religious  discipline 
and  organisation,  but  in  regard  to  instruction  and  study. 
Even  the  mysterious  Palladius,  Patrick's  forerunner,  is  said 

1  Healy,  50.  2  Sandys,  i.  245. 

3  On  the  connection  between  Eastern  and    Celtic   monachism,  see   Stokes 
(G.T.). 


4  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

to  have  left  books  in  Ireland.1  But  the  earliest  important 
references  to  that  use  of  books  which  distinguishes  the 
educated  missionary  from  the  mere  fanatical  recluse  are  in 
connexion  with  Patrick.  Pope  Sixtus  is  said  to  have 
given  him  books  in  plenty  to  take  with  him  to  Ireland. 
Later  he  is  supposed  to  have  visited  Rome,  whence  he 
brought  books  home  to  Armagh.2  He  gave  copies  of 
parts  of  the  Scriptures  to  Irish  chieftains.  To  one  Fiacc 
he  gave  a  case  containing  a  bell,  a  crosier,  tablets,  and  a 
meinister,  which,  according  to  Dr.  Lanigan,  may  have  been 
a  cumdach  enclosing  the  Gospels  and  the  vessels  for  the 
sacred  ministry,  or,  according  to  Dr.  Whitley  Stokes, 
simply  a  credence-table.3  He  sometimes  gave  a  missal 
(lebar  nuird).  He  had  books  at  Tara.  On  one  occasion 
his  books  were  dropped  into  the  water  and  were  "  drowned." 
Presumably  the  books  he  distributed  came  from  the  Gallic 
schools,  although  his  followers  no  doubt  began  transcribing 
as  opportunity  offered  and  as  material  came  to  hand. 
Patrick  himself  wrote  alphabets,  sometimes  called  the 
"  elements  " ;  most  likely  the  elements  or  the  A  B  C  of  the 
Christian  doctrine,  corresponding  with  the  "  primer."  4 

This  was  the  dawn  of  letters  for  Ireland.  By  dis- 
seminating the  Scriptures  and  these  primers,  Patrick  and 
his  followers,  and  the  train  of  missionaries  who  came  after- 
wards,5 secured  the  knowledge  and  use  of  the  Roman 
alphabet.  The  way  was  clear  for  the  free  introduction  of 
schools  and  books  and  learning.  "  St.  Patrick  did  not  do 
for  the  Scots  what  Wulfilas  did  for  the  Goths,  and  the 
Slavonic  apostles  for  the  Slavs ;  he  did  not  translate  the 

1  Stokes  (W.),  T.  L.t  i.  30;  ii.  446.  2  Ib.  ii.  421  ;  ii.  475. 

3  D.  N.  B.,  xliv.  39;  Stokes  (W.),  T.  L.,  i.  191. 

4  Abgitoriumt  abgatorium ;  elementa,  elimenta.    Stokes  (W.),  T.  L.,  i.  cliii.  ; 
also  i.  Ill,  113,  139,  IQI,  308,  320,  322,  326,  327,  328. 

5  In  536,  fifty  monks  from  the  Continent  landed  at  Cork. — Montalembert, 
ii.  248n,     Migrations  from  Gaul  were  frequent  about  this  time. 


^ 


INTRODUCTORY  5 

sacred  books  of  his  religion  into  Irish  and  found  a  national 
church  literature.  .  .  .  What  Patrick,  on  the  other  hand,  and 
his  fellow-workers  did  was  to  diffuse  a  knowledge  of  Latin 
in  Ireland.  To  the  circumstance  that  he  adopted  this  line 
of  policy,  and  did  not  attempt  to  create  a  national 
ecclesiastical  language,  must  be  ascribed  the  rise  of  the 
schools  of  learning  which  distinguished  Ireland  in  the 
sixth  and  seventh  centuries."1 

Mainly  owing  to  the  labours  of  Dr.  John  Healy,  we 
now  know  a  good  deal  about  the  somewhat  slow  growth 
of  the  Irish  schools  to  fame ;  but  for  our  purpose  it  will  do 
to  learn  something  of  them  in  their  heyday,  when  at  last 
we  hear  certainly  of  that  free  use  of  books  which  must 
have  been  common  for  some  time.  From  the  sixth  to  the 
eighth  century  Ireland  enjoyed  an  eminent  place  in  the 
world  of  learning ;  and  the  lives  and  works  of  her  scholars 
imply  book-culture  of  good  character.  St.  Columba  was 
famed  for  his  studious  occupations.  Educated  first  by 
Finnian  of  Moville,  then  by  another  tutor  of  the  same 
name  at  the  famous  school  of  Clonard,  he  journeyed  to 
other  centres  for  further  instruction  after  his  ordination. 
From  youth  he  loved  books  and  studies.  He  is  represented 
as  reading  out  of  doors  at  the  moment  when  the  murderer 
of  a  young  girl  is  struck  dead.  In  later  life  he  realized 
the  importance  of  monastic  records.  He  had  annals 
compiled,  and  bards  preserved  and  arranged  them  in  the 
monastic  chests.  At  lona  the  brethren  of  his  settlement 
passed  their  time  in  reading  and  transcribing,  as  well  as  in 
manual  labour.  Very  careful  were  they  to  copy  correctly. 
Baithen,  a  monk  on  lona,  got  one  of  his  fellows  to  look 
over  a  Psalter  which  he  had  just  finished  writing,  but 
only  a  single  error  was  discovered.2  Columba  himself 
became  proficient  in  copying  and  illuminating.  He  could 

1  Bury,  217  ;  cp.  220.  2  Joyce,  i.  478. 


6  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

not  spend  an  hour  without  study,  or  prayer,  or  writing,  or 
some  other  holy  occupation.1  He  transcribed,  we  are  told, 
over  three  hundred  copies  of  the  Gospels  or  the  Psalter — a 
magnification  of  a  saint's  powers  by  a  devout  biographer, 
but  significant  as  it  testifies  to  Columba's  love  of 
studious  labours,  and  shows  how  highly  these  ascetics 
thought  of  work  of  this  kind.  On  two  occasions,  being  a 
man  as  well  as  a  saint,  he  broke  into  violence  when  crossed 
in  his  love  of  books.  One  story  tells  how  he  visited  a  holy 
and  learned  recluse  named  Longarad,  whose  much-prized 
books  he  wished  to  see.  Being  denied,  he  became  wroth 
and  cursed  Longarad.  "  May  the  books  be  of  no  use  to 
you,"  he  cried,  "  nor  to  any  one  after  you,  since  you  with- 
hold them."  So  far  the  tale  is  not  improbable,  but  a  little 
embroidery  completes  a  legend.  The  books  became  un- 
intelligible, so  the  story  continues,  the  moment  Longarad 
died.  At  the  same  instant  the  satchels  in  all  the  Irish 
schools  and  in  Columba's  cell  slipped  off  their  hooks  on  to 
the  ground. 

A  quarrel  about  a  book,  we  are  told,  changed  his 
career.  He  borrowed  a  Psalter  from  Finnian  of  Moville, 
and  made  a  copy  of  it,  working  secretly  at  night.  Finnian 
heard  of  the  piracy,  and,  as  owner  of  the  original,  claimed 
the  copy.  Columba  refused  to  let  him  have  it.  Then 
Diarmid,  King  of  Meath,  was  asked  to  arbitrate.  Arguing 
that  as  every  calf  belonged  to  its  cow,  so  every  copy  of  a 
book  belonged  to  the  owner  of  the  original,  he  decided  in 
Finnian's  favour.  Columba  thought  the  award  unjust,  and 
said  so.  A  little  later,  after  another  dispute  with  Diarmid 
on  a  question  of  monastic  immunity,  he  called  together  his 
tribesmen  and  partisans,  and  offered  battle.  Diarmid  was 
defeated.  For  some  reason,  not  quite  clear,  these  quarrels  led 
to  Columba's  voluntary  exile  (c.  563).  He  sailed  from  Ireland, 

1  Adamnan,  lib.  ii.  c.  29,  iii.  c.  15  and  c.  23. 


INTRODUCTORY  7 

and  landed  upon  the  silver  strand  of  lona,  and  to  the  end  of 
his  days  his  work  lay  almost  entirely  amid  the  heather-covered 
uplands  and  plains  of  this  little  island  home.1  lona  be- 
came a  renowned  centre  of  missionary  work,  quite  over- 
shadowing in  importance  the  earlier  "  Scottish  "  settlement 
of  Whitherne  or  Candida  Casa.  Pilgrims  went  thither 
from  Ireland  and  England  to  receive  instruction,  and 
returned  to  carry  on  pioneer  work  in  their  own  homeland. 
Thence  went  forth  missionaries  to  carry  the  Christian 
message  throughout  Scotland  and  northern  England. 
Perhaps,  too,  here  was  planned  the  expedition  to  far-off 
Iceland.  "  Before  Iceland  was  peopled  by  the  Northmen 
there  were  in  the  country  those  men  whom  the  Northmen 
called  Papar.  They  were  Christian  men,  and  the  people 
believed  that  they  came  from  the  West,  because  Irish 
books  and  bells  and  crosiers  were  found  after  them,  and 
still  more  things  by  which  one  might  know  that  they  were 
west- men,  i.e.  Irish."  2 

Not  only  to  the  far  north,  but  to  the  Continent,  did  the 
Irish  press  their  energetic  way.  In  Gaul  their  chief  missionary 
was  Columban  (c.  543—615),  who  had  been  educated  at 
Bangor,  then  famous  for  the  learning  of  its  brethren.  His 
works  display  an  extensive  acquaintance  with  Christian 
and  Latin  literature.  Both  the  Greek  and  Hebrew 
languages  may  have  been  known  to  him,  though  this 
seems  improbable  and  inconceivable.3  In  his  Rule  he 
provides  for  teaching  in  schools,  copying  manuscripts,  and 
for  daily  reading.4 


1  Dr.  Skene  says  the  Psalter  incident  "bears  the  stamp  of  spurious  tradition"  ; 
so  does  the  Longarad  story  ;  but  it  is  curious  how  often  sacred  books  play  a  part 
in  these  tales. 

2  Henderson,  Norse  Infltience  on  Celtic  Scotland,  5-6. 

3  Moore,  Hist,  of  Ireland,  i.  266. 

4  Healy,  379  ;  Stokes  (M.  )2,  1 18.    Ergo  quotidie  jejunandum  est,  sicut  quotidie 
orandum  est,  quotidie  laborandum,  quotidie  est  legendum. 


8  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

The  monasteries  of  Luxeuil,  Bobio,  and  St.  Gall, 
founded  by  him  and  his  companions  on  their  mission  in 
Gaul  and  Italy,  became  the  homes  of  the  most  famous 
conventual  libraries  in  the  world — a  result  surely  traceable 
to  the  example  set  by  the  Irish  ascetics,  and  to  the  tradition 
they  established.1 

Other  Irish  monks  are  better  known  for  their  literary 
attainments  than  for  missionary  enterprise.  St.  Cummian, 
in  a  letter  written  about  634,  displays  much  knowledge  of 
theological  literature,  and  a  good  deal  of  knowledge  of  a 
general  kind.2  Another  monk  named  Augustine  (c.  650) 
quotes  from  Eusebius  and  Jerome  in  a  work  affording  many 
other  evidences  of  learning.3  Aileran  (c.  660),  abbot  of 
Clonard,  wrote  a  religious  work  which  proves  his  acquaint- 
ance with  Jerome,  Philo,  Cassian,  Origen,  and  Augustine.4 

An  Englishman  supplies  valuable  evidence  of  the  state  of 
Irish  learning.  Aldhelm's  (c.  656—709)  works  prove  him  to 
have  had  access  in  England  to  a  good  library  ;  while  in  one 
learned  letter  he  compares  English  schools  favourably  with 
the  Irish,  and  declares  Theodore  and  Hadrian  would  put  Irish 
scholars  in  the  shade.  Yet  he  is  on  his  mettle  when  com- 
municating with  Irish  friends  or  pupils  ;  he  clearly  reserves 
for  them  the  flowers  of  his  eloquence.5  The  Irish  schools 
were  indeed  successful  rivals  of  the  English  schools,  and 
Irish  scholars  could  use  libraries  as  good,  or  nearly  as  good, 
as  that  at  Aldhelm's  disposal.  At  this  time  the  attraction 
which  Ireland  and  lona  had  for  English  students  was  extra- 

1  A  ninth  century  catalogue   of  St.    Gall  mentions  thirty-one  volumes  and 
pamphlets  in  the  Irish  tongue — Prof.   Pflugk-Harttung,  in  R.   H.  S.  (N.  S. ), 
v.  92.     Becker  names  only  thirty,  p.  43.     At  Reichenau,  a  monastery  near  St. 
Gall,  also  famous  for  its  library,  there  were  ' '  Irish  education,  manuscripts,  and 
occasionally  also  Irish  monks."     "One  of  the  most  ancient  monuments  of  the 
German  tongue,  the  vocabulary  of  St.  Gall,  dating  from  about  780,  is  written  in 
the  Irish  character." 

2  D.C.B.  sub  nom.  .  3  Stokes  (G.  T.),  221. 
4  Ib.  220.  5  Haddan,  267. 


INTRODUCTORY  9 

ordinary.  English  crowded  the  Irish  schools,  although 
the  Canterbury  school  was  not  full.1  The  city  of  Armagh 
was  divided  into  three  sections,  one  being  called  Trian- 
Saxon,  the  Saxon's  third,  from  the  great  number  of  Saxon 
students  living  there.2 

In  664  many  English,  both  high  and  low  in  rank,  left 
their  native  land  for  Ireland,  where  they  sought  instruction 
in  sacred  studies,  or  an  opportunity  to  lead  a  more,  ascetic 
life.  Some  devoted  themselves  faithfully  to  a  monkish 
career.  Others  applied  themselves  to  study  only,  and  for 
that  purpose  journeyed  from  one  master's  cell  to  another. 
The  Irish  welcomed  all  comers.  All  received  without 
charge  daily  food :  barley  or  oaten  bread  and  water,  or 
sometimes  milk — cibus  sit  vilis  et  vespertinus — a  plain  meal, 
once  a  day,  in  the  afternoon.  Books  were  supplied,  or 
what  is  more  likely,  waxed  tablets  folded  in  book  form. 
Teaching  was  as  free  as  the  open  air  in  which  it  was 
carried  on.3 

Among  the  English  at  one  time  or  another  taking  ad- 
vantage of  Irish  hospitality  were  Gildas  (c.  540),  first  native 
historian  of  England  ; 4  Ecgberht,  presbyter,  a  Northumbrian 
of  noble  birth ;  Ethelhun,  brother  of  Ethelwin,  bishop 
of  Lindsay ;  Oswald,  king  of  Northumbria ;  Aldfrith, 
another  Northumbrian  king,  who  was  educated  either  in 
Ireland  or  lona ;  Alcuin,  who  received  instruction  at 
Clonmacnoise  ; 5  one  named  Wictberht,  "  notable  ...  for  his 
learning  and  knowledge,  for  he  had  lived  many  years  as 
a  stranger  and  pilgrim  in  Ireland";  and  St.  Willibrord,  who 
at  the  age  of  twenty  journeyed  to  Ireland  for  purposes  of 
study,  because  he  had  heard  that  learning  flourished  in 
that  country.6 

1  Hyde,  221.  2  Joyce,  Short  Hist,  off.,  165. 

3  Bede,  H.  £.,  iii.  27 ;  Healy,  101  ;  Stokes  (G.  T.),  230. 
Camb.  Lit.,  i.  66.  5  Healy,  272.  6  Alcuin,  Willibrord,  c.  4. 


io  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


§111 

Most  of  the  references  we  have  made  above  belong  to 
the  sixth  and  seventh  centuries,  usually  regarded  as  the 
best  age  of  Irish  monachism.  But  the  Irish  enjoyed  their 
reputation  unimpaired  for  a  long  time.  Just  before  and 
after  the  Northmen  descended  on  their  land  in  7 9 5,  we  find 
them  making  their  mark  abroad,  not  so  much  as  missionaries 
but  as  scholars  and  teachers.1 

A  few  instances  will  suffice.  "  The  Acts  of  Charles, 
written  by  a  monk  of  St.  Gallen  late  in  the  ninth  century, 
tells  us  of  '  two  Scots  from  Ireland,'  who  '  lighted  with  the 
British  merchants  on  the  coast  of  Gaul,'  and  cried  to  the 
crowd,  '  If  any  man  desireth  wisdom,  let  him  come  unto  us 
and  receive  it,  for  we  have  it  for  sale.'  They  were  soon  in- 
vited to  the  court  of  Charles.  One  of  them,  Clement,  partly 
filled  the  place  of  Alcuin  as  head  of  the  palace  school." ' 
His  reputation  soon  became  widespread,  and  the  abbot  of 
Fulda  sent  several  of  his  most  capable  monks  to  him  to 
learn  grammar.3  His  companion,  Dungal,  went  on  to  Italy. 
He  enjoyed  a  full  share  of  the  learning  of  his  time ;  was  a 
student  of  Cicero  and  Macrobius ;  knew  Virgil  well ;  and 
had  some  Greek.4  A  few  fine  books  were  bequeathed 
by  him  to  the  Irish  monastery  of  Bobio,  where  copies 
were  written  and  distributed  through  Italy.  According 
to  the  learned  Muratori,  in  one  of  these  manuscripts 
is  an  inscription  proving  Dungal's  ownership.5  One 


1  See  full  account,  R.  H.  S.  (N.  S.),  v.  75. 

2  Sandys,  i.  480. 

3  K.  H.  S.  (N.  S.),  v.  90. 

4  Sandys,  i.  480  ;  Stokes  (M.)2,  2IO. 

5  "  Sancte  Columba  tibi  Scotto  tuus  incola  Dungal 
Tradidit  hunc  librum,  quo  fratrum  corda  beentur. 
Qui  leges  ergo  Deus  pretium  sit  muneris,  oro." — Healy,  392. 


INTRODUCTORY  n 

of  the  books  so  bequeathed  was  the  famous  Antiphonary 
of  Bangor,  now  in  the  Ambrosian  library  at  Milan. 

Clement  and  Dungal  were  not  the  only  Irishmen  of 
note  on  the  Continent.  One,  Dicuil,  was  an  exponent  of 
geography.  He  founded  his  treatise  (c.  825)  on  Caesar, 
Pliny,  and  Solinus ;  he  quotes  and  names  many  other 
writers,  including  fourteen  Greek ;  and  generally  impresses 
us  with  his  earnest  studentship.  An  Irish  monk  named 
Donatus  wandered  to  Italy  and  became  bishop  of  Fiesole 
(c.  829);  he,  too,  was  a  scholar  acquainted  with  Virgil,  a 
teacher  of  grammar  and  prosody,  and  a  lecturer  on  the 
saints.1  Sedulius,  the  commentator,  an  Irish  monk  of 
Liege,  copied  Greek  psalters,  wrote  Latin  verses,  knew 
Cicero's  letters,  the  works  of  Valerius  Maximus,  Vegetius, 
Origen,  and  Jerome;  was  well  acquainted  with  mythology  and 
history,  and  perhaps  had  some  Hebrew.2  Another  Irishman, 
John  the  Scot  (Joannes  Scotus  Erigena),  became  the  most 
eminent  scholar  of  his  time  :  he  alone,  among  all  the  learned 
men  Charles  the  Bald  had  about  him,  was  able  to  translate 
from  Greek  (c.  8  5  8-860).  Well  might  Eric  of  Auxerre,  writ- 
ing to  Charles,  express  his  astonishment  at  this  train  of 
philosophers  from  Ireland,  that  barbarous  land  on  the 
confines  of  the  world.3  All  these  wanderers,  and  many 
more,  must  have  been  responsible  for  the  dissemination  of 
the  books  produced  by  Irish  hands ;  and,  in  fact,  many 
manuscripts  of  Celtic  origin  and  early  in  date,  are  still  on 
the  Continent,  or  have  been  found  there  and  brought  to 
Ireland.4 


1  Stokes  (M.)2,  206-7,  247.  2  Sandys,  i.  463. 

3  Moore,  Hist,  of  I.,  i.  299  ;  Boll.  lul.  t.  vii.  222. 

4  The  following,  among  others,  are  still  on  the  Continent :  Gospels  of  Willi- 
brord   (Bibl.    Nat.    Lat.    9389,   739),   Gospel  of  St.   John  (Cod.   60  St.   Gall 
c.  750-800)  ;  Book  of  Fragments  (No.  1395,  St.  Gall,  c.  750-800);  The  Golden 
Gospels    (Royal    library,    Stockholm,    871)  ;    Gospels    of    St.     Arnoul,    Metz 
(Nuremberg  Museum,  7th  c.). — Cp.  Maclean,  207-8  ;  Hyde,  267. 


12  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

In  some  respects  the  evidence  of  book-culture  in 
Ireland  in  these  early  centuries  is  inconsistent.  The  jealous 
guard  Longarad  kept  over  his  books,  the  quarrel  over 
Columba's  Psalter,  and  the  great  esteem  in  which  scribes 
were  held,1  suggest  a  scarcity  of  books.  The  practice  of 
enshrining  them  in  cumdachs,  or  book-covers,  points  to  a 
like  conclusion.  On  the  other  hand,  Bede  tells  us  the 
Irish  could  lend  foreign  students  books,  so  plentiful  were 
they.  His  statement  is  corroborated  by  the  number  of 
scribes  whose  deaths  have  been  recorded  by  the  annalists ; 
the  Four  Masters^  for  example,  note  sixty-one  eminent 
scribes  before  the  year  900,  forty  of  whom  belong  to  the 
eighth  century.2  In  some  of  the  monasteries  a  special 
room  for  books  was  provided.  The  Annals  of  Tigernach 
refer  to  the  house  of  manuscripts.3  An  apartment  of  this 
kind  is  particularly  mentioned  as  being  saved  from  the 
flames  when  Armagh  monastery  was  burned  (1020). 
Another  fact  suggesting  an  abundance  of  books  was  the 
appointment  of  a  librarian,  which  sometimes  took  place.4 
Although  a  special  book-room  and  officer  are  only  to  be 
met  with  much  later  than  the  best  age  of  Irish  monachism, 
yet  we  may  reasonably  assume  them  to  be  the  natural 
culmination  of  an  old  and  established  practice  of  making 
and  using  books. 

Such  statements,  however,  are  not  necessarily  con- 
tradictory. Manuscripts  over  which  the  cleverest  scribes 
and  illuminators  had  spent  much  time  and  pains  would  be 
jealously  preserved  in  cases  or  shrines ;  still,  when  we 
remember  how  many  precious  fruits  of  the  past  must  have 

1  Adamnan,  36511. 

2  Hyde,  220;  Stokes  (M.),  IO,  "  Connachtach,  an  Abbot  of  lona  who  died 
in  802,  is  called  in  the   Irish   annals    'a   scribe   most   choice.'" — Trenholme, 
lona,  32. 

3  Teck-scrcptra  ;  domus  scripturarum. 

4  Leabhar  coimedach.     Adamnan,  359,  note  m. 


PLATE  I 


INTRODUCTORY  13 

perished,  the  number  of  beautiful  Irish  manuscripts  extant 
goes  to  prove  that  books  even  of  this  character  could  not 
have  been  extraordinarily  rare.  "  Workaday "  copies  of 
books  would  be  made  as  well,  in  comparatively  large 
numbers,  and  would  no  doubt  be  used  very  freely.  Besides 
books  properly  so  called,  the  religious  used  waxed  tablets 
of  wood,  which  were  sometimes  called  books.  St.  Ciaran, 
for  example,  wrote  on  staves,  which  are  called  in  one  place 
his  tablets,  and  in  two  other  places  the  whole  collection  of 
his  staves  is  called  a  book.1  Such  tablets  were  indeed 
books  in  which  the  fugitive  pieces  of  the  time  were 
written.2  Considering  all  things,  Bede  was  without  doubt 
quite  correct  in  saying  the  Irish  had  enough  books  to  lend 
to  foreign  students. 

§  iv 

Our  account  of  the  work  accomplished  by  the  Irish 
monks  would  be  incomplete  without  reference  to  their 
writing,  illuminating,  and  book-economy,  the  relics  of  which 
are  so  finely  rare. 

The  old  Irish  runes  gave  place  slowly  to  the  Roman 
alphabet,  which  came  into  use,  as  we  have  already  observed, 
after  St.  Patrick's  mission.  This  new  writing  was  in  two 
forms — round  and  pointed — but  both  were  derived  from  the 
Roman  half-uncial  style.  The  clear  and  beautifully-shaped 


1  Joyce,  i.  483. 

2  At  vero  hoc   audiens  Colcius  tempus  et   horam  in  tabula  describens. — 
Adamnan,  66.     Columba  is  said  to  have  blessed  one  hundred  polaires  or  tablets 
(Leabhar  Breac,  fo.  16-60  ;  Stokes  (M.),  51).    The  boy  Benen,  who  followed  Pat- 
rick, bore  tablets  on  his  back  (folaire,  corrupt  forpdlaire}. — Stokes  (W.),  T.  Z.,  47. 
Patrick  gave  to  Fiacc  a  case  containing  a  tablet.    Ib.  344.    An  example  of  a  waxed 
tablet,  with  a  case  for  it,  is  in  the  Museum  of  the  Royal  Irish  Academy.     The 
case  is  a  wooden  cover,  divided  into  hollowed-out  compartments  for  holding  the 
styles.     This  specimen  dates  from  the  thirteenth  or  fourteenth  century.     Slates 
and  pencils  were  also  in  use  for  temporary  purposes. — Joyce,  i.  483. 


i4  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

Irish  round  hand  is  closely  akin  to  the  half-uncial  character 
of  fifth  and  sixth  century  Latin  writings  found  on  the 
Continent.  The  Book  of  Kells,  written  probably  at  the  end 
of  the  seventh  century,  is  the  finest  example  of  the  orna- 
mental Irish  round  hand.  St.  Chad's  Gospels,  now  at 
Lichfield,  written  about  the  same  time,  is  a  manuscript  of 
like  character,  but  not  so  good.  A  later  manuscript,  the 
Gospels  of  MacRegol,  which  dates  from  the  beginning  of 
the  ninth  century,  shows  marked  deterioration  in  the  writing. 


uirm 


THUS  a 


BOOK  OF  KELLS,  SEVENTH  CENTURY 

The  Irish  pointed  style,  used  for  quicker  writing,  is  but 
a  modified,  pointed  variety  of  the  round  hand,  the  letters 
being  laterally  compressed.  This  hand  appears  in  some 
pages  of  the  Book  of  Kells,  but  the  best  example  is  in  the 
Book  of  Armagh.1 

Although  the  Roman  alphabet  was  introduced  by 
Augustine  at  the  Canterbury  school,  it  wholly  failed  to 
have  any  effect  on  the  native  hand  from  that  source.  On 
the  other  hand,  when,  in  the  seventh  century,  Northumbria 

1  See  Thompson,  236,  where  Irish  calligraphy  is  fully  dealt  with  ;   Camb.  Lit., 
i.  13. 


PLA'l E 


ILLUMINATED  PAGE  OF  THE   BOOK  OF   KELLS 


INTRODUCTORY  15 

was  converted  by  Irish  missionaries,  the  new  Christians 
copied  the  Irish  writing,  so  well,  indeed,  that  the  earliest 
specimens  extant  can  hardly  be  distinguished  from  the 
beautiful  penmanship  of  the  Irish.  The  Book  of  Durham, 
generally  called  the  Lindisfarne  Gospels,  of  about  700, 
is  an  exquisite  Northumbrian  example  of  the  Irish  round 
hand,  in  the  characteristic  broad,  heavy  -  stroke  letters. 
Another  good  specimen  of  this  style  is  the  eighth  century 
manuscript  of  Bede's  Ecclesiastical  History,  in  Cambridge 
University  Library. 

Irish    illumination    is  as   characteristic  as    the  writing. 
Pictures  and  drawings  of  the 

human     figure     are     not     so 

.      .,  ,       c 

common    as   in    the   work   of 

other  schools,  and  when  they 

do  appear  are  not  often  good.  |»ifpt4if  tiluUttjA  ufl<  <]fmV.tir 

Still,   some    of  them,   as    the  wp  ^^^nwh^nrHil  * jw£ 

scenes  from  the  life  of  Christ  «*  fl^Wf2fr*S  ™f  ** 

in  the  Book  of  Kells,  are  quite  ^^4**^ 
unlike     the     illuminations    of          BOOK  OF  ARMAGH,  BEFORE 

A.D.    844 

any  other  school ;    while  the 

portraits  of  the  Evangelists  in  the  same  book,  in  the  Book 
of  MacRegol,  and  in  the  Lindisfarne  Gospels,  are  singularly 
interesting.  Floral  work  is  also  rare.  But  in  geometrical 
ornament,  beautifully  symmetrical — diagonal  patterns,  zig- 
zags, waves,  lozenges,  divergent  spirals,  intertwisted  and 
interwoven  ribbon  and  cord  work  —  and  in  grotesque 
zoological  forms, — lizards,  snakes,  hounds,  birds,  and  dragons' 
heads,  —  the  Irish  school  attained  their  highest  artistic 
development.  Their  art  is  striking,  not  for  originality,  not 
for  its  beauty,  which  is  nevertheless  great,  but  for  pains- 
taking. Knowing  but  one  style  of  making  a  book  beautiful, 
they  lavished  much  time  and  loving  care  to  achieve  their 
end.  The  detail  is  extraordinarily  minute  and  compli- 


16  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

cated.  "  I  have  counted,"  writes  Professor  Westwood,  "  [with 
a  magnifying  glass]  in  a  small  space  scarcely  three-quarters 
of  an  inch  in  length  by  less  than  half  an  inch  in  width,  in 
the  Book  of  Armagh,  no  less  than  I  5  8  interlacements  of  a 
slender  ribbon  pattern  formed  of  white  lines  edged  with 
black  ones."  But,  this  intricacy  notwithstanding,  the  designs 
as  a  whole  are  usually  bold  and  effective.  In  the  best  kind 
of  Irish  illumination  gold  and  silver  are  not  used,  but  the 
colours  are  varied  and  brilliant,  and  are  employed  with 
taste  and  discretion ;  while  the  occasional  staining  of  a  leaf 
of  vellum  with  a  fine  purple  sometimes  adds  beauty  and 
much  distinction  to  an  excellent  design. 

Of  intricate  geometrical  ornament  and  grotesque  figures, 
the  illumination  representing  the  symbols  of  the  Four 
Evangelists  (fo.  290)  of  the  Book  of  Kells  is  perhaps  the 
best  example.  Of  divergent  spirals  and  interlaced  ribbon 
work  the  frontispiece  of  St.  Jerome's  Epistle  in  the  Book  of 
Durrow  affords  notable  examples.  Two  of  the  peculiar 
features  of  Irish  decoration — the  rows  of  red  dots  round  a 
design  and  the  dragon's  head — appear  in  the  earliest,  or 
nearly  the  earliest,  Irish  manuscript  extant,  namely,  the 
Cathach  Psalter,  now  in  the  Museum  of  the  Royal  Irish 
Academy.  Whether  the  essential  and  peculiar  features  of 
this  ornamentation  are  purely  indigenous,  as  Professor 
Westwood  contends,  or  whether  they  are  of  Gallo-Roman 
origin,  as  Fleury  argues,  is  a  moot  point,  calling  for 
complicated  discussion  which  would  be  out  of  place 
here. 

The  amount  of  illumination  in  the  existing  manuscripts 
varies,  but  the  pages  chosen  for  illuminating  are  nearly 
always  the  same.  In  the  Book  of  Kells  the  illuminations 
consist  of  three  portraits  of  the  Evangelists,  three  scenes 
from  the  life  of  Christ,  three  combined  symbols  of  the  four 
Evangelists,  eight  pages  of  the  Eusebian  canons,  and  many 


PLATE  III 


INTRODUCTORY  17 

initials.  The  Book  of  Durham  contains  four  portraits  of 
the  Evangelists,  six  initial  pages,  one  ornamental  page 
before  each  Gospel,  and  before  St.  Jerome's  Epistle,  and 
eight  pages  of  the  Eusebian  canons.  The  Book  of  Durrow 
has  sixteen  illuminated  pages :  four  of  the  symbols  of  the 
Evangelists,  six  pages  of  initials,  one  ornamental  page  at 
the  frontispiece,  one  before  the  letter  of  St.  Jerome,  and 
one  before  each  Gospel. 

The  oldest  Irish  manuscript  in  existence  is  probably 
the  Domnach  Airgrid,  or  manuscript  of  the  Silver  Shrine, 
also  called  St.  Patrick's  Gospels.  Dr.  Petrie  believed  the 
Domnach  to  be  the  identical  reliquary  given  by  St.  Patrick 
to  St.  Mac  Cairthinn,  when  the  latter  was  put  in  charge  of 
the  see  of  Clogher,  in  the  fifth  century.  "  As  a  manuscript 
copy  of  the  Gospels  apparently  of  that  early  age  is  found 
with  it,  there  is  every  reason  to  believe  it  to  be  that  identical 
one  for  which  the  box  was  originally  made."  l  But  both 
case  and  manuscript  are  now  held  to  be  somewhat  later  in 
date.  Another  very  early  manuscript  is  the  sixth  century 
fragment  of  fifty-eight  leaves  of  a  Latin  Psalter,  styled  the 
Cathach  or  "  Battler."  For  centuries  this  fragment  has  been 
preserved  in  a  beautiful  case  as  a  relic  of  Columba ;  as,  in- 
deed, the  actual  cause  of  the  dispute  between  Columba  and 
Finnian  of  Moville. 

§  v 

Two  features  of  book-economy,  although  not  peculiar 
to  Ireland,  are  rarely  met  with  outside  that  country.  The 
religious  used  satchels  or  wallets  to  carry  their  books  about 
with  them.  We  are  told  Patrick  once  met  a  party  of 
clerics  and  gillies  with  books  in  their  girdles ;  and  he  gave 
them  the  hide  he  had  sat  and  slept  on  for  twenty  years  to 

1  Trans.  R.  I.  Acad.t  vol.  xviii.  1838. 


i8  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

make  a  wallet.1  Columba  is  said  to  have  made  satchels, 
and  to  have  blessed  them.  When  these  satchels  were  not 
carried  they  were  hung  upon  pegs  set  in  the  wall  of  the 
cell  or  the  church  or  the  tower  where  they  were  preserved.2 
We  have  already  noted  the  legend  which  tells  how  all  the 
satchels  in  Ireland  slipped  off  their  pegs  when  Longarad 
died.  A  modern  writer  visiting  the  Abyssinian  convent 
of  Souriani  has  seen  a  room  which,  when  we  remember  the 
connection  between  Egyptian  and  Celtic  monachism,  we 
cannot  help  thinking  must  closely  resemble  an  ancient 
Irish  cell.3  In  the  room  the  disposition  of  the  manuscripts 
was  very  original.  "  A  wooden  shelf  was  carried  in  the 
Egyptian  style  round  the  walls,  at  the  height  of  the  top  of 
the  door.  .  .  .  Underneath  the  shelf  various  long  wooden  pegs 
projected  from  the  wall ;  they  were  each  about  a  foot  and 
a  half  long,  and  on  them  hung  the  Abyssinian  manuscripts, 
of  which  this  curious  library  was  entirely  composed.  The 
books  of  Abyssinia  are  .  .  .  enclosed  in  a  case  tied  up 
with  leathern  thongs  ;  to  this  case  is  attached  a  strap  for 
the  convenience  of  carrying  the  volume  over  the  shoulders, 
and  by  these  straps  the  books  were  hung  to  the  wooden 
pegs,  three  or  four  on  a  peg,  or  more  if  the  books  were 
small ;  their  usual  size  was  that  of  a  small,  very  thick 
quarto.  The  appearance  of  the  room,  fitted  up  in  this  style, 
together  with  the  presence  of  long  staves,  such  as  the 

1  Stokes  (W.),  T.  L.,  75.  The  terms  used  for  satchels  are  sacculi  (Lat.),  and 
tiag,  or  tiag  liubhair  or  teig  liubair  (Ir.).  There  has  been  some  confusion 
between  p6laire  and  tiag,  the  former  being  regarded  as  a  leather  case  for  a  single 
book,  the  latter  a  satchel  for  several  books.  This  distinction  is  made  in  con- 
nection with  the  ancient  Irish  life  of  Columba,  which  is  therefore  made  to  read 
that  the  saint  used  to  make  cases  and  satchels  for  books  (polaire  ocus  tiaga), 
v.  Adamnan,  115.  Cf.  Petrie,  Round  Towers,  336-7.  But  the  late  Dr. 
Whitley  Stokes  makes  pdlaire  or  goitre,  or  the  corruption  folaire,  derive  from 
pugillares= writing  tablets. — Stokes  (W.),  T.  L.,  cliii.  and  655.  This  interpre- 
tation of  the  word  gives  us  the  much  more  likely  reading  that  Columba  made 
tablets,  and  satchels  for  books, 

3  Stokes  (M.)>  5°-  8  Curzon,  Monasteries  of  the  Levant,  66. 


INTRODUCTORY  19 

monks  of  all  the  Oriental  churches  lean  upon  at  the  time  of 
prayer,  resembled  less  a  library  than  a  barrack  or  guard- 
room, where  the  soldiers  had  hung  their  knapsacks  and 
cartridge  boxes  against  the  wall."  The  few  old  Irish 
satchels  remaining  are  black  with  age,  and  the  characteristic 
decoration  of  diagonal  lines  and  interlaced  markings  is 
nearly  worn  away.  Two  of  them  are  preserved  in  England 
and  Ireland  :  those  of  the  Book  of  Armagh,  in  Trinity 
College,  Dublin,  and  of  the  Irish  Missal  in  Corpus  Christi 
College,  Oxford.  The  wallet  at  Oxford  looks  much  like 
a  modern  schoolboy's  satchel ;  leather  straps  are  fixed  to 
it,  by  which  it  was  slung  round  the  neck.  The  Armagh 
wallet  is  made  of  one  piece  of  leather,  folded  to  form  a  case  a 
foot  long,  a  little  more  than  a  foot  broad,  and  two  and  a  half 
inches  thick.  The  Book  of  Armagh  does  not  fit  it  properly. 
Interlaced  work  and  zoomorphs  decorate  the  leather.  Re- 
mains of  rough  straps  are  still  attached  to  the  sides. 

The  second  special  feature  of  Irish  book-economy 
was  the  preservation  of  manuscripts  in  cumdachs  or  rect- 
angular boxes,  made  just  large  enough  for  the  books  they 
were  intended  to  enshrine.  As  in  the  case  of  the  wallet, 
the  cumdach  was  not  peculiar  to  Ireland,  although  the 
finest  examples  which  have  come  down  to  us  were  made 
in  that  country.1  They  are  referred  to  several  times  in 


1  Mr.  Allen,  in  his  admirable  volume  on  Celtic  Art,  p.  208,  in  this  series, 
says  cumdachs  were  peculiar  to  Ireland.  But  they  were  made  and  used  elsewhere, 
and  were  variously  known  as  capsae,  librorum  coopertoria  (e.g.  .  .  .  librorumque 
coopertoria  ;  queedam  horum  nuda,  qusedam  vero  alia  auro  atque  argento  gemmis- 
que  pretiosis  circumtecta. — Acta  SS.,  Attg.  iii.  659c),  and  thecae.  Some  of 
these  cases  were  no  doubt  as  beautifully  decorated  as  the  Irish  cumdachs. 
William  of  Malmesbury  asserts  that  twenty  pounds  and  sixty  marks  of  gold  were 
used  to  make  the  coopertoria  librorum  Evangelii  for  King  Ina's  chapel.  At 
the  Abbey  of  St.  Riquier  was  an  "  Evangelium  auro  Scriptum  unum,  cum  capsa 
argentea  gemmis  et  lapidibus  fabricata.  Aliae  capsae  evangeliorum  duae  ex  auro 
et  argento  paratae." — Maitland,  212.  In  1295  St.  Paul's  Cathedral  possessed 
a  copy  of  the  Gospels  in  a  case  (capsa)  adorned  with  gilding  and  relics. — Putnam, 
i.  105-6. 


20  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

early  Irish  annals.  Bishop  Assicus  is  said  to  have  made 
quadrangular  book-covers  in  honour  of  Patrick.1  In  the 
Annals  of  the  Four  Masters  is  recorded,  under  the  year  937, 
a  reference  to  the  cumdach  of  the  Book  of  Armagh,  or  the 
Canon  of  Patrick.  "  Canoin  Phadraig  was  covered  by 
Donchadh,  son  of  Flann,  king  of  Ireland."  In  1006  the 
Annals  note  that  the  Book  of  Kells — "  the  Great  Gospel  of 
Columb  Cille  was  stolen  at  night  from  the  western  erdomh 
of  the  Great  Church  of  Ceannanus.  This  was  the  principal 
relic  of  the  western  world,  on  account  of  its  singular  cover ; 
and  it  was  found  after  twenty  nights  and  two  months,  its  gold 
having  been  stolen  off  it,  and  a  sod  over  it."  2  These  cumdachs 
are  now  lost ;  so  also  is  the  jewelled  case  of  the  Gospels 
of  St.  Arnoul  at  Metz,  and  that  belonging  to  the  Book  of 
Durrow. 

By  good  hap,  several  cumdachs  of  the  greatest  interest 
are  still  preserved  for  our  inspection.  One  of  them,  the 
Silver  Shrine  of  the  so-called  St.  Patrick's  Gospels,  is  a 
very  peculiar  case.  It  consists  of  three  covers.  The  first, 
or  inner,  is  of  yew,  and  was  perhaps  made  in  the  sixth  or 
seventh  century.  The  second,  of  copper,  silver-plated,  is 
of  later  make.  The  third,  or  outermost,  is  of  silver,  and 
was  probably  made  in  the  fourteenth  century.  The 
cumdach  of  the  Stowe  Missal  (1023)  is  a  much  more 
beautiful  example.  It  is  of  oak,  covered  with  plates  of 
silver.  The  lower  or  more  ancient  side  bears  a  cross 
within  a  rectangular  frame.  In  the  centre  of  the  cross  is  a 
crystal  set  in  an  oval  mount.  The  decoration  of  the  four 
panels  consists  of  metal  plates,  the  ornament  being  a 
chequer-work  of  squares  and  triangles.  The  lid  has  a 
similar  cross  and  frame,  but  the  cross  is  set  with  pearls  and 

1  Leborchometa  chethrochori,  zn.&bibliothecae  quadratae. — Stokes  (W.),  71  Z., 
96  and  313. 

2  Stokes  (M.),  90. 


PLATE  IV 


CUMDACH   OF   ST.   MOLAISE'S  GOSPELS:   BOTTOM 


CUMDACH   OF  ST.  MOLAISE'S  GOSPELS:   FRONT 


INTRODUCTORY  21 

metal  bosses,  a  crystal  in  the  centre,  and  a  large  jewel  at 
the  end  of  each  arm.  The  panels  consist  of  silver-gilt 
plates  embellished  with  figures  of  saints.  The  sides,  which 
are  decorated  with  enamelled  bosses  and  open-work  designs, 
are  imperfect.  On  the  box  are  inscriptions  in  Irish,  such 
as  the  following  :  "  Pray  for  Dunchad,  descendant  of  Taccan, 
of  the  family  of  Cluain,  who  made  this  " ;  "A  blessing  of 
God  on  every  soul  according  to  its  merit " ;  "  Pray  for 
Donchadh,  son  of  Brian,  for  the  king  of  Ireland  "  ;  "  And 
for  Mace  Raith,  descendant  of  Donnchad,  for  the  king  of 
Cashel." *  Other  cumdachs  are  those  in  the  Royal  Irish 
Academy  for  Molaise's  Gospels  (c.  1001—25),  for  Columba's 
Psalter  (1084),  and  those  in  Trinity  College,  Dublin,  for 
Dimma's  book  (1150)  and  for  the  Book  of  St.  Moling. 
There  are  also  the  cumdachs  for  Cairnech's  Calendar  and 
that  of  Caillen ;  both  of  late  date.  The  library  of  St.  Gall 
possesses  still  another  silver  cumdach,  which  is  probably  Irish. 
These  are  the  earliest  relics  we  have  of  what  was 
undoubtedly  an  old  and  established  method  of  enshrining 
books,  going  back  as  far  as  Patrick's  time,  if  it  be  correct 
that  Bishop  Assicus  made  them,  or  if  the  first  case  of  the 
Silver  Shrine  is  as  old  as  it  is  believed  to  be.  The 
beautiful  lower  cover  of  the  Gospels  of  Lindau,  now  in 
Mr.  Pierpont  Morgan's  treasure-house,  proves  that  at  least 
as  early  as  the  seventh  century  the  Irish  lavished  as  much 
art  on  the  outside  of  their  manuscripts  as  upon  the  inside.2 
It  is  natural  to  make  a  beautiful  covering  for  a  book  which 
is  both  beautiful  and  sacred.  All  the  volumes  upon  which 
the  Irish  artist  exercised  his  talent  were  invested  with 
sacred  attributes.  Chroniclers  would  have  us  believe  they 
were  sometimes  miraculously  produced.  In  the  life  of 
Cronan 3  is  a  story  telling  how  an  expert  scribe  named 

1  Stokes  (M.),  92-3.  2  See  La  Bibliofilia,  xi.  165. 

3  Acta  SS.  Ap.,  iii.  5810. 


22  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Dimma  copied  the  four  Gospels.  Dimma  could  only 
devote  a  day  to  the  task,  whereupon  Cronan  bade  him 
begin  at  once  and  continue  until  sunset.  But  the  sun  did 
not  set  for  forty  days,  and  by  that  time  the  copy  was 
finished.  The  manuscript  written  for  Cronan  is  possibly 
the  book  of  Dimma,  which  bears  the  inscription  :  "  It  is 
finished.  A  prayer  for  Dimma,  who  wrote  it  for  God,  and 
a  blessing."  l 

It  was  believed  such  books  could  not  be  injured.  St. 
Ciaran's  copy  of  the  Gospels  fell  into  a  lake,  but  was 
uninjured.  St.  Cronan's  copy  fell  into  Loch  Cre,  and  re- 
mained under  water  forty  days  without  injury.  Even  fire 
could  not  harm  St.  Cainnech's  case  of  books.2  Nor  is  it 
surprising  they  should  be  looked  upon  as  sacred.  The 
scribes  and  illuminators  who  took  such  loving  care  to  make 
their  work  perfect,  and  the  craftsmen  who  wrought  beauti- 
ful shrines  for  the  books  so  made,  were  animated  with  the 
feeling  and  spirit  which  impels  men  to  erect  beautiful 
churches  to  testify  to  the  glory  of  their  Creator.  As 
Dimma  says,  they  "  wrote  them  for  God." 

1  Healy,  524. 

2  Other  instances  are  cited  in  Adamnan,  book  ii.,  chap.  8. 


CHAPTER    II 
THE   ENGLISH   MONKS   AND   THEIR   BOOKS 

"  There  are  delightful  libraries,  more  aromatic  than  stores  of  spicery  ; 
there  are  luxuriant  parks  of  all  manner  of  volumes  ;  there  are  Academic 
meads  shaken  by  the  tramp  of  scholars  ;  there  are  lounges  of  Athens  ; 
walks  of  the  Peripatetics  ;  peaks  of  Parnassus  ;  and  porches  of  the  Stoics. 
There  is  seen  the  surveyor  of  all  arts  and  sciences  Aristotle,  to  whom 
belongs  all  that  is  most  excellent  in  doctrine,  so  far  as  relates  to  this 
passing  sublunary  world  ;  there  Ptolemy  measures  epicycles  and  eccentric 
apogees  and  the  nodes  of  the  planets  by  figures  and  numbers.  .  .  ." 
Richard  De  Bury,  Philobiblon^  Thomas'  ed.  200 

§i 

~^HE  Benedictine  order  established  monastic  study  on 
J_  a  regular  plan.  Benedict's  forty-eighth  rule  is  clear 
in  its  directions.  "  Idleness  is  hurtful  to  the  soul. 
At  certain  times,  therefore,  the  brethren  must  work  with 
their  hands,  and  at  others  give  themselves  up  to  holy 
reading."  From  Easter  to  the  first  of  October  the  monks 
were  required  to  work  at  manual  labour  from  prime  until 
the  fourth  hour.  From  the  fourth  hour  until  nearly  the 
sixth  hour  they  were  to  read.  After  their  meal  at  the 
sixth  hour  they  were  to  lie  on  their  beds,  and  those  who 
cared  to  do  so  might  read,  but  not  aloud.  After  nones 
work  must  be  resumed  until  evening.  From  October  the 
first  until  the  beginning  of  Lent  they  were  to  read  until 
the  ninth  hour.  At  the  ninth  hour  they  were  to  take  their 
meal  and  then  read  spiritual  works  or  the  Psalms. 
Throughout  Lent  they  were  required  to  read  until  the 


24  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

third  hour,  then  work  until  the  tenth.  Every  monk  was 
to  have  a  book  from  the  library,  and  to  read  it  through 
during  Lent.  On  Sundays  reading  was  their  duty  through- 
out the  day,  except  in  the  case  of  those  having  special 
tasks.  During  reading  hours  two  senior  brethren  were 
expected  to  go  the  rounds  to  see  that  the  monks  were 
actually  reading,  and  not  lounging  nor  gossiping.  But 
the  brethren  were  not  allowed  to  have  a  book  or  tablets 
or  a  pen  of  their  own. 

Benedict's  inclusion  of  these  directions  was  of  capital 
importance  in  the  advance  of  monkish  learning.  Being 
milder  and  more  flexible,  communal  instead  of  eremitical, 
and  so  altogether  more  humane  and  attractive,  his  Rule 
gradually  took  the  place  of  existing  orders.  And  as  the 
change  came  about,  ill-regulated  theological  study  gave 
way  to  superior  methods  of  learning,  solely  due  to  the 
better  organisation  and  greater  liberality  of  the  Benedictine 
order. 

Benedictinism  came  to  England  with  Augustine  (597). 
The  Rule,  however,  does  not  seem  to  have  been  strictly  or 
consistently  observed  for  a  long  time.  But  the  studious 
labours  of  the  monks  remained  just  as  important  a  part  of 
their  lives  as  they  would  have  been  had  the  monasteries 
closely  followed  Benedict's  directions.  Especially  would 
this  be  the  case  in  the  seventh  century,  and  afterwards, 
during  the  time  continental  monachism  was  in  rivalry 
with  the  Celtic  missionaries. 


§" 

From  the  first  we  hear  of  books  in  connexion  with  Canter- 
bury. Gregory  the  Great  gave  to  Augustine,  either  just 
before  his  English  mission,  or  sent  to  him  soon  afterward, 
nine  volumes,  which  were  put  in  St.  Augustine's  monastery 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS     25 

— the  monastery  of  SS.  Peter  and  Paul,  beyond  the  walls. 
Being  for  church  purposes,  the  books  were  very  beautiful 
and  valuable.  There  was  the  Gregorian  Bible  in  two 
volumes,  with  some  of  its  leaves  coloured  rose  and 
purple,  which  gave  a  wonderful  reflection  when  held  to 
the  light ;  the  Psalter  of  Augustine ;  a  copy  of  the 
Gospels  called  the  Text  of  St.  Mildred,  upon  which  a 
countryman  in  Thanet  swore  falsely  and,  it  is  said,  lost 
his  sight ;  as  well  as  another  copy  of  the  Gospels ;  a 
Psalter,  with  plain  silver  images  of  Christ  and  the  four 
Evangelists  on  the  cover ;  two  martyrologies,  one  adorned 
with  a  silver  figure  of  Christ,  the  other  enriched  with  silver- 
gilt  and  precious  stones  ;  and  an  Exposition  of  the  Gospels 
and  Epistles,  also  enriched  with  gems.1  Some  of  these 
books  were  kept  above  the  altar.  Bede  also  records  the 
gift  by  Gregory  to  Augustine  of  "  many  manuscripts," 
and  his  authority  is  unimpeachable,  as  he  derived  his 
knowledge  of  Canterbury  affairs  from  written  records  and 
information  supplied  by  Albinus,  first  English  abbot  of 
Augustine's  house.2  This  monastery  "  was  thus  the  mother- 
school,  the  mother-university  of  England,  ...  at  a  time  when 
Cambridge  was  a  desolate  fen,  and  Oxford  a  tangled  forest 
in  a  wide  waste  of  waters.  They  remind  us  that  English 
power  and  English  religion  have,  as  from  the  very  first,  so 
ever  since,  gone  along  with  knowledge,  with  learning,  and 
especially  with  that  learning  and  that  knowledge  which 
those  old  manuscripts  give — the  knowledge  and  learning 
of  the  Gospel." 3  Few  books  would  be  treasured  more 
carefully  and  treated  with  greater  reverence  by  English 
churchmen  and  book  lovers  than  these  "  first  books  of  the 
English  church,"  if  any  of  them  could  be  found.  They  are 

1  Hist.  man.  S.  Augustini,  Cant.,  96-99,   "  Et  haec  sunt  primitiae  librorum 
totius  ecclesiae  Anglicanae,"  99. 

2  //.  E.,  i.  29.  3  Stanley,  Hist.  Mem.  of  C.  (1868),  42. 


26  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

referred  to  as  existing  when  William  Thorne  wrote  his 
chronicle  (c.  I397),1  and  Leland  tells  us  he  saw  and 
admired  them  ;  but  after  his  time  nearly  all  trace  of  them 
is  lost.2 

No  further  hint  of  books  occurs  until  Theodore  became 
Archbishop  more  than  seventy  years  later.  Theodore,  who 
had  been  educated  both  at  Tarsus  and  Athens,  where  he 
became  a  good  Greek  and  Latin  scholar,  well  versed  in  secular 
and  divine  literature,  began  a  school  at  Canterbury  for  the 
study  of  Greek,  and  provided  it  with  some  Greek  books. 
None  of  these  books  has  been  traced  with  certainty.  Some 
may  have  existed  in  Archbishop  Parker's  time.  "  The  Rev. 
Father  Matthew,"  says  Lambarde,  in  his  Perambulation  of 
Kent,  ..."  showed  me,  not  long  since,  the  Psalter  of  David, 
and  sundry  homilies  in  Greek,  Homer  also,  and  some  other 
Greek  authors,  beautifully  written  on  thick  paper  with  the 
name  of  this  Theodore  prefixed  in  the  front,  to  whose 
library  he  reasonably  thought  (being  led  thereto  by  show 
of  great  antiquity)  that  they  sometime  belonged."  The 
manuscript  of  Homer,  now  in  Corpus  Christi  Library, 
Cambridge,  did  not  belong  to  Theodore,  but  to  Prior 
Selling,  of  whom  we  shall  hear  later.  But  possibly  the 
famous  Graeco-Latin  copy  of  the  Acts,  now  in  the  Bodleian 
Library,  belonged  either  to  Theodore  or  to  his  companion, 
Hadrian.3 

1  Hist.  mon.  S.  Aug.,  xxv. 

2  B.  M.  Reg.  I.  E.  vi.  may  be  a  part  of  the  Gregorian  Bible,  or  the  second 
copy  of  the  Gospels  mentioned  above,  if  this  second  copy  is  not  Corpus  Christi, 
Camb.  286.     Corpus  C.  286  is  a  seventh  century  book,  certainly  from  St.  Augus- 
tine's ;  it  was  probably  brought  to  England  in  the  time  of  Theodore,  and  though  it 
may   be  one   of  the   books  referred   to   above,  is,  therefore,  not  Augustinian. 
The  Psalter  bearing  the  silver  images  is  "most  likely"  Cott.  Vesp.  A.   i,  an 
eighth  century  manuscript ;  it  is,  therefore,  not  Augustinian,  although  it  may  be  a 
copy  of  the  original  Psalter  given  by  Gregory. — James,  Ixvi. 

3  Known  as  Codex  E,  or  the  Laudian  Acts  (Laud.  Gr.  35).     Bede  refers  to 
a  Greek  manuscript  of  the  Acts  in  his  Retract ationes  ;  possibly  this  is  the  actual 
copy.     The   last   page   of    the    book   bears   the   signature    ' '  Theodore "  ;    did 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS    27 


28  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Theodore,  with  Hadrian's  help,  not  only  started  the 
Canterbury  School,  but  encouraged  similar  foundations  in 
other  English  monasteries.  In  southern  England,  however, 
Canterbury  remained  the  centre  of  learning,  and  many 
ecclesiastics  were  attracted  to  it  in  consequence.  Bede 
amply  proves  its  efficiency  as  a  school.  And  forasmuch  as 
both  Theodore  and  Hadrian  were  "  fully  instructed  both  in 
sacred  and  in  secular  letters,  they  gathered  a  crowd  of 
disciples,  and  rivers  of  wholesome  knowledge  daily  flowed 
from  them  to  water  the  hearts  of  their  hearers ;  and,  to- 
gether with  the  books  of  Holy  Scripture,  they  also  taught 
them  the  metrical  art,  astronomy,  and  ecclesiastical  arith- 
metic. A  testimony  whereof  is,  that  there  are  still  living 
at  this  day  some  of  their  scholars,  who  are  as  well  versed  in 
the  Greek  and  Latin  tongues  as  in  their  own,  in  which  they 
were  born."  l  Elsewhere  he  mentions  some  of  these  scholars 
by  name.  Albinus,  already  referred  to  as  the  first  English 
abbot  of  St.  Augustine's,  "  was  so  well  instructed  in  literary 
studies,  that  he  had  no  small  knowledge  of  the  Greek  tongue, 
and  knew  the  Latin  as  well  as  the  English,  which  was  his 
native  language." 2  "A  most  learned  man "  was  another 
disciple,  Tobias,  bishop  of  Rochester,  who,  besides  having 
a  great  knowledge  of  letters,  both  ecclesiastical  and  general, 
learned  the  Greek  and  Latin  tongues  "  to  such  perfection, 
that  they  were  as  well  known  and  familiar  to  him  as  his 
native  language."3 

Canterbury's  most  notable  scholar  was  Aldhelm,  the 
first  bishop  of  Sherborne.  In  him  were  united  the 
learning  of  the  Canterbury  and  the  Irish  monks,  for  he 
studied  first  under  Maildulf,  the  Irish  monk  and  scholar 

Archbishop  Theodore  bring  the  volume  to  England  ?     "  It  is  at  least  safe  to  say 
that  the  presence  of  such  a  book  in   England   in  Bede's  time  can  hardly  be 
entirely  independent  of  the  influence   of  Theodore  or  of  Abbot   Hadrian.  "- 
James  (M.  R.),  xxiii. 

1  H.  £.,  iv.  2,  tr.  Sellar.  2  Ib.  v.  20.  3  Ib.  v.  23. 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS     29 

who  founded  and  gave  his  name  to  Malmesbury,  and  then 
under  Hadrian.  When  he  went  to  be  consecrated  an  incident 
befell  him  which  at  once  shows  his  zeal  for  learning,  and  casts 
a  welcome  ray  of  light  on  the  importation  of  books.  While 
at  Canterbury  he  heard  of  the  arrival  of  ships  at  Dover,  and 
thither  he  journeyed  to  see  whether  they  had  brought  any- 
thing in  his  way.  He  found  on  board  plenty  of  books, 
among  them  one  containing  the  complete  Testaments.  He 
offered  to  buy  it,  but  his  price  was  too  low  ;  although,  after- 
wards, when  it  was  believed  his  prayers  had  delivered  the 
owner  from  a  storm,  he  secured  it  on  his  own  terms.1 

Aldhelm  at  length  became  abbot  of  Malmesbury 
(c.  675),  and  under  him  it  grew  to  much  greater  eminence, 
and  attracted  a  large  number  of  students.  Here,  in  the 
solitude  of  the  forest  tract,  he  passed  his  time  in  singing 
merry  ballads  to  win  the  ear  of  the  people  for  his  more 
serious  words,  playing  the  harp,  in  teaching,  and  in  reading 
the  considerable  library  he  had  at  hand.  Bede  describes 
him  as  a  man  "  of  marvellous  learning  both  in  liberal  and 
ecclesiastical  studies."  Judging  by  his  writings  he  was  in 
these  respects  in  the  forefront  of  his  contemporaries,  although 
his  learning  was  heavy  and  pretentious.  From  them  also 
it  is  perfectly  evident  he  could  make  use  not  only  of  the 
Bible,  but  of  lives  of  the  saints,  of  Isidore,  of  the  Recognitions 
of  Clement,  of  the  Acts  of  Sylvester,  of  writings  by  Sulpicius 
Severus,  Athanasius,  Gregory,  Eusebius,  and  Jerome,  as  well 
as  of  Terence,  Virgil,  Horace,  Juvenal,  Persius,  and  Prosper, 
and  some  other  authors.2 

1  This  copy  was  still  at  Malmesbury  in  the  twelfth  century. — W.  of  Malmes- 
bury, Ang.  Sacr.,  ii.  21. 

2  Sandys,  i.  466 ;  Camb.  Eng.  Lit.,  i.  75. 


30  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


§  HI 

Meanwhile  Northumbria  had  become  one  of  the  leading 
centres  of  learning  in  Europe,  almost  entirely  through  the 
labours  and  influence  of  Irish  missionaries.  St.  Aidan,  an 
ascetic  of  lona  who  journeyed  to  Northumbria  at  King 
Oswald's  request,  founded  Lindisfarne,  which  became  the 
monastic  and  episcopal  capital  of  that  kingdom.  Aidan 
required  all  his  pupils,  whether  religious  or  laymen,  to  read 
the  Scriptures,  or  to  learn  the  Psalms.  The  education  of 
boys  was  a  part  of  his  system.  Wherever  a  monastery  was 
founded  it  became  a  school  wherein  taught  the  monks  who 
had  followed  him  from  Scotland.  Cedd,  the  founder  and 
abbot  of  Lastingham,  was  Aidan's  pupil,  so  was  his  brother, 
the  great  bishop  Ceadda  (Chad),  who  succeeded  him  in  his 
abbacy.  At  Lindisfarne  was  wrought  by  Eadfrith  (d.  72  I )  the 
beautiful  manuscript  of  the  Gospels  now  preserved  in  the 
British  Museum,  and  a  little  later  the  fine  cover  for  it. 
Lastingham,  founded  on  the  desolate  moorland  of  North 
Yorkshire,  "  among  steep  and  distant  mountains,  which 
looked  more  like  lurking-places  for  robbers  and  dens  of 
wild  beasts,  than  dwellings  of  men,"  upheld  the  traditions 
of  the  Columban  houses  for  piety,  asceticism,  and  studious 
occupations.  Thither  repaired  one  Owini,  not  to  live  idle, 
but  to  labour,  and  as  he  was  less  capable  of  studying,  he 
applied  himself  earnestly  to  manual  work,  the  while  better- 
instructed  monks  were  indoors  reading. 

In  many  directions  do  we  observe  traces  of  Aidan's 
good  work.  Hild,  the  foundress  of  Whitby  Abbey,  was  for 
a  short  time  his  pupil.  Her  monastery  was  famous  for  hav- 
ing educated  five  bishops,  among  them  John  of  Beverley,  and 
for  giving  birth,  in  Caedmon,  to  the  father  of  English  poetry. 
"  Religious  poetry,  sung  to  the  harp  as  it  passed  from  hand 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS     31 

to  hand,  must  have  flourished  in  the  monastery  of  the  abbess 
Hild,  and  the  kernel  of  Bede's  story  concerning  the  birth  of 
our  earliest  poet  must  be  that  the  brethren  and  sisters  on 
that  bleak  northern  shore  spoke  *  to  each  other  in  psalms 
and  hymns  and  spiritual  songs.'  "  1  Of  Melrose,  an  offshoot 
of  Aidan's  foundation,  the  sainted  Cuthbert  was  an  inmate. 
At  Lindisfarne,  where  "  he  speedily  learned  the  Psalms  and 
some  other  books,"  the  great  Wilfrid  was  a  novice.  Of  his 
studies,  indeed,  we  know  little :  he  seems  to  have  sought 
prelatical  power  rather  than  learning.  But  he  and  his 
followers  were  responsible  for  the  conversion  of  the  North- 
umbrian church  from  Columban  to  Roman  usages,  and  the 
introduction  of  Benedictinism  into  the  monasteries ;  and 
consequently  for  bringing  the  studies  of  the  monks  into  line 
with  the  rules  of  Benedict's  order. 

Such  progress  would  have  been  impossible  had  not  the 
rulers  of  Northumbria  from  Oswald  to  Aldfrith  been  friendly 
to  Christianity.  Aldfrith  had  been  educated  at  lona,  and 
was  a  man  of  studious  disposition.  His  predecessor  had 
advanced  Northumbria's  reputation  enormously  by  giving 
Benedict  Biscop  (629—90)  sites  for  his  monasteries  of  Wear- 
mouth  and  Jarrow.2  We  know  enough  of  this  Benedict  to 
wish  we  knew  very  much  more.  He  suggests  to  us  enthusiasm 
for  his  cause,  and  energy  and  foresight  in  labouring  for  it. 
Naturally,  Aldhelm's  writings  have  gained  him  far  more 
attention  in  literary  histories  than  the  Northumbrian  has 
received.  But  the  influence  of  Benedict,  a  man  of  much 
learning,  wide-travelled,  was  at  least  as  great  and  as  far- 
reaching.  Le"rins,  the  great  centre  of  monachism  in  Gaul, 
and  Canterbury  under  Theodore,  had  been  his  schools.  On 
six  occasions  he  flitted  back  and  forth  to  Rome,  and  to  go 

1  Camb.  Eng.  Lit.)  i.  45. 

2  These  foundations  were  regarded  as  one  house,  the  inmates  being  bound 
together  by  "  a  common  and  perpetual  affection  and  intimacy," 


32  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

to  Rome,  in  those  days,  was  a  liberal  education,  both  in 
worldly  and  spiritual  affairs.  Not  a  little  of  his  influence 
was  the  direct  outcome  of  his  book-collecting.  From  all 
his  journeys  to  Rome  he  is  said  to  have  returned  laden 
with  books.  He  certainly  came  back  from  his  fourth 
journey  with  a  great  number  of  books  of  all  kinds.1  He 
also  obtained  books  at  Vienne.  His  sixth  and  last  journey 
to  Rome  was  wholly  devoted  to  collecting  books,  classical 
as  well  as  theological.  When  he  died  he  left  instructions 
for  the  preservation  of  the  most  noble  and  rich  library  he  had 
gathered  together.2  "  If  we  consider  how  difficult,  fatiguing, 
.  .  .  even  dangerous  a  journey  between  the  British  Islands 
and  Italy  must  have  been  in  those  days  of  anarchy  and 
barbarism,  we  can  appreciate  the  intensity  of  Benedict's 
passion  for  beautiful  and  costly  volumes."  3  The  library  he 
formed  was  worthy  of  the  labour,  we  cannot  doubt :  possibly 
was  the  best  then  in  Britain.  It  served  as  the  model  for 
the  still  more  famous  collection  at  York.  The  scholarship 
of  Bede,  who  used  it  in  writing  his  works,  proclaims  its 
value  for  literary  purposes.4  Bede  tells  us  he  always 
applied  himself  to  Scriptural  study,  and  in  the  intervals  of 
observing  monastic  discipline  and  singing  daily  in  the 
church,  he  took  pleasure  in  learning,  or  teaching,  or  writing.5 
The  picture  of  Bede  in  his  solitary  monastery,  leading  a 

1  "  Innumerabilem   librorum    omnis    generis    copiam    apportavit." — Vitae 
Abbatum,  §  4. 

2  "  Copiosissima  et  nobilissima  bibliotheca." — Ib.  §  n. 

3  Lanciani,  Anc.  Rome,  201. 

4  Ceolfrid,   Benedict   Biscop's  successor,  added  a  number   of  books   to   the 
library,  among  them  three  copies  of  the  Vulgate,  and  one  of  the  older  version. 
One  copy  of  the  Vulgate  Ceolfrid  took  with  him  to  Rome  (716)  to  give  to  the  Pope. 
He  died  on  the  way.     The  codex  did  not  go  to  Rome  ;  now,  it  is  in  the  Laurentian 
Library,  Florence,  where  it  is  known  as  the  Codex  Amiatinus.     The  writing  is 
Italian,  or  at  any  rate  foreign,  so  it  must  have  been  imported,  or  written  at  Jarrow 
by  foreign  scribes.     This  volume  is  the  chief  authority  for  the  text  of  Jerome's 
translation  of  the  Scriptures. 

*  H.  £.,  v.  24. 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS     33 

placid  life  among  Benedict's  books,  poring  over  the  beauti- 
fully-wrought pages  with  the  scholar's  tense  calm  to  find 
the  material  in  the  Fathers  and  the  historians,  and  to  seek 
the  apt  quotation  from  the  classics,  must  always  flash  to  the 
mind  at  the  mere  mention  of  his  name.1  Every  fact  in 
connexion  with  his  work  testifies  to  the  excellent  equipment 
of  his  monastery  for  writing  ecclesiastical  history,  and  to 
the  cordial  way  in  which  the  religious  co-operated  for  the 
advancement  of  learning  and  research. 


§  IV 

Canterbury,  Malmesbury,  Lindisfarne,  Wearmouth  and 
Jarrow,  and  York  were  like  mountain-peaks  tipped  with  gold 
by  the  first  rays  of  the  rising  sun,  while  all  below  remains 
dark.  Yet  while  not  indicative  of  widespread  means  of 
instruction,  the  existence  of  these  centres,  and  the  character 
of  the  work  done  in  them,  suggests  that  at  other  places  the 
same  sort  of  work,  on  a  smaller  and  less  influential  scale, 
soon  began.  At  Lichfield,  on  the  moorland  at  Ripon,  in 
"  the  dwelling-place  in  the  meadows  "  at  Peterborough,  in 
the  desolate  fenland  at  Crowland  and  at  Ely,  on  the  banks 
of  the  Thames  at  Abingdon,  and  of  the  Avon  at  Evesham, 
in  the  nunneries  of  Barking  and  Wimborne,  at  Chertsey, 

1  Bede  frequently  quotes  Cicero,  Virgil,  and  Horace  ;  usually  selecting  some 
telling  phrase,  e.g.  "  caeco  carpitur  igni"  (H.  E.  ii.  12).  In  his  De  Natura 
rerum  he  owes  a  good  deal  to  Pliny  and  Isidore.  In  his  commentaries  on  the 
Scriptures  he  displays  an  extent  of  reading  which  we  have  no  space  to  give  any 
idea  of.  His  chronologies  were  based  on  Jerome's  edition  of  Eusebius,  on 
Augustine  and  Isidore.  In  his  H.  E.  he  uses  "  Pliny,  Solinus,  Orosius,  Eutropius, 
Marcellinus  Comes,  Gildas,  probably  the  Historia  Brittonum,  a  Passion  of  St. 
Alban,  and  the  Life  of  Germanus  of  Auxerre  by  Constantius  "  ;  while  he  refers  to 
lives  of  St.  Fursa,  St.  Ethelburg,  and  to  Adamnan's  work  on  the  Holy  Places. 
Cf.  Sandys,  i.  468  ;  Camb.  Lit.,  i.  80-8 1.  Bede  also  got  first-hand  knowledge  : 
the  Lindisfarne  records  provided  him  with  material  on  Cuthbert ;  information 
came  to  him  from  Canterbury  about  Southern  affairs  and  from  Lastingham  about 
Mercian  affairs.  Nothelm  got  material  from  the  archives  at  Rome  for  him. 


34  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

Glastonbury,  Gloucester,  in  the  far  north  at  Melrose,  and 
even  perhaps  at  Coldingham,  Christianity  was  speeding  its 
message,  and  learning — such  as  it  was,  primitive  and  preten- 
tious— caught  pale  reflections  from  more  famous  places. 
Now  and  again  definite  facts  are  met  with  hinting  at  a  spread- 
ing enlightenment.  Acca,  abbot  and  bishop  of  Hexham, 
for  example  "gave  all  diligence,  as  he  does  to  this  day," 
wrote  Bede,  "  to  procure  relics  of  the  blessed  Apostles  and 
martyrs  of  Christ. . .  .  Besides  which,  he  industriously  gathered 
the  histories  of  their  martyrdom,  together  with  other  ecclesias- 
tical writings,  and  erected  there  a  large  and  noble  library." 
Of  this  library,  unfortunately,  there  is  not  a  wrack  left 
behind.  A  tiny  school  was  carried  on  at  a  monastery  near 
Exeter,  where  Boniface  was  first  instructed.  At  the 
monastery  of  Nursling  he  was  taught  grammar,  history, 
poetry,  rhetoric,  and  the  Scriptures ;  there  also  manuscripts 
were  copied.  Books  were  produced  under  Abbess  Eadburh 
of  Minster,  a  learned  woman  who  corresponded  with 
Boniface  and  taught  the  metric  art.  Boniface's  letters 
throw  interesting  light  on  our  subject.  Eadburh  sent  him 
books,  money,  and  other  gifts.  He  also  wrote  home  asking 
his  old  friend  Bishop  Daniel  of  Winchester  for  a  fine  manu- 
script of  the  six  major  prophets,  which  had  been  written 
in  a  large  and  clear  hand  by  Winbert :  no  such  book,  he 
explains,  can  be  had  abroad,  and  his  eyes  are  no  longer 
strong  enough  to  read  with  ease  the  small  character  of 
ordinary  manuscripts.  In  another  letter  written  to 
Ecgberht  of  York  is  recorded  an  exchange  of  books,  and 
a  request  for  a  copy  of  the  commentaries  of  Bede. 

A  decree  of  the  Council  held  at  Cloveshoe  in  747, 
pointing  out  the  want  of  instruction  among  the  religious, 
and  ordering  all  bishops,  abbots,  and  abbesses  to  promote 
and  encourage  learning,  whether  it  means  that  monkish 
education  was  on  the  wane  or  that  it  was  not  making  such 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS     35 

quick  progress  as  was  desired,  at  any  rate  does  not  mean 
that  England  was  in  a  bad  way  in  this  respect,  or  that  she 
lagged  behind  the  Continent.  On  the  contrary,  England 
and  Ireland  were  renowned  homes  of  learning  in 
Western  Europe.  Perhaps  a  few  centres  on  the  mainland 
could  show  libraries  as  good  as  those  here  ;  but  certainly 
no  country  had  such  scholars.  England's  pre-eminence  was 
recognized  by  Charles  the  Great  when  he  invited  Alcuin 
to  his  court  (781). 

Alcuin  was  brought  up  at  York  from  childhood.  In 
company  with  Albert,  who  taught  the  arts  and  grammar 
at  this  northern  school,  Alcuin  visited  Gaul  and  Rome  to 
scrape  together  a  few  more  books.  On  returning  later  he 
was  entrusted  with  the  care  of  the  library :  a  task  for  which 
he  was  well  fitted,  if  enthusiasm,  breaking  into  rime,  be  a 
qualification  : — 

"  Small  is  the  space  which  contains  the  gifts  of  heavenly  Wisdom 
Which  you,  reader,  rejoice  piously  here  to  receive  ; 
Better  than  richest  gifts  of  the  Kings,  this  treasure  of  Wisdom, 
Light,  for  the  seeker  of  this,  shines  on  the  road  to  the  Day."  * 

York  could  not  retain  Alcuin  long.  Fortunately,  just  when 
dissensions  among  the  English  kings,  and  the  Danish  raids 
began  to  harass  England,  and  to  threaten  the  coming 
decline  of  her  learning,  he  was  invited  to  take  charge  of  a 
school  established  by  Charles  the  Great.  Charles  had 
undertaken  the  task  of  reviving  literary  study,  well-nigh 
extinguished  through  the  neglect  of  his  ancestors ;  and  he 
bade  all  his  subjects  to  cultivate  the  arts.  As  far  as  he 
could  he  accomplished  the  task,  principally  owing  to  the 
aid  of  the  English  scholar  and  of  willing  helpers  from 
Ireland. 

Alcuin  was  soon  at  the  head  of  St.   Martin's  of  Tours 

1  Tr.  in  Morley,  Eng.  Writers,  ii.  1 60. 


*> 

' 


36  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

where  he  was  responsible  for  the  great  activity  of  the 
scribes  in  his  day.  He  persuaded  Charles  to  send  a 
number  of  copyists  to  York.  "  I,  your  Flavius,"  he  writes, 
"  according  to  your  exhortation  and  wise  desire,  have  been 
busy  under  the  roof  of  St.  Martin,  in  dispensing  to  some 
the  honey  of  the  Holy  Scriptures.  Others  I  strive  to 
inebriate  with  the  old  wine  of  ancient  studies ;  these  I 
nourish  with  the  fruit  of  grammatical  knowledge  ;  in  the 
eyes  of  these  again  I  seek  to  make  bright  the  courses  of 
the  stars.  .  .  .  But  I  have  need  of  the  most  excellent  books 
of  scholastic  learning,  which  I  had  procured  in  my  own 
country,  either  by  the  devoted  care  of  my  master,  or  by 
my  own  labours.  I  therefore  beseech  your  majesty  .  .  . 
to  permit  me  to  send  certain  of  our  household  to  bring 
over  into  France  the  flowers  of  Britain,  that  the  garden  of 
Paradise  may  not  be  confined  to  York,  but  may  send  some 
of  its  scions  to  Tours."  What  the  "  flowers  of  Britain  " 
were  at  this  time  Alcuin  has  told  us  in  Latin  verse.  At 
York,  "  where  he  sowed  the  seeds  of  knowledge  in  the 
morning  of  his  life,"  thou  shalt  find,  he  rimes : — 

"  The  volumes  that  contain 
All  the  ancient  fathers  who  remain  ; 
There  all  the  Latin  writers  make  their  home 
With  those  that  glorious  Greece  transferred  to  Rome, — 
The  Hebrews  draw  from  their  celestial  stream, 
And  Africa  is  bright  with  learning's  beam." 

Then,  after  including  in  his  metrical  catalogue  the  names 
of  forty  writers,  he  proceeds  : — 

"There  shalt  thou  find,  O  reader,  many  more 
Famed  for  their  style,  the  masters  of  old  lore, 
Whose  many  volumes  singly  to  rehearse 
Were  far  too  tedious  for  our  present  verse."1 

A  goodly  store  indeed  in  such  an  age. 

1  Tr.  in  West,  Alcuin,  34-35. 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS    37 


§v 

Sunlight  and  shadow  follow  one  another  rapidly  across 
England's  early  history.  The  migration  of  York's  re- 
nowned scholar  took  place  six  years  before  the  Viking 
irruptions  began,  and  about  twelve  years  before  a  heavy 
blow  was  struck  at  Northumbrian  learning  by  the  ravaging 
and  destruction  of  the  monasteries  of  Lindisfarne,  and 
Wearmouth  and  Jarrow.  After  this  there  was  but  little 
peace  for  England.  Kent  was  often  attacked.  In  838 
the  marauders  fell  upon  East  Anglia.  Between  837  and 
845  they  made  various  fierce  attacks  upon  Wessex.  In 
851  the  pillage  of  Canterbury  and  London  was  a  severe 
blow  to  the  English.  About  fifteen  years  later,  at  the 
hands  of  the  Danes,  Melrose,  Tynemouth,  Whitby,  and 
Lastingham  shared  Wearmouth's  fate.  Of  York  and  its 
library  we  hear  no  more.  Peterborough  and  its  large 
collection  of  sacred  books  perished  at  the  hands  of  the 
same  raiders  as  those  who  burnt  Crowland  (870).  So  bad 
grew  affairs  that  Alfred  the  Great,  writing  to  Bishop 
Werfrith,  bewailed  the  small  number  of  people  south  of  the 
Humber  who  understood  the  English  of  their  service,  or 
could  translate  from  Latin  into  English.  Even  beyond 
the  Humber  there  were  not  many ;  not  one  could  he 
remember  south  of  the  Thames  when  he  began  to  reign. 
And  he  bethought  himself  of  the  wise  men,  both  church 
and  lay  folk,  formerly  living  in  England,  and  how  zealous 
they  were  in  teaching  and  learning,  and  how  men  came 
from  abroad  in  search  of  wisdom  and  instruction.  Ap- 
parently some  decline  from  this  standard  had  been  notice- 
able before  ruin  completely  overtook  the  monasteries.  He 
remembered  how,  before  the  land  had  been  ravaged  and 
burnt,  "  its  churches  stood  filled  with  treasures  and  books, 


38  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

and  with  a  multitude  of  His  servants,  but  they  had  very 
little  knowledge  of  the  books,  and  could  not  understand 
them,  for  they  were  not  written  in  their  own  language.  .  .  . 
When  I  remembered  all  this,  I  much  marvelled  that  the 
good  and  wise  men  who  were  formerly  all  over  England, 
and  had  perfectly  learnt  all  these  books,  did  not  wish  to 
translate  them  into  their  own  tongues."  By  way  of 
remedying  this  omission,  he  translated  Cura  Pastoralis  into 
English.  "  I  will  send  a  copy  to  every  bishopric  in  my 
kingdom;  and  on  each  there  is  a  clasp  worth  50  mancus. 
And  I  command  in  God's  name  that  no  man  take  the  clasp 
from  the  book  or  the  book  from  the  minster ;  it  is  uncertain 
how  long  there  may  be  such  learned  bishops  as  now  are, 
thanks  be  to  God,  nearly  everywhere."  * 

This  letter,  written  in  890,  marks  the  revival  of  interest 
in  letters  under  Alfred.  In  adding  to  his  own  knowledge, 
and  in  promoting  education  among  his  people,  he  was 
assiduous  and  determined.  During  the  leisure  of  one 
period  of  eight  months,  Asser  seems  to  have  read  to  him 
all  the  congenial  books  at  hand,  Alfred's  custom  being  to 
read  aloud  or  to  listen  to  others  reading.  Asser  was  a 
Welsh  bishop,  brought  to  Wessex  to  help  the  king  in  his 
work.  For  the  same  purpose  Archbishop  Plegmund2  and 
Bishop  Werfrith  were  brought  from  Mercia.  Other  scholars 
came  from  abroad.  One  named  Grimbald,  a  monk  from 
St.  Bertin,  came  to  take  charge  of  the  abbey  of  Hyde,  Win- 
chester, which  Alfred  had  planned.  John,  of  Old-Saxony, 
a  learned  monk  of  the  flourishing  Westphalian  Abbey  of 


1  Tr.  in  King's  Letters,  ed.  Steele  (1903),  i.     Cf.  Bodl.  MS,  Hatton,  20; 
Cott.  MS.  Otho¥>2.\  Corpus  C.  C.,  Camb.  MS.  12. 

2  MS.  Cott.  Tib.  B  xi.— a  copy  of  Alfred's  version  of  the  Cura,  or  what  is  left 
of  it — has  been  connected  with  Archbishop  Plegmund,  the  evidence  being  a  Saxon 
inscription  on  the  manuscript.     Wanley,  however,  doubted  the  conclusiveness  of 
this  evidence,  which,  together  with  most  of  the  text,  was  lost  in  the  fire  of  1731. 
— James,  xxiii-iv. 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS    39 

Corvey — where  a  library  existed  in  this  century,1 — was  made 
by  Alfred  abbot  of  Athelney  monastery  and  school.  Per- 
haps John,  called  the  Scot  or  Erigena,  also  came,  but  we  do 
not  know  certainly.  Alfred  also  introduced  teachers,  both 
English  and  foreign,  into  his  monasteries,  his  aim  being  to 
provide  the  means  of  educating  every  freeborn  and  well-to- 
do  youth.  During  the  whole  of  the  latter  part  of  his  reign 
the  copying  of  manuscripts  went  on,  though  with  only 
moderate  activity. 

That  Alfred,  amid  the  cares  of  a  troublesome  king- 
ship, could  find  time  to  devote  to  this  work,  and  realised 
the  importance  of  vernacular  literature,  is  one  of  the  chief 
signs  of  his  greatness.  What  he  did  had  a  lasting  influence 
upon  our  literature.  He  tapped  the  wellspring  of  English 
prose.  Mainly  owing  to  his  initiative,  from  his  day  till  the 
Conquest  all  the  literature  of  importance  was  in  the 
vernacular,  and  the  impulse  so  given  to  the  language  as  a 
literary  vehicle  was  strong  enough  to  preserve  it  from 
extinction  during  the  Norman  domination,  when  it  was 
superseded  as  the  court  and  official  language.  But,  so  far 
as  the  making  and  circulation  of  books  is  concerned,  the 
"  revival "  under  Alfred  did  not  prosper.  The  necessary 
machinery  was  almost  entirely  wanting.  The  monastic 
schools,  the  great — the  only — means  of  disseminating  the 
learning  of  the  time,  were  few  in  number  and  not  very 
influential.  For  Athelney,  a  small  monastery,  Alfred  had 
difficulty  in  finding  monks  at  all :  he  had  to  get  them  from 
abroad ;  while  the  rule  in  this  house  does  not  seem  to  have 
been  wholly  satisfactory.  At  the  time  of  his  death  (c.  901) 
monachism  was  in  a  bad  way.  Fifty  years  later  its  plight 
would  seem  to  have  been  worse.  Only  two  houses, 
Abingdon  and  Glastonbury,  could  be  really  called  monastic. 
"  In  the  middle  of  the  tenth  century  the  Rule  of  St. 

1  Sandys,  i.  484. 


40  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Benedict,  the  standard  of  monasticism  in  Western 
Christendom,  was,  according  to  virtually  contemporary 
authority,  completely  unknown  in  England.  This  will  not 
appear  strange  if  we  consider  that  it  was  never  very 
generally  or  strictly  carried  out  here,  that  the  Danish 
invasions  had  broken  the  continuity  of  monastic  life,  and 
that  not  many  years  earlier  the  very  existence  of  the  Rule 
had  been  forgotten  in  not  a  few  continental  monasteries."  3 
Although  England  always  responded  to  the  slightest  effort 
to  affect  her  culture,  as  the  long  deer  grass  waves  an 
answer  to  every  breath  of  the  wind,  yet  the  surprising 
eminence  of  some  of  the  churchmen  in  the  latter  half  of  the 
century  and  the  excellence  of  their  work  cannot  be 
accounted  for  if  the  influence  of  Alfred's  reign  had  utterly 
died  out.  But  it  had  not.  Only  the  machinery  was 
defective.  The  driving  power  remained,  latent  but  ready 
for  action.  One  indication  of  a  surviving  interest  in  these 
matters  at  this  time  is  the  gift  of  some  nine  books  to 
St.  Augustine's  Abbey  by  King  Athelstan — an  interesting 
little  collection  including  Isidore  de  Natura  Rerum,  Persius, 
Donatus,  Alcuin,  Sedulius,  and  possibly  a  work  by  Bede. 
The  machinery,  however,  was  soon  to  be  improved. 
Dunstan,  Oswald,  Edgar,  and  Ethelwold  set  matters  right 
by  reforming  and  extending  the  monastic  system,  and 
by  making  it  the  means  of  encouraging  education  and 
learning. 

The  leaders  were  Dunstan  and  Ethelwold.  In  youth 
the  former  was  renowned  for  his  eagerness  in  studying,  and 
for  the  wealth  and  knowledge  he  acquired.  He  was  a 
"  lover  of  ballads  and  music,"  "  a  hard  student,  an  indefatig- 
able worker,  busy  at  books  " ;  spending  his  leisure  in  read- 
ing sacred  authors,  and  in  correcting  manuscripts,  sometimes 
at  daybreak.  He  was  also  very  skilful  at  working  in  metal 

1  Hunt,  Hist,  of  Eng.  Church,  i.  326. 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS    41 

and  at  drawing  and  illuminating.  Maybe  the  picture  of 
him  kneeling  before  the  Saviour  which  is  preserved  in  the 
Bodleian  Library  is  by  his  own  hand  ;  this,  however,  is  not 
certain.1  But  some  relics  of  his  literary  work  were  pre- 
served at  Glastonbury  until  the  Reformation — passages 
transcribed  from  Frank  and  Roman  law  books,  a  pamphlet 
on  grammar,  a  mass  of  Biblical  quotations,  a  collection  of 
canons  drawn  from  Dunstan's  Irish  teachers,  a  book  on 
the  Apocalypse,  and  other  works.2  He  entirely  reformed 
Glastonbury  and  made  it  a  flourishing  school,  where  the 
Scriptures,  ecclesiastical  writings,  and  grammar  were  taught. 
Ethelwold  was  a  Glastonbury  scholar  and  assistant  to 
Dunstan.  Glastonbury,  and  Abingdon,  where  he  became 
Abbot,  and  Winchester,  to  which  see  he  was  consecrated, 
were  the  centres  whence,  during  the  sixty  years  succeeding 
Edgar's  accession,  some  forty  monasteries  were  founded 
or  restored.  Winchester  became  pre-eminent.  Ethelwold 
himself  was  a  teacher  of  grammar.  It  was  his  delight  to 
teach  boys  and  young  men,  and  to  help  them  in  their 
translations  ;  hence  it  came  to  pass  that  many  of  his  pupils 
became  abbots  and  bishops.3  A  curious  story  is  told  in 
illustration  of  his  studious  disposition.  One  night,  when 
reading  after  prolonged  watching,  sleep  overcame  him,  and 
as  he  slept  the  candle  fell  on  the  page  and  remained  burn- 
ing there  until  a  brother  came  along  and  snatched  it  up, 
when  the  book  by  a  miracle  was  found  to  be  uninjured.4 
A  vignette  of  pure  and  true  medievalism  :  the  long  and 
solitary  watching,  the  saintly  pursuit  of  divine  wisdom,  the 
wide-open  book,  with  the  bold  and  beautiful  text,  and  the 

1  Strutt,  Saxon  Antiq.,  i.   105,  pi.  xviii.     The  picture  is  in  a  large  volume 
containing  part  of  a  grammar  and  certain  other  pieces  used  at  Glastonbury. — 
MS.  Auct.  F.  iv.  32.     Over  the  picture  is  the  inscription  :  Pictura  et  scriptura 
hujus paginae  subtus  visa  est  de propria  manu  Set.  Dunstani. 

2  Stubbs,  Mem.  of  Dunstan ,  cx.-cxii. 

3  Chron.  Mon.  de  Abingdon,  ii.  263.  4  Ibid.,  ii.  265. 


42  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

quaint  decoration,  wrought  by  loving  hands,  and  the  in- 
evitable miracle, — the  suggestion  of  a  Divine  Providence 
watching  over  and  protecting  all  that  is  sacred. 

Some  beautiful  examples  of  work  of  this  period  have  been 
preserved.  "  Winchester  "  work  is  a  familiar  and  expressive 
term  in  illumination,  and  nobody  will  ask  why  this  is  so  if 
they  have  seen  a  manuscript  executed  there  towards  the 
end  of  the  tenth  century.  The  Benedictional  and  Missal 
of  Archbishop  Robert,  which  is  certainly  English,  and  most 
likely  an  example  of  New  Minster  work,  is  illuminated  with 
miniatures,  foliated  and  architectural  borders,  and  capitals 
and  letters  of  gold,  in  virile  workmanship.  A  still  finer 
example — the  finest  example  of  Old  Minster  craft — is  the 
Benedictional  of  Ethelwold,  now  in  the  Duke  of  Devon- 
shire's library.  The  versified  dedication,  inscribed  in  letters 
of  gold,  tells  us,  in  substance — "  The  Great  Ethelwold  .  .  . 
illustrious,  venerable  and  mild  .  .  .  commanded  a  certain 
monk  subject  to  him  to  write  the  present  book :  he  ordered 
also  to  be  made  in  it  many  arches  elegantly  decorated  and 
filled  up  with  various  ornamented  pictures  expressed  in 
divers  beautiful  colours,  and  gold."  1  Godeman,  abbot  of 
Thorney,  was  the  scribe,  but  the  illuminator  is  unknown. 
Each  full  page  has  nineteen  lines  of  writing,  with  letters 
nearly  a  quarter  of  an  inch  long.  Alternate  lines  in  gold, 
red,  and  black  occur  once  or  twice  in  the  same  page.  There 
are  thirty  miniatures  and  thirteen  fully  illuminated  pages, 
some  of  these  having  framed  borders,  foliated,  others  columns 
and  arches.  The  figures  are  remarkably  well  drawn,  the 
drapery  being  especially  good.  The  whole  is  in  a  fine 
state  of  preservation,  especially  the  gold  ornaments ;  the 
gold  used  was  leaf  upon  size,  afterwards  well  burnished. 
Of  the  rival  craftsmanship  at  New  Minster  we  have  a 
splendid  example  in  the  Golden  Book  of  Edgar,  so  called 

1  Archaeologia,  xxiv.  19. 


PLATE 


NATIVITY   OF   ST.  JOHN   THE   BAPTIST,   BENEDICTIONAL  OF   ETHELWOLD 


ENGLISH  MONKS  AND  THEIR  BOOKS    43 


44  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

on  account  of  its  raised  gold  text.1  Work  of  this  grand 
character  is  the  best  testimony  to  the  noble  spirit  of 
monachism  in  the  days  of  Ethelwold. 

One  of  Ethelwold's  pupils  was  yElfric,  who  became 
Archbishop  of  Canterbury  in  995.  He  was  responsible  for 
the  canon  requiring  every  priest,  before  ordination,  to  have 
the  Psalter,  the  Epistles,  the  Gospels,  a  Missal,  the  Book 
of  Hymns,  the  Manual,  the  Calendar,  the  Passional,  the 
Penitential,  and  the  Lectionary.  On  his  death  he  be- 
queathed all  his  books  to  St.  Albans.2 

Another  pupil  of  the  same  name  is  still  more  famous. 
This  scholar's  grammar,  with  its  translated  passages,  his 
glossary — the  oldest  Latin-English  dictionary — and  his 
conversation-manual  of  questions  and  answers,  with  inter- 
linear translations,  suggest  that  he  must  have  done  much 
to  make  the  study  of  Latin  easier  and  more  congenial ; 
while  his  homilies  display  his  art  in  making  knowledge 
popular,  and  prove  him  to  be  the  greatest  master  of 
English  prose  before  the  Conquest. 

Several  other  interesting  and  suggestive  facts  belonging 
to  this  period  have  been  preserved  for  us.  Abbot  ^Elfward, 
for  example,  gave  to  his  abbey  of  Evesham  many  sacred 
books  and  books  on  grammar  (c.  1035) :  here,  at  any  rate, 
progress  was  real.8  At  a  manor  of  the  abbey  of  Bury  St. 
Edmunds  were  thirty  volumes,  exclusive  of  church  books 
(1044— 65  ).4  Bishop  Leofric  also  obtained  over  sixty  books 
for  Exeter  Cathedral  about  sixteen  years  before  the  Conquest, 
a  collection  to  which  we  must  refer  later. 

1  B.  M.  Cott.  Vesp.,  A.  viii.,  written  966. 

2  Hook,  Archbishops  >  i.  453  (ist  ed.). 

3  Chron.  Abb.  de  £.,  83.  4  James1,  5-6. 


PLATE  VI 


MINIATURE  OF  THE  ASCENSION  IN  THE  BENEDICTIONAL  OF  ETHELWOLD 


CHAPTER    III 

LIBRARIES  OF  THE  GREAT  ABBEYS— BOOK-LOVERS 
AMONG  THE  MENDICANTS  —  DISPERSAL  OF 
MONKISH  LIBRARIES 

§1 

^HE  Conquest  wrought  both  good  and  evil  to  literature 
X  — evil  because  the  Normans  thought  books  written 
in  the  vernacular  unworthy  of  preservation  ; l  good 
because  the  change  brought  to  the  country  settled  govern- 
ment, and  to  the  church  an  opportunity  for  reformation. 
Lanfranc  was  the  moving  spirit  of  reform,  both  in  church 
administration  and  in  the  learning  of  its  members.  While 
still  in  Normandy  he  had  built  up  a  reputation  for  the 
monastic  school  at  Bee,  and  probably  had  a  share  in 
collecting  the  excellent  library  that  we  know  the  monastery 
possessed  in  the  twelfth  century.2  When  he  was  appointed 
to  the  see  of  Canterbury  he  continued  to  work  for  the  same 

1  Most  old  English  poems  are  preserved  in  unique  manuscripts,  sometimes 
not  complete,  but  in  fragments ;  two  fragments,  for  example,  were  found  in  the 
bindings  of  other  books. — Wart  on,  ii.  7.     In  1248,  only  four  books  in  English 
were  at  Glastonbury,  and  they  are  described  as  old  and  useless. — John  of  G.,  435  ; 
Ritson,  i.  43.     About  fifty  years  later  only  seventeen  such  books  were  in  the  big 
library  at  Canterbury. — James  (M.  R.),  51.     A  striking  illustration  of  the  disuse 
of  the   vernacular  among  the  religious   is  found  in  an  Anglo-Saxon  Gregory's 
Pastoral  Care,  which  is  copiously  glossed    in  Latin,  in  two   or   three   hands. 
This  manuscript,  now  in  Corpus  Christi  College,  Cambridge,  No.  12,  came  from 
Worcester  Priory. — James17,  33. 

2  Becker,  199,  257. 

45 


46  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

ends,  although  his  primacy  can  have  left  him  little  leisure. 
A  fresh  beginning  had  to  be  made  in  Canterbury.  In 
1067  a  fire  destroyed  the  city,  including  the  cathedral  and 
almost  the  whole  of  the  monastic  buildings ;  and  in  this 
disaster  many  "  sacred  and  profane  books "  were  burned. 
It  was  Lanfranc's  task  to  repair  this  loss.  He  brought 
books  with  him,1  and  introduced  some  changes  and  more 
method  in  the  making  and  use  of  them.  In  the  customary 
of  the  Benedictine  order  which  he  drew  up  to  correspond 
with  the  best  monastic  practice,  he  included  minute  in- 
structions about  lending  and  reading  books.  He  was  also 
responsible  in  the  main  for  the  substitution  of  the  continental 
Roman  handwriting  for  the  beautiful  Hiberno-Saxon  hand. 
In  another  respect  his  influence  was  more  beneficial.  Both 
at  Bee  and  in  England  he  aimed  to  turn  out  accurate  texts 
of  patristic  books,  and  the  better  to  achieve  this  end  he 
himself  corrected  manuscripts.  In  the  abbey  of  St.  Martin 
de  Secz  at  one  time  there  was  a  copy  of  the  first  ten 
Conferences  of  Cassian  with  his  corrections ;  and  in  the 
library  of  Mans  is  a  St.  Ambrose  which  was  overlooked  by 
him.2  Happily  he  was  in  a  position  to  lend  texts  to  monks 
for  transcribing,  and  his  help  in  this  direction  was  sought 
by  Abbot  Paul  of  St.  Albans.  Recent  research  by  Dr. 
Montagu  James  suggests  that  Lanfranc's  work  for  the 
Canterbury  library  was  a  good  deal  more  practical  and 
influential  than  has  been  usually  believed.  Among  the 
survivors  of  the  Canterbury  collections  at  Trinity  College, 
Cambridge,  and  elsewhere,  "  are  some  scores  of  volumes 
undoubtedly  from  Christ  Church,  all  of  one  epoch,"  the 

1  In  an  eleventh  century  manuscript  in  Trinity  College  Library,  Cambridge 
(MS.  B.  16,  44),  is  an  inscription,  perhaps  by  Lanfranc  himself,  recording  that  he 
brought  it  from  Bee  and  gave  it  to  Christ  Church. 

2  At   the   end  of  the  manuscript   of  Cassian  is  written:    "Hucusque  ego 
Lanfrancus  correxi." — Hist.  Litt.  de  la  France,  vii.    117.     At  the  end  of  the 
Ambrose  (Hexaetneron]  the  note  reads,  "  Lanfrancus  ego  correxi." 


LIBRARIES  OF  THE  GREAT  ABBEYS    47 

eleventh  and  twelfth  centuries,  and  all  written  in  hands 
modelled  on  an  Italian  style.  "  Another  distinguishing 
mark,"  writes  Dr.  James,  "  in  these  volumes  is  the  employ- 
ment of  a  peculiar  purple  in  the  decorative  initials  and 
headings.  .  .  .  The  nearest  approaches  I  find  to  it  in 
England  are  in  certain  manuscripts  which  were  once  at 
St.  Augustine's  Abbey,  and  in  others  which  belonged  to 
Rochester.  It  can  be  shown  that  books  did  occasionally 
pass  from  Christ  Church  to  St.  Augustine's,  and  it  can  also 
be  shown  that  certain  of  the  Rochester  books  were  written 
at  Christ  Church."  All  these  books,  therefore,  Dr.  James 
believes,  were  given  by  Lanfranc  or  produced  under  his 
direction.1 

Lanfranc  also  encouraged  original  composition,  for 
Osbern,  monk  of  Canterbury,  compiled  his  lives  of  St. 
Dunstan,  St.  Alphege,  and  St.  Odo  under  his  eye. 

In  this  work  of  bookmaking  and  collecting  Lanfranc 
was  supported  or  his  example  was  followed  by  other  monks 
from  Normandy  :  by  Abbot  Walter  of  Evesham,  who  made 
many  books ; 2  by  Ernulf  of  Rochester,  who  compiled  the 
Textus  Roffensis ;  and  by  many  others.  At  this  time  grew 
up  the  practice  of  using  English  houses  to  supply  books 
for  Norman  abbeys ;  this  partly  explains  the  number  of 
manuscripts  of  English  workmanship  now  abroad.  A 
manuscript  preserved  in  Paris  contains  a  note  by  a  canon 
of  Ste-Barbe-en-Auge  referring  to  Beckford  in  Gloucester- 
shire, an  English  cell  of  his  house,  whence  books  were  sent 
to  Normandy.3 

From  Lanfranc  to  the  close  of  the  thirteenth  century, 
was  the  summer-time  of  the  English  religious  houses.  The 

1  James  (M.  R.),  xxx.  2  Chron.  Abb.  dc  Evesham,  97. 

3  Library  of  Ste.  Genevieve,  Paris,  MS.  E.  1.  17,  in  40,  fol.  61.  The  note 
reads  :  Quia  autem  apud  Bequefort  victualium  copia  erat,  scriptores  etiam  ibi 
habebantur  quorum  opera  ad  nos  in  Normaniam  mittebantur. — Library,  v.  2 
(1893). 


LIBRARIES  OF  THE  GREAT  ABBEYS    49 

Abbot  John  of  Taunton  added  to  Glastonbury  forty  volumes, 
a  notable  gift  in  those  days  of  costly  books,  while  Adam 
of  Domerham  tells  us  he  also  made  a  fine,  handsome,  and 
spacious  library.1  In  1277  a  general  chapter  of  the 
Benedictines  ordered  the  monks,  according  to  their  capa- 
bilities, to  study,  write,  correct,  illuminate,  and  bind  books, 
rather  than  to  labour  in  the  field.2 

To  such  facts  as  these  should  be  added  the  record  of 
the  Canterbury,  Dover,  and  Bury  libraries,  the  histories  of 
which  have  been  so  admirably  written  by  Dr.  M.  R.  James.3 
Of  the  library  of  St.  Albans  Abbey  we  have  not  such  a 
fine  series  of  catalogues.  Yet  no  abbey  could  have  a 
nobler  record.  From  Paul  (1077)  to  Whethamstede 
(d.  1465)  nearly  all  its  abbots  were  book-lovers.4  Paul 
built  a  writing-room,  and  put  in  the  aumbries  twenty- 
eight  fine  books  (yolumina  notabilia^  and  eight  Psalters, 
a  Collectarium,  books  of  the  Epistles  and  Gospels  for 
the  year,  two  copies  of  the  Gospels  adorned  with  gold 
and  silver  and  precious  stones,  without  speaking  of 
ordinals,  customaries,  missals,  troparies,  collectaria,  and 
other  books.  Here,  as  everywhere,  the  library  began  with 
church  books  :  later,  easier  circumstances  made  the  stream 
of  knowledge  broader,  if  shallower.  The  next  abbot  also 
added  some  books.  Geoffrey,  the  sixteenth  abbot,  was 
the  author  of  a  miracle  play,  an  industrious  scribe,  and 
the  donor  of  some  books  finely  illuminated  and  bound. 
His  successor,  at  one  time  the  conventual  archivist,  loved 
books  equally  well,  and  got  together  a  fair  collection. 
Great  Abbot  Robert  had  many  books  written — "  too  many 

1  Librariam  fecit  optimum  pulcherrimum  et  copiosum. — Holmes,  Wells 
and  Glastonbury,  229. 

-  MS.  Twyne,  Bodl.  L.,  8,  272.  3  James,  and  James1. 

4  In  the  fine  MS.  Cott.  Claud.  E.  iv.  (Gesta  Abbatum]  is  a  series  of  portrait 
miniatures  of  the  abbots,  and  in  most  cases  they  are  represented  as  reading  or 
carrying  books,  or  with  books  about  them. 

4 


50  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

to  be  mentioned."1  Simon,  the  next  abbot  (1167),  a 
learned  and  good-living  man  who  encouraged  others  to  learn, 
was  especially  fond  of  books,  and  had  many  fine  manu- 
scripts written  for  the  painted  aumbry  in  the  church.  He 
repaired  and  improved  the  scriptorium.  He  also  made  a 
provision  whereby  each  succeeding  abbot  should  have  at 
work  one  special  scribe,  called  the  historiographer,  an 
innovation  to  which  we  owe  the  matchless  series  of 
chronicles  of  Roger  of  Wendover,  Matthew  Paris,  William 
Rishanger,  and  John  of  Trokelowe.  In  a  Cottonian 
manuscript  is  a  portrait  of  Abbot  Simon  at  his  book-trunk, 
a  picture  interesting  because  it  illustrates  his  predominant 
taste  for  books,  as  well  as  one  method — then  the  usual  method 
— of  storing  them. 

John,  worthy  follower  of  Simon,  was  a  man  of  learning, 
who  added  many  noble  and  useful  books  to  St.  Albans' 
store.  William  of  Trompington  (1214)  distinguished  him- 
self by  giving  to  the  abbey  books  he  had  taken  from  his 
prior.  Abbot  Roger  was  a  better  man,  and  gave  many 
books  and  pieces ;  but  John  III  and  IV  and  Hugh  are 
barren  rocks  in  our  fertile  valley,  for  apparently  they  did 
nothing  for  the  library.  Richard  of  Wallingford  did  worse 
than  nothing.  He  bribed  Richard  de  Bury  with  four 
volumes,  and  sold  to  him  thirty-two  books  for  fifty  pounds 
of  silver,  retaining  one-half  of  this  sum  for  himself,  and 
devoting  the  other  moiety  to  Epicurus — "  a  deed/'  cries  the 
chronicler,  "  infamous  to  all  who  agreed  to  it,  so  to  make 
the  only  nourishment  of  the  soul  serve  the  belly,  and  upon 
any  account  to  apply  spiritual  dainties  to  the  demands  of 
the  flesh." 2  Abbot  Michael  de  Mentmore,  who  had  been 
educated  at  Oxford,  and  became  schoolmaster  at  St.  Albans, 
encouraged  the  educational  work  of  the  abbey  by  making 

1  Fecit  etiam  scribi  libros  plurimos,  quos  longum  esset  enarrare. 
B  Some  of  the  books  were  restored,  others  were  resold  to  the  abbey. 


PLATE  VIII 


£Sg|       "^r^^p        *»v* 

5  4t~j4$9** 


ABBOT   SIMON   OF   ST.   ALBANS  AT   HIS  BOOK  CHEST 


LIBRARIES  OF  THE  GREAT  ABBEYS    51 

studies  for  the  scholars.  As  he  also  ordered  the  morning 
mass  to  be  celebrated  directly  after  prime,  or  six  o'clock, 
instead  of  at  tierce,  or  about  nine,  to  allow  the  students 
more  time,  it  is  safe  to  assume  he  was  more  zealous  than 
popular.  He  also  gave  books  which  cost  him  more  than 
,£100.  His  successor,  Thomas,  enlarged  his  own  study, 
and  bought  many  books  for  it ;  and,  with  the  assistance  of 
Thomas  of  Walsingham,  then  precentor  and  master  of  the 
scriptorium,  he  built  a  writing-room  at  his  own  expense. 

But  Whethamstede  was  St.  Albans'  greatest  book- 
loving  abbot.  An  ardent  book-lover,  especially  fond  of 
finely-illuminated  volumes,  he  indulged  his  passion  for 
manuscripts,  and  for  conventual  buildings,  vestments,  and 
property,  until  he  got  the  abbey  into  debt,  and  was  led  to 
resign.  After  the  death  of  his  successor,  Whethamstede 
was  re-elected.  In  his  time  no  fewer  than  eighty-seven 
volumes  were  transcribed.1  In  1452-53  he  built  a  new 
library  at  a  cost  of  more  than  £150.  Another  library  was 
erected  for  the  College  of  the  Black  Monks  at  Oxford,  for 
£60?  It  was  described  as  a  "  new  erection  of  a  library  joyn- 
ing  on  the  south-side  of  the  chapel,  containing  on  each  side 
five  or  more  divisions,  as  it  may  be  partly  seen  to  this  day 
by  the  windows  thereof,  to  which  he  gave  good  quantity  of 
his  own  study,  and  especially  those  of  his  own  composition, 
which  were  not  a  few,  and  to  deter  plagiaries  and  others 
from  abusing  of  them,  prefixt  these  verses  in  the  front 
of  every  one  of  the  same  books,  as  he  did  also  to  those  that 
he  gave  to  the  publick  library  of  the  University : 

"Fratribus  Oxoniae  datur  in  munus  liber  iste 
Per  patrem  pecorum  prothomartyris  Angligenarum  ; 
Quern,  si  quis  rapiat  raptim,  titulumve  retractet, 
Vel  Judae  laqueum,  vel  furcas  sentiat ;  Amen 


1  A  lot  of  forty'nine,  with  prices  attached,  is  given  in  Annales  aj.  Amund,,  ii. 
268  et  seq. 

'2  Gloucester  House,  now  Worcester  College. 


52  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

"  In  other  books  which  he  gave  to  the  said  library  these : 

"Discior  ut  docti  fieret  nova  regia  plebi 
Culta  magisque  Deae  datur  hie  liber  ara  Minervae, 
His  qui  Diis  dictis  libant  holocausta  rftinistris 
Et  circa  bibulam  sitiunt  prae  nectare  limpham 
Estque  libriqtie  loci,  idem  dator,  actor  et  unus."  l 

This,  in  brief,  is  the  story  of  St.  Albans'  tribute  to 
learning.  In  most  monasteries  the  same  kind  of  work 
went  on,  in  a  more  circumscribed  fashion,  and  without  the 
same  distinction  of  finish,  which  could  probably  only  be 
attained  at  the  big  places  where  expert  scribes  and  illumin- 
ators could  be  well  trained.2 


Fortunately,  just  when  the  great  houses  had  attained 
the  summit  of  their  prosperity,  and  were  beginning  the 
slow  decline  to  dissolution,  learning  and  book-culture  were 
freshly  encouraged  by  the  coming  of  the  Friars. 

The  Black  Friars  settled  at  Canterbury  and  in  London, 
near  the  Old  Temple  in  Holborn,  in  1221.  The  Grey  Friars 
were  at  London,  Oxford,  and  Cambridge  in  1224,  and  by 
1256  they  were  in  forty-nine  different  localities.3  It  is 
strange  how  the  latter  order,  founded  by  a  man  who  for- 
bade a  novice  to  own  a  Psalter,  came  to  be  as  earnest  in 
buying  books  as  the  Benedictines  were  in  copying  them. 
St.  Francis'  ideal,  however,  was  impossible.  The  peripatetic 
nature  of  their  calling,  and  their  duty  of  tending  the  sick, 
compelled  many  friars  to  learn  foreign  languages,  and  to 
acquire  some  medical  knowledge.  Books  were,  therefore, 


1  Dugdale,  iv.  405. 

2  For  St.  Albans  see  Gesta  Abbatum,  i.  58,  70,  94,   106,  179,  184  ;  ii.  200, 
306,  363  ;  iii.  389,  393. 

3  Mon.  Fr.t  ii.  Iviii. 


BOOK-LOVERS  AMONG  MENDICANTS    53 

useful  to  them,  if  not  essential ;  as  indeed  St.  Francis 
ultimately  recognized.  However,  they  could  not  own  books 
themselves,  but  only  in  common  with  other  members  of  the 
convent.  If  a  friar  was  promoted  to  a  bishopric,  he  had  to 
renounce  the  use  of  the  books  he  had  had  as  a  friar ;  and 
Clement  IV  forbade  the  consecration  of  a  bishop  until  he 
had  returned  the  books  to  his  friary.  When  a  book  was 
given  to  a  friar — and -this  often  happened — he  was  in  duty 
bound  to  hand  it  to  his  Superior.  But  if  the  friar  was  a 
man  of  parts  the  gift  was  devoted  to  acquiring  books  for 
his  studies,  or  to  giving  him  other  necessary  assistance  ; 
the  duty,  it  was  held,  which  the  Superior  owed  him.1  But 
these  principles  do  not  seem  to  have  been  strictly  observed. 
In  little  more  than  thirty  years  after  St.  Francis'  death  it 
was  found  necessary  to  draw  up  rules  forbidding  the 
brethren  to  own  books  except  by  leave  from  the  chief  officer 
of  the  order,  or  to  keep  any  books  which  were  not  regarded 
as  the  property  of  the  whole  order,  or  to  write  books,  or 
have  them  written  for  sale.2 

By  the  end  of  the  thirteenth  century  the  Mendicants 
of  Oxford  were  fairly  well  provided  with  books.  Michael 
Scot  came  to  Oxford,  at  the  time  of  the  greatest  literary 
activity  of  the  brethren,  and  introduced  to  them  the  physical 
and  metaphysical  works  of  Aristotle  (i23o).3  Adam  de 
Marisco  seems  to  have  been  responsible  for  the  first  con- 
siderable additions  to  the  collection.  From  his  brother,  Bishop 
Richard,  he  had  already  received  a  library ;  possibly  this, 
with  his  own  books,  came  into  possession  of  the  convent 
Then  out  of  love  for  him,  Grosseteste  left  his  writings  or 
his  library — it  is  not  clear  which — to  the  Grey  Friars.4 

1  Bryce,  i.  440  n. ,  29.  2  Clark,  62. 

3  These  works   would  be  Latin   translations  based  upon   Arabic  versions. 
Opus  Majus,  iii.  66  ;  Camb.  Lit.,  i.  199  ;  Gasquet3,  156. 

4  Close  roll,  10  Hen.  ill,  m.  6  (3rd  Sep.) ;  Trivet,  Annales,  243  ;  Mon.  Fr., 
i.  185  ;  Stevenson,  76  ;  O.  H.  S.,  Little,  57. 


54  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

This  gift  may  have  formed  part — it  is  not  certain — of  the 
two  valuable  hoards  existing  in  the  fifteenth  century  in  the 
same  friary,  one  the  convent  library,  open  only  to  graduates, 
the  other  the  Schools  library,  for  seculars  living  among  the 
brethren  for  the  sake  of  the  teaching  they  could  get.  In 
these  collections  were  many  Hebrew  books,  which  had  been 
bought  upon  the  banishment  of  the  Jews  from  England 
(I29O).1  Such  books  were  not  often  found  in  the  abbeys, 
although  some  got  to  Ramsey,  where  Grosseteste's  influence 
may  be  suspected- 

The  White  Friars  also  had  a  library  at  Oxford,  wherein 
they  garnered  the  works  of  every  famous  writer  of  their 
order.  They  are  praised  for  taking  more  care  of  their 
books  than  the  brethren  of  other  colours.2  In  later  times, 
at  any  rate,  some  cause  for  the  complaint  against  the  Grey 
Friars  existed.  They  appear  to  have  sold  many  manuscripts 
to  Dr.  Thomas  Gascoigne  (c.  1433).  He  ultimately  gave 
them  to  the  libraries  of  Lincoln,  Durham,  Balliol,  and  Oriel 
Colleges.  As  the  friars'  mode  of  life  grew  easier  and  the 
love  of  learning  less  keen,  they  got  rid  of  many  more  books. 
In  Leland's  time  the  library  had  melted  away.  After 
much  difficulty  he  was  allowed  to  see  the  book-room, 
but  he  found  in  it  nothing  but  dust  and  dirt,  cobwebs 
and  moths,  and  some  books  not  worth  a  threepenny 
piece.3 

Roger  de  Thoris,  afterwards  Dean  of  Exeter,  presented 
a  library  to  the  Grey  Friars  of  his  city  in  1 266.4  What 
became  of  it  we  do  not  know.  About  the  same  time,  in 
1253  to  be  exact,  the  will  of  Richard  de  Wyche,  Bishop 
of  Chichester,  is  notable  for  its  bequests  to  the  friars  ;  thus 
he  left  books  to  various  friaries  of  the  Grey  Brethren — at 

1  Wood,  Hist.  Ant.  U.  Ox.  (1792),  i.  329. 

2  There  is  an  imperfect  catalogue  of  their  library  in  Leland,  iii.  57. 

3  Leland3,  286.  4  Oliver,  Mon.  Dioc.  Exon.,  332,  333. 


PLATE  IX 


BOOK-LOVERS  AMONG  MENDICANTS    55 

Chichester  his  glossed  Psalter,  at  Lewes  the  Gospels  of  St. 
Luke  and  St.  John,  at  Winchelsea  the  Gospels  of  St. 
Matthew  and  St.  Mark,  at  Canterbury  Isaiah  glossed,  at 
London  the  Epistles  of  St.  Paul  glossed,  and  at  Winchester 
the  twelve  Prophets  glossed  ;  as  well  as  some  volumes  to 
the  Black  Friars — at  Arundel  the  Book  of  Sentences,  at 
Canterbury  Hosea  glossed,  at  London  the  Books  of  Job, 
the  Acts,  the  Apocalypse,  with  the  canonical  epistles,  and 
at  Winchester  the  Summa  of  William  of  Auxerre.1  Such 
friendliness  for  the  Mendicants  was  far  from  common 
among  the  secular  clergy.  Besides  the  southern  places 
mentioned  in  this  bequest,  friaries  in  the  east,  at  Norwich 
and  Ipswich,  and  in  the  west,  at  Hereford  and  Bristol,  had 
goodly  libraries. 

The  friary  collections  in  London  seem  to  have  been 
important,  especially  that  given  to  the  Grey  Friars  in 
I225,2  just  when  they  had  settled  near  Newgate.  The 
Austin  Friars  may  have  owned  a  library  before  1364,  when 
two  of  their  number  left  the  London  house,  taking  with 
them  books  and  other  goods.3  Early  in  the  fifteenth 
century  a  library  was  built  and  a  large  addition  was  made 
to  the  books  of  this  house  by  Prior  Lowe,  a  friar 
afterwards  occupying  the  sees  of  St.  Asaph  and  of 
Rochester.4  At  this  time  the  friars  of  London  were 
specially  fortunate.  The  White  Friars  enjoyed  a  good 
library,  to  which  Thomas  Walden,  a  learned  brother  of 
the  order,  presented  many  foreign  manuscripts  of  some 
age  and  rarity.5  The  Grey  Friars'  library  was  founded  or 
re  founded  by  Dick  Whittington  (i42i).6  The  room  "was 
in  length  one  hundred  twentie  nine  foote,  and  in  breadth 


1  Sussex  Archaeol.  Collections,  i.  (1848),  168-187. 

2  Man.  Fr.,  ii.  18.  3  Cat.  of  Pap.  Letters,  iv.  42-43. 
4  Leland,  iii.  53.  5  Camb.  Mod.  Hist.,  i.,  597. 

6  For  date  see  Stow  (Kingsford's  ed.),  i.  108  ;  i.  318 ;  Man.  Fr.t  i.  519. 


56  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

thirtie  one :  all  seeled  with  Wainscot,  having  twentie  eight 
desks,  and  eight  double  setles  of  Wainscot.  Which  in  the 
next  yeare  following  was  altogither  finished  in  building,  and 
within  three  yeares  after,  furnished  with  Bookes,  to  the 
charges  of"  over  £556,  "whereof  Richard  Whittington 
bare  foure  hundred  pound,  the  rest  was  borne  by  Doctor 
Thomas  Winchelsey,  a  Frier  there."1  On  this  occasion 
one  hundred  marks  were  paid  for  transcribing  the  works 
of  Nicholas  de  Lyra,  a  Grey  Friar  highly  esteemed  for  his 
knowledge  of  Hebrew,  and  "  the  greatest  exponent  of  the 
literal  sense  of  Scripture  whom  the  medieval  world  can 
show."  2 

Of  few  of  the  friary  libraries  have  we  definite  knowledge 
of  their  size  and  character.  But  in  the  case  of  the  Austin 
Friars  of  York,  a  catalogue  of  their  library  is  extant.  The 
collection  was  a  notable  one.  The  inventory  was  made  in 
1372,  and  the  items  in  it,  forming  the  bulk  of  the  whole, 
with  some  later  additions,  amounted  to  646.  One  member 
of  the  society  named  John  Erghome  was  a  remarkable 
man.  He  was  a  doctor  of  Oxford,  where  he  had  studied 
logic,  natural  philosophy,  and  theology.  More  than  220 
books  were  his  contribution  to  this  splendid  library,  and  he 
it  was  who  added  the  Psalter  and  Canticles  in  Greek  and  a 
Hebrew  book, — rarities  indeed  at  that  date.  Classical 
literature  is  fairly  well  represented  in  the  collection  as  a 
whole,  but  theology,  and  especially  logic  and  philosophy, 
make  up  the  bulk.3 

In  Scotland,  too,  the  Grey  Friars  were  busy  library- 
making.  We  find  the  convent  at  Stirling  buying  five 
dozen  parchments  (1502).  Fifty  pounds  were  paid  for 
books  sent  to  them  this  year  by  the  Cistercians  of  Culross, 

1  Stow,  i.  318.  2  Camb.  Mod.  Hist.,  \.  591. 

3  The   catalogue  is  edited  by  Dr.  M.  R.  James  in  Fasciculus  loanni  Willis 
Clark  dicatus,  2-96. 


BOOK-LOVERS  AMONG  MENDICANTS    57 

and  to  the  Austin  Canons  of  Cambuskenneth  in  the  following 
year  about  half  as  much  was  paid  ;  and  similar  records 
appear  in  the  accounts.1 

Other  interesting  testimony  to  the  bookcraft  and  collect- 
ing habits  of  the  friars  is  not  wanting.  Adam  de  Marisco 
writes  to  the  Friar  Warden  of  Cambridge  asking  for  vellum 
for  scribes.2  Or  he  expresses  the  hope  that  Richard  of 
Cornwall  may  be  prevailed  upon  to  stay  in  England, 
but  if  he  goes  he  will  be  supplied  with  books  and  every- 
thing necessary  for  his  departure.3  From  this  letter,  it 
'was  evidently  usual  for  friars  to  seek  and  obtain  per- 
mission to  carry  away  books  with  them  when  going  abroad, 
or  going  from  one  custody  to  another.4  Then  again  Adam 
writes  asking  Grosseteste  to  send  Aristotle's  Ethics  to  the 
Grey  Friars'  convent  in  London.5  In  getting  books  the 
friars  were  sometimes  unscrupulous.  A  royal  writ  was 
issued  commanding  the  Warden  of  the  Grey  Friars  at 
Oxford  and  another  friar,  Walter  de  Chatton,  to  return 
two  books  worth  forty  shillings  which  they  were  keeping 
from  the  rightful  owner  (i33o).6  More  striking  testimony 
to  the  book-collecting  habits  of  the  friars  is  the  complaint 
to  the  Pope  of  their  buying  so  many  books  that  the  monks 
and  clergy  had  difficulty  in  obtaining  them.  In  every 
convent,  it  was  urged,  was  a  grand  and  noble  library,  and 
every  friar  of  eminence  in  the  University  had  a  fine 
collection  of  books.7  Archbishop  Fitzralph,  who  made 
this  statement,  detested  the  friars,  and  was  besides  prone 
to  exaggerate ;  but  he  was  not  wholly  wrong  in  this 

1  Bryce,  i.  369.  2  Mon.  Fr.,  i.  391.  3  Ibid.  i.  366. 

4  But  see  0.  If.  S.,  Little,  56;  Mon.   Fr.,  ii.  91 — Libri  fratrum  deceden- 
tium.   .   .  . 

5  Mon.  Fr.,  i.  114. 

6  Bodl.  MS.  Twyne,  xxiii.  488  ;  O.  H.  S.,  Little,  60. 

7  R.  Armachanus,  Defensorium  Curatorum  ;  cf.  Wyclif    English   Works,  ed. 
Matthew,  128,  221. 


58  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

instance,  as  De  Bury  tells  a  similar  tale.  "  Whenever  it 
happened,"  he  says,  "  that  we  turned  aside  to  the  cities  and 
places  where  the  mendicants  .  .  .  had  their  convents,  we 
did  not  disdain  to  visit  their  libraries  .  .  . ;  there  we  found 
heaped  up  amid  the  utmost  poverty  the  utmost  riches  of 
wisdom.  These  men  are  as  ants.  .  .  .  They  have  added 
more  in  this  brief  [eleventh]  hour  to  the  stock  of  the  sacred 
books  than  all  the  other  vine-dressers." x  Instead  of  de- 
claiming against  the  hawks,  De  Bury  trained  them  to  prey 
for  him,  and  was  well  rewarded  for  his  pains.  Nor  is  it 
beyond  the  bounds  of  probability  that  he  enriched  his  own 
collection  at  the  expense  of  the  Grey  Friars'  library  at 
Oxford.2 

The  friars  were  not  merely  collectors.  The  scholar- 
ship of  Bacon  and  other  brethren  does  not  concern  us. 
But  their  correction  of  the  texts  of  Scripture,  and  their 
bibliographical  work,  are  germane  to  our  subject.  In  mid- 
thirteenth  century  some  Black  Friars  of  Paris  laboured  to 
correct  the  text  of  the  Latin  Bible ;  and  to  enable  copyists 
to  restore  the  true  text  when  transcribing,  they  drew  up 
manuals,  called  Correctoria.  One  such  manual,  now  known 
as  the  Correctorium  Vaticanum,  was  prepared  by  William  de 
la  Mare,  a  Grey  brother  of  Oxford,  in  the  course  of  forty 
years'  labour ;  and  it  is  "  a  work  which  before  all  others 
laid  down  sound  principles  of  true  scientific  criticism  upon 
which  to  base  a  correction  of  the  Vulgate  text."  3 

Another  special  work  of  the  Grey  brethren,  the  Registrum 
Librorum  Angliae?  was  less  important,  although  it  more 
clearly  illustrates  their  high  regard  for  books.  Some  time 
in  the  fourteenth  century,  by  seeking  information  from 
about  one  hundred  and  sixty  monasteries,  some  friars  drew 

1  R.  de  /?.,  Thomas'  ed.  203.  2  Stevenson,  87. 

3  Gasquet3,  140,  q.v.  for  full  description  of  these  Correctoria. 

4  MS.  Bodl.  Tanner,  165. 


THE  GREY   FRIARS'  CATALOGUE   OF   CONVENTUAL  LIBRARIES 

BODL.   MS.  TANNER    165,    F.   IIQ 


DISPERSAL  OF  MONKISH  LIBRARIES    59 

up  a  list  of  libraries  under  the  heads  of  the  seven  custodies 
or  wardenships  of  their  order  in  England,  and  catalogued 
the  writings  of  some  eighty-five  authors  represented  in  these 
collections.  In  this  way  was  formed  a  combined  biblio- 
graphy and  co-operative  catalogue.  Of  this  catalogue  we 
are  able  to  reproduce  a  page  on  which  are  indexed  five 
authors,  with  numerical  references  to  the  libraries  containing 
each  work.  Early  in  the  fifteenth  century  a  monk  of  Bury 
St.  Edmunds,  John  Boston  by  name — possibly  the  librarian 
of  that  house — expanded  the  register  by  increasing  to 
nearly  seven  hundred  the  number  of  authors,  and  by  adding 
a  score  of  names  to  the  list  of  libraries.  He  also  provided 
a  short  biographical  sketch  of  each  author  "  drawn  from 
the  best  sources  at  his  disposal ;  so  that  the  book  in  its 
completed  form  might  claim  to  be  called  a  dictionary  of 
literature." l 


§  HI 

We  would  fain  fill  in  the  outline  we  have  given,  for  the 
friars  and  their  book-loving  ways  are  interesting.  But 
enough  has  been  written  to  show  the  origin  and  growth  of 
libraries  among  the  religious  both  of  the  abbeys  and  the 
friaries.  Of  the  later  days  of  monachism  it  is  not  so 
pleasant  to  write.  The  story  has  been  well  told  many 
times,  but  no  two  writers,  even  in  a  broad  and  general  way, 
let  alone  in  detail,  have  read  the  facts  alike.  On  the  one 
hand  it  is  urged  that  monachism  became  degenerate,  both 
in  reverence  for  spiritual  affairs  and  in  love  of  learning. 
Many  monks,  we  are  told,  came  to  find  more  enjoyment  in 
easy  living  than  in  ascetic  and  religious  observances. 
Apart  from  the  savage  onslaughts  in  Piers  Plowman,  and 
the  yarns  of  Layton  and  Legh,  now  quite  discredited,  we 

1  Camb.  Mod.  Hist.,  i.  592  ;  James,  xlix. 


6o  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

have  the  most  credible  evidence  in  Chaucer's  gentle 
satire : — 

"  A  monk  ther  was,  a  fair  for  the  maistrye, 
An  out-rydere,  that  lovede  venerye  ;  [hunting] 

A  manly  man,  to  been  an  abbot  able, 
Ful  many  a  deyntee  hors  hadde  he  in  stable  : 

He  was  a  lord  ful  fat  and  in  good  point  [well-equipped] 

His  eyen  stepe,  and  rollinge  in  his  heed."  [eyes  bright] 

The  friars,  too,  were  sometimes  "  merye  and  wantoun,"  and 

"knew  the  tavernes  wel  in  every  toun, 
And  everich  hostiler  or  gay  tappestere." 

And  an  indictment  of  some  force  might  be  based  on  the 
fact  that  the  general  chapter  of  the  Benedictine  order  at 
Coventry  in  1516  found  it  necessary  to  make  regulations 
against  immoderate  and  illicit  eating  and  drinking,  and 
against  hunting  and  hawking.1 

No  doubt  also  many  a  monk  would  argue  with  him- 
self :— 

"  What  sholde  he  studie,  and  make  him-selven  wood  [mad] 

Upon  a  book  in  cloistre  alwey  to  poure 

Or  swinken  with  his  handes,  and  laboure  [toil] 

As  Austin  bit?"  [As  St.  Augustine  bids] 

De  Bury  declaimed  against  the  monks'  neglect  of  books. 
"  Now  slothful  Thersites,"  he  cries,  "  handles  the  arms  of 
Achilles  and  the  choice  trappings  of  war-horses  are  spread 
upon  lazy  asses,  winking  owls  lord  it  in  the  eagle's  nest, 
and  the  cowardly  kite  sits  upon  the  perch  of  the  hawk. 

"  Liber  Bacchus  is  ever  loved, 
And  is  into  their  bellies  shoved, 

By  day  and  by  night. 
Liber  Codex  is  neglected, 
And  with  scornful  hand  rejected 

Far  out  of  their  sight." 

1  Hist,  et  Cart.  Man.  Glouc.,  iii.  Ixxiv. 


DISPERSAL  OF  MONKISH  LIBRARIES    61 

"  And  as  if  the  simple  monastic  folk  of  modern  times 
were  deceived  by  a  confusion  of  names,  while  Liber  Pater 
is  preferred  to  Liber  Patrum,  the  study  of  the  monks 
nowadays  is  in  the  emptying  of  cups  and  not  the 
emending  of  books ;  to  which  they  do  not  hesitate  to  add 
the  wanton  music  of  Timotheus,  jealous  of  chastity,  and 
thus  the  song  of  the  merrymaker  and  not  the  chant  of  the 
mourner  is  become  the  office  of  the  monks.  Flocks  and 
fleeces,  crops  and  granaries,  leeks  and  potherbs,  drink  and 
goblets,  are  nowadays  the  reading  and  study  of  the  monks, 
except  a  few  elect  ones,  in  whom  lingers  not  the  image 
but  some  slight  vestige  of  the  fathers  that  preceded  them."  1 
Specific  instances  of  neglect  and  worse  are  recorded.  We 
have  already  mentioned  the  giving  and  selling  of  books 
by  the  monks  of  St.  Albans  to  Richard  de  Bury.  From 
the  account  books  of  Bolton  Abbey  it  would  appear  that 
three  books  only  were  bought  during  forty  years  of  the 
fourteenth  century.2  At  St.  Werburgh's,  Chester,  discipline 
was  very  lax.  Two  monks  robbed  the  abbot  of  a  book 
valued  at  £20,  and  of  property  valued  at  £100  or  more, 
and  stole  from  two  of  their  brethren  books  and  money 
(1409).  About  four  years  later  one  of  the  thieves  was 
elected  abbot,  and  his  respect  for  learning  may  be  gauged 
from  the  fact  that  in  1422  he  was  charged  with  not 
having  maintained  a  scholar  at  Oxford  or  Cambridge  for 
twelve  years,  although  it  was  his  duty  to  do  so  by  the  rules 
of  his  order.3 

At  Bury  books  were  going  astray  in  the  first  half  of 
the  fifteenth  century.  Abbot  William  Curteys  (1429-45) 
issued  an  ordinance  in  which  he  declares  books  given  out 


1  £.  de  B.,  c.  v.  183. 

2  Whitaker,  Hist,  of  Craven,  (1805),   330;    another    computus,    discovered 
later,  does  not  refer  to  books  (ed.  i878). 

3  Morris,  Chester  during  Plantagenet  and  Tudor  Reigns  >  128-129. 


62  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

by  the  precentor  to  the  brethren  for  purposes  of  study  had 
been  lent,  pledged,  and  even  stolen  by  them.  Some  of  them 
he  had  recovered,  and  he  hoped  to  secure  more,  but  the 
process  of  recovery  had  been  expensive  and  troublesome, 
both  to  himself  and  the  people  he  found  in  possession  of 
the  books.  He  therefore  sternly  forbade  the  brethren  to 
alienate  books,  and  decrees  certain  punishments  if  his 
order  was  disobeyed.  Brethren  studying  at  the  University 
seem  to  have  been  not  immune  from  such  faults.1  The 
prior  of  Michelham  sold  books,  papers,  horses,  and  timber 
for  his  own  personal  profit  (1478).  A  visitation  of 
Wigmore  showed  that  books  were  not  "  studied  in  the 
cloister  because  the  seats  were  uncomfortable."2  Bishop 
Goldwell's  visitation  of  his  diocese  of  Norwich  in  1492 
showed  that  at  Norwich  Priory  no  scholars  were  sent  to 
study  at  Oxford,  and  at  Wymondham  Abbey  the  monks 
"  refused  to  apply  themselves  to  their  books."  At  Battle 
Abbey,  in  1530,  the  one  time  fine  library  was  in  a  sad 
state  of  neglect ;  no  doubt  books  had  been  parted  with. 
And  as  the  last  years  of  the  monasteries  coincided  with  a 
renewed  interest  among  seculars  in  learning  and  with  a 
revival  of  book-collecting,  the  monks  of  all  houses  must 
have  been  sorely  tempted  to  sell  books  which  laymen 
coveted,  as  the  monks  of  Mount  Athos  have  been 
bartering  away  their  libraries  ever  since  the  seventeenth 
century. 

But  among  so  many  houses  some  were  bound  to  be  ill- 
conducted.  And  it  is  important  to  remember  that  irregu- 
larities would  be  recorded  oftener  than  more  favourable 
facts.  What  had  been  usual  would  go  unnoted ;  what  was 
strange,  and  a  departure  from  the  highest  standard  of 
monachism,  would  be  observed  with  regret  by  friends 
and  dwelt  on  with  spite  by  enemies.  Although  human 

1  James,  M.  R.1,  109-110.  ~  Bateson,  Meet.  Eng.,  339. 


DISPERSAL  OF  MONKISH  LIBRARIES    63 

memory  is  apt  to  register  evil  acts  with  more  assiduity  and 
fidelity  than  good,  yet  a  contrary  view  of  the  last  state  of 
monachism  may  be  argued  with  as  much  reason  and  with 
the  support  of  equally  reliable  evidence.  The  great 
majority  of  the  houses  were  not  under  lax  control.  The 
general  organisation  was  not  defective ;  nor  was  every 
monk  a  "  lorel,  a  loller,  and  a  '  spille-tyme.' "  Setting  aside 
the  question  of  general  conduct,  with  which  we  have  little 
to  do,  plenty  of  evidence  may  be  collected  to  show  that  the 
work  of  the  earlier  periods  was  not  only  continued  in  the 
fourteenth  and  fifteenth  centuries,  but  that  some  of  the 
monks  enjoyed  special  distinction  among  their  contempor- 
aries. Writing  was  encouraged  by  directions  of  chapters 
in  1343,  1388,  and  I444.1  The  early  part  of  the  fifteenth 
century  was  an  age  of  library  building,  in  the  monasteries, 
as  at  the  Universities.  Special  rooms  for  books  were  put 
up  at  Gloucester,  Christ  Church  (Canterbury),  Durham, 
Bury  St.  Edmunds,  and  other  houses.  Large  and  growing 
monastic  libraries  were  in  existence — at  St.  Albans  and 
Peterborough,  two  at  Canterbury  of  nearly  two  thousand 
volumes  each,  two  thousand  volumes  at  Bury,  a  thousand 
and  more  at  Durham,  six  hundred  at  Ramsey,  three  hundred 
and  fifty  at  Meaux.  When  John  Leland  crossed  the  thres- 
hold of  the  library  at  Glastonbury  he  stood  stock  still  for  a 
moment,  awestruck  and  bewildered  at  the  sight  of  books  of 
the  greatest  antiquity.  In  1482,  the  abbess  of  Syon 
monastery,  Isleworth,  entered  into  a  regular  contract  for 
writing  and  binding  books.2  Some  forty  years  later  this 
abbey  had  at  least  fourteen  hundred  and  twenty-one 
printed  and  manuscript  volumes  in  its  library.3  More 
facts  of  similar  character  will  be  noted  in  the  next 
chapter.  Here  we  will  content  ourselves  with  noting  a 
few  of  the  most  conspicuous  instances  of  monkish 

1  Gasquet4,  49.  2  E.  H.  R.>  xxv.  122.  3  Bateson,  vii. 


64  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

scholarship  in  these  later  days.  At  Glastonbury,  Abbot 
John  Selwood  was  familiar  with  John  Free's  work ; 
indeed,  presents  a  monk  with  one  of  that  scholar's  trans- 
lations from  the  Greek.1  His  successor,  Bere,  was  a  pilgrim 
to  Italy,  and  was  in  correspondence  with  Erasmus,  who 
desired  him  to  examine  his  translation  of  the  New  Testa- 
ment from  the  Greek.  A  monk  of  Westminster,  who 
became  abbot  of  his  house  in  1465,  was  a  diligent  student, 
noted  for  his  knowledge  of  Greek.2  At  Christ  Church, 
Canterbury,  Prior  Selling  was  particularly  zealous  on 
behalf  of  the  library,  and  was  one  of  the  first  to  import 
Greek  books  into  England  in  any  considerable  quantity.3 
Two  manuscripts  now  in  the  library  of  Corpus  Christi 
College,  Oxford,  and  one  in  New  College,  were  transcribed 
by  a  Greek  living  at  Reading  Abbey  (1497—  1 500).* 
These  few  references  to  the  study  of  Greek  are  especially 
significant,  as  the  revival  of  Greek  studies  had  only  just 
begun. 

§  IV 

The  whole  truth  about  the  later  days  of  the  monasteries 
will  never  be  known.  Many  of  the  original  sources  of  our 
knowledge  are  tainted  with  partisanship  and  religious 
rancour  and  flagrant  dishonesty.  What  does  seem  to  be 
true  is  that  in  the  fourteenth  and  fifteenth  centuries  monastic 
influence  grew  slowly  weaker,  although  the  system  may  not 
have  been  degenerate  in  itself.  The  cause  is  to  be  found 
in  the  very  prosperity  of  monachism,  which  brought  to  the 
religious  houses  wealth  and  all  its  responsibilities.  Wealth 
always  imposes  fetters,  as  every  rich  man,  from  Seneca 
downwards,  has  declared  with  unctuous  lamentation.  But 

1  Synesius  de  laude  Calvitii,  MS.  Bodl.  80.  2  Gasquet2,  36-37. 

3  Sandys,,  ii.  225  ;  and  see/<w/,  p.  195. 

4  Gasquet3,  37  ;  Rashdall  and  Rait,  New  Coll.  (1901),  251. 


PL  A  TE  XI 


B,|     >    3 


E  :     < 


8-«     * 


&   h 

§ « 


I! 

H    o 


s  y 


5S   S§ 


DISPERSAL  OF  MONKISH  LIBRARIES    65 

what  first  strikes  the  student  who  compares  early  English 
monachism  with  the  later  is,  that  whereas  the  monks  of  the 
first  period  were  most  concerned  with  their  monastic  duties, 
their  religious  observances,  and  their  scribing  and  illuminat- 
ing, the  monks  of  the  later  period,  and  especially  during 
the  fourteenth  and  fifteenth  centuries,  were  immersed  in 
business,  in  the  management  of  their  wealth,  the  control 
of  large  estates.  The  possession  of  wealth  led  in  one 
direction  to  excessive  display,  and  to  purchasing  land  and 
building  beyond  their  means ;  a  course  which  monks  might 
easily  persuade  themselves  was  progressive  and  exemplary 
of  true  religious  fervour,  but  which  attracted  to  them 
envious  eyes.  Heavy  subsidies  to  the  Crown  and  the  Pope 
oppressed  them.  Then  again,  many  houses  indulged  in 
unwise  and  excessive  almsgiving,  which  the  monks  might 
well  believe  to  be  right,  but  which  brought  them  only  the 
interested  friendship  of  the  needy.  And  in  the  manage- 
ment of  their  estates  much  litigation  obstinately  pursued 
caused  internal  dissension,  was  costly,  and  gained  them 
only  bitter  enemies.  Had  the  monasteries  been  allowed  to 
exist,  probably  these  evils  would  have  cured  themselves. 
But,  owing  to  these  evils, — to  the  decline  of  monastic 
influence  of  which  they  were  the  cause, — the  Dissolution, 
once  decided  upon,  could  be  carried  out  with  terrible  swift- 
ness and  completeness ;  no  influence  nor  power  which  the 
religious  could  wield  was  able  to  delay  or  avert  the  blow 
struck  by  the  king.  Within  a  few  years  over  one  thousand 
houses  were  closed  and  their  lands  and  property  confiscated. 
In  the  hastiness  of  the  overthrow  some  conventual 
books  were  destroyed,  or  stolen,  or  sold  off  at  low  prices. 
In  a  few  places  damage  was  done  even  before  the  actual 
dissolution.  At  Christ  Church,  Canterbury,  for  example, 
the  drunken  servants  of  a  royal  commission  carelessly 
brought  about  a  fire,  almost  entirely  destroying  the 

5 


66  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

library  of  Prior  Selling,1  which  he  probably  designed  to 
add  to  the  collection  of  his  monastery.  But  when  the 
houses  were  suppressed,  we  are  told,  "  whole  libraries  were 
destroyed,  or  made  waste  paper  of,  or  consumed  for  the 
vilest  uses.  The  splendid  and  magnificent  Abbey  of 
Malmesbury,  which  possessed  some  of  the  finest  manuscripts 
in  the  kingdom,  was  ransacked,  and  its  treasures  either 
sold  or  burnt  to  serve  the  commonest  purposes  of  life.  An 
antiquary  who  travelled  through  that  town,  many  years 
after  the  Dissolution,  relates  that  he  saw  broken  windows 
patched  up  with  remnants  of  the  most  valuable  manuscripts 
on  vellum,  and  that  the  bakers  had  not  even  then  consumed 
the  stores  they  had  accumulated,  in  heating  their  ovens." 2 
John  Bale  tells  us  the  loss  of  the  libraries  had  not  mattered 
so  much,  "  beynge  so  many  in  nombre,  and  in  so  desolate 
places  for  the  more  parte,  yf  the  chiefe  monumentes  and 
most  notable  workes  of  our  excellent  wryters  had  been 
reserved.  If  there  had  been  in  every  shy  re  of  Englande 
but  one  solempne  lybrary  to  the  preservacyon  of  those 
noble  workes,  and  preferrement  of  good  lernynges  in  oure 
posteryte,  it  had  bene  yet  sumwhat.  But  to  destroye  all 
without  consyderacyon,  is  and  wyll  be  unto  Englande  for 
ever,  a  most  horryble  infamy  amonge  the  grave  senyours 
of  other  nacyons.  A  great  nombre  of  them  whych  purchased 
these  superstycyouse  mansyons  reserved  of  those  lybrary 
bokes,  some  to  serve  theyr  jakes,  some  to  scoure  theyr 
candlestycks,  and  some  to  rubbe  theyr  bootes.  Some  they 
sold  to  the  grossers  and  sopesellers,  and  some  they  sent 
over  see  to  the  bokebynders,  not  in  small  nombre,  but  at 

1  A  few  volumes  escaped  :  a  copy  of  Basil's  Commentary  on  Isaiah,  presum- 
ably in  Greek,   and  some  others.     "Among  them  must  in  all  probability  be 
reckoned  the  first  copy  of  Homer  whose   presence  can  be  definitely  traced  in 
England  since  the  days  of  Theodore  of  Tarsus." — Camb.  Mod.  Hist.,  i.  598. 
Cp.  James,  li. 

2  Aubrey,  Lett,  of  Em.  Per.  from  the  Bod.,  i.  278. 


DISPERSAL  OF  MONKISH  LIBRARIES    67 

tymes  whole  shyppes  full,  to  the  wonderynge  of  the  foren 
nacyons.  Yea,  the  unyversytees  of  this  realme  are  not  all 
clere  in  this  detestable  fact.  ...  I  know  a  merchant  man 
which  shall  at  thys  tyme  be  namelesse,  that  boughte  the 
contentes  of  two  noble  lybraryes  for  xl  shyllynges  pryce,  a 
shame  it  is  to  be  spoken.  Thys  stuffe  hath  he  occupyed 
in  the  stede  of  graye  paper  by  the  space  of  more  than  these 
x  years,  and  yet  he  hath  store  ynough  for  many  yeares 
to  come." l  To  some  extent  Bale's  account  of  the  con- 
temptuous treatment  of  books  is  confirmed  by  records  of 
sales  :  as,  for  example,  the  following  : — 

Item,  sold  to  Robert  Doryngton,  old  boke,  and  a  cofer  in 

the  library        ........  ijs. 

Item,  old  bokes  in  the  vestry,  sold  to  the  same  Robert     .  viiid. 

Item,  sold  to  Robert  Whytgreve,  a  missale       .         .         .  viijd. 

Fyrst,  sold  to  Mr.  Whytgreve,  a  masse  boke     .         .         .  xijd. 

Item,  old  bokes  in  the  quyer   ......  vjd. 

Item,  a  fryers  masse  boke,  solde  to  Marke  Wyrley    .         .  iiijd.2 

Bale's  statement  is  sadly  borne  out  by  the  fate  of  the 
library  of  the  Austin  Friars  of  York.  At  one  time  this 
friary  owned  between  six  and  seven  hundred  books.  Now 
but  five  are  known  to  remain.3  "  It  is  hardly  open  to 
doubt,"  writes  Dr.  James,  "that  nine-tenths  of  the  books 
have  ceased  to  exist.  To  be  sure,  it  is  no  news  to  us  that 
thousands,  perhaps  hundreds  of  thousands,  of  manuscripts 
were  destroyed  in  the  first  half  of  the  sixteenth  century ; 
but  the  truth  comes  heavily  home  when  we  are  confronted 
with  the  actual  figures  of  the  loss  sustained  in  one  small 
corner  of  the  field.  We  may  fairly  reckon  that  what 

1  Laboryouse  Journey  and  Sere  he  ofjohann  Leylandefor  Englandes  Antiquitees, 
by  Bale,  1549.     Cf.  Strype,  Parker  (1711),  528. 

2  Accounts  of  John  Scudamore  (king's  receiver),  detailing  proceeds  of  sale  of 
goods  from  Bordesley  Abbey,  and  other  monasteries. — Cam.  Soc.,  xxvi.  269,  271, 

275- 

3  Fasciculus  I.   W.  Clark  dicatus,  16,  and  cf.  96. 


68  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

happened  in  the  case  of  the  Austin  Friars  at  York  happened 
to  many  another  house  situated  like  it,  in  a  populous  centre, 
and  thus  enjoying  good  opportunities  for  acquiring  books."  1 

But  the  loss  may  be — and  has  been — exaggerated. 
In  some  instances  a  good  part  of  a  library  was  preserved. 
The  Prior  of  Lanthony,  a  house  in  the  outskirts  of 
Gloucester,  saved  the  books  of  his  little  community.  From 
him  they  passed  into  the  hands  of  one  Theyer ;  later, 
possibly  through  Archbishop  Bancroft,  they  found  an 
ultimate  resting-place  in  Lambeth  Palace.  During  this 
interval  many  of  them  were  perhaps  lost  or  sold,  but  to-day 
some  one  hundred  and  thirty  are  known  certainly  to  have 
come  from  Lanthony,  or  may  be  credited  to  that  place 
on  reasonably  safe  evidence.2 

Then  again  Henry's  myrmidons — to  use  the  classic 
word — would  be  unlikely  to  carry  their  vandalism  too  far. 
To  do  so,  in  view  of  the  great  value  of  books,  would  bring 
them  no  profit.  Knowing  their  character,  may  we  not 
reasonably  assume  that  they  sold  as  many  books  as  they 
could  to  make  illicit  gains  ?  3  Sometimes  they  fell  in  love 
with  their  finds,  as  was  natural.  "  Please  it  you  to  under- 
stand," writes  Thomas  Bedyll,  one  of  Henry  vill's  com- 
missioners, "  that  in  the  reding  of  the  muniments  and 
charters  of  the  house  of  Ramesey,  I  found  a  charter  of  King 
Edgar,  writen  in  a  very  antiq  Romane  hand,  hard  to  be  red 
at  the  first  sight,  and  light  inowghe  after  that  a  man  found 
out  vj  or  vij  words  and  after  compar  letter  to  letter.  I  am 
suer  ye  wold  delight  to  see  the  same  for  the  straingnes  and 
antiquite  thereof  ...  I  have  seen  also  there  a  charter  of 
King  Edward  writen  affor  the  Conquest."  4 

1  Fascicuhis  I.  W.  Clark  dicattts,  16,  17. 

2  C.  A.  S.  8vo.  PubL,  No.  33  (1900),  Dr.  James  on  MSS.  in  the  Library 
of  Lambeth  Palace,  pp.  I,  2,  6. 

3  See  Dr.  James'  view  of  the  dispersion  of  Bury  Abbey  Library.— James1,  9-10. 

4  Monasticon,  Dugdale,  ii.  586-587. 


PL  A  TK  XII 


WESTMINSTER  "   I LLUM 1  NATION 

THIRTEENTH    CENTURY 


DISPERSAL  OF  MONKISH  LIBRARIES    69 

John  Leland  was  one  of  those  who  saved  books. 
Already  he  had  been  commissioned  to  examine  the  libraries 
of  cathedrals,  abbeys,  priories,  colleges,  and  other  places 
wherein  the  records  of  antiquity  were  kept,  when,  observing 
with  dismay  the  threatened  loss  of  monastic  treasures,  he 
asked  Cromwell  to  extend  the  commission  to  collecting 
books  for  the  king's  library.  The  Germans,  he  says,  per- 
ceiving our  "  desidiousness "  and  negligence,  were  daily 
sending  young  scholars  hither,  who  spoiled  the  books,  and 
cut  them  out  of  libraries,  and  returned  home  and  put  them 
abroad  as  monuments  of  their  own  country.1 

His  request  was  granted  in  part,  and  he  tells  us  he  sent 
to  London  for  the  royal  library  the  choicest  volumes  in 
St.  Augustine's  Abbey ;  but  very  few  of  these  books  now 
remain.2  He  had,  he  said,  "  conservid  many  good  autors, 
the  which  otherwise  had  beene  like  to  have  perischid  to  no 
smaul  incommodite  of  good  letters,  of  the  whiche  parte 
remayne  yn  the  moste  magnificent  libraries  of  yowr  royal 
Palacis.  Parte  also  remayne  yn  my  custodye.  Wherby  I 
truste  right  shortely  so  to  describe  your  most  noble  reaulme, 
and  to  publische  the  Majeste  and  the  excellent  actes  of 
yowr  progenitors."  3 

Robert  Talbot,  rector  of  Haversham,  Berkshire 
(d.  155  8),  collected  monastic  manuscripts :  the  choicest  of 
them  he  left  to  New  College.  A  portreeve  of  Ipswich, 
named  William  Smart,  came  into  possession  of  some  hundred 
volumes  from  Bury  Abbey  library.  In  1599  he  gave  them 
to  Pembroke  College,  where  they  are  now.4  John  Twyne, 
(d.  1581),  schoolmaster  and  mayor  of  Canterbury,  cer- 
tainly once  owned  the  fifteenth-century  catalogue  of  the 
St.  Augustine's  Abbey  library,  and  seems  to  have  possessed 
many  manuscripts.  Both  catalogue  and  manuscripts  were 

1  Ath.  Ox.  (1721),  i.  82,  83.  2  James  (M.  R.),  Ixxxi. 

3  Leland,  Itinerary  (1907),  i.  xxxviii.  4  James  (M.  R.)1,  II. 


70  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

transferred  to  Dr.  John  Dee,  the  famous  alchemist.  The 
catalogue,  with  some  other  books  belonging  to  the  doctor, 
got  to  the  library  of  Trinity  College,  Dublin.  But  the 
manuscripts  passed  into  the  hands  of  Brian  Twyne,  John's 
grandson,  who  bequeathed  them  to  Corpus  Christi  College, 
Oxford  ;  they  are  still  there.1  John  Stow,  whose  gatherings 
form  part  of  the  Harleian  collection,  saved  some  books 
which  once  reposed  in  claustral  aumbries,  mainly  owing  to 
the  protection  and  help  of  Archbishop  Parker. 

Archbishop  Parker  himself  was  assiduous  in  garnering 
books.  "  I  have  within  my  house,  in  wages,"  he  writes 
to  Lord  Burleigh,  in  I  573,  "  drawers  and  cutters,  painters, 
limners,  writers  and  bookbinders."  Again,  "  I  toy  out  my 
time,  partly  with  copying  of  books."  He  made  a  strenuous 
endeavour  to  recover  as  many  of  the  monks'  books  as 
possible,  using  money  and  influence  to  this  end ;  and 
accumulated  an  unusually  large  library,  quite  priceless  in 
character.2  Most  of  his  choice  books  were  presented  to 
Corpus  Christi  College,  Cambridge,  and  twenty-five  of  them 
to  Cambridge  University  Library  (1574).  Dr.  Montagu 
James,  the  leading  authority  on  the  provenance  of  Western 
manuscripts,  has  discovered  or  made  suggestions  as  to  the 
origin  of  nearly  two  hundred  out  of  about  three  hundred  and 
eighty.3  Forty-seven  are  traced  to  Christ  Church,  Canter- 
bury; twenty-six  to  St.  Augustine's  Abbey.  Later  Dr. 
James  extended  his  work  to  identifying  the  manuscripts 
which  were  once  in  the  Canterbury  abbeys  and  in  the 
priory  of  St.  Martin  at  Dover.  From  the  fragmentary 
Christ  Church  catalogue  of  1170,  Dr.  James  has  identified 
two,  and  possibly  six,  manuscripts ;  from  Henry  Eastry's 
catalogue  (14  cent.)  of  Christ  Church  books,  he  has  identified 

1  Notes  and  Q.,  2.  i.  485  ;  James  (M.  R.),  Ivii,  Ixxxii. 

2  Strype,  Parker  (1711),  528. 

3  James  (M.  R.),  Sources  of  Archbishop  Parker's  MSS.  (Camb.  Antiq.  Soc.). 


DISPERSAL  OF  MONKISH  LIBRARIES    71 

either  certainly  or  with  much  probability  about  one  hundred 
and  eighty ;  from  the  catalogue  of  St.  Augustine's  Abbey 
library  (c.  1497)  over  one  hundred  and  seventy-five;  as  well 
as  twenty  from  the  Dover  catalogue  (1389).  In  addition, 
Dr.  James  has  identified  about  one  hundred  and  fifty  manu- 
scripts still  extant  which  are  certainly  or  probably  attribut- 
able to  Christ  Church  monastic  library,  but  which  are  not 
in  the  catalogues  handed  down  to  us ;  and  over  sixty  which 
are  likewise  attributable  to  St.  Augustine's  monastery.1 
There  are  therefore  about  five  hundred  and  seventy  Canter- 
bury manuscripts  now  remaining  to  us. 

By  making  a  similarly  thorough  investigation  Dr.  James 
has  traced  about  three  hundred  and  twenty-two  manuscripts 
from  Bury  St.  Edmunds.2  Of  the  Westminster  Abbey 
manuscripts  it  is  difficult  to  say  how  many  are  extant,  as 
the  common  medieval  press  marks  are  absent  from  the 
books  of  this  house.  But  the  presence  of  eleven  manuscripts 
in  the  British  Museum  ;  two  in  Lambeth  Palace ;  one  at 
Sion  College ;  three  at  the  Bodleian,  and  five  more  in 
Oxford  colleges ;  two  at  the  Cambridge  University  Library, 
and  two  more  in  the  colleges  there ;  one  at  the  Chetham 
Library,  Manchester ;  and  two  at  Trinity  College,  Dublin, 
well  illustrate  how  the  monastic  books  have  been  scattered 
since  the  Dissolution.3  To  these  special  examinations 
Dr.  James  has  gradually  added  vastly  to  our  knowledge  of 
the  provenance  of  manuscripts  by  his  masterly  series  of 
catalogues  of  the  ancient  treasures  of  the  Cambridge 
colleges,  and  he  has  proved  to  us  that  a  considerable 
number  of  monastic  books  still  survive.4  Much  more  work 
of  the  same  kind  remains  to  be  done ;  other  labourers  are 

1  James  (M.  R.),  505-534. 

2  James  (M.  R.)1,    42  ;  ibid.  xciv.     But  later  Dr.  James  was  less  certain  of 
some  of  his  identifications.     See  James  (M.  R.)10,  viii. 

3  Robinson. 

4  See  also  Macray's  Annals  of  the  Bodleian. 


72  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

needed ;  but  the  men  of  parts  who  are  able  and  content 
to  labour  at  a  task  without  remuneration  and  with  small 
thanks  are  few  and  far  between ;  while  fewer  still  are  the 
publishers  who  can  be  persuaded  to  produce  the  results  of 
these  researches. 


CHAPTER    IV 

BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING  IN  THE 
RELIGIOUS  HOUSES 

"  For  if  hevene  be  on  this  erthe  .  and  ese  to  any  soule, 
It  is  in  cloistere  or  in  scole  .  be  many  skilles  I  fynde  ; 
For  in  cloistre  cometh  no  man  .  to  chide  ne  to  fighte, 
But  alle  is  buxomnesse  there  and  bokes  .  to  rede  and  to  lerne." 

Piers  Plowman^  B.  x.  300 

§  i 

BEFORE  leaving  the  subject  of  monastic  libraries, 
it  is  desirable  to  say  something  about  their 
economy. 

They  were  built  up  partly  by  importing  books,  partly 
by  bequests  from  wealthy  ecclesiastics,  but  largely — and 
in  some  cases  wholly — by  the  labours  of  scribes.  The 
scene  of  the  scribe's  craft  was  the  scriptorium  or  writing- 
room,  which  was  usually  a  screened-off  portion  of  the 
cloister,  or  a  room  beside  the  church  and  below  the  library, 
as  at  St.  Gall,  or  a  chamber  over  the  chapter-house,  as  at  St. 
Albans  under  Abbot  Paul,  at  Cockersand  Abbey  and  Birken- 
head  Priory.  As  a  rule  the  monk  was  not  allowed  to  write 
outside  the  scriptorium,  although  in  some  houses  he  could 
read  elsewhere — as  at  Durham,  where  a  desk  to  support 
books  was  fitted  in  the  window  of  each  dormitory  cubicle. 
But  brothers  whose  work  was  highly  valued  were  allowed 
a  small  writing-room  or  scriptoriolum.  Nicholas,  Bernard's 
secretary,  had  a  room  on  the  right  of  the  cloister  with  its 

73 


74 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     75 

door  opening  into  the  novices'  room — a  cell,  he  says,  "  not 
to  be  despised  ;  for  it  is  ...  pleasant  to  look  upon,  and 
comfortable  for  retirement.      It  is  filled   with  most  choice 
and  divine  books  ...  is  assigned  to  me  for  reading,  and 
writing,  and  composing,  and  meditating,  and  praying,  and 
adoring  the  Lord   of  Majesty."  l      Perhaps  Nicholas's  room 
was   like  that  shown  in  one  manuscript,  where  we  see  a 
monk  seated  on  a  stool  before  a  reading-stand  of  odd  shape. 
The  table,  which  is  the  top  of  a  hexagonal  receptacle  for 
parchment  and  writing  materials,  or  books,  can  be  moved 
up  and  down  on  the  screw.      Above  the  screw  is  a  book- 
rest  ;   at   the  foot  a  pedestal,  with  the  ink-bottle  upon   it. 
Apparently  the  room   also  contains  cupboards  for  storing 
books.     Nicholas,  however,  was  favoured,  for  in  the  same 
passage  he  refers  to  the  older  monks  reading  the  "  books 
of  divine  eloquence  in  the  cloister."      In  Cistercian  monas- 
teries certain   monks  were  so  favoured,  although  they  were 
not  allowed  to  use  their  studies  during  the  time  the  monks 
were   supposed    to   be   in    the  cloister.2      At  Oxford,  after 
mid-fourteenth  century,  every   student   friar  had   set   apart 
for  him  a  place  fitted  with  a  combined  desk  and  bookcase, 
or    studium,  of   the    kind   commonly  depicted  in   medieval 
illuminations.      Grants  of  timber  for  making  these  studia 
are  recorded :  to  the  Black  Friars  of  Oxford,  for  example, 
of  seven  oaks  to  repair  their  studies.8 

The  arrangements  in  the  cloister  are  carefully  Described 
in  the  Durham  Rites.  At  Durham  "  in  the  north  syde  of 
the  cloister,  from  the  corner  over  against  the  church  dour 
to  the  corner  over  againste  the  Dortor  dour,  was  all 
fynely  glased,  from  the  hight  to  the  sole  within  a  litle 


1  Maitland,  404-405. 

2  Stat.  selecta  Cap.  Gen.  O.  Cisterc.,  A.D.  1278,  Martene,  iv.   1462;  Mait- 
land, 406. 

3  0.  H.  S.,  Little,  55. 


76  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

of  the  grownd  into  the  cloister  garth.  And  in  every 
wyndowe  iij  pewes  or  carrells,  where  every  one  of  the  old 
Monks  had  his  carrell,  severall  by  himselfe,  that,  when 
they  had  dyned,  they  dyd  resorte  to  that  place  of  Cloister 
and  there  studyed  upon  there  books,  every  one  in  his 
carrell,  all  the  after  nonne,  unto  evensong  time.  This  was 
there  exercise  every  daie.  All  there  pewes  or  carrells  was 
all  fynely  wainscotted  and  verie  close,  all  but  the  forepart, 
which  had  carved  wourke  that  gave  light  in  at  ther  carrell 
doures  of  wainscott.  And  in  every  carrell  was  a  deske  to 
lye  there  books  on.  And  the  carrells  was  no  greater 
then  from  one  stanchell  of  the  wyndowe  to  another." 1 
There  were  carrells  at  Evesham  in  the  fourteenth  century.2 
In  1485  Prior  Selling  constructed  in  the  south  walk  at 
Christ  Church,  Canterbury,  "  the  new  framed  contriv- 
ances called  carrells "  for  the  comfort  of  the  monks  at 
study.3  Such  recesses  are  to  be  found  at  Worcester  and 
Gloucester ;  remains  of  some  exist  at  the  south  end  of  the 
west  walk  of  the  cloisters  at  Chester,  and  others  were  in 
the  destroyed  south  walk.4  At  Gloucester  Cathedral, 
which  was  formerly  the  Benedictine  Abbey  of  St.  Peter, 
are  twenty  beautiful  carrells  in  the  south  cloister.  They 
project  below  the  ten  main  windows,  two  in  each,  and  are 
arched,  with  battlemented  tops  or  cornices.  Except  for 
the  small  double  window  which  lights  them,  they  look  like 
recesses  for  statuary. 

The  Carthusian  Rule  records  that  few  monks  of  the 
order  could  not  write.5  But  this  was  by  no  means  invari- 
ably the  case.  In  early  monastic  times  writing  was  usually 
the  occupation  of  the  weaker  brethren :  for  example, 

1  Surtees  Soc.,  xv.,  Durham  Rites,  70-71. 

2  Chron.  abb.  de  Evesham,  301. 

3  James  (M.  R.),  li.;   Cox,  Canterbury,  199. 

4  Windle,  Chester,  171-172  ;  Library,  ii.  285. 

5  Geraud,  Essai  sur  les  livres,  181. 


PLATE  XIH 


THE  CLOISTERS,   GLOUCESTER,   SHEWING   CARRELLS 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     77 


ANCIENT  STALL,    OR   CARRELL,    IN    BISHOPS    CANNINGS  CHURCH,    WILTS 


78  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

Ferreolus,  in  his  rules  (c.  550),  deems  reading  and  copying 
fit  occupations  for  monks  too  weak  for  severer  work.1 
Later,  in  some  monasteries,  less  labour  in  the  field  and 
more  writing  was  done.  At  Tours,  Alcuin  took  the  monks 
away  from  field  labour,  telling  them  study  and  writing 
were  far  nobler  pursuits.2  But  it  was  not  commonly  the 
case  to  find  in  monasteries  "  ech  man  a  scriveyn  able." 

When  books  were  not  otherwise  obtainable,  or  not 
obtainable  quickly  enough,  it  was  the  practice  to  hire 
scribes  from  outside  the  house.  Abbot  Gerbert,  in  a  letter 
to  the  abbot  of  Tours,  mentions  that  he  had  been  paying 
scribes  in  Rome  and  various  parts  of  Italy,  in  Belgium, 
and  Germany,  to  make  copies  of  books  for  his  library 
"  at  great  expense." 3  At  Abingdon  hired  scribes  were 
sometimes  employed,  and  the  rule  was  for  the  abbot  to 
find  the  food,  and  the  armarius,  or  librarian,  to  pay  for 
the  labour.4  This  was  commonly  done  when  libraries 
were  first  formed.  When  Abbot  Paul  began  to  collect  a 
library  at  St.  Albans  none  of  his  brethren  could  write  well 
enough  to  suit  him,  and  he  was  obliged  to  fill  his  writing- 
room  with  hired  scribes.  He  supplied  them  with  daily 
rations  out  of  the  brethren's  and  cellarer's  alms-food ;  such 
provision  was  always  handy,  and  the  scribes  were  not 
retarded  by  leaving  their  work.5  Sometimes  scribes  were 
employed  merely  to  save  the  monks  trouble.  At  Corbie, 
in  the  fourteenth  century,  the  religious  neglected  to  work 
in  the  writing-room  themselves,  but  allowed  benefactors  to 
engage  professional  scribes  in  Paris  to  swell  the  number 
of  books.  The  Gilbertine  order  forbade  hired  scribes 
altogether,  perhaps  wisely. 

1  Sandys,  i.  266. 

2  Cp.  Du  Cange,  Gloss,  art.  Scriptores ;  citation  from  Const,  of  Carthusians. 

3  Maitland,  56. 

4  Chron.  mon.  de  Abingd.,  ii.  37 1- 

5  Gesta  abb.  m.  S.  Albani,  i.  57-58. 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     79 

The  scribe's  method  of  work  was  simple.  First  he 
took  a  metal  stylus  or  a  pencil  and  drew  perpendicular 
lines  in  the  side  margins  of  his  parchment,  and  horizontal 
lines  at  equal  distances  from  top  to  bottom  of  the  page. 
Then  the  task  of  copying  was  straightforward.  If  the 
book  was  to  be  embellished  he  left  spaces  for  the  illumi- 
nator to  fill  in.  When  the  illuminator  took  the  book 
over,  he  carefully  sketched  in  his  designs  for  the  capitals 
and  miniatures,  and  then  worked  over  them  in  colour, 
applying  one  colour  to  a  number  of  sketches  at  a  time. 
Anybody  who  is  curious  as  to  medieval  methods  of  illu- 
minating should  read  a  little  fifteenth-century  treatise  which 
describes  "  the  crafte  of  lymnynge  of  bokys."  "  Who  so 
kane  wyesly  considere  the  nature  of  his  colours,  and 
kyndely  make  his  commixtions  with  naturalle  proportions, 
and  mentalle  indagacions  connectynge  fro  dyvers  recepcions 
by  resone  of  theyre  naturys,  he  schalle  make  curius 
colourys."  Thereafter  follow  recipes  to  "  temper  vermelone 
to  wryte  therewith  " ;  "  to  temper  asure,  roset,  ceruse,  rede 
lede,"  and  other  pigments ;  "  to  make  asure  to  schyne 
bry3t,"  "  to  make  letterys  of  gold,"  "  blewe  lethyre,"  and 
"  whyte  lethyre  "  ;  with  other  curious  information.1 

In  monasteries  where  the  rule  was  strict  the  scribe 
wrought  at  his  task  for  six  hours  daily.2  All  work  was 
done  by  daylight,  artificial  light  not  being  allowed.  Lewis, 
a  monk  of  Wessobrunn  in  Bavaria,  in  a  copy  of  Jerome's 
Commentary  on  Daniel,  speaks  of  writing  when  he  was 
stiff  with  cold,  and  of  finishing  by  the  light  of  night  what 
he  could  not  copy  by  day.3  Such  diligence  was  not  usual. 

In    summer-time  work  in  the   cloister  may  well  have 


1  From  the  Porkington  MS.  ;  this  treatise  has  been  printed  in  Early  English 
Miscellanies,  ed.  J.  O.   Halliwell,  for  the  Warton  Club  (1855),  p.   72.     Other 
treatises  are  in  Mrs.  Merrifield's  Arts  of  Painting  (1849}. 

2  Madan,  37.  3  Fez,  Thesaurus  t  i.  xx. 


8o  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

been  pleasant ;  in  winter  quite  the  contrary,  even  when  the 
cloister  and  carrells  were  screened,  as  at  Durham  and 
Christ  Church,  Canterbury.  Imagine  the  poor  scribe 
rubbing  his  hands  to  restore  the  sluggish  circulation,  and 
being  at  last  compelled  to  forgo  his  labour  because  they 
were  too  numbed  to  write.  Cuthbert,  the  eighth-century 
abbot  of  Wearmouth  and  Jarrow,  writes  to  a  correspondent 
telling  him  he  had  not  been  able  to  send  all  Bede's  works 
which  were  required,  because  the  cold  weather  of  the  pre- 
ceding winter  had  paralysed  the  scribes'  hands.1  Again, 
Ordericus  Vitalis  winds  up  the  fourth  book  of  his  ecclesias- 
tical history  by  saying — nunc  hyemali  frigore  rigens — he 
must  break  his  narrative  here,  and  take  up  other  occupa- 
tions for  the  winter.2  Jacob,  abbot  of  Brabant  (1276), 
built  scriptoria,  or  possibly  carrells,  round  the  calefactory,  or 
warming-room,  where  the  common  fire  was  kept  burning, 
and  the  lot  of  the  scribe  was  made  somewhat  easier  to  bear. 
A  scribe  could  only  write  what  the  abbot  or  precentor 
set  him.  When  his  portion  had  been  given  out  he  could 
not  change  it  for  another.3  If  he  were  set  to  copy 
Virgil  or  Ovid  or  some  lives  of  the  saints  the  task  would 
conceivably  be  pleasant.  But  such  was  seldom  the  scribe's 
fortune.  The  continual  transcription  of  Psalters  and 
Missals  and  other  service  books  must  have  been  infinitely 
wearisome,  at  any  rate,  to  the  less  devout  members  of  the 
community.  In  some  large  and  enterprising  houses  a 
scribe  copied  only  a  fragment  of  a  book.  Several  brethren 
worked  upon  the  same  book  at  once,  each  beginning  upon 
a  skin  at  the  point  where  another  scribe  was  to  leave  off.4 
Or  the  book  to  be  transcribed  was  dictated  to  the  scribes, 
as  at  Tours  under  Alcuin.  Both  methods  had  the  advant- 
age of  "  publishing  "  a  book  quickly,  but  the  work  was  as 

1  Bede,  Works ,  ed.  Plummer,  xx.  2  O.  V.,  pars  n.  lib.  iv. 

3  Hardy,  iii.  xiii.  4  Surtees  Soc.}  vii.  xxv. 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     81 

mechanical  as  is  that  of  the  compositor  to-day.  Under 
Abbot  Trithemius  of  Sponheim,  subdivision  of  labour  was 
carried  to  its  extreme  limit.  One  monk  cut  the  parchment, 
another  polished  it,  the  third  ruled  the  lines  to  guide  the 
scribe.  After  the  scribe  had  finished  his  copying,  another 
monk  corrected,  still  another  punctuated.  In  decorating, 
one  artist  rubricated,  another  painted  the  miniatures.  Then 
the  bookbinder  collated  the  leaves  and  bound  them  in 
wooden  covers.  Even  in  the  case  of  waxed  tablets,  one 
monk  prepared  the  boards,  another  spread  the  wax.  The 
whole  process  was  designed  to  expedite  production. 

When  a  manuscript  was  fully  written  the  scribe  wrote 
his  colophon  or  "  explicit,"  a  short  form  of  the  phrase  "  ex- 
plicitus  est  liber."  Sometimes  the  scribe  plays  upon  words, 
thus :  "  Explicit  iste  liber ;  sit  scriptor  crimine  liber " ; 
or  he  exultantly  praises :  "  Deo  gratias.  Ego,  in  Dei 
nomine,  Warembertus  scripsi.  Deo  gratias " ;  or  he  is 
modest :  "  Nomen  scriptoris  non  pono,  quia  ipsum  laudare 
nolo "  ; 1  or  he  feels  querulous :  "  Be  careful  with  your 
fingers ;  don't  put  them  on  my  writing.  You  do  not  know 
what  it  is  to  write.  It  is  excessive  drudgery :  it  crooks 
your  back,  dims  your  sight,  twists  your  stomach  and  sides. 
Pray  then,  my  brother,  you  who  read  this  book,  pray  for 
poor  Raoul,  God's  servant,  who  has  copied  it  entirely  with 
his  own  hand  in  the  cloister  of  St.  Aignan."  Another 
inscription,  in  a  manuscript  at  Worcester  Cathedral, 
suggests  that  books  were  not  read  :  why,  argues  this  monk, 
write  them  ? — nobody  is  profited  ;  books  are  for  the  edifica- 
tion of  readers,  not  of  scribes.  Note  also  the  following  : — 

Finite  libro  sit  laus  et  gloria  Christo 

Vinum  scriptori  debetur  de  meliori 

Hie  liber  est  scriptus  qui  scripsit  sit  benedictus.     Amen.2 

1  Lecoq  de  la  Marche,  103. 

2  In  a  MS.  of  Job,  Andreas,  Super  Decretales,  Peterhouse,  Camb.— James3,  29, 

6 


82  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

And  this  : — 

Here  end]?  ]?e  firste  boke  of  all  maner  sores  ]?e 
whyche  fallen  moste  commune  and  withe  ]?e  grace  of  gode  I 
will  writte  J>e  ij  Boke  }>Q  whyche  ys  cleped  the  Antitodarie 

Explicit  quod  scripcit  Thomas  Rosse.1 

To  a  poor  Raoul  of  mechanical  ability  the  rule  of 
silence  must  have  been  very  irksome  ;  the  student  would 
be  grateful  for  it.  Alcuin  forbade  gossip  to  prevent  mis- 
takes in  copying.  Among  the  Cluniacs  the  rule  was  strictly 
enforced  in  the  church,  refectory,  cloister,  and  dormitory. 
A  chapter  of  the  Cistercian  order  (1134)  enjoined  silence 
in  all  rooms  where  the  brethren  were  in  the  habit  of 
writing.2  The  better  to  maintain  silence  nobody  was  per- 
mitted to  enter  the  scriptorium  save  the  abbot,  the  prior 
and  sub-prior,  and  the  precentor.  When  necessary  it  was 
permissible  to  speak  in  a  low  voice  in  the  ear.  But 
among  the  Cluniacs  whispering  was  avoided  as  far  as 
possible.  Watch  the  monks  communicating  with  the 
librarian.  One  wants  a  Missal,  and  he  pretends,  as  the 
children  say,  to  turn  over  leaves,  thereby  making  the 
general  sign  for  a  book ;  then  he  makes  the  sign  of  the 
Cross  to  indicate  that  he  wants  a  Missal  book.  Another 
wants  the  Gospels,  and  he  makes  the  sign  of  the  Cross 
on  the  forehead.  This  brother  wants  a  pagan  book, 
and,  after  making  the  general  sign,  he  scratches  his  ear 
with  his  finger  as  an  itching  dog  would  with  his  feet  ; 
infidel  writers  were  not  unfairly  compared  with  such 
creatures.3  If  such  sign-language  were  really  maintained, 
it  must  have  been  extensively  supplemented  as  the  library 
grew  in  size,  for  although  striking  the  thumb  and  little 

1  MS.  on  surgery,  Peterhouse,  Camb. — James3,  137. 

2  Du  Cange,  Gloss. ,  art.,  Scriptorium. 

3  Martene,  De  Ant.  Mon.  Rttibtts,  v.  c.  18,  §  4. 


PL  A  TE  XI 


" 


A  SCRIBE  AND   HIS  TOOLS 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     83 

finger  together  would  describe  an  Antiphonary,  or  making 
the  sign  of  the  Cross  and  kissing  the  finger  would  indicate 
a  Gradual,  yet  some  additions  to  the  signs  for  a  pagan 
book  and  a  tract  were  necessary  to  signify  what  particular 
tract  or  book  was  wanted.  But  probably  if  this  rule  was 
observed  at  all — and  we  do  not  think  it  likely — the  signs 
were  used  only  for  church  books,  and  most  often  in  church. 
In  nearly  every  monastery  the  rule  of  silence  was  made. 
In  the  Brigittine  house  of  Syon  "  silence  after  some  con- 
venience is  to  be  kepte  in  the  lybrary,  whyls  any  suster  is 
there  alone  in  recordyng  of  her  redynge."  l  But  it  was  at 
all  times  difficult  to  enforce,  as  the  monks,  in  experience 
and  habits,  were  but  children. 

For  notes,  exercises,  brief  letters,  bills,  first  drafts,  daily 
services  of  the  church,  the  names  of  officiating  brethren, — 
for  all  temporary  purposes  waxed  tablets  were  used.  They 
were  in  common  use  from  classic  times :  some  Greek  and 
many  Latin  tablets  are  still  preserved  ; 2  they  were  much 
used  in  ancient  Ireland,  as  we  have  seen ;  and  they  con- 
tinued to  be  of  service  until  the  late  Middle  Ages.  Anselm 
habitually  wrote  his  first  drafts  upon  them.  At  St. 
Augustine's  Abbey,  Canterbury,  the  monks  were  supplied 
with  tablets,  for  a  novice's  outfit  included,  after  profession, 
a  stylus,  tablets,  and  a  knife.3  The  writing  was  scratched 
on  the  wax  with  a  stylus,  a  sharp  instrument  of  bone  or 
metal.  The  other  end  of  it  was  usually  flattened  for 
pressing  out  an  incorrect  letter  ;  among  the  Romans  the 
term  "  vetere  stylum "  became  common  in  the  sense  of 
correcting  a  work. 

1  E.  H.  R.,  xxv.  121. 

2  Thompson,  pp.  19  ff.,  322. 

3  Ctistomary  of  St.  A.  (H.  Brads.  Soc.),  i.  401.     These  tablets  were  called 
ceratae  tabellae^  tabellae  cerae,  or  simply  cerae*     The  name  of  a  book,  caudex, 
codex,  was  first  given  to  these  tabellae  when  they  were  strung  together  to  form  a 
square  "book." — V.  Antiquary,  xii.  277. 


84 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


For  all  permanent  purposes  "  boc-fel,"  or  book-skin, 
was  used;  either  vellum  or  "  parchemyn  smothe,  whyte 
and  scribable."  Vellum  and  parchment  were  interchange- 
able terms  in  medieval  times  ;  but  parchment  was  commonly 
used.  In  early  monastic  days  it  was  prepared  by  the 
monks  themselves,  being  rubbed  smooth  with  pumice-stone  ; 


TABLET  CASE   AND   WAXED   TABLET 

later  it  was  bought  from  manufacturers  ready-made.  It 
was  not  so  expensive  as  vellum  :  the  average  price  being 
two  shillings  per  dozen  skins  as  compared  with  eight 
shillings  per  dozen  skins  of  vellum.  For  a  Bible  presented 
to  Bury  St.  Edmunds  Abbey,  finest  Irish  (or  Scottish)  vellum 
was  procured  (c.  1121-48).  This  special  material  was 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     85 

used  for  the  paintings,  which  seem  to  have  been  pasted 
down  on  the  leaves  of  inferior  vellum.  This  manuscript  is 
now  in  Corpus  Christi  College,  Cambridge.1 

The  pens  used  for  writing  were  either  made  of  reeds 
(calami)  or  of  quills  (pennae).  The  quill  was  introduced 
after  the  reed,  and  largely,  though  not  entirely,  superseded 
it.  Other  implements  of  the  expert  scribe  were  a  pencil, 
compasses,  scissors,  an  awl,  a  knife  for  erasures,  a  ruler,  and 
a  weight  to  keep  down  the  vellum. 

Numerous  passages  might  be  dug  out  of  old  records 
warning  scribes  against  errors  in  transcribing.  ^Elfric,  in 
the  preface  to  his  homilies,  adjures  the  copyist,  by  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ  and  by  His  glorious  coming,  to  transcribe 
correctly.  Chaucer,  in  a  well-known  verse,  expresses  his  wish 
that  Adam  the  scrivener  shall  copy  Boethius  and  Troilus 
"  trewe  "  and  not  write  it  "  newe."  2  In  copying,  however, 
especially  when  it  is  mechanically  done,  it  is  almost  as 
difficult  to  write  "  trewe  "  as  it  is  to  write  "  newe  " :  the  imp 
of  the  perverse  makes  his  home  at  the  elbow  of  the  scribe, 
ever  ready  to  profit  by  drowsiness  or  trifling  inattention. 
But,  as  a  rule,  monkish  scribes  were  exceedingly  careful, 
and  their  work  was  invariably  corrected  by  another  hand. 
More  than  this  :  they  endeavoured  to  get  accurate  texts  to 
copy.  Lanfranc's  care  in  this  respect,  and  the  Grey  Friars' 
work  in  compiling  correctoria,  have  already  been  noted. 
Reculfus  expected  his  clergy  to  have  books  corrected 
and  pointed  by  those  in  the  "  holy  mother  church  " ;  Adam 
de  Marisco  sent  a  manuscript  to  be  corrected  in  Paris, 
begging  to  have  it  back  as  soon  as  done ; 3  and  Servatus 
Lupus,  the  great  abbot  of  Ferrieres,  frequently  borrowed 
from  his  friends  books  which  he  might  collate  with  his  own 
copies,  and  rectify  errors  and  insert  omissions.4 

1  James1,  7  ;  ibid.™,  3.  2  Works,  ed.  Skeat,  i.  379. 

3  Mon.  Fr.,  i.  359.  4  Epp.t  8.  69  ;  Sandys,  i.  487-488. 


86  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

Before  work  could  be  started  in  the  writing-room,  books 
for  copying  had    to    be    obtained.     Usually   a   few   books 
were  bought  or  borrowed  ;  then  several  copies  were  made 
of  each,  the  superfluous  volumes  being  sold   or  exchanged 
for   fresh  manuscripts  to   transcribe.      Benedict   Biscop,  as 
we  have  seen,  obtained  his  books  from   Rome  and  Vienne. 
Cuthwin,  bishop  of  the  East  Angles  (c.  750)  was  of  those 
who  went  to  Rome,  and  brought  back  with  him  a  life  of 
St.  Paul,   "  full  of  pictures."      Herbert  "  Losinga,"  abbot  of 
Ramsey  and  afterwards  bishop  of  Norwich,  was  a  zealous 
book-collector  ; — asks  for  a  Josephus  on  loan  from  a  brother 
abbot,  a  request  not  granted  because  the  binding  needed 
repair ;  and  sends  abroad  for  a  copy  of  Suetonius.      Robert 
Grosseteste  got  a  rare  book,  Basil's  Hexaemeron,  from  Bury 
St.  Edmunds  in  exchange  for  a  MS.  of  Postillae.1     At  Ely, 
in  the  fourteenth  century,  when  the  scribes  there  were  very 
active,  the  precentor  was  always  on  the  look-out  for  "  copy." 
On  one  occasion  he  was  paid  6s.  /d.  for  going  to  Balsham 
to    inquire    for    books    (I32Q).2     Abbot    Henry    of    Hyde 
Abbey  exchanged  a  volume  containing  Terence,  Boethius, 
Suetonius,  and  Claudian    for   four    Missals,  the   Legend  of 
St.    Christopher,   and   Gregory's    Pastoral   Care?     On    one 
occasion  Adam  de  Marisco  tries  to  get  from   a  brother  of 
Nottingham    the    Moralia   of    St.    Gregory,   and    Rabanus 
Maurus.      He  sends  from   Oxford  to  an  abbot  at  Vercelli 
an  exposition  of  the  Angelic  Salutation,  and  begs  for  the 
abbot's    writings    in    exchange.4       Adam    had    studied    at 
Vercelli,5 — a    new    Italian    centre    with    a     close     English 
connexion.      About    1217   Cardinal  Guala  Bicchieri,  after- 
wards    bishop    of    Vercelli,    was    granted    the    church    of 


1  James  (M.  R.)10. 

2  Stevenson,  SuppL  to  Benthairi's  Ch.  of  Ely. 

3  Warton,  i.  213.  4  Mon.  Fr.,  i.  206. 
5  O.  H.  S.,  Little,  135  ;  best  account  of  Adam  in  this  book. 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     87 

Chesterton,  near  Cambridge,  and  when  he  died  ten  years 
later  he  left  all  his  estate,  including  the  church,  and  a 
number  of  books  which  had  been  collected  at  Chesterton 
or  in  England,  to  Vercelli  Abbey.  Among  the  gifts  were 
two  service  books  in  English,  and  the  famous  Codex 
Vercellensis,  which  is  only  less  valuable  than  the  Exeter 
Book  as  a  first  source  of  Anglo-Saxon  poetry.  The 
Vercelli  Book  is  in  Italy  to  this  day.1 

In  some  abbeys  the  purchase  of  books,  and  the  copying 
of  them  for  sale,  became  just  as  much  a  business  as  the 
manufacture  of  Chartreuse.  In  1446  Exeter  College, 
Oxford,  paid  ten  shillings  and  a  penny  for  twelve  quires 
and  two  skins  of  parchment  bought  at  Abingdon  to  send  to 
the  monastery  of  Plympton  in  Devonshire,  where  a  book 
was  being  written  for  the  College.2  A  part — and  by  no 
means  a  negligible  part — of  the  income  of  Carthusian 
houses  came  from  copying  books.  Two  continental  abbots, 
Abbot  Gerbert  of  Bobio  and  Servatus  Lupus  of  Ferrieres, 
were  book-makers  and  sellers  on  a  commercial  scale.  Lupus, 
in  particular,  betrays  the  commercial  spirit  by  refusing  to 
give  more  than  he  was  obliged  in  return  for  what  he 
received.  He  will  not  send  a  book  to  a  monk  at  Sens 
because  his  messenger  must  go  afoot  and  the  way  was 
perilous :  let  us  hope  he  thought  more  of  the  messenger 
than  of  the  manuscript.  On  another  occasion  he  refuses  to 
lend  a  book  because  it  is  too  large  to  be  hidden  in  the  vest 
or  wallet,  and,  besides,  its  beauty  might  tempt  robbers  to 
steal  it.  These  were  good  excuses  to  cover  his  general  un- 
willingness to  lend.  For  the  loan  of  one  manuscript  he 

1  C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  8vo  ser.  vii.  187  (1909).  The  story  of  the  connexion  between 
Chesterton  and  Vercelli  is  most  interesting.  A  list  of  the  books  is  in  Lampugnani, 
Sulla  Vita  di  Guala  Bicchieri,  Vercelli  (1842),  125  et  seq.  ;  but  I  have  not  been 
able  to  see  the  book.  See  further  Bekyn ton's  Correspondence,  ii.  344  (Rolls  Ser. ) ; 
and  Kennedy,  Poems  of  Cynewulf  (1910),  6. 

-  0.  H.  S.,  27  Boase,  xxxvii  n, 


88  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

was  so  bothered  that  he  thought  of  putting  it  away  in  a 
secure  place,  lest  he  should  lose  it  altogether.1 

As  a  rule  the  expenses  of  the  writing-room  formed  a 
part  of  the  general  expenses  of  the  house,  but  sometimes 
particular  portions  of  the  monastic  income  and  endowments 
were  available  to  meet  them.  To  St.  Albans  certain  tithes 
were  assigned  by  a  Norman  leader  for  making  books 
(c.  io8o).2  The  precentor  of  Abingdon  obtained  tithes 
worth  thirty  shillings  for  buying  parchment.3  St.  Augustine's 
Abbey,  Canterbury,  got  three  marks  from  the  rentals  of 
Milton  Church  for  making  books  (ii44).4  The  monks  of 
Ely  ( 1 1 60),  of  Westminster  (c.  115  9),  of  the  cathedral 
convent  of  St.  Swithin's,  Winchester  (1171),  of  Bury  St. 
Edmunds,  and  of  Whitby,  received  tithes  and  rents  for  a 
like  purpose.5  The  prior  of  Evesham  received  the  tithes  of 
Bengworth  to  pay  for  parchment  and  for  the  maintenance 
of  scribes ;  while  the  precentor  was  to  receive  five  shillings 
annually  from  the  manor  of  Hampton,  and  ten  shillings 
and  eightpence  from  the  tithes  of  Stoke  and  Alcester  for 
buying  ink,  colours  for  illuminating,  and  what  was 
necessary  for  binding  books  and  the  necessaries  for  the 
organ.0 

In  some  houses  a  rate  was  levied  for  the  support  of  the 
scriptorium,  but  we  have  not  met  with  any  instance  of  this 
practice  in  English  monasteries.  At  the  great  Benedictine 
Abbey  of  Fleury  a  rate  was  levied  in  1103  on  the  officers 
and  dependent  priories  for  the  support  of  the  library  ;  forty- 
three  years  later  it  was  extended,  and  it  remained  in  force 


1  Sandys,  i.  486-489,  q.v.  for  other  interesting  facts  about  this  abbot. 

2  Gesta  Abbatum,  i.  57. 

8  Chron.  mon.  de  Abingd.,  ii.  153.     A  list  of  the  precentor's  rents,  applied  to 
expenses  of  the  writing-room  and  the  organ,  will  be  found  in  ii.  328. 

4  H.  Mon.  S.  A.,  392. 

5  Stewart,  Ely  Cath.,  280;  Surtees  Soc.,  Ixix.  15-20;  Robinson,  i. 
u  Chron.  abb.  de  Evesham,  208-210. 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     89 

until  I562.1  Besides  this  impost  every  student  in  the 
abbey  was  bound  to  give  two  books  to  the  library.  At 
Corbie,  in  Picardy,  a  rate  was  levied  to  pay  the  salary  of 
the  librarian,  and  to  cover  part  of  the  cost  of  bookbinding. 
Here  also  each  novice,  on  the  day  of  his  profession,  had  to 
present  a  book  to  the  library ;  at  Corvey,  in  Northern 
Germany,  the  same  rule  was  observed  at  the  end  of  the 
eleventh  century.  As  all  the  monasteries  of  an  order  were 
conducted  much  on  the  same  lines,  it  is  difficult  to  believe 
that  similar  rates  were  not  levied  by  some  of  the  larger 
houses  in  England. 

The  libraries  were  also  augmented  by  gifts  and  bequests, 
as  well  as  by  purchase  and  by  transcription  in  the  scriptorium. 
In  most  abbeys  it  was  customary  for  the  brethren  to  give 
or  bequeath  their  books  to  their  house.  A  long  list  of  such 
benefactors  to  Ramsey  Abbey  is  extant,  and  one  of  the 
brothers,  Walter  de  Lilleford,  prior  of  St.  Ives,  gave  what 
was  in  those  days  a  considerable  library  in  itself.2  Much 
longer  still  are  the  lists  of  presents  given  to  Christ  Church 
and  St.  Augustine's,  Canterbury.  Dr.  James  has  indexed 
nearly  two  hundred  donors  to  Christ  Church  alone.  In 
most  cases  the  gifts  are  of  one  or  a  few  books,  but 
occasionally  collections  of  respectable  size  were  received,  as 
when  T.  Sturey,  senior,  enriched  the  library  with  nearly  sixty 
books,  when  Thomas  a  Becket  left  over  seventy,  and  when 
Prior  Henry  Eastry  left  eighty  volumes  at  his  death.  As 
many  or  more  donors  to  St.  Augustine's  are  indexed.  Here 
also  some  of  the  donations  were  fairly  large :  for  example, 
Henry  Belham  and  Henry  Cokeryng  gave  nineteen  books 
each,  a  prior  twenty-seven,  a  certain  John  of  London  eighty- 
two,  J.  Mankael  thirty  -  nine,  Abbot  Nicholaus  sixteen, 
Michael  de  Northgate  twenty-four,  Abbot  Poucyn  sixteen, 

1  Full  document  in  Edwards,  i.  283. 

2  Chron.  abb.  Rameseiensis,  356. 


90  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

J.  Preston  twenty-three,  a  certain  Abbot  Thomas  over  a 
hundred,  and  T.  Wyvelesberghe  thirty-one.  Some  sixty 
persons  are  also  indexed  as  donors  to  St.  Martin's  Priory, 
Dover.1 

William  de  Carilef,  bishop  of  Durham,  endowed  his 
church  with  books  and  bequeathed  some  more  at  his  death 
(I095)-  John,  bishop  of  Bath,  bequeathed  to  the  abbey 
church  his  whole  library  and  his  decorated  copies  of  the 
Gospels  (i  1 60).  Another  bishop  of  Durham,  Hugh  Pudsey, 
bequeathed  many  books  to  his  church  (i  195).  Thomas  de 
Marleberge  (d.  1236),  when  he  became  prior  of  Evesham, 
gave  a  large  collection  of  books  in  law,  medicine,  philosophy, 
poetry,  theology,  and  grammar.2  Simon  Langham  be- 
queathed seven  chests  of  books  to  Westminster  Abbey 
(I376).3  William  Slade  (d.  1384)  left  to  the  Abbey  of 
Buckfast,  of  which  he  was  abbot,  thirteen  books  of  his  own 
writing.4  Cardinal  Adam  Easton  (d.  1397)  sent  from  Rome 
"  six  barrells  of  books  "  to  his  convent  of  Norwich,  where 
he  had  been  a  monk.5  One  of  these  books,  a  fourteenth- 
century  manuscript  in  an  Italian  hand,  is  now  preserved  in 
the  library  of  Corpus  Christi  College,  Cambridge :  the  in- 
scription attesting  this  reads — "  Liber  ecclesie  norwycen  per 
magistrum  Adam  de  Eston  monachum  dicti  loci."  Nor  did 
the  poor  priest  forget  to  add  his  mite  to  the  general  hoard  : 
"  I  beqweth  to  the  monastery  of  Seynt  Edmund  forseid," 
willed  a  priest  named  Place,  "  my  book  of  the  dowtes  of 
Holy  Scryptur,  to  ly  and  remayn  in  the  cloister  of  the  seid 
monastery  as  long  as  yt  wyll  ther  indure."6  Such  gifts 
were  always  highly  valued,  and  in  Lent  the  librarian  was 

1  James,  535-544.  2  Chron.  abb.  de  Eveskam,  267. 

3  Robinson,  4.  4  O.  H.  S.,  27,  Boase,  19. 

5  Rymer,  Foedera^  viii.  501  ;  cf.  James17,  153. 

6  Cam.  Soc.,  Bury  Wills  (1850),  105.     Many  of  the  gifts  to  Syon  monastery 
came   from  priests. — Bateson,  xxiii-xxvii.     Cf.  also   lists   of  donors   in  James 
(M.  R.),  S 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     91 

expected  to  remind  the  brethren  of  those  who  had  given 
books,  and  to  request  that  a  mass  should  be  said  for  them.1 


Some  miniatures  in  early  manuscripts  give  us  a  good 
idea  of  the  way  books  were  stored  in  the  Middle  Ages. 
They  are  shown  lying  flat  on  sloping  shelves  which  extend 
part- way  round  the  room.  Curtains  are  occasionally  shown 
hanging  in  front  of  the  shelves  to  protect  the  books  from 
dust.  Or  a  sloping  shelf  was  fitted  to  serve  as  a  reading- 
desk,  and  a  second  flat  shelf  ran  beneath  it  to  take  books 
lying  on  their  sides  one  above  the  other.  In  several 
miniatures  lecterns  of  very  curious  design  are  often  de- 
picted ;  some  of  them  stood  on  a  cupboard  or  cupboards 
wherein  books  were  stowed  away. 

In  the  monasteries  books  were  stored  in  various  places, 
— in  chests,  cupboards,  or  recesses  in  the  wall.  When  the 
collection  was  small,  a  chest  served ;  a  receptacle  of  this 
kind  is  illustrated  at  p.  50.  Cassiodorus  had  the  books 
of  his  monastery  stored  in  presses,  or  armaria.  The 
manuscripts  of  Abbot  Simon  of  St.  Albans  were  preserved 
in  ''the  painted  aumbry  in  the  church."  An  aumbry  was 
a  recess  in  the  wall  well  lined  inside  with  wood  so  that  the 
damp  of  the  masonry  should  not  spoil  the  books.  It  was 
divided  vertically  and  horizontally  by  shelves  in  such  a 
way  that  it  was  possible  to  arrange  the  books  separately 
one  from  arother,  and  so  to  avoid  injury  from  close 
packing,  and  delay  in  consulting  them.2  The  same  term 
was  applied  to  a  detached  closet  or  cupboard.  At  Durham 
the  monks  distributed  their  books — keeping  some  in  the 
spendimentum  or  cancellary,  some  near  the  refectory,  and 

1  Cf.  James  (M.  R.),  Ixxiin. 

2  Customary  of  Barn-well  (Kail.  MS.  3061). 


92  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

the  bulk  in  the  cloister.  Two  classes  of  books  were  in 
the  cancellary  :  one  stored  in  a  large  closet  with  folding 
doors,  called  an  armariolum,  and  used  by  all  the  monks ; 
the  other  kept  in  an  inner  room,  and  apparently  reserved 
for  special  uses.  The  books  assigned  to  the  reader  in 
the  refectory  were  stored  by  the  doorway  leading  to  the 
infirmary,  and  not  in  the  refectory  itself,  as  we  should 
expect :  maybe  this  arrangement  was  exceptional,  and  was 
adopted  for  special  reasons  of  convenience.  Probably 
two  places  were  reserved  for  books  in  the  cloister.  One 
case  or  chest  contained  the  books  of  the  novices,  whose 
place  of  study  was  in  that  part  of  the  cloister  facing  the 
treasury.  The  main  store  was  on  the  north  side  of  the 
cloister.  "  And  over  against  the  carrells  against  the  church 
wall  did  stande  sertaine  great  almeries  of  waynscott  all  full 
of  bookes,  wherein  dyd  lye  as  well  the  old  auncyent  written 
Doctors  of  the  church  as  other  prophane  authors,  with 
dyverse  other  holie  mens  wourks,  so  that  every  one  dyd 
studye  what  Doctor  pleased  them  best,  havinge  the  librarie 
at  all  tymes  to  goe  studie  in  besydes  there  carrells." * 
Dr.  J.  W.  Clark,  the  leading  authority  on  early  library 
fittings,  has  tried  to  show,  from  evidences  of  a  similar 
arrangement  at  Westminster,  that  this  part  of  the  cloister 
formed  a  long  room,  with  glazed  windows  and  carrells  on 
the  one  hand,  bookcases  on  the  other,  and  screens  at  each 
end  shutting  off  the  library  and  writing-place  from  the  rest 
of  the  cloister.2 

Along  the  south  wall  of  the  cloister  a*.  Chester  is  a 
series  of  recesses  which  are  believed  to  have  been  used  for 
bookcases.  Two  recesses  for  aumbries  are  still  to  be  seen 
in  the  cloister  at  Worcester  :  it  is  recorded  that  one  book, 

1  Surtees  Soc.  xv.,  Durham  Rites,  70-71.    The  library  would  be  that  built  by 
Wessington  in  1446. 

2  But  see  Robinson,  3. 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     93 

the  Speculum  Spiritualium,  was  to  be  delivered  "  to  ye 
cloyster  awmery."  At  Beaulieu  the  arched  recesses  in  the 
south  wall  of  the  church  may  have  been  put  to  a  similar 
use.  These  recesses  are  shown  on  the  plan  here  reproduced  ; 


SOUTH 
TRANSEPT 

OF 
CHURCH 


CLOISTER 


PLAN   SHOWING   DISPOSITION   OF  BOOKS   IN   CISTERCIAN   HOUSES 

so   also   is  the  common  aumbry  in  the  wall  of  the  south 
transept. 

In  large  continental  houses  a  bookroom  was  sometimes 
needed  very  early.  One  of  the  monasteries  of  Cassiodorus 
included  a  special  room  for  the  library,  with  at  least  nine 


94  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

presses  in  it.1  At  St.  Gall,  a  special  bookroom  was 
planned,  if  not  actually  built,  as  early  as  the  ninth  century. 
According  to  the  old  drawing  still  preserved  at  St.  Gall, 
this  room  was  to  be  on  the  north  side  of  the  presbytery, 
symmetrically  with  the  sacristy  on  the  south  side.  It  was 
in  two  stories.  The  ground  floor  was  to  be  arranged  as  a 
writing-room, — infra  sedes  scribentium, — the  furniture  being 
a  large  table  in  the  centre,  and  seven  writing-desks  against 
the  walls.  The  upper  story  was  the  library.2  In  England 
we  hear  of  bookrooms  oftenest  in  the  fifteenth  century, 
They  were  a  usual  feature  in  later  Cistercian  houses.  The 
plan  just  given  shows  the  position  of  this  room  between 
the  church  and  the  chapter-house,  and  not  far  from  the 
common  claustral  aumbry.  At  Whalley  Abbey,  also  a 
Cistercian  house,  there  was  evidently  a  separate  library 
room,  because  an  inventory  of  the  house's  goods  taken 
in  1537  refers  to  the  "  litle  Revestry  next  unto  the 
lebrary." 3  Kirkstall  and  Furness  also  had  bookrooms. 
On  each  side  of  the  massive  arch  of  the  Chapter  House 
at  Furness  Abbey  is  a  similar  arch  leading  to  a  small 
square  room,  most  likely  used  for  books.  The  illustrations 
facing  this  show  the  position  of  these  rooms  on  either 
side  of  the  Chapter  House  doorway.  An  extant 
catalogue  of  another  Cistercian  house,  that  of  Meaux 
in  Yorkshire,  clearly  indicates  the  whereabouts  of  the 
conventual  books.  Some  church  books  were  before 
the  great  altar,  others  were  in  the  choir,  a  few  in  the 
infirmary  chapel,  and  in  the  common  press  and  other 
presses  of  the  church.  The  bulk  of  them  was  in  the 
common  aumbry,  not  apparently  in  the  open  cloister,  but 
in  a  room  off  the  cloister.  Over  the  door,  on  a  shelf  or  in 
a  cupboard,  were  four  Psalters ;  thirty-six  books  were  on 

1  Sandys,  i.  266,  2  Archeol.  Jour.  (1848),  v.  85. 

3  Lanes,  and  Ches.  Hist.  Soc.,  xix.  106. 


PLATE  XV 


FURNESS   ABBEY  :  CLOISTERS 


FURNESS   ABBEY:  CHAPTER-HOUSE,   INTERIOR 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     95 

the  top  shelf  on  the  other  side  of  the  room  ;  the  remainder, 
to  the  number  of  about  270,  were  on  other  shelves  marked 
by  letters  of  the  alphabet.1 

At  the  Premonstratensian  Abbey  of  Titchfield  the 
books  were  stored  in  a  small  room,  in  four  cases,  each 
having  eight  shelves.  We  do  not  positively  know  that 
a  separate  room  existed  at  the  Benedictine  house  of 
Christ  Church,  Canterbury,  before  the  fifteenth  century, 
"  yet,"  as  Dr.  James  says,  "  the  form  of  Prior  Eastry's 
catalogue,  with  its  division  into  Demonstrations  and 
Distinctions,  irresistibly  suggests  that  the  collection  must 
in  his  time  [1284—1331]  have  occupied  a  special  room, 
of  which  the  two  Demonstrations  represent  the  two  sides. 
The  Distinctions  would  be  narrow  vertical  divisions  of 
these,  and  each  of  them  would  have  its  numerous  sub- 
divisions into  Gradus.  As  the  best  English  equivalent 
of  Demonstratio  I  would  suggest  the  word  '  Display/ 
which  fairly  gives  the  idea  of  a  wall-surface  covered  with 
books ;  and  I  figure  the  building  to  myself  as  an  enlarged 
example  of  those  Cistercian  bookrooms  with  which 
Dr.  J.  W.  Clark's  researches  have  familiarized  us.  It 
would  thus  be  no  place  for  study,  such  as  the  later 
libraries  were,  but  merely  a  storeroom  whence  books  were 
fetched  to  be  read  at  leisure  in  the  cloister."2  Between 
1414  and  1443  a  library  was  built  over  the  Prior's  Chapel 
by  Archbishop  Chichele :  it  was  about  sixty-two  feet  long 
on  the  north  side,  fifty-four  on  the  south  side,  and  twenty- 
two  feet  broad.  This  was  the  room  which  Prior  Selling 
fitted  up  with  wainscot,  and  put  books  in  for  the  benefit 
of  the  studious.3  At  St.  Augustine's  Abbey,  Canterbury, 
there  was  a  bookroom  in  1340,  for  the  manuscript  of  the 
Ayenbite  of  Inivyt  contains  a  note  that  it  belongs  to  the 

1  Chron.  man.  de  Melsa,  iii.  Ixxxiii,  2  James  (M.  R.),  xliv. 

3  Anglia  Sacra,  i.  145-6  ;  James  (M.  R),  1-li. 


96  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

"  bochouse." l  The  form  of  the  catalogue  of  c.  1497  also 
suggests  that  a  bookroom  was  then  in  use. 

At  Gloucester  a  special  room  was  built,  probably  in 
the  fourteenth  century.  Durham  apparently  did  without 
a  room  until  early  in  the  fifteenth  century.  "  There  ys  a 
lybrarie  in  the  south  angle  of  the  lantren,  whiche  is  nowe 
above  the  clocke,  standinge  betwixt  the  Chapter- House 
and  the  Te  Deum  wyndowe,  being  well  replenished  with 
ould  written  Docters  and  other  histories  and  ecclesiasticall 
writers."  2  To  this  room  the  books  were  transferred  gradually 
from  the  cloister  and  chancellary :  the  words  "  in  libraria," 
or  "  Ponitur  in  libraria,"  being  written  in  the  margin  of  the 
catalogue  opposite  to  the  book  upon  its  removal. 

The  Benedictine  houses  of  Winchester,  Worcester,  Bury 
St.  Edmunds,3  and  St.  Albans  also  had  special  bookrooms. 

For  the  safe  keeping  of  the  conventual  books  the 
precentor  was  responsible.4  As  he  had  charge  of  the 
armarium  or  press  for  storing  books,  he  was  also  sometimes 
styled  "  armarius."  He  was  required  to  keep  clean  all  the 
boys'  and  novices'  presses  and  other  receptacles  for  books ; 
when  necessary  he  was  to  have  these  fittings  repaired.  To 
provide  coverings  for  the  books ;  to  see  that  they  were 
marked  with  their  proper  titles ;  to  arrange  them  on  the 
shelves  in  suitable  order,  so  that  they  might  be  quickly 
found,  were  all  duties  within  his  province.5  He  had  to  keep 
them  in  repair :  in  some  houses  he  was  expected  to 


1  MS.  Arundel  57,  Brit.  Mus.    See  James  (M.  R.),  Ixxvii.   "This  boc  is  dan 
Michelis  of  Northgate,  y- write  an  englis  of  his  ozene  hand,  thet  hatte  :  Ayenbyte 
of  Inwyt.     And  is  of  the  bochouse  of  Saynt  Austines  of  Canterberi  .  mid  the 
lettres  CC."     "  Ymende,  thet  this  boc  is  volveld  ine  the  eve  of  the  holy  apostles 
Symon  an  Judas,  of  ane  brother  of  the  cloystre  of  Sauynt  Austin  of  Canterberi, 
ine  theyeare  of  oure  Ihordes  beringe  (birth)  1340." 

2  Surtees  Soc.,  xv. ,  Durham  Rites,  26. 

3  C.  1429-45.     Most  likely  over  the  cloister.     The  books  seem  to  have  been 
arranged  flat  on  sloping  desks,  to  which  they  were  chained. — James  (M.  R.)1,  41. 

4  Chron.  mon.  de  Abingd.,  ii.  373.  5  Hardy,  iii.  xiii. 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     97 

examine  all  of  them  carefully  several  times  a  year,  and  to 
check,  if  possible,  the  ravages  of  bookworms  and  damp. 
If  necessary,  he  could  call  in  skilled  labour  to  keep  his 
library  and  books  in  order ;  but  usually  several  brethren 
were  trained  in  the  necessary  arts,  as  at  Sponheim.  The 
Abingdon  regulations,  which  are  in  the  usual  form,  forbade 
him  to  sell,  give  away,  or  pledge  books.  All  the  materials 
for  the  use  of  the  scribes  and  the  manuscripts  for  copying 
were  to  be  provided  by  him.1  He  made  the  ink,  and  could 
dole  it  out  not  only  to  the  brethren  but  to  lay  folk  if  they 
asked  for  it  civilly.2  He  also  controlled  the  work  in  the 
scriptorium  :  setting  the  scribes  their  tasks,  preventing 
them  from  idling  or  talking ;  walking  round  the  cloister 
when  the  bell  sounded  to  collect  the  books  which  had  been 
forgotten  by  careless  monks. 

As  a  rule  the  monks  so  highly  prized  their  books — 
saving  them  first,  for  example,  in  time  of  danger,  as  when 
the  Lombards  attacked  Monte  Cassino  and  the  Huns 
St.  Gall — that  rules  for  the  care  of  them  would  seem  almost 
superfluous.  Still,  such  rules  were  made.  When  reading, 
the  monks  of  some  houses  were  required  to  wrap  handker- 
chiefs round  the  books,  or  to  hold  them  with  the  sleeve  of 
their  robe.  Coverings,  perhaps  washable,  were  put  upon 
books  much  in  use.3  The  Carthusian  brethren  were  ex- 
horted in  their  statutes  to  take  all  possible  care  to  keep 
the  books  they  were  reading  clean  and  free  from  dust.4 
Elsewhere  we  have  referred  to  an  "  explicit  "  urging  readers 
to  have  a  care  for  the  scribe's  writing :  in  another  manu- 
script once  belonging  to  Corbie,  the  kind  reader  is  bidden 
to  keep  his  fingers  off  the  pages  lest  he  should  mar  the 


1  Chron.    mon.  de  Abingd.^  ii.   371;  Customary  of  St.  August.,  Cant.  (H. 
Brads.  Soc.),  introd. 

2  Customary  of  St.  August.,  i.  96  ;  ii.  36. 

3  Panni,  camisiae  librorum.  4  Stat.  ant.  ord.  Carthus.,  c.  xvi.  §  9. 


98  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

writing  on  them — a  man  who  knows  nothing  of  the  scribe's 
business  cannot  realize  how  heavy  it  is,  for  though  only 
three  fingers  hold  the  pen,  the  whole  body  toils.1 


§  in 

One  of  the  precentor's  chief  duties  was  to  regulate 
lending  books.  At  Abingdon  he  could  only  lend  to  out- 
siders upon  a  pledge  of  equal  or  greater  value  than  the 
book  required,  and  even  so  could  only  lend  to  churches 
near  by  and  to  persons  of  good  standing.  It  was  deemed 
preferable  to  confiscate  the  pledge  than  to  proceed  against 
a  defaulting  borrower.  In  some  houses  more  than  a  pledge 
was  demanded  if  the  book  were  lent  for  transcription,  the 
borrower  being  required  to  send  a  copy  when  he  returned 
the  manuscript.  "  Make  haste  to  copy  these  quickly," 
wrote  St.  Bernard's  secretary, "  and  send  them  to  me ;  and, 
according  to  my  bargain,  cause  a  copy  to  be  made  for  me. 
And  both  these  which  I  have  sent  you,  and  the  copies,  as 
I  have  said,  return  them  to  me,  and  take  care  that  I  do 
not  lose  a  single  tittle."  2  The  extra  copy  was  demanded, 
not  so  much  for  purposes  of  gain  as  to  put  a  check  upon 
borrowing,  a  practice  which  many  abbots  did  not  encourage, 
on  account  of  the  danger  of  loss.  Books,  like  gloves,  are 
soon  lost.  We  can  well  understand  how  uncommonly  easy 
it  was  to  forget  to  return  a  coveted  manuscript.  To  help 
borrowers  to  overcome  the  insidious  temptation,  the  scribe 
sometimes  wrote  upon  the  manuscript  the  name  of  the 
monastery  it  belonged  to,  and  threatened  a  defaulter  with 
anathema.  In  some  of  the  St.  Albans'  books  is  the 
following  note  in  Latin  :  "  This  book  is  St.  Alban's  book  : 
he  who  takes  it  from  him  or  destroys  the  title  be  anathema."  3 

1  MS.  Lat.  12296,  Bibl.  Nat.,  Paris. 

2  Bibl.  Cluniacensis,  lib.  i.  ;  Maitland,  440.  3  James  (M.  R.)10,  171. 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     99 

The  prior  and  convent  of  Rochester  threatened  to  pro- 
nounce sentence  of  damnation  on  anyone  who  stole  or 
hid  the  Latin  translation  of  Aristotle's  Physics,  or  even 
obliterated  the  title.1  Apparently  no  fate  was  too  bad  for 
the  thief  who  took  the  Vulgate  Bible :  let  him  die  the 
death ;  let  him  be  frizzled  in  a  pan  ;  the  falling  sickness 
and  fever  should  rage  in  him ;  he  should  be  broken  on  the 
wheel  and  hanged  ;  Amen.2  Two  curious  notes  are  to  be 
found  in  a  manuscript  of  the  works  of  Augustine  and 
Ambrose  in  the  Bodleian  Library.  "  This  book  belongs  to 
St.  Mary  of  Robert's  Bridge :  whoever  steals  it,  or  sells  it, 
or  takes  it  away  from  this  house  in  any  way,  or  injures  it, 
let  him  be  anathema-maranatha."  Underneath,  another 
hand  has  written  :  "  I,  John,  bishop  of  Exeter,  do  not  know 
where  the  said  house  is  :  I  did  not  steal  this  book,  but  got 
it  lawfully."3  In  a  beautiful  manuscript  of  Chaucer's 
Troilus,  not  perhaps  a  conventual  book,  occurs  the 
following : — 

"he  that  thys  Boke  rentt  or  stelle 
God  send  hym  sekenysse  swart  (?)  of  helle." 4 

All  the  same,  losses  were  common.  About  1290  William 
of  Pershore,  once  a  Benedictine  monk,  and  at  the  time 
a  Grey  Friar,  returned  to  his  old  order  at  Westminster, 
and  took  with  him  some  books.  A  big  dispute  arose  over 
this  apostate,  and  one  of  the  items  of  the  subsequent  settle- 
ment was  that  the  Westminster  monks  should  return  the 
books.5 

A  similar  thing  took  place  in  Scotland  (1331).  A 
friar  of  Roxburgh  forsook  his  grey  habit  for  the  Cistercian 
white  by  entering  Kelso  Abbey.  He  made  his  new  associates 

1  B.  M.  MS.  Reg.  12  G.  ii.  ;  Warton,  i.  182.  2  Harl.  MS.  2798. 

3  See  anathema  in  Trin.  Coll.  Camb.  MS.  B.  S.  17. 

4  James17,  126.  5  Man.  Fr.,  ii.  41. 


TOO          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

envious  with  an  account  of  the  goods  of  the  friaries  at 
Roxburgh  and  Berwick.  They  persuaded  him  and  two  other 
apostate  friars  to  rob  these  convents  of  the  "  Bibles,  chalices, 
and  other  sacred  books,"  and,  with  the  aid  of  night,  the 
enterprise  met  with  more  success  than  they  deserved.1 

The  prior  and  convent  of  Ely  traced  some  of  their 
books  to  Paris.  They  wrote  to  Edward  III  (1332): 
"  Because  a  robber  has  taken  out  of  our  church  four  books 
of  great  value,  viz. — The  Decretum,  Decretals,  the  Bible 
and  Concordance,  of  which  the  first  three  are  now  at  Paris, 
arrested  and  detained  under  sequestration  by  the  officer  of 
the  Bishop  of  Paris,  whom  our  proctor  has  often  prayed  in 
form  of  law  to  deliver  them,  but  he  behaves  so  strangely 
that  we  shall  find  in  him  neither  right,  grace,  nor  favour : — 
We  ask  you  to  write  to  the  Bishop  of  Paris  to  intermeddle 
favourably  and  tell  his  official  to  do  right,  so  that  we  may 
get  our  things  back."2  In  1396-7  William,  prior  of  New- 
stead,  and  a  brother  canon,  proceeded  against  John 
Ravensfield  for  the  return  of  a  book  by  Richard  of 
Hampole,  entitled  Pricke  of  Conscience,  "  and  now  the 
parties  aforesaid  are  agreed  by  the  licence  of  the  court, 
and  the  said  John  is  in  *  misericordia ' ;  he  paid  the 
amercement  in  the  hall."  3  Another  record  tells  us  of  two 
monks  of  Christ  Church,  Canterbury,  being  sent  into 
Cambridgeshire  to  recover  a  book. 

The  risk  of  loss  owing  to  the  practice  of  lending  books 
was  great — how  great  may  be  judged  from  the  fact  that 
of  the  equal  portions  of  the  Peterhouse  College  library  of 
1418,  199  volumes  of  the  chained  portion  remain,  but 
only  ten  of  all  those  assigned  to  the  Fellows  are  left.4 
In  spite  of  the  risk,  lending  was  extensively  carried  on. 

1  Bryce,  i.  27.  2  Hist.  MSS.,  6th  Kept.  296^. 

3  Records  of  the  Borough  of  Nottingham,  i.  335. 
'  C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  iii.  397- 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     101 

In  one  year  (1343),  for  example,  the  unimportant  priory 
of  Hinton  lent  no  fewer  than  twenty  books  to  another 
monastery.1  Then  again,  it  was  thought  to  be  only 
common  charity  to  lend  books  to  poor  students,  and  in 
121 2  a  council  at  Paris  actually  forbade  monks  to  refuse 
to  lend  books  to  the  poor,  and  requested  them  to  divide 
their  libraries  into  two  divisions — one  for  the  use  of  the 
brothers,  the  other  for  lending.2  Whether  this  ever 
became  a  practice  in  England  is  more  than  doubtful. 
But  seculars  of  position  or  influence  appear  to  have  been 
able  to  borrow  monastic  books.  For  example,  in  1320, 
the  prior  and  convent  of  Ely  acknowledge  receiving  ten 
books  from  the  executors  of  a  rector  of  Balsham,  who  had 
borrowed  them.3  Some  years  later,  at  an  audit  of  books 
of  Christ  Church,  Canterbury,  seventeen  manuscripts — 
thirteen  of  them  on  law — were  noted  as  in  the  hands  of 
seculars,  among  whom  was  Edward  II.4 

Lending  books  to  brethren  in  the  monastery  was  con- 
ducted according  to  strict  rules,  of  which  those  of  Lanfranc, 
based  on  the  Cluniac  observances,  afford  a  good  example. 
Before  the  brethren  went  into  chapter  on  the  Monday 
after  the  first  Sunday  in  Lent,  the  librarian  laid  out  on  a 
carpet  in  the  chapter-house  all  the  books  which  were  not 
on  loan.  After  the  assembly  of  the  brethren,  the  librarian 
read  his  register  of  the  books  lent  to  the  monks.  Each 
brother,  on  hearing  his  name,  returned  the  book  which 
had  been  entrusted  to  him.  If  he  had  not  made  good  use 
of  the  book,  he  was  expected  to  prostrate  himself,  confess 
his  neglect,  and  beg  forgiveness.  When  all  books  were 
returned,  others  were  issued,  and  a  n^,y  record  made.  In 
some  monasteries  the  abbot  would  question  the  monks  on 

1  See  particularly  James  (M.  R.),  xlv-xlvi,  146-149. 

2  Delisle,  Bibl.  de  PEcole  des  chartes^  iiie  ser.  i.  225. 

3  Hist.  MSS.  6th  Kept.  296*1.  *  Literae  Cantuarienscs,  ii.  146. 


102          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

the  books  they  had  read,  to  test  their  knowledge  of  them, 
and  whenever  the  answers  were  unsatisfactory  would  lend 
the  same  books  again  instead  of  fresh  ones.  As  a  rule 
only  one  book  was  issued  at  a  time,  so  that  the  monk  had 
plenty  of  time  to  digest  its  contents.  In  Carthusian  houses 
two  books  were  lent  at  a  time.  Sick  brethren  were  freely 
permitted  to  borrow  books  for  their  solace,  but  such  books 
were  returned  to  the  library  nightly,  at  lighting-up  time. 

Among  the  Cluniacs  it  was  the  custom  to  take  stock  of 
the  books  given  out  to  the  monks  once  a  year ;  while  the 
Franciscans  kept  a  register  of  their  books,  and  every  year 
it  was  read  and  corrected  before  the  convent  in  assembly.1 

An  excellent  example  of  a  stocktaking  record  made 
at  Christ  Church,  Canterbury,  has  been  preserved.  The 
inspection  took  place  in  1337.  First  are  recorded  the 
books  missing  from  the  two  "  demonstrations,"  as  recorded 
"  in  magnis  tabulis,"  e.g., 

Primo  :  deficit  liber  Transfiguratus  in  Crucifixum,  ad 
quern  est  in  nota  Frater  W.  de  Coventre. 

Nineteen  books  were  missing  from  the  two  "  demonstra- 
tions," or  displays.  Nineteen  service  books  were  missing 
"  in  parvis  tabulis."  No  less  than  thirty-eight  books, 
twenty-eight  of  them  for  service,  either  of  the  large  or  the 
small  tables,  were  wanting :  for  these  deceased  brethren 
had  been  responsible.2 

The  "  large  tables  "  are  believed  to  be  boards  whereon 
the  borrowers  of  books  had  their  names  and  borrowings 
noted.  "  I  find,"  writes  Dr.  James,  "  in  a  St.  Augustine's 
manuscript  a  note  written  on  the  fly-leaf  by  a  monk,  of 
the  books  *  pro  quibus  scribor  in  tabula ' — '  for  which  I  am 
down  on  the  board.' " 3  Large  tables  were  in  use  at 

1  Mon.  Fr.,  ii.  91.          2  Liter ae  Cantuarienses,  ii.  146  ;  James  (M.  R.),  146. 
3  James  (M.  R.),  xlv,  502-503  ;  Camb.  Univ.  Lib.  MS.,  Ff.  4.  40,  last  fol. 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     103 

Pembroke  College,  Cambridge ;  probably  they  were  of  a 
similar  kind.  "  And  let  the  said  keeper," — so  the  statute 
runs — "  have  ready  large  pieces  of  board  (tabulas  magnets), 
covered  with  wax  and  parchment,  that  the  titles  of  the 
books  may  be  written  on  the  parchment,  and  the  names 
of  the  Fellows  who  hold  them  on  the  wax  beside  it." 1 
Monastic  catalogues  were  sometimes  written  on  such 
boards.  At  Cluni,  Mabillon  and  Martene  found  the 
catalogue  inscribed  on  parchment-covered  boards  three 
feet  and  a  half  long  and  a  foot  and  a  half  wide — great 
tablets  which  closed  together  like  a  book. 

Besides  the  example  of  an  audit  at  Canterbury  we  have 
one  belonging  to  Durham,  a  little  later  in  date  (1416). 
The  list  of  books  assigned  to  the  Spendement  was  evidently 
read  over,  and  a  tick  or  point  was  put  against  every 
volume  found  in  its  place.  On  a  second  check  certain 
books  were  accounted  for,  and  notes  of  their  whereabouts 
were  added  to  the  inventory.  Some  were  found  in  the 
cloister,  others  were  in  the  library ;  the  prior  of  Finchale 
had  a  number ;  many  had  been  sent  to  Oxford.  In  one 
case  a  book  is  noted  as  given  to  Bishop  Kempe  of  London.2 

The  catalogue  was  usually  a  simple  inventory.  Some- 
times the  entries  were  classified,  as  in  the  case  of  a 
catalogue  of  the  York  library  of  the  Friars  Eremites  of 
the  Augustinian  order.  The  fifteenth-century  catalogue 
of  St.  Augustine's,  Canterbury,  is  classified  under  sixteen 
headings,  but  it  is  probably  incomplete.3  As  a  rule  the 
entries  were  only  just  sufficient  to  identify  the  books :  all 
the  treatises  in  a  volume  were  not  often  recorded,  but  only 
the  title  of  the  first.  This  is  an  entry  from  a  Durham 
catalogue : — 

F.     Legenda  Sanctorum,  sive  Passionarum  pro  mensibus 
Februaria  et  Marcii.     n.  fo.,  non  surrexerunt. 

1  Clark,  133.  2  Surtees  Soc\,  vii.  85.  3  See  also  Bateson,  vi-vii. 


104          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

The  letter  F  was  employed  as  a  distinctive  mark.  The 
note  "ii.  fo.,  non  surrexerunt "  signifies  that  the  second 
folio  began  with  these  words,  and  was  used  as  the  most 
convenient  method  of  distinguishing  two  copies  of  the 
same  book,  for  it  would  rarely  happen  that  one  scribe 
would  begin  the  second  sheet  with  the  same  word  as 
another.  In  some  houses  the  practice  was  extended  to 
printed  books  in  the  sixteenth  century ;  and  consequently 
no  fewer  that  nearly  four  hundred  editions  have  been 
named  in  the  catalogue  of  Syon  monastery.1  In  some 
other  catalogues  the  information  given  was  fuller.  The 
catalogue  of  Syon  notes  first  the  press-mark  in  a  bold 
hand  ;  then  on  the  left  side  the  donor's  name,  and  on  the 
opposite  side  the  words  of  the  second  folio ;  and  beneath 
the  description  of  the  bookT 

GRAUNTE  P  lm  indutum  est 

Biblia  perpulcra  et  completa  cum  interpretacionibus. 
IF  Tabula  sentencialis  super  eandem  per  totum.  11  Item 
alia  tabula  expositoria  vocabulorum  difficilium  eiusdem 
Biblie. 

WOODE  P  2  osee  2° 

Concordancie  cum  textu  expresso. 

The  catalogue  of  St.  Augustine's,  already  referred  to, 
recorded  the  general  title  of  the  volume,  or  of  the  first 
treatise  in  it ;  the  name  of  the  donor ;  the  other  contents 
of  the  volume ;  the  first  words  of  the  second  leaf,  and 
the  press-mark.  Where  necessary,  cross-references  were 
supplied.  The  press-marks  used  for  monastic  books  are 
generally  of  two  kinds :  press-marks  properly  so  called,  or 
class-marks.  At  St.  Augustine's,  Canterbury,  the  dis- 
tinctions or  tiers  were  numbered,  as  03;  and  the 
gradus  or  shelves  of  each  distinction  were  numbered,  as 

1  Bateson,  vii. 


PL  A  TE 


•§y 

ti| 


(5 


f  A  J 


-5,6?. 


i 


iiii 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     105 

04.  A  similar  method  seems  to  have  been  adopted  for 
St.  Albans  ;  in  one  book  from  that  abbey  is  this  mark : 
"  de  armariolo  i  et  quarto  gradu  liber  quartus." l  But 
such  a  mark  assigned  a  book  to  one  particular  place  and 
fixed  its  relation  to  other  books.  Consequently,  if  any 
large  accession  were  made  to  the  library,  the  classification 
of  the  books  in  broad  subject-divisions  could  only  be 
maintained  by  the  alteration  of  many  press-marks,  both 
on  the  books  and  in  the  catalogue.  At  Titchfield  each 
class  was  marked  with  a  letter  of  the  alphabet,  and  the 
shelves  bearing  it  were  numbered  :  thus  a  book  might  be 
assigned  to  G  2,  or  class  G,  shelf  2.2  This  method  of 
marking  was  more  flexible.  But  at  Syon  Monastery  the 
books  were  arranged  quite  independently  of  the  presses 
and  shelves ;  each  volume  receiving  a  different  number,  as 
well  as  a  class-letter. 

The  most  elaborate  example  of  monkish  cataloguing 
comes  from  Dover  Priory,  a  cell  belonging  to  Canterbury. 
One  John  Whytefield  compiled  it  in  1389.  The  note 
preceding  the  catalogue  tells  of  unbounded  enthusiasm  for 
the  library  and  a  meticulous  regard  for  order.  No  better 
proof  of  the  care  taken  of  books  by  most  monks  could  be 
found.  The  catalogue  is  in  three  parts.  First  there  is 
a  brief  inventory  of  the  books  as  they  are  arranged  on  the 
shelves.  This  is  a  shelf-list  designed  for  the  use  of  the 
precentor ;  just  the  sort  of  record  modern  librarians  regard 
as  indispensable  in  the  administration  of  their  libraries. 
Secondly,  our  industrious  monk  has  provided  a  catalogue, 
— a  repetition  of  the  shelf-list,  but  with  all  the  contents 
of  each  volume  set  out.  His  chief  aim  in  making  this 
compilation  is  to  show  up  fully  the  resources  of  his 
collection,  and  to  lead  studious  brethren  to  read  zealously 
and  frequently.  Lastly,  an  analytical  index  to  the 

1  Pemb.  Coll.,  Camb.,  MS.  180.  2  Madan,  7,  8. 


1 06 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


catalogue  is  supplied :  it  is  in  alphabetical  order,  and  is 
intended  to  point  out  to  the  user  the  whereabouts  in  a 
volume  of  any  individual  treatise.  A  similar  index,  by 
the  way,  is  appended  to  the  catalogue  of  Syon  monastery.1 
The  library  seems  to  have  been  spread  over  nine  tiers 
(distinctions)  of  book-casing,  each  marked  with  a  letter  of 
the  alphabet.  A  tier  had  seven  shelves  (gradus)  marked 
by  Roman  numeral  figures,  the  numbers  beginning  from 
the  bottom  of  the  tier.  Each  book  bore  a  small  Arabic 
figure  which  fixed  its  order  on  the  shelf.  The  full  press- 
mark of  a  book  was  therefore  A.  V.  4.  Such  marks  were 
written  inside  the  books  and  on  their  bindings.  On  the 
second,  third,  or  fourth  leaf  of  a  book,  or  thereabouts,  the 
title  was  written  on  the  bottom  margin,  with  the  press- 
mark and  the  first  words  of  that  leaf.  All  these  marks 
were  copied  in  the  inventory  or  shelf-list :  first  the  tier 
letter,  then  the  shelf  number,  afterwards  the  book  number ; 
followed  by  the  title,  the  number  of  the  leaf  whence  the 
identifying  words  were  taken,  then  the  identifying  words, 
with  the  number  of  leaves  in  the  volume,  and  finally  the 
number  of  tracts  it  contains.  Here  are  some  entries : — 

A.  v. 


S 

.  P 

Ordo 

locacionis 

Nomina 
voluminum. 

Loca 

robacionu 

Dicciones 
probatorie. 

Summa 
ftbliorum 

Numerus 
Dntentoru 

& 

CJ 

, 

Psalterium  vetus  glosa- 

6 

apprehendite  disci 

105 

I 

tum 

2 

Prima     pars     psalterii 

4 

cument  que  il  lait 

195 

2 

glosata  gallice 

3 

Close  super  spalterio 

6 

nullas  habebunt  veri 

104 

2 

1  Bateson,  202.  Ut  scilicet  prima  particula  de  numero  et  perfecta  voluminum 
cognicione  loci  precentorem  informet,  secunda  ad  solicitam  leccionis  frequenciam 
ffratres  studiosos  provocet,  et  tercia  de  singulorum  tractatuum  repercione  festina 
scolaribus  itinera  manifestet. — James,  407. 


BOOK-MAKING  AND  COLLECTING     107 

In  the  second  part,  or  catalogue  following  the  shelf-list,  are 
set  out  the  tier  letter,  shelf  number,  book  number,  short 
title ;  then  the  number  of  the  folio  on  which  each  tract  in 
a  volume  begins,  and  finally  the  first  words  of  the  tract 
itself.1 

Most  books  were  bound  by  the  monks  themselves. 
The  commonest  materials  used  for  ordinary  manuscripts 
were  wooden  boards,  covered  with  deerskin  and  calfskin, 
either  coloured  red  or  used  in  its  natural  tint,  and 
parchment  usually  stained  or  painted  red  or  purple. 
Charles  the  Great  authorised  the  Abbot  of  St.  Bertin  to 
enjoy  hunting  rights  so  that  the  monks  could  get  skins  for 
binding.  In  mid-ninth  century,  Geoffroi  Martel,  Count  of 
Anjou,  commanded  that  the  tithe  of  the  roeskins  captured 
in  the  island  of  Oleron  should  be  used  to  bind  the  books  in 
an  abbey  of  his  foundation.  Few  monastic  bindings  have 
been  preserved,  because  many  great  collectors  have  had 
their  manuscripts  rebound.  Several  examples  of  Winchester 
work  remain.  Mr.  Yates  Thompson  has  a  mid-twelfth 
century  manuscript  bound  in  the  monastic  style,  the  leather 
being  stamped  with  cold  irons  of  many  curious  rectangular 
shapes.  The  manuscript  of  the  Winton  Domesday  has  a 
binding  with  stamps  exactly  like  those  on  Mr.  Thompson's 
book.  "  At  Durham  in  the  last  half  of  the  twelfth  century 
there  was  an  equally  important  school  of  binding,  with 
some  one  hundred  and  fourteen  different  stamps.  The 
binding  for  Hugh  Pudsey's  Bible  has  nearly  five  hundred 
impressions." 2  In  Pembroke  College  library  an  excellent 
specimen  of  twelfth  century  stamped  binding  remains  on 
MS.  147.  Such  stamps  were  small,  and  frequently  of 
geometrical  or  floral  design,  always  rudimentary ;  but 

1  James  (M.  R.),  410.    For  further  information  on  monastic  catalogues  consult 
Surtees  Soc.,  vii ;  Becker;  James  (M.  R.) ;  Bateson  ;  Zentralblatt ;  Gottlieb. 

2  Bateson,  Mtd.  Eng.,  86. 


io8  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

animals  of  the  quaintest  form  —  grotesque  birds  and  dragons 
—  were  also  introduced.  A  hammer  or  mallet  was  employed 
to  obtain  an  impression  from  the  stamp.  Sometimes  the 
oak  boards  were  not  covered  with  skin  but  were  painted. 

If  a  book  was  specially  prized  the  binding  was  often 
rich.  The  covers  of  the  Gospels  of  Lindau,  a  superb 
example  of  Carolingian  art,  bear  nearly  five  hundred  gems 
encrusted  in  gold.1  Abbot  Paul  of  St.  Albans  gave  to  his 
church  two  books  adorned  with  gold  and  silver  and  gems. 
Abbot  Godfrey  of  Malmesbury,  partly  to  meet  a  heavy  tax 
imposed  by  William  Rufus,  stripped  twelve  Gospels  of  their 
decorations.  "  Books  are  clothed  with  precious  stones,"  cried 
St.  Jerome,  "  whilst  Christ's  poor  die  in  nakedness  at  the 
door."  2  In  spite  of  the  many  references  to  jewelled 
monastic  bindings  in  medieval  records,  very  few  are  extant. 


1  Now   in    Mr.    Pierpont   Morgan's   library.     Illustrated  in  La 
xi.  169. 

2  Cf.  Register  of  S.  Osmund,  ii.  127.     Textus  unus  aureus  magnus  continens 
saphiros   xx.,  et  smaragdos   [emeralds]  vi.,  et  thopasios  viii.,   et   alemandinas 
[?  carbuncle  or  ruby]  xviii.,  et  gernettas  [garnets]  viii.,  et  perlas  xii.    Also  i.  276  ; 
ii.  43.     Jerome,  Ad  Eitstoch,  Ep.  18. 


PLATE  XV) I 


MEDIEVAL  BINDING:   MR.  YATES  THOMPSON'S   HEGESIPPUS 


CHAPTER    V 
CATHEDRAL  AND   CHURCH   LIBRARIES 

§1 

TO  the  books  of  the  monastery  some  human  interest 
clings :  we  can  at  once  conjure  up  a  picture  of  the 
cloister  and  the  scribe  at  his  work ;  the  handling  of 
an  old  manuscript,  the  turning  over  of  finely-written  and 
quaintly-illuminated  yellow  pages,  throws  the  mind  flashing 
back  centuries  to  the  silent  writer  in  his  carrell.  But  the 
church  library  is  not  rich  in  associations.  It  was  a  small 
"  working  "  collection  :  one  part  for  the  use  of  the  clergy, 
the  other  part — consisting  of  a  few  chained  books — for 
the  use  of  the  people.  These  chained  books,  which  now 
suggest  a  scarcely  conceivable  restriction  upon  the  circula- 
tion of  literature — even  theological  literature — were,  in  fact, 
the  sign  of  a  glimmer  of  liberal  thought  in  the  church. 
During  the  fourteenth  and  fifteenth  centuries,  not  only 
were  monastic  books  issued  to  lay  people  more  freely,  but 
many  more  books  were  chained  in  places  of  worship  than 
in  the  sixteenth  century,  when  the  proclamation  for  the 
"  setting-up  "  of  Bibles  in  churches  was  granted  unwillingly. 
Some  collections  which  later  were  distinctively  church 
libraries  were  at  first  claustral.  For  convenience'  sake  we 
shall  treat  all  of  them  as  church  libraries.  The  amount  of 
information  on  medieval  church  libraries  is  surprisingly 
extensive,  albeit  a  great  deal  more  must  remain  hidden 


no          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

still,  for  all  our  cathedral  libraries  have  not  been  subjects 
of  such  loving  scholarship  as  Canon  Church  has  bestowed 
upon  the  ancient  treasure-house  at  Wells.  Still  the  material 
is  extensive,  and  our  difficulty  in  making  a  selection  for 
such  a  compendious  book  as  the  present  is  complicated, 
because  we  often  do  not  find  it  possible  to  say  whether  the 
books  referred  to  in  the  available  records  are  merely  service 
books,  or  books  of  an  ordinary  character.  To  evade  this 
difficulty  we  must  ignore  all  material  relating  to  unnamed 
books,  which  we  cannot  reasonably  suppose  to  have  been 
the  nucleus  of  a  more  general  collection,  or  an  addition  to  it. 
Exeter  Cathedral  Library  was  a  monastic  hoard.  It 
originated  with  Bishop  Leofric,  who  got  together  over  sixty 
books  about  sixteen  years  before  the  Conquest.  His  books 
were  a  curious  collection :  among  copies  of  the  classics  and 
ecclesiastical  works  were  books  of  night  songs,  summer  and 
winter  reading  books,  a  precious  book  of  blessings,  and  a 
"  Mycel  Englisc  boc  " — a  large  English  book,  on  all  sorts 
of  things,  wrought  in  verse.  The  last  is  the  famous  Exeter 
book,  still  preserved  in  the  library.  A  small  folio  of  130 
leaves  of  vellum,  it  is  remarkable  to  the  student  of 
manuscripts  for  its  bold,  clear,  and  graceful  calligraphy,  and 
priceless  to  the  student  of  literature  as  the  only  source  of 
much  of  our  small  store  of  Anglo-Saxon  poetry.  Some 
other  Leofrican  books  remain.  In  the  library  of  Corpus 
Christi  College,  Cambridge,  is  an  eleventh  century  copy 
of  Bede's  history  in  Anglo-Saxon,  which  was  given  to 
Exeter  by  Leofric,  although  it  is  not  mentioned  in  the  list 
of  his  gifts  in  the  Bodleian  manuscript.  The  inscription  in 
it  reads  :  Hunc  librum  dat  leofricus  episcopus  ecclesie  sancti 
petri  apostoli  in  exonia  ubi  sedes  episcopalis  est  ad  utilitatem 
successorum  suorum.  Si  quis  ilium  abstulerit  inde,  subiaceat 
maledictioni.  Fiat.  Fiat.  Fiat}  A  manuscript  of  Bede  on 

1  MS.,  41;  James17,  81. 


PL  A  TE  XVUl 


ANCIENT   BOOK-BOX    IN    EXETER   CATHEDRAL 


CHURCH   LIBRARIES  in 

the  Apocalypse,  now  at  Lambeth  Palace,  seems  almost 
certainly  to  have  come  from  St.  Mary's  Church,  Crediton, 
and  it  bears  the  inscription : — "  A  :  in  nomine  domini. 
Amen.  Leofricz^  Pater." 1  Another  book  given  by  Leofric, 
a  missal  dating  from  969,  is  preserved  in  the  Bodleian 
Library.2 

Although  the  age  of  these  books  suggests  that  the 
collection  has  existed  continuously  since  the  eleventh 
century,  after  Leofric's  time  no  important  reference  to 
the  library  occurs  until  1327,  when  an  inventory  of  the 
books  was  drawn  up.  Then  about  230  volumes  (excluding 
service  books)  were  in  the  possession  of  the  Chapter.3  In 
this  same  year  a  breviary  and  a  missal  were  chained  up  in 
the  choir  for  the  use  of  the  people.4  Twelve  months  later 
John  Grandisson  arrived  at  Exeter  to  take  charge  of  his 
diocese.  A  book-loving  bishop,  he  was  a  benefactor  to 
the  library,  maybe  to  a  very  praiseworthy  extent;  but  a 
few  words  will  record  what  is  definitely  known  about  this 
part  of  his  work.  In  1366  he  gave  two  folio  volumes, 
still  extant.  One  contains  Lessons  from  the  Bible,  and 
the  homilies  appointed  to  be  read,  and  the  other  is  the 
Legends  of  the  Saints.5  In  his  will  he  gave  two  other 
books,  perhaps  Pontificals  of  his  own  compilation,  to  his 
successors.6  He  himself  owned  an  extensive  library,  which 
he  divided  principally  between  his  chapter  and  the  collegiate 
churches  of  Ottery,  Crediton,  and  Boseham,  and  Exeter 


1  C.  A.  S.,  8vo.  publ.  No.  33  (1900),  25. 

2  MS.  BodL,  Auct.  D.  2.  16  fo.   ia ;  Dugdale,  ii.  527;  Oxford  PhiloL  Soc. 
Trans. ,  1881-83,  p.  2. 

3  Full  inventory  in  Oliver,  Lives  of  the  Bps.,  301-310. 

4  C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  8vo.  ser.  iv.  311. 

5  Ego  I.  de  G.  Exon.,do  Eccle.  Exon  librum  istum  cum  pan  suo,  in  festo 
Annuntiationis  Dominice.     Manu  mea,  anno  consecrationis  mee  xxxix. — Oliver, 
Lives  oj  the  Bps.,  85. 

6  Lego    eisdem    libros   meos  episcopales,  majorem   et   minorem,    quos   ego 
compilavi. — Ibid*  86. 


ii2  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

College,  Oxford.1  All  St.  Thomas  Aquinas'  works  he 
bequeathed  to  the  Black  Friars'  convent  at  Exeter.  To 
Simon  Islip,  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  he  gave  a  fine 
copy  of  St.  Anselm's  letters,  now  by  good  fortune  in  the 
British  Museum.  A  Hebrew  Pentateuch  once  belonging 
to  him  is  in  the  capitular  library  of  Westminster :  is  it 
possible  that  the  bishop  was  a  Hebrew  scholar  ? 2  Among 
the  books  of  Windsor  College  was  a  volume,  De  Legendis 
et  Missis  de  B.  V.  Maria,  which  had  been  given  by  him. 

A  library  room  was  built  over  the  east  cloister  in 
1412— I  3.3  Probably  the  building  was  found  necessary  on 
account  of  a  considerable  accession  of  books,  and  we  hazard 
a  guess  that  Grandisson's  bequest,  received  in  1370,  formed 
the  bulk  of  the  accretion.  At  all  events,  among  the 
accounts  for  the  building  are  charges  for  191  chains  for 
books  not  secured  before.  No  fewer  than  67  books 
were  also  sewed  or  bound  on  this  same  occasion,  the 
master  binder  being  paid  £6  and  his  man  363.  8d.  Thus 
at  the  beginning  of  the  fifteenth  century — the  age  of 
library  building — the  capitular  hoard  at  Exeter  was  furbished 
up,  newly  housed,  and  arranged.  But  the  interest  in  the 
collection  seems  to  have  waned.  Another  chain  was 
bought  for  sixteenpence  in  1430—3  I  for  a  copy  of  Rationale 
Divinorum,  which  was  given  by  one  Rolder ;  but  such  gifts 
were  few  and  far  between.  In  1506  the  Chapter  owned 

1  In  1329  he  wrote  to  Richard  de  Ratforde  from  Chudleigh  :   "  Regraciamur 
vobis  quod  Librum  Sermonum  Beati  Augustini  pro  nobis,  prout  Magister  Ricardus 
filius  Radulphi,  ex  parte  nostra,  vos  rogavit,  retinuistis,  nobisque  et  condiciones 
ejusdem  significastis  et  precium.     Et,  quia  ipsum  Librum  habere  volumus,  Ix 
solidos  sterlingorum    Magistro  Johanni   de  Sovenaisshe   [Sevenashe],  Magistro 
Scolarum   nostre  Civitatis  Exoniensis,  pro  ipso  Libro  tradi  fecimus,   ut  nobis 
eundem,    quamcicius   nuncii   securitas    affuerit,    transmittatis.       Libros,    eciam, 
Theologicos  Originales,  veteres  saltern  et  raros,   ac  Sermones  antiques,   eciam 
sine   Divisionibus   Thematum,  pro   nostris   usibus   exploretis ;   scribentes  nobis 
condiciones  et  precium  eorundem." —  O.H.S.,  27  Boase,  2. 

2  Robinson,  63. 

3  Building  accounts  in  C.  A.  S,  (N.S.),  8vo.  ser.  iv.  296. 


CHURCH   LIBRARIES  113 

363  volumes,  but  133  more  than  in  I327,1  so  that  few 
additions  besides  Grandisson's  were  made  in  nearly  two 
centuries,  or  many  books  were  lost.2  According  to  this 
second  inventory  the  books  were  arranged  in  eleven  desks ; 
eight  books  were  chained  opposite  the  west  door;  twenty- 
eight  were  not  chained ;  seven  were  chained  behind  the 
treasurer's  stall  (a  Bible  in  three  volumes,  Lyra  also  in 
three,  and  a  Concordance) ;  and  fourteen  volumes  of  canon 
and  civil  law  behind  the  succentor's  stall.3  The  Dean  and 
Chapter  were  in  a  strangely  generous  mood  at  the  end  of 
this  century.  In  1566  they  gave  one  of  Leofric's  books  to 
Archbishop  Parker :  it  is  now  in  Corpus  Christi  College, 
Cambridge.  The  collection  was  despoiled  of  eighty-one 
of  its  finest  books  to  enrich  Bodley's  foundation  at  Oxford, 
i6o2.4  Although  the  book-lover  does  not  like  to  see 
treasures  torn  from  their  associations,  yet  in  this  instance 
the  alienation  was  fortunate.  By  1752  only  twenty 
volumes  noted  in  the  inventory  of  1506  were  left  at 
Exeter.5 

Besides  the  Exeter  Book,  one  other  very  ancient  and 
valuable  manuscript  is  preserved  in  the  Cathedral :  this  is 
the  part  of  the  Domesday  Book  referring  to  Devon,  Corn- 
wall, and  Somerset,  which  is  probably  not  much  later  in 
date  than  the  Exchequer  record.  Two  ancient  book-boxes 
are  also  to  be  found  there.  These  are  fixed  in  a  sloping 
position  by  means  of  iron  supports  embedded  in  the  pillars. 
The  late  Dr.  J.  W.  Clark  was  led  to  believe  them  to  be 
intended  for  books  by  finding  a  wooden  bookboard  nailed  to 
the  inside  bottom  of  one  of  the  boxes.  For  the  protection 

1  Oliver,  366-375. 

2  Between  1385  and  1425  the  bishops  were  giving  books  to  Exeter  College, 
Oxford. 

3  Oliver,  359,  360,  366-375. 

4  List  in  Oliver,  Lives,  376 ;  C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  iv.  306  (8vo.  ser.). 

5  Oliver,  376. 


ii4          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

of  the  book  each  box  has  a  cover,  which  does  not  seem  ever 
to  have  been  fastened :  a  reader  would  raise  the  lid  when 
he  wanted  to  use  the  manuscript,  and  close  it  before  he 
went  away.1  Erasmus  seems  to  have  seen  similar  boxes 
fixed  to  the  pillars  in  the  nave  at  Canterbury.2 


When  gifts  or  bequests  were  received  by  a  church  or 
monastery,  it  was  a  beautiful  custom  to  lay  them,  or  some- 
thing to  represent  them,  upon  the  altar :  "  a  book,  or  turf, 
or,  in  fact,  almost  any  portable  object,  was  offered  for 
property  such  as  land  ;  or  a  bough  or  twig  of  a  tree,  if 
the  gift  were  a  forest."  King  Offa's  gift  of  churches  to 
Worcester  monastery  in  780  was  accompanied  by  a  great 
book  with  golden  clasps,  with  every  probability  a  Bible.3 
A  gift  was  made  under  similar  circumstances  in  c.  1057, 
about  the  time  Bishop  Leofric  was  founding  the  library  at 
Exeter,  when  Lady  Godiva,  the  wife  of  another  Leofric, 
restored  some  manors  to  Worcester,  and  with  them  gave 
a  Bible  in  two  parts.  Before  this,  Bishop  Werfrith,  to 
whom  we  have  referred  before  as  a  helper  of  King  Alfred, 
had  sent  to  Worcester  the  Anglo-Saxon  version  of  Gregory's 
Cura  Pastoralis ;  the  very  copy  of  it  is  now  in  the  Bodleian 
Library. 

Such  were  perhaps  the  beginnings  of  the  library  of 
Worcester  Cathedral.  We  cannot  but  think  that  a  collec- 
tion of  books  was  formed  slowly  and  steadily  here,  as  in 

1  C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  iv.  312. 

2  I  have  to  thank  my  friend  Mr.  Tapley  Soper,  F.R.Hist.S.,  for  his  willing 
help  in  sending  me  information  about  this  library. 

Our  account  of  church  libraries  will  appear  inadequate  if  it  is  not  borne  in 
mind  that  we  do  not  propose  to  go  beyond  the  manuscript  age.  An  excellent 
account  of  modern  church  libraries  is  given  in  English  Chiirch  Furniture,  in  this 
series,  Also  see  Clark,  257. 

8  Reliquary ,  vii.  II  (Floyer). 


CHURCH  LIBRARIES  115 

other  foundations  of  the  same  kind,  although  actual  records 
are  scanty  and  meagre.      In  over  forty  of  the  manuscripts 
now  at  Worcester  are  inscriptions  on  fly-leaves  stating  where 
they  were  procured  :  sometimes   the   price  is  given.      The 
dates  of  these  inscriptions  run  from  about    1283  to    1462, 
or  later.1     "  In    1464,"  writes  the  Rev.  J.  K.  Floyer,  in  his 
article  entitled  A  Thousand   Years  of  a  Cathedral  Library ', 
"  we  first  hear  of  a  regular  endowment  for  the  acquisition  of 
books.      Bishop  Carpenter  made  a  library  in   the  charnel 
house   chantry,  and  endowed  it  with  £10  for  a  librarian. 
The    charnel    house    was    near    the    north    porch    of    the 
Cathedral,  and  stood   on   or  near  the  site  of  the  present 
Precentor's  house.      It  was  a  separate  institution  from   the 
monastery,    and    had    its    own    endowments    and     priests. 
Bishop     Carpenter's     foundation     was     probably     entirely 
separate     from      the      collection      of      books      kept      for 
the     use     of    the     monks     in     the     cloister."2        At     the 
same    time,    the     bishop  made    regulations    for    the    use 
of   the    library.       The  keeper   was    to    be    a    graduate   in 
theology,   and  a  good   preacher.      He  was   to   live  in   the 
chantry,  where  a  dwelling  had  been  erected  for  him  at  the 
end  of  the  library.     Among  other  duties  he  had  to  take 
care  of  the  books.     The   library  was    to   be   open   to   the 
public  every  week  day  for  two  hours  before  Nones  (or  nine), 
and  for  two  hours  after  Nones.      This  alone  was  a  most 
liberal    regulation,    for    making    which     Bishop    Carpenter 
deserves    all    honour.      But   he   went   still   further.     When 
asked  to  do  so  the  keeper  was  to  explain  difficult  passages 
of  Scripture,  and   once  a   week   was    to    deliver  a  public 
lecture  in  the  library.     The  Bishop's  idea  of  a  library  is 
precisely  that    embodied    in   the   modern   town    library :   a 
collection  of  good  books,  for  the  free  use  of  the  public,  with 
some    personal    help    to    the    proper    use    of   them    when 

1  Reliquary,  vii.  14  (Floyer).  2  Ibid.,  17. 


n6          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

necessary.  Three  lists  of  the  books  were  to  be  drawn  up, 
one  to  be  kept  by  the  Bishop,  the  second  by  the  sacrist, 
and  the  third  by  the  keeper.  Once  a  year  stock  was 
taken,  and  if  a  book  were  missing  through  the  keeper's 
neglect,  he  was  to  forfeit  its  value  within  a  month,  or  in 
default  was  to  pay  forty-shillings  more  than  the  value  of 
it,  one  half  of  the  sum  to  go  to  the  Bishop,  the  other 
half  to  the  sacrist  Unfortunately  these  and  other  regula- 
tions were  not  observed  with  care,  and  within  forty  years 
the  Bishop's  work  was  completely  neglected  and  forgotten. 

At  the  Dissolution  the  Priory  was  deprived  of  much  of 
its  church  plate,  service  books  and  vestments,  and  probably 
of  many  of  its  books.  But  the  library  there  suffered  a  good 
deal  less  than  those  of  other  houses,  and  the  Cathedral  now 
has  in  its  possession  some  respectable  remains  of  its  ancient 
collection  of  books.1 


The  history  of  an  old  library  can  only  be  traced  inter- 
mittently, the  facts  playing  hide  and  seek  like  a  distant 
lantern  carried  over  broken  ground.  Little  is  known  of  the 
early  history  of  Hereford's  cathedral  library.  An  ancient 
copy  of  the  Gospels,  said  to  have  been  bequeathed  by  the 
last  Saxon  bishop,  Athelstan  (1012),  is  one  of  the  earliest 
gifts.  In  1  1  86  Bishop  Robert  Folliott  gave  "  multa  bona 
in  terris  et  libris."  Bishop  Hugh  Folliott  also  left  ornaments 
and  books.  Another  bishop,  R.  de  Maidstone,  although  "  vir 
magnae  literaturae,  et  in  theologia  nominatissimus,"  only 
seems  to  have  given  the  church  two  antiphonaries,  some 
psalters,  and  a  Legenda.  Bishop  Charleton  (  I  369)  left  a  Bible, 
a  concordance,  a  glossary,  Nicholas  de  Lyra,  and  five  Books 
of  Moses,  all  to  be  chained  in  the  cathedral.  Very  shortly 

1  The  best  account  of  Worcester  Cathedral  Library  is  in  Reliquary,  vii.   II, 
by  the  Rev.  J.  K.  Floyer,  M.A. 


PLA  TE  XIX 


.,£»*  «m, 

I      THt 


CHURCH  LIBRARIES  117 

afterwards  we  hear  of  fittings,  for  in  1395  Walter  of 
Ramsbury  gave  £10  for  making  the  desks.  Probably  a 
book-room,  which  was  over  the  west  cloister,  was  then  put 
up.  A  long  interval  elapsed,  during  which  little  seems  to 
have  been  done  for  the  library.  But  between  c.  1516—35 
Bishop  Booth  and  Dean  Frowcester  left  many  fine  volumes. 
In  1589  the  book-room  was  abandoned  and  the  contents 
shifted  to  the  Lady  Chapel. 

A  new  library  was  built  in  1897.  Herein  are  to  be 
seen  what  are  almost  certainly  the  original  bookcases,  albeit 
they  have  been  taken  to  pieces  and  somewhat  altered  before 
being  fitted  together  again.  One  of  the  bookcases  still  has 
all  the  old  chains  and  fittings  for  the  books,  and  it  presents 
a  very  curious  appearance.  Every  chain  is  from  three  to 
four  feet  long,  with  a  ring  at  each  end,  and  a  swivel  in  the 
middle.  One  ring  is  strung  on  to  an  iron  rod,  which  is 
secured  at  one  end  of  the  bookcase  by  metal  work,  with 
lock  and  key.  For  convenience  in  using  the  book  on  the 
reading  slope  which  was  attached  to  the  case,  the  ring  at 
the  other  end  of  the  chain  was  fixed  to  the  fore  edge  of  the 
book-cover  instead  of  to  the  back ;  when  standing  on 
the  shelves  the  books  therefore  present  their  fore  edges  to 
the  reader.  The  cases  are  roughly  finished,  but  very  solid 
in  make.1 

§   IV 

At  Old  Sarum  Church,  Bishop  Osmund  (1078-99) 
collected,  wrote,  and  bound  books.2  In  his  time,  too,  the 
chancellor  used  to  superintend  the  schools  and  correct 
books :  either  books  used  in  the  school  or  service  books.3 
The  income  from  a  virgate  of  land  was  assigned  to  correct- 

1  Havergal,  Fasti  Heref.  (1869),  181-182. 

2  W.  of  Malmesbury,  Gesta  Pont.,  184. 
8  Register  of  St.  Osmund,  i.  8,  214. 


ii8  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

ing  books  towards  the  end  of  the  twelfth  century  (i  175-So).1 
The  new  Salisbury  Cathedral  was  erected  in  the  thirteenth 
century ;  but  apparently  a  special  library  room  was  not 
used  until  shortly  after  1444,  when  it  was  put  up  to  cover 
the  whole  eastern  cloister.  This  room  was  altered  and 
reduced  in  size  in  1758.  About  the  time  the  room  was 
completed  one  of  the  canons  gave  some  books,  on  the 
inside  covers  of  two  of  which  is  a  note  in  a  fifteenth  century 
hand  bidding  they  should  be  chained  in  the  new  library.2 
Nearly  two  hundred  manuscripts,  of  various  date  from  the 
ninth  to  the  fourteenth  century,  are  now  in  the  library. 
Among  them  several  notable  volumes  are  to  be  found :  a 
Psalter  with  curious  illuminations  ;  another  Psalter,  with  the 
Gallican  and  Hebrew  of  Jerome's  translation  in  parallel 
columns,  also  illuminated  ;  Chaucer's  translation  of  Boethius  ; 
Geoffrey  of  Monmouth's  History  of  the  Kings  of  Britain  of 
the  twelfth  century ;  a  thirteenth  century  Lectionary,  with 
golden  and  coloured  initials ;  a  Tonale  according  to  Sarum 
use,  bound  with  a  fourteenth  century  Ordinal ;  and  a 
fifteenth  century  Processional  containing  some  notes  on  local 
customs. 

§  V 

Books  were  given  to  Lincoln  Cathedral  about  1 150  by 
Hugh  of  Leicester ;  one  of  them  bears  the  inscription,  Ex 
dono  Hugonis  Archidiaconi  Leycestriae.  They  may  still  be 
seen  at  Lincoln.  Forty-two  volumes  and  a  map  came  into  the 
charge  of  Hamo  when  he  became  chancellor  in  1 1  5O.3  During 
his  chancellorship  thirty-one  volumes  were  added  by  gift,  so 
making  the  total  seventy-three  volumes  :  Bishops  Alexander 
and  Chesney  were  among  the  benefactors.  But  here,  as  at 

1  Register  of  St.  Osmund,  \.  224. 

2  Cox  and  Harvey,  English  Church  Ftirniture,  331. 

3  See  list  in  Giraldus  Cambrensis,  vii.  165-166. 


PL  A  TE  XX 


CHURCH   LIBRARIES  119 

Salisbury,  not  until  the  fifteenth  century  was  a  separate 
library  room  built.  Two  gifts  "  to  the  new  library "  by 
Bishop  Repyngton — who  also  befriended  Oxford  University 
Library — and  Chancellor  Duffield  in  1419  and  1426,  fix 
the  date.  It  was  put  up  over  the  north  half  of  the  eastern 
cloisters,  relatively  the  same  position  as  at  Salisbury  and 
Wells.  Originally  it  had  five  bays,  but  in  1789  the  two 
southernmost  bays  were  pulled  down:  In  this  room  the 
fine  fifteenth  century  oaken  roof,  with  its  carved  ornaments, 
has  been  preserved,  but  at  Salisbury  the  roof  is  modern,  with 
a  plaster  ceiling.  Lincoln's  new  library,  designed  by  Wren 
and  erected  in  1674,  is  next  to  this  old  room.  According 
to  a  1450  catalogue  now  preserved  at  Lincoln  the  library 
contained  one  hundred  and  seven  works,  more  than  seventy 
of  which  now  remain.  Among  the  most  important  manu- 
scripts are  a  mid-fifteenth  century  copy  of  old  English 
romances  of  great  literary  value,  collected  by  Robert  de 
Thornton,  archdeacon  of  Bedford  (c.  1430);  and  a  con- 
temporary copy  of  Magna  Carta. 

§  VI 

In  an  inventory  of  St.  Paul's  Cathedral,  taken  in  1245, 
mention  is  made  of  thirty-five  volumes.1  Before  this,  in 
Ralph  of  Diceto's  time,  a  binder  of  books  was  an  officer 
of  the  church.  As  at  Salisbury,  the  chancellor's  duties 
included  taking  charge  of  the  school  books.  In  1283  a 
writer  of  books  was  included  among  the  ministers.  The 
two  offices  were  combined  in  the  beginning  of  the  next 
century.  When  Dean  Ralph  Baldock  made  a  visitation 
of  St.  Paul's  treasury  in  1295,  he  found  thirteen  Gospels 
adorned  with  precious  metals  and  stones ;  some  other 
parts  of  the  Scriptures ;  and  a  commentary  of  Thomas 

1  Archaeologia,  1.  496. 


120          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

Aquinas.  In  1313  Baldock,  who  died  Bishop  of  London, 
bequeathed  fifteen  volumes,  chiefly  theological  books.1 
To  Baldock's  time  probably  belongs  the  reference  to 
twelve  scribes,  no  doubt  retained  for  business  purposes 
as  well  as  for  book-making.  They  were  bound  by  an 
oath  to  be  faithful  to  the  church  and  to  write  without 
fraud  or  malice.  ^Eneas  Sylvius  tells  us  he  saw  a  Latin 
translation  of  Thucydides  in  the  sacristy  of  the  cathedral 

(I435).2 

A  library  room  was  erected  in  the  fifteenth  century.  "  Ouer 
the  East  Quadrant  of  this  Cloyster,  was  a  fayre  Librarie, 
builded  at  the  costes  and  charges  of  Waltar  Sherington, 
Chancellor  of  the  Duchie  of  Lancaster,  in  the  raigne  of 
Henrie  the  6  which  hath  beene  well  furnished  with  faire 
written  books  in  Vellem."  3  The  catalogue  of  1 45  8  bears  out 
Stow's  description  of  the  library  as  well-furnished.  Some  one 
hundred  and  seventy  volumes  were  in  the  Chapter's  posses- 
sion ;  they  were  of  the  usual  kind,  grammatical  books,  Bibles 
and  commentaries,  works  of  the  fathers ;  books  on  medicine 
by  Galen,  Hippocrates,  Avicenna,  and  Egidius ;  Ralph  de 
Diceto's  chronicles ;  and  some  works  of  Seneca,  Cicero, 
Suetonius,  and  Virgil.4  In  1486,  however,  only  fifty-two 
volumes  were  found  after  the  death  of  John  Grimston  the 
sacrist.5  Leland  gives  a  list  of  only  twenty-one  manuscripts, 
but  it  was  not  his  habit  to  make  full  inventories.  In  Stow's 
time,  however,  few  books  remained.6  Three  volumes  only 
can  be  traced  now — (i)  a  manuscript  of  Avicenna,  (2)  the 
Chronicle  of  Ralph  de  Diceto  in  the  Lambeth  Palace 
Library,  and  (3)  the  Miracles  of  the  Virgin,  in  the  Aberdeen 
University  Library.7 

1  Hist.  MSS.,  gth  Kept.,  App.  463. 

2  Ep.,  126;  Creighton,  Papacy ',  iii.  5311. 

3  Stow,  i.  328.  4  Dugdale,  Hist,  of  St.  Paul's,  392-398. 
5  Ibid.,  399.  6  Stow,  i.  328. 

7  Ibid.,  ii.  346  ;  Simpson,  Reg.  S.  Pauli,  13,  78,  133,  173,  227. 


CHURCH   LIBRARIES  121 


§  VII 

Although  neither  a  monastic  nor  a  collegiate  church, 
Wells  was  already  in  the  thirteenth  century  a  place  with 
some  equipment  for  educational  work.  Besides  the 
choristers'  school,  a  schola  grammaticalis  of  a  higher 
grade  was  in  existence.  After  1240  the  Chancellor's 
duties  included  lecturing  on  theology.  Not  improbably, 
therefore,  a  collection  of  books  was  formed  very  early. 
And  indeed  the  Dean  and  Chapter  in  1291  received  from 
the  Dean  of  Sarum  books  lent  by  the  Chapter,  and  some 
others  bequeathed  to  them.  Hugo  of  St.  Victor,  Speculum 
de  Sanrn.mentis,  and  Bede,  De  Temporibus^  were  the  books 
returned  from  Sarum ;  among  those  bequeathed  were 
Augustine's  Epistles  and  De  Civitate  Dei,  Gregory  the 
Great's  Speculum^  and  John  Damascenus.  We  know 
nothing  of  the  character  and  size  of  the  library  at  this 
time,  although  it  seems  to  have  been  preserved  in  a  special 
room.  In  1297,  the  Chapter  ordered  the  two  side  doors 
of  the  choir  screen  in  the  aisles  to  be  shut  at  night.  One 
door  near  the  library  (versus  librarium)  and  the  Chapter 
was  only  to  be  open  from  the  first  stroke  of  matins  until 
the  proper  choir  door  was  opened  at  the  third  bell.  At 
other  times  during  the  day  it  was  always  to  be  closed, 
so  that  people  could  not  injure  the  books  in  the  library, 
or  overhear  the  conferences  of  the  Chapter  (secreta  capituli). 
This  library  was  most  likely  on  the  north  side  of  the 
church,  with  the  Chapter  House  beside  it,  in  the  north 
transept,  as  shown  conjecturally  in  the  plan  given  in 
Canon  Church's  admirable  Chapters  in  the  Early  History  of 
the  Church  of  Wells}-  That  so  early,  in  a  church  neither 
monastic  nor  collegiate,  a  school  was  at  work,  and  a 
1  Pp.  i,  325-327. 


122 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


library  had  been  formed,  is  a  specially  significant  fact  in 
the  study  of  our  subject. 

In  this  position  the  library  remained  until  the  fifteenth 


century.  Two  notices  occur  of  it,  one  in  1340  and 
another  in  1406,  in  both  cases  in  connection  with  an 
image  of  the  Holy  Saviour,  "  near  the  library." 

But    in  the  fifteenth  century  a   new  library  was  built 


PL  A.  TE  XXI 


CHURCH  LIBRARIES  123 

over  the  eastern  cloister.  Bishop  Nicholas  of  Bubwith, 
in  his  will  of  1424,  bequeathed  one  thousand  marks  to 
be  faithfully  applied  and  disposed  for  the  construction  and 
new  building  of  a  certain  library  to  be  newly  erected  upon 
the  eastern  space  of  the  cloister,  situate  between  the  south 
door  of  the  church  next  the  chamber  of  the  escheator  of 
the  church  and  the  gate  which  leads  directly  from  the 
church  by  the  cloister  into  the  palace  of  the  bishop.1  The 
work  was  begun  by  his  executors,  but  certain  signs  of 
break  in  the  building  suggest  some  delay  in  finishing  it. 
This  room  is  probably  the  only  cathedral  library  built  over 
a  cloister  which  remains  in  its  original  completeness.  It 
is  165  feet  by  12  feet;  now  only  about  two- thirds  of  it 
are  devoted  to  the  library.  When  this  room  was  first 
fitted  up  as  a  library  no  one  knows  ;  but  tradition  fixes 
the  date  at  1472.  The  present  fittings  were  put  in  during 
Bishop  Creighton's  time  (1670-72). 

Shortly  after  the  date  of  Bubwith's  will  Bishop  Stafford 
(1425—43)  gave  ten  books — not  an  inspiriting  collection — 
but  he  desired  to  retain  possession  of  them  during  his 
lifetime.2  In  1452  Richard  Browne  (alias  Cordone), 
Archdeacon  of  Rochester,  left  to  the  library  of  Wells, 
Petrus  de  Crescentiis  De  Agricultura^  and  two  other  books, 
Jerome's  Epistles^  and  Lathbury  Super  libruni  Trenorum, 
which  were  to  be  kept  in  the  church  in  wooden  cases.3 
Were  these  cases  to  resemble  the  boxes  still  remaining 
in  Exeter  Cathedral  ?  The  same  will  ordered  the  Decretales 
of  Clement,  which  had  been  borrowed  for  copying,  to  be  re- 
stored to  this  library  ;  two  other  books  were  also  given  back  ; 

1  In  the  fifteenth  century  the  bishops  of  Wells  were  good  friends  of  learning  : 
Skirlaw  gave  books  to  University  College,  Oxford  ;  Bowet  left  a  large  library  ; 
Stafford  gave  books  ;  Bekynton  was  the  companion  of  the  most  cultivated  men 
of  his  time.     Dean  Gunthorpe  is  well  known  as  a  pilgrim  to  Italy,  who  returned 
laden  with  manuscripts  (see  p.  192). 

2  Hist.  MSS.  Kept.  3,  App.  363*.  *  Mtm.  Acad.,  649. 


124          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

and  the  will  further  notes  that  there  are  several  books 
belonging  to  the  library  in  a  certain  great  bag  in  the  inner 
room  of  the  treasury  at  Wells.1 

Leland  only  mentions  forty-six  books  in  the  library 
in  his  time.  "  I  went  into  the  library,  which 
whilome  had  been  magnificently  furnished  with  a  con- 
siderable number  of  books  by  its  bishops  and  canons, 
and  I  found  great  treasures  of  high  antiquity."  Among 
the  books  he  found  were  sermons  by  Gregory  and  ^Elfric 
in  Anglo-Saxon,  Terence,  and  "  Dantes  translatus  in 
carmen  Latinum."  Very  few  books  belonging  to  the 
old  library  before  the  Dissolution  have  survived.  Some 
are  in  the  British  Museum,  the  Bodleian,  and  certain 
collegiate  libraries  ;  and  several  manuscripts  remain  in  the 
hands  of  the  Dean  and  Chapter.  Among  them  are  three 
manuscripts  known  as  Liber  albus  I,  Liber  ruber  II,  and 
Liber  albus  III,  which  contain  an  extremely  valuable  series 
of  documents.2 

§  VIII 

In  the  York  fabric  rolls  appear  from  time  to  time 
expenses  for  writing,  illuminating,  and  binding  church 
books ;  but  we  know  little  or  nothing  about  the  Chapter 
library,  if  such  existed.  William  de  Feriby,  a  canon, 
bequeathed  his  books  in  1379.  Between  1418  and  1422, 
a  library  was  built  at  the  south-west  corner  of  the  south 
transept.  The  building  is  in  two  floors,  and  the  upper 
appears  to  have  been  the  book-room ;  it  is  still  in  existence. 
In  the  rolls  are  several  references  to  the  building. 

1419.  Etde  26/.  135-.  4^.  de  elemosina  domini  Thomae  Haxey  ad 
cooperturam  novi  librarii  cum  plumbo. 

1  Mun.  Acad.,  652-653. 

2  L.  A.  /?.,  viii.  372  ;  Canon  Church's  account  of  the  library,  in  Archaeologia, 
Ivii.  pt.  2,  is  very  full  and  interesting. 


CHURCH  LIBRARIES  125 

Haxey  was  a  good  friend  to  the  cathedral ;  and  he  gave 
handsomely  toward  the  library.  His  arms  were  put  up  in 
one  of  the  new  library  windows. 

1419.  In  sarracione  iiij  arborum  datarum  novo  librario  per  Abbatem 

de  Selby,  6/8. 
1419.  Et  Johanni   Grene,   joynor,  pro  joynacione   tabularum  pro 

libraria  et  planacione  et  gropyng  de  waynscott,  per   annum, 

17.$-.  Sd. 
In  operacione  cc  ferri   in   boltes  pro  nova  libraria  per  Johannem 

Harpham,  fabrum,  8s.1 

In  1418  John  de  Newton,  the  church  treasurer, 
bequeathed  to  the  Chapter  a  number  of  books,  including 
Bibles,  commentaries,  and  patristical  and  historical  works, 
as  well  as  Petrarch's  De  remediis  utriusque  fortunae? 
They  were  chained  to  the  library  desks,  and  were  guarded 
with  horn  and  studs,  to  protect  them  from  the  conse- 
quences of  careless  use  by  readers. 

1421.  Johanni  Upton  pro  superscriptura  librorum  nuper  magistri 
Johannis  Neuton  thesaurarii  istius  ecclesiae  legatorum  librario, 
2s.  Thomae  Hornar  de  Petergate  pro  hornyng  et  naillyng 
superscriptorum  librorum,  zs.  6d.  Radulpho  Lorymar  de 
Conyngstrete  pro  factura  et  emendacione  xl  cathenanim  pro 
eisdem  libris  annexis  in  librario  predicto,  23^.  id.B 

From  time  to  time  a  few  other  bequests  were  made : 
thus,  Archdeacon  Stephen  Scrope  bequeathed  some  books 
on  canon  law,  after  a  beneficiary  had  had  them  in  use 
during  his  life  (1418).  Robert  Ragenhill,  advocate  of  the 
court  of  York,  enriched  the  church  with  a  small  collection 
(1430);  and  Robert  Wolveden,  treasurer  of  the  church, 
left  to  the  library  his  theological  books  (1432).* 

1  Surtees  Soc. ,  xxxv.  36-40. 

2  Hunter,  Notes  of  Wills  in  Registers  of  York,  15. 

3  Surtees  Soc.,  xxxv.,  45-46.  4  Ibid.,  iv.  385  ;  xlv.  89,  91. 


126          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


§  ix 

The  Sacrist's  Roll  of  Lichfield  Cathedral,  under  date 
1345,  contains  an  inventory  of  the  books  then  in  possession 
of  the  church.  All  of  them  were  service  books,  excepting 
only  a  De  Gestis  Anglorum.1  Thereafter  we  cannot  discover 
a  notice  of  the  library  until  1489,  when  Dean  Thomas 
Heywood  gave  £40  towards  building  a  home  for  the  books. 
Dean  Yotton  assisted  in  the  good  work.  By  1493  the 
building  was  finished.  It  stood  on  the  north  side  of  the 
Cathedral,  west  of  the  north  door,  or  "  ex  parte  boreali  in 
cimeterio."2  The  Dean  and  Chapter  had  it  pulled  down 
in  1758. 

Nearly  all  the  books  of  the  early  collection  perished 
during  the  Civil  War ;  but  the  finest  manuscript,  known  as 
St.  Chad's  Gospels,  was  saved  by  the  precentor.  Among 
the  other  manuscripts  in  the  possession  of  the  Chapter  are 
a  fine  vellum  copy  of  Chaucer's  Canterbury  Talesy  with 
beautiful  initials,  and  the  Taxatio  Ecclesiastica,  a  tithe  book 
showing  the  value  of  church  property  in  Edward  I's  time.3 

§  x 

Many  other  churches,  some  of  them  small  and  unim- 
portant, owned  books,  and  received  them  as  gifts  or 
bequests.  In  the  time  of  Richard  II  the  Royal  collegiate 
chapel  of  Windsor  Castle  had,  besides  service  books, 
thirty-four  volumes  on  different  subjects  chained  in  the 
church,  among  them  a  Bible  and  a  Concordance,  and  two 
books  of  French  romance,  one  of  which  was  the  Liber  de  Rose* 

1  W.  Salt  Arch.  Sot:.,  vi.  pt.  2,  211.  2  Capit.  Acts,  v.  3. 

B  Harwood,  Hist,  and  Antiq.  of  the  Ch.  .  .  .  of  Lichfield  (1806),  109. 
4  Viet.  County  Hist*  of  Berkshire,  ii.  109. 


CHURCH  LIBRARIES  127 

The  library  of  St.  Mary's  Church,  Warwick,  was  first 
formed  by  the  celebrated  antiquary,  John  Rous.  Before 
his  time  we  hear  only  of  one  or  two  books.  In  1407 
there  was  a  collection  of  fifty  service  books,  and  a 
Catholicon,  the  latter  being  perhaps  the  nucleus  of  a 
library.1  "  At  my  lorde's  auter,"  that  is,  at  the  Earl  of 
Warwick's  altar,  were  to  be  found  among  other  goods  and 
books,  the  Bible,  the  fourth  book  of  the  Sentences,  Pupilla 
Oculi,  a  work  by  Reymond  de  Pennaforte,  Isidore,  and 
some  canon  law.2  John  Rous  seems  to  have  inherited  the 
bookish  tastes  of  his  relative,  William  Rous.  William  had 
bequeathed  his  books  to  the  Dean,  charging  him  to  allow 
John  to  read  them  when  he  came  of  age  and  had  received 
priest's  orders. 

Among  the  Harleian  MSS.  in  the  British  Museum  is 
a  small  volume  written  on  parchment  by  Humphrey  Wanley, 
which  includes  a  copy  of  a  curious  inventory  of  vestments, 
plate,  books,  and  other  goods  made  in  the  time  of  John 
Rous,  1464.  A  portion  of  this  inventory  has  been  printed 
in  Notices  of  the  Churches  of  Warwickshire,  i.  15-16.  "  It. 
v  bokes  beynge  in  the  handes  of  Maister  John  Rous  now 
priest  whuche  were  Sir  William  Rous  and  bequath  hem  to 
the  Dean  and  Chapitre  of  the  forseide  Chirche  Collegiall 
under  condicon  that  the  seid  maister  John  beynge  priest 
shulde  have  hem  for  his  special  edificacon  duryng  his  lief. 
And  after  his  decees  to  remayne  and  to  be  for  ever  to  the 
seide  Dean  and  Chapitre  as  it  appereth  by  endentures 
thereof  made  whereof  one  party  leveth  with  the  Dean  and 
Chapitre.  That  is  to  say  i  book  quern  composuit  ffrater 
Antoninus  Rampologus  de  Janis  2  fo  Chorinth  14.  It. 
i  book  cald  pars  dextera  et  pars  sinistra  2  fo  non  ft  carere. 
It.  i  bible  versefied  cald  patris  in  Aurora  2  fo  huic  opifex. 
It.  i  book  of  powles  epistoles  glosed  2  fo  de  Jhu  qui  dr 

1  Viet.  Hist.  Warwickshire,  ii.  layb.  2  Ibid.,  ii.  128  a. 


128  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Xtus.  It.  i  book  cald  pharetra  2  fo  hora  est  jam  nos  de 
sompno  surgere.  It.  I  quayer  in  the  whuche  is  conteyned 
the  exposicon  of  the  masse  2  fo  cois  offerim." 

John  also  seems  to  have  given  books  as  well  as  a  room 
to  house  them.1  An  old  view  of  the  church,  taken  before 
the  great  fire  which  destroyed  the  town  in  1694,  shows 
the  south  porch  surmounted  with  his  library,  as  then 
standing ;  but  this  room  was  destroyed  in  the  fire,  and  it 
seems  certain  the  books  were  burnt.  The  present  library 
was  founded  in  1701,  and  includes  no  part  of  the  original 
collection.2 

Bequests  to  churches  of  service  books,  such  as  that  to 
the  church  of  St.  Mary,  Castle-gate,  York  (1394),  were 
numerous ;  they  may  be  set  apart  with  bequests  of  vest- 
ments, plate,  and  money.  Some  bequests  have  a  different 
character.  A  chancellor  of  York,  Thomas  de  Farnylaw, 
leaves  books,  bound  and  unbound,  to  the  Vicar  of  Waghen  ; 
a  volume  of  sermons  and  a  "  quire "  to  the  church  of 
Embleton  ;  and  a  Bible  and  Concordance  to  be  chained  in 
the  north  porch  of  St.  Nicholas'  Church,  Newcastle,  "  for 
common  use,  for  the  good  of  the  soul  of  his  lord  William 
of  Middleton  "  (1378).  A  chaplain  leaves  service  books, 
Speculum  Ecclesiae,  and  the  Gospels  in  English  to  Holy 
Trinity  Church,  Goodramgate,  York  (1394).  A  Bristol 
merchant  bequeaths  two  books  on  canon  law  to  St.  Mary 
RedclifTe  Church,  there  to  be  preserved  for  the  use  of  the 
vicar  and  chaplains  (1416).  In  the  same  year  a  Canon  of 
York  enriches  Beverley  Church  with  all  his  books  of  canon 


1  Johannes  Rous,  capellanus   Cantariae   de   Guy-Cliffe,  qui   super  porticum 
australem  librarian!  construxit,  et  libris  ornavit. — Gentleman's  Magazine  (N.S.), 
xxv.   37.      The   chapel   of  Guy's   Cliffe   was   erected   by  Richard   Beauchamp 
for  the  repose  of  the  soul  of  his    "ancestor,"  Guy  of  Warwick,  the  hero  of 
romance. 

2  Mr.  W.  T.  Carter,  of  the  Warwick  Public  Library,  has  kindly  given  me 
much  information  about  St.  Mary's  Church  library. 


CHURCH  LIBRARIES  129 

and  civil  law.  Books  were  also  chained  in  the  church  of 
St.  Mary  of  Oxford.  Bishop  Lyndwood  of  St.  David's 
bequeaths  a  copy  of  his  digest  of  the  synodal  constitutions 
of  the  province  of  Canterbury  for  chaining  in  St.  Stephen's 
Chapel,"  to  serve  as  a  standard  for  future  editions  "  (1443). 
Richard  Browne,  or  Cordone,  who  has  left  books  to  Wells, 
reserves  for  the  parish  church  of  Naas  in  Ireland  a  Catholicon 
and  other  manuscripts  (1452).  To  Boston  Church  a 
rector  of  Kirkby  Ravensworth  bequeaths  several  books, 
but  one  named  John  Bosbery  was  to  have  the  use  of  them 
for  life:  among  the  gifts  was  Polichronicon  (1457).  Canon 
Nicholas  Holme  leaves  Pupilla  Oculi  to  the  parish  church 
of  Redmarshall  (1458).  A  chaplain  bequeaths  one  book 
to  St.  Mary's  Church,  Bolton,  another  to  St.  Wilfrid's 
Church,  Brensall  in  Craven,  and  a  third  to  All  Saints' 
Church,  Peseholme,  York  (1466).  Sir  Richard  Willoughby 
orders  church  books  and  a  Crede  mihi  to  be  given  to 
Woollaton  Parish  Church  (1469).  Robert  Est,  possibly 
a  chantry-priest  in  York  Minster,  enriches  the  parish 
church  of  his  native  Lincoln  village,  Brigsley,  with  a  copy 
of  Legends  of  the  Saints,  Speculum  Christiani,  Gesta 
Romanorum  cum  aliis  fabulis  Isopi  et  multis  narrationibus, 
and  a  Psalter  (1474—75).  To  the  church  of  St.  Mary's, 
Nottingham,  the  vicar  leaves  a  Golden  Legend,  a  Poli- 
chronicon, besides  Pupilla  Oculi,  and  a  portiforium  to  Wragby 
Church,  and  a  missal  to  Snenton  Church  (1476).  Sir 
Thomas  Lyttleton  befriends  King's  Norton  Church  by 
leaving  it  a  Latin-English  dictionary,  and  that  of  Halesowen 
in  Worcestershire  by  leaving  a  Catholicon,  the  Constitutiones 
Provinciates  (possibly  Lyndwood's  digest,  the  Provinciate), 
and  the  Gesta  Romanorum  (1481).  A  man  of  Leicester 
was  sued  by  the  church  wardens  of  the  parish  church  of 
Welford,  in  the  county  of  Leicester,  on  a  charge  of  having 
taken  away  certain  books  belonging  to  the  church  and 
9 


130          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

sold  them  (1490).  The  vicar  of  Ruddington  bequeaths 
three  books,  "  ad  tenendum  et  ligandum  cum  cathena  ferrea 
in  quadam  sede  in  capella  B.  M.  de  Rodington "  (1491). 
Thomas  Rotherham,  benefactor  of  Cambridge  University 
Library,  gave  to  the  church  of  Rochester  ten  pounds  for 
building  a  library  (1500).  To  Wetheringsett  Church  a 
chaplain  of  Bury  carefully  reserves  "  a  book  called 
Fasiculus  Mors  [Fasciculus  morum],  to  lye  in  the  chauncell, 
for  priests  to  occupye  ther  tyme  when  it  shall  please  them, 
praying  them  to  have  my  soule  in  remembraunce  as  it  shall 
please  them  of  their  charite  "  (i  5  I9).1 

A  very  little  research  would  add  considerably  to  our 
list ;  while,  apart  from  records  of  gifts  and  bequests,  are 
numberless  references  to  books  in  churches.  For  example : 
in  the  churchwarden's  account  book  (c.  1525)  of  All  Saints, 
Derby,  occurs  an  entry  beginning :  "  These  be  the  bokes  in 
our  lady  Chapell  tyed  with  chenes  yt  were  gyffen  to 
Alhaloes  church  in  Derby — 

In  primis  one  Boke  called  summa  summarum. 

Item   A  boke   called  Summa  Raumundi  [Summa   poenitentia  et 

matrimonio  of  Reymond  de  Pennaforte  of  Barcelona]. 
Item    Anoyer    called    pupilla    occuli    [Pupilla    oculi,    by    J.    de 

Burgo]. 

Item  Anoyer  called  the  Sexte  [Liber  Sextus  Decretalium]. 
Item  A  boke  called  Hugucyon  [see  pp.  223-4]. 
Item  A  boke  called  Vitas  Patrum. 
Item  Anoyer  boke  called  pauls  pistols. 
Item    A    boke   called   Januensis   super   evangeliis    domimcalibus 

[Sermons  of  Jacobus  de   Voragine,    Abp.    of  Genoa,  on  the 

Gospels  for  the  Sundays  throughout  the  year]. 
Item  a  grette  portuose  [a  large  breviary]. 

1  Arch.  Inst.  City  of  York  (1846),  10-11  ;  Surtees  Soc.,  iv.  102-103,  J96  '•>  xlv- 
57~59>  J59>  I7I»  220-222,  22in.  ;  xxvi.  2-3;  xxx.  219,  275  ;  Cox  and  Harvey, 
English  Church  Furniture,  331  ;  Mun.  Acad.,  648-649  ;  Library,  i.  411  ;  Cam. 
Soc.,  Bury  Wills,  253. 


CHURCH   LIBRARIES  131 

Item  Anoyer   boke    called   Legenda   Aurea  [Legenda   sanctorum 
aurea  of  Jacobus  de  Voragine].1 

This  is  a  respectable  list  for  such  a  church.  Some 
sixty  years  before  there  were  apparently  only  service 
books  (i465).2 

From  1456  to  1475  charges  occur  in  the  accounts  of 
St.  Michael's  Church,  Cornhill,  for  chains  to  fix  psalters, 
and  for  writing.3  At  St.  Peter's  upon  Cornhill  there  would 
appear  to  have  been  a  good  library.  "  True  it  is,"  writes 
Stow,  "  that  a  library  there  was  pertaining  to  this  Parrish 
Church,  of  olde  time  builded  of  stone,  and  of  late  repayred 
with  bricke  by  the  executors  of  Sir  John  Crosby  Alderman, 
as  his  Armes  on  the  south  end  doth  witnes.  This  library 
hath  beene  of  late  time,  to  wit,  within  these  fifty  yeares, 
well  furnished  of  bookes :  John  Leyland  viewed  and  com- 
mended them,  but  now  those  bookes  be  gone,  and  the  place 
is  occupied  by  a  schoolemaister."  4  In  1483  the  Church  of 
St.  Christopher-le- Stocks,  London,  seems  to  have  had  a 
collection  only  of  service  books ;  but  five  years  later 
mention  is  made  of  "  a  grete  librarie."  "  On  the  south  side 
of  the  vestrarie  standeth  a  grete  librarie  with  ii  longe 
lecturnalles  thereon  to  lay  on  the  bookes."'  About  the 
middle  of  the  sixteenth  century  certain  inhabitants  of 
Rayleigh  held  a  meeting  one  Sunday,  after  service,  and, 
without  the  consent  of  the  churchwardens,  sold  fifteen 
service  books,  and  "  four  other  manuscript  volumes,"  as 
well  as  some  other  church  goods,  for  forty  shillings.6 

But  we  might  continue  for  a  long  time  to  bring  to- 

^ox,  J.  C.,  and  Hope,  W.  H.  St.  John,  Chronicles  of  the  Colleg.  Ch.  o 
All  Saints,  Derby  (1881),  175-177. 

2  Ibid.,  157.  3  Library,  i.  417. 

4  Stow,  i.  194.  Leland,  iv.  48,  has  a  note  of  four  MSS.  "  in  bibliotheca  Petrina 
Londini."     Possibly  this  library  was  formed  by  Rector  Hugh  Damlet,  who  was 
a  learned  man,  and  gave  sqveral  books  to  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge. — 
James10,  184. 

5  Archaeologia,  xlv.  118,  1 20.  G  JR.  H.  S.,  vi.  205. 


CHAPTER    VI 
ACADEMIC   LIBRARIES:   OXFORD 

"  Ingenia  hominum  rem  publicam  fecerunt." 

§1 

PROBABLY  a  few  scribes  plied  their  craft  in  Oxford 
in  early  days  long  before  the  students  began  to 
make  a  settlement,  for  the  town  had  been  a  flourish- 
ing borough,  one  of  the  largest  in  England.  But  until  the 
end  of  the  twelfth  century  we  hear  nothing  about  books 
and  their  makers  or  users  in  Oxford.  Then  we  find  illu- 
minators, bookbinders,  parchmenters,  and  a  scribe  referred 
to  in  a  document  relating  to  the  sale  of  land  in  Cat  Street. 
This  record  is  very  significant,  as  it  suggests  the  active 
employment  of  book-makers  in  the  centre  of  Oxford's 
student  life.  St.  Mary's  Church  was  the  hub.  Cat  Street, 
School  Street  running  parallel  with  it  from  High  Street 
to  the  north  boundary,  and  Schydyard  Street,  the  continua- 
tion of  School  Street  on  the  southern  side  of  High  Street, 
alleys  of  the  usual  medieval  narrowness  and  mean  appear- 
ance, the  buildings  on  either  hand  almost  touching  one 
another,  and  the  way  dark — were  the  haunts  of  masters 
and  scholars  and  all  those  depending  on  them.  Students, 
old  and  young,  of  high  station  and  low,  are  crowded  in 
lodging-houses,  many  of  which  are  shabby,  dirty,  and 
disreputable.  Hence  they  come  forth  to  play  their  games 
or  carry  on  their  feuds.  Some  haunt  taverns  and  worse 


133 


134          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

places.  Others  eke  out  their  means  by  begging  at  street 
corners.  All  get  their  teaching  by  gathering  round  masters 
whose  rostrum  is  the  church  doorstep  or  the  threshold  of 
the  lodging-house.  Amid  the  manifold  distractions  of  this 
queerly-ordered  life  the  maker  and  seller  of  books  earns 
what  living  he  can;  his  chief  patrons  being  indigent 
masters,  who  often  must  starve  themselves  to  get  books,  and 
students  so  poor  that  pawning  becomes  a  custom  regulated 
by  the  University  itself. 

Not  till  the  University  became  firmly  established  as  a 
corporate  body  could  a  common  library  be  formed.  The 
beginning  was  simple.  The  first  books  reserved  for 
common  use  had  their  home  in  St.  Mary's  Church :  some 
lay  in  chests,  and  were  lent  in  exchange  for  a  suitable 
pledge ;  others  were  chained  to  desks  so  that  students 
could  readily  refer  to  them.  These  books  were  almost 
certainly  theological  in  character,  and  all  were  no  doubt 
given  by  benefactors,  now  unknown.  Such  a  gift  was 
received  early  in  the  thirteenth  century  from  Roger  de 
L'Isle,  Dean  of  York,  who  gave  a  Bible,  divided  into  four 
parts  for  the  convenience  of  copyists,  and  the  Book  of 
Exodus,  glossed,  but  old  and  of  little  value.1  Possibly 
some  books  remained  in  the  church  even  after  an  in- 
dependent library  was  founded,  for  as  late  as  1414  a  copy 
of  Nicholas  de  Lyra  was  chained  in  the  chancel  for  public 
use,  where  it  was  inspected  by  the  Chancellor  and  proctors 
every  year.2 

To  a  "  good  clerk  "  who  had  gathered  his  learning  at 
three  Universities — the  arts  at  Paris,  canon  law  at  Oxford, 
and  theology  at  Cambridge — the  University  library  appro- 
priately owes  its  origin.  Bishop  Cobham  left  his  books 

1 N.   Bishop's  Collectanea,   now   at  Cambridge  ;   Wood,  Hist,   and  Aniiq. 
U.  of  O.,  ed.  Gutch,  I7962,  vol.  ii.  pt.  2,  910. 
2  Mun.  Acad.,  270. 


PL  A  TE  XXI II 


ILLUMINATOR  OF  ST.  ALBANS 


-:- 


^  '.  .;t^.A 

T";.       ..       ::'^^i\^, 

,.^^i^r;v, 

•;".-  'L'"-'     '  ^:!  ,  -••     *  ,-••  ^^A  ^     *.      '-*J  *     '  _^  f*    '    ""  f    f  * 


I 


DOCUMENT  TRANSFERRING  LAND   IN    OXFORD, 
BEARING  THE   NAMES   OF   SEVEN   MEMBERS  OF 
THE   BOOK  TRADE,   C.  1180 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     135 

and  three  hundred  and  fifty  marks  for  this  purpose  in 
1327.  He  had  proposed  to  build  a  two-storied  building, 
the  lower  chamber  to  be  the  Congregation  House,  and  the 
upper  a  library ;  or  perhaps  the  Congregation  House  was 
already  standing,  and  he  had  the  idea  of  adding  another 
story,  for  use  as  an  oratory  and  library.  Therein  his 
books  would  bide  when  he  died.1  Not  till  long  after  his 
death  was  the  building  completed.  His  books  did  not 
come  to  the  University  without  much  trouble.  Bequests 
were  elusive  in  the  Middle  Ages,  for  people  sometimes 
dreamed  of  projects  they  could  not  realize  while  they  lived, 
and  sanguinely  hoped  their  executors  would  win  prayers 
for  the  dead  by  successfully  stretching  poor  means  to  a 
good  end.  Cobham  died  in  debt.  His  books  were  pawned 
to  settle  his  estate  and  pay  for  his  funeral.  Adam  de 
Brome  redeemed  the  pledges,  and  handed  them  over,  not 
to  the  University,  but  to  his  newly-founded  college  of 
Oriel.2  In  peace  the  books  were  enjoyed  at  Oriel  until 
four  years  after  de  Brome's  death.  The  Fellows  claimed 
them,  it  appears,  not  only  because  he  redeemed  them,  but 
because,  as  impropriating  rectors  of  the  church,  both 
building  and  library  were  theirs,  they  argued,  by  right. 
The  University  was  equally  persistent  in  its  claim.  At 
last,  ten  years  after  Cobham's  death,  the  Commissary, 
taking  mean  advantage  of  the  small  number  of  Fellows  in 
residence  in  autumn,  went  to  Oriel  with  "  a  multitude  of 
others,"  and  brought  the  books  away  by  force.  Thereafter 
the  University  held  them,  but  it  took  nearly  seventy  years 
to  settle  the  dispute  about  them,  and  to  decide  the  owner- 
ship of  the  Congregation  House  (i4io).3 

Long  before  1410  the  "good  clerk's"  books  had  been 
made  of  real  service  to  students.      Fittings  were  put  up  in 

1  Clark,  144;  Pietas  O.,  5  ;  Lyte,  97  ;  Oriel  document. 

2  O.H.S.  5  Collect.,  i.  62-65.  a  Univ.  Arch.  W.  P.  G.,  4-6. 


136          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

the  library  room  (1365).  Then  regulations  for  managing 
the  library  were  drawn  up  (1367).  The  books  were  to  be 
put  in  the  chamber  over  the  Congregation  House,  marshalled 
in  convenient  order  and  chained.  There,  at  certain  times, 
scholars  were  to  have  access  to  them.  Now  first  appeared 
upon  the  scene  a  University  librarian.  The  University's 
means  were  slender,  and  £40  worth  of  the  books  were  sold 
to  provide  a  stipend  for  a  chaplain-librarian  :  in  place  of 
these  books  others  of  less  value  were  bought ;  probably 
some  of  Cobham's  books  were  finely  illuminated,  and  the 
intention  was  to  purchase  less  costly  copies  in  their  stead. 
The  chaplain  was  to  pray  for  the  souls  of  Cobham  and  of 
University  benefactors ;  and  to  have  the  charge  of  the 
bishop's  books,  of  the  books  in  the  chests,  and  of  any  books 
coming  to  the  University  afterwards.1 

We  can  easily  imagine  what  the  library  was  like.  The 
chamber  over  the  Congregation  House  is  small,  scarcely 
larger  than  the  average  class-room  of  to-day ;  lighted  by 
seven  windows  on  each  side.  Between  some,  if  not  all,  of 
the  windows  bookcases  would  stand  at  right  angles  to  the 
wall,  forming  little  alcoves,  fit  for  the  quiet  pursuit  of 
knowledge.  Learning  itself  was  shackled.  Chains  from  a 
bar  running  the  length  of  each  case  secured  the  books, 
which  could  only  be  read  on  the  slope  fixed  a  few  feet 
above  the  floor.  In  each  alcove  was  a  bench  for  readers 
to  sit  upon.  A  large  and  conspicuous  board,  with  titles 
and  names  of  benefactors  written  upon  it  in  a  fair  hand, 
hung  up  in  the  room.2  Here  then  would  come  the  flower 
of  Oxford  scholarship  to  study,  any  time  after  eight  in  the 
morning.  Every  student  is  welcome  if  he  does  not  enter 
in  wet  clothing,  or  bring  in  ink,  or  a  knife,  or  dagger.  We 
like  to  picture  this  small  room,  fitted  with  solid,  rude 
furniture,  monastic  in  its  austerity  of  appearance ;  full  of 

1  Mun.  Acad.,  226-228.  2  Ibid.,  267. 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     137 

students  working  eagerly  in  their  quest  for  knowledge — 
making  extracts  in  pencil,  or  with  styles  on  their  tablets, 
amid  a  silence  broken  only  by  the  crackle  of  vellum  leaves, 
and  the  rattle  of  a  chain. 

Such  a  picture  would  perhaps  be  overdrawn.  Young 
Oxford  was  not  always  quiet,  or  whole-heartedly  studious. 
The  liberal  regulations  seem  to  have  been  liable  to  abuse. 
Students  soiled  and  damaged  the  books.  The  little  room 
was  more  than  full :  it  was  overcrowded  with  scholars,  and 
with  "  throngs  of  visitors "  who  disturbed  the  readers. 
After  1412  only  graduates  and  religious  who  had  studied 
philosophy  for  eight  years  could  enter  the  library,  and 
while  there  they  must  be  robed.  Even  such  mature 
students  had  to  make  solemn  oath,  in  the  Chancellor's 
presence,  to  use  the  books  properly :  make  no  erasures  or 
blots,  or  otherwise  spoil  the  precious  writing.1  Under  these 
regulations  the  library  was  open  from  nine  to  eleven  in  the 
morning,  and  from  one  to  four  in  the  afternoon,  Sundays 
and  mass  days  excepted.  Strangers  of  eminence  and  the 
Chancellor  could  pay  a  visit  at  any  time  by  daylight.  The 
chaplain,  who  was  to  be  a  man  of  parts,  of  proved 
morality  and  uprightness,  now  received  io6s.  8d.  a  year. 
The  Proctors  were  bound  to  pay  this  stipend  half-yearly, 
with  punctuality,  or  be  fined  the  heavy  sum  of  forty 
shillings :  the  chaplain,  it  is  explained,  must  have  no 
grievance  to  nurse — no  ground  for  carrying  out  his  duties 
in  a  slovenly  or  perfunctory  manner.  He,  indeed,  was  an 
important  officer.  For  health's  sake  he  must  have  a 
month's  holiday  during  the  long  vacation.  As  it  was 
absurd  for  him  to  have  fewer  perquisites  than  those  below 
him  in  station,  every  beneficed  graduate,  at  graduation,  was 
required  to  give  him  robes.2  The  finicking  character  of 
these  regulations  suggests  that  the  University  statute- 

1  Mun.  Acad.,  265.  2  Ibid.,  261  et  seq. 


138  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

maker  had  as  great  a  dislike  for  "understandings"  as 
Dr.  Newman. 

Thus  was  established  firmly,  in  the  early  years  of  the 
fifteenth  century,  a  University  Library,  an  important  resort 
of  students ;  the  proper  place,  as  the  common  rendezvous 
of  members  of  the  University,  for  publishing  the  Lollard 
doctrines  condemned  at  London  in  1411.  No  town  in 
England  was  better  supplied  with  libraries  than  Oxford, 
for  besides  the  collections  of  the  University,  the  monastic 
colleges  and  the  convents,  libraries  were  already  formed  at 
Merton,  University,  Oriel  and  New  Colleges.  Such  progress 
in  providing  scholars'  armouries  is  remarkable,  the  greater 
part  of  it  being  accomplished  during  a  period  of  great 
social  and  religious  unrest — not  the  unrest  of  a  wind-fretted 
surface,  but  of  a  grim  and  far-sweeping  underswell — a 
period  when  pestilence,  violent  tempests  and  earthquakes, 
seemed  bodeful  of  Divine  displeasure;  not  a  time  surely 
when  the  studious  life  would  be  attractive,  or  when  much 
care  would  be  taken  to  establish  libraries,  unless  indeed 
controversy  made  recourse  to  books  more  necessary  or  the 
signs  of  the  times  gave  birth  to  a  greater  number  of 
benefactors.1 

But  the  University  library  was  to  become  the  richest 
and  most  considerable  in  the  town.  Benefactors  were  well 
greeted.  Besides  praying  for  their  souls — and  some  of 
them,  like  Bishop  Reed,  were  pathetically  anxious  about 
the  prayers — the  University  showed  every  reasonable  sign 
of  its  gratitude :  posted  up  donors'  names  in  the  library 
itself;  submitted  each  gift  to  congregation  three  days  after 
receiving  it,  and  within  twelve  days  later  had  it  chained 

1  After  the  Black  Death,  Trinity  Hall,  Cambridge,  possibly  Corpus  Christi, 
Cambridge,  Canterbury  College  and  New  College,  Oxford,  were  founded,  and 
University  (Clare)  Hall,  Cambridge,  was  enlarged,  partly,  at  any  rate,  to  repair 
the  ravages  the  plague  had  made  among  the  clergy.  —  Camb,  Lit.,  ii.  354  ;  cf. 
Hist.  MSS.,  5th  Rep.,  450. 


PL  A  TE  XXIV 


DUKE  HUMFREY  AND  ELEANOR  OF  GLOUCESTER 
JOINING  THE  CONFRATERNITY   OF   ST.  ALBANS 


ANCIENT  ROOF  OF  DUKE   HUMFREY'S  LIBRARY, 
SHOWING  THE  ARMS    OF  THE  UNIVERSITY  AND 
OF  SIR  THOMAS   BODLEY 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     139 

up.1  Many  gifts  of  books  were  received,  some  from  the 
highest  in  the  land  :  from  King  Henry  the  Fourth  and  his 
warlike  and  ambitious  sons — Henry  v,  Clarence,  Bedford, 
and  Gloucester ;  from  Edmund,  Earl  of  March ;  from 
prelates — Archbishop  Arundel,  Repyngton  of  Lincoln, 
Courtney  of  Norwich,  and  Molyneux  of  Chichester ;  from 
great  Abbot  Whethamstede  of  St.  Albans ;  from  wealthy 
Archdeacon  Browne  or  Cordone ;  from  rich  citizens  of 
London — Thomas  Knolles  the  grocer  and  T.  Grauntt ;  and 
from  Henry  Vl's  physician,  John  Somersett.  John  Tiptoft, 
Earl  of  Worcester,  also  promised  books  worth  five  hundred 
marks,  but  after  his  death  they  did  not  come  to  hand.2 

By  far  the  most  generous  of  friends  was  the  Duke  of 
Gloucester,  whose  first  gift  was  made  before  141  3,3  and  his 
last  when  he  died  in  1447.  His  record  as  the  helper  and 
protector  of  Oxford,  his  patronage  of  learning,  and  of  such 
exponents  of  it  as  Titus  Livius  of  Forli,  Leonardo  Bruni, 
Lydgate  and  Capgrave,  the  fact  that,  notwithstanding  his 
"  staat  and  dignyte," 

"  His  courage  never  doth  appall 
To  study  in  bokes  of  antiquitie," 

earned  for  him  the  name  of  the  "  good  "  duke — an  appella- 
tion to  which  the  shady  labyrinth  of  his  career  as  a  politician, 
as  a  persecutor  of  the  Lollards,  and  as  a  licentious  man,  did 
not  entitle  him.  But  then  Oxford — and  its  library — was 
most  in  need  of  such  a  friend  as  this  English  Gismondo 
Malatesta ;  not  only  on  account  of  his  generosity,  but 
because  his  royal  connexions  enabled  him  to  exert  influence 
on  the  University's  behalf,  both  at  home  and  abroad. 

Of  the  character  of  the  Duke's  gifts  in   1413  and  in 

1  Mun.  Acad.,  267. 

2  Ibid.,  266;  O.  H.  S.  35-36,  Ansley,  222,  229,  279,  313,  373,  382,  397. 

3  Mun.  Acad.,  266. 


140 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


1430  we  know  nothing:  in  1435  he  gave  books  and  money, 
but  how  many  books  or  how  much  money  is  not  recorded. 
Three  years  later  the  University  sought  another  gift  from 
him,  and  he  forthwith  sent  no  fewer  than  120  volumes 
(I439).1  The  University's  gratitude  was  unbounded.  On 
certain  festivals  during  the  Duke's  lifetime  prayers  were  to 
be  said  for  him,  within  ten  days  after  he  died  a  funeral 


OLD  VIEW  OF   DUKE   HUMFREY  S   LIBRARY. 

service  was  to  be  celebrated,  and  on  every  anniversary  of 
his  death  he  and  his  consort  were  to  be  commemorated.2 
Their  letters  were  fulsome :  as  a  founder  of  libraries  he  was 
compared  with  Julius  Caesar — a  compliment  also  paid  him 


1  The  indenture  in  which  the  books  are  catalogued  mentions  nine  books 
received  before:  possibly  these  were  the  gift  of  1435. — Mun.  Acad.,  758  ; 
O.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  177. 

-  O.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  184-90. 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     141 

about  the  same  time  by  Pier  Candid  Decembrio  ;  Parliament 
was  besought  to  thank  him  "  hertyly,  and  also  prey  Godd 
to  thanke  hym  in  tyme  commyng,  wher  goode  dedys  ben 
rewarded  "  ; l  as  a  prince  he  was  most  serene  and  illustrious, 
lord  of  glorious  renown,  son  of  a  king,  brother  of  a  king, 
uncle  of  a  king,  "  the  very  beams  of  the  sun  himself"  ;  as  a 
donor,  as  greatly  and  munificently  liberal  as  the  recipients 
were  lowly  and  humble.2 

Congregation  further  marked  its  appreciation  by  decree- 
ing a  fresh  set  of  library  regulations.  A  new  register, 
containing  a  list  of  the  books  already  given,  was  to  be 
made,  and  deposited  in  the  chest  "  of  five  keys  " ;  lists  were 
also  to  be  written  in  the  statute  books.  No  volume  was 
to  be  sold,  given  away,  exchanged,  pledged,  lent  to  be 
copied,  or  removed  from  the  library — except  when  it  needed 
repair,  or  when  the  Duke  himself  wanted  to  borrow  it,  as 
he  could,  though  only  under  indenture.3  All  books  for 
the  study  of  the  seven  liberal  arts — the  trivium  and  the 
quadrivium — and  the  three  philosophies  were  to  be  kept  in 
a  chest  called  the  "  chest  of  the  three  philosophies  and  the 
seven  sciences " ;  a  name  suggesting  a  talisman,  like  the 
golden  fleece  or  the  Holy  Grail,  for  which  one  would  ex- 
change the  world  and  all  its  ways.  The  librarian  had 
charge  of  this  wonderful  chest.  From  it,  by  indenture,  he 
could  lend  books — apparently  these  books  were  excepted 
from  the  general  rule — to  masters  of  arts  lecturing  in  these 
subjects,  or,  if  there  were  no  lecturers,  to  principals  of  halls 
and  masters.  And,  following  older  custom,  a  stationer  set 
upon  each  book  a  price  greater  than  its  real  value,  to  lead 
borrowers  to  take  more  care  of  it.4  From  a  manuscript 
preserved  in  the  library  of  Earl  Fitzwilliam  at  Wentworth 

1  O.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  184.  2  Mun.  Acad.,  758. 

3  O.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  246. 

4  0.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  187-89  ;  Mun.  Acad.,  326-29. 


142  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

Woodhouse  are  taken  the  following  curious  lines  indicating 
the  character  and  arrangement  of  his  books  : — 

"At  Oxenford  thys  lord  his  bookis  fele  [many] 
Hath  eu'y  clerk  at  werk.     They  of  hem  gete 
Metaphisic  ;    phisic  these  rather  feele  ; 
They  natural,  moral  they  rather  trete  ; 
Theologie  here  ye  is  with  to  mete ; 
Him  liketh  loke  in  boke  historial. 
In  deskis  XII  hym  selve  as  half  a  strete 
Hath  boked  their  librair  uniu'al."  1  [universal] 

A  year  later  Gloucester  sent  7  more  books ;  then 
after  a  while  9  more  ( 1 440-4 1);2  and  a  little  later  still 
his  largest  gift,  amounting  to  135  volum.es.  These  hand- 
some accessions  made  the  collection  the  finest  academic 
library  in  England,  not  excepting  the  excellent  library  of 
380  volumes  then  at  Peterhouse.  It  had  a  character 
of  its  own.  The  usual  overwhelming  mass  of  Bibles, 
of  church  books,  of  the  Fathers  and  the  Schoolmen 
does  not  depress  us  with  its  disproportion.  The  collec- 
tion was  strong  in  astronomy  and  medicine :  Ptolemy, 
Albumazar,  Rhazes,  Serapion,  Avicenna,  Haly  Abenragel, 
Zaael,  and  others  were  all  represented.  Besides  these,  there 
was  a  fine  selection  of  the  classics — Plato,  Aristotle,  including 
the  Politica  and  Ethica^  ^Eschines'  orations,  Terence,  Varro's 
De  Originae  linguae  Latinae,  Cicero's  letters,  Verrine  and 
other  orations,  and  "  opera  viginti  duo  Tullii  in  magno 
volumine,"  Livy,  Ovid,  Seneca's  tragedies,  Quintilian,  Aulus 
Gellius,  Noctes  Atticae,  the  Golden  Ass  of  Apuleius,  and 
Suetonius.  But  the  most  interesting  items  in  the  list  of 
his  books  are  the  new  translations  of  Plato,  and  of  Aristotle, 
whose  Ethica  was  rendered  by  Leonardo  Bruni ;  the  Greek 
and  Latin  dictionary ;  and  the  works  of  Dante,  Petrarch 
(de  Vita  solitaria,  de  Rebus  memorandis^  de  Remediis 

1  Athenczum,'Nov.  17,  '88,  p.  664;  Hulton,  Clerk  of  Oxford  in  Fiction,  35. 

2  O.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  197..  204. 


PLATE  XXV 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     143 

utriusque  fortunae],  Boccaccio,  and  of  Coluccio    Salutati's 
letters.1 

The  library's  character  might  still  further  have  been 
freshened  had  Gloucester's  bequest  of  his  Latin  books — the 
books,  we  may  suppose,  he  himself  prized  too  highly  to 
part  with  during  his  lifetime — been  carried  into  effect2 

"  Our  right  special  Lord  and  mighty  Prince  the  Duke  of 
Gloucester,  late  passed  out  of  this  world, — whose  soul  God 
assoil  for  his  high  mercy, — not  long  before  his  decease, 
being  in  our  said  University  among  all  the  doctors  and 
masters  of  the  same  assembled  together,  granted  unto  us 
all  his  Latin  books,  to  the  loving  of  God,  increase  of  clergy 
and  cunning  men,  to  the  good  governance  and  prosperity 
of  the  realm  of  England  without  end  .  .  .  the  which  gift 
oftentimes  after,  by  our  messengers,  and  also  in  his  last 
testament,  as  we  understand,  he  confirmed."  But  alas ! 
Gloucester's  bequest  was  even  more  elusive  than 
Cobham's.  These  books  they  could,  "  by  no  manner  of 
labours,  since  he  deceased,  obtain."3  What  followed  is 
interesting.  Letters  asking  for  the  books  were  sent  to  the 
king,  to  Mr.  John  Somersett,  His  Majesty's  physician,  "  lately 
come  to  influence,"  to  William  of  Waynflete,  provost  of  the 
king's  pet  project,  Eton  College,  and  much  in  favour ;  and 
to  the  king's  chamberlain  (1447).  As  these  appeals  were 
unavailing,  another  letter  was  sent  to  the  king  in  1450, 
and  several  others  to  influential  persons,  some  being  to 
Gloucester's  executors  ;  then,  in  the  same  year,  the  House  of 
Lords  was  petitioned.  All  this  wire-pulling  failed  to  serve 
its  end.  The  University  became  angry.  An  outspoken 
letter  was  sent  to  Master  John  Somersett,  "  lately  come  to 

1  See  lists  of  Gloucester's  books  in  Mun.  Acad.,  758-65  ;  0.  H.  S.,  Anstey, 
179,  183,  232. 

2  He  also  owned  some  French  manuscripts  :  what  he  gave  to  Oxford  formed 
part  of  a  much  larger  private  library. 

3  0.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  294-95. 


144  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

influence " :  "  Our  proctor,  Mr.  Luke,  tells  us  of  your 
efforts  for  us  to  obtain  the  books  given  by  the  late  Duke 
of  Gloucester,  and  of  your  intercession  with  the  king  in  our 
cause :  also  that  you  propose  to  add,  of  your  own  gift, 
other  books  to  his  bequest."  All  this  is  very  good  of  you, 
the  letter  proceeds,  in  effect,  "  but  how  is  it  that,  under 
these  circumstances,  the  Duke's  books,  which  came  into 
your  custody,  are  not  delivered  to  us,  unless  it  be  that 
some  powerful  influence  is  exerted  to  prevent  it ;  for  a 
steadfast  and  good  man  will  not  be  made  to  swerve  from 
the  path  of  justice  by  interest  or  cupidity.  Use  your 
endeavours  to  get  these  books  :  so  do  us  a  good  favour  ;  and 
clear  your  character."  Three  years  later  it  was  discovered 
the  books  were  scattered  and  in  private  hands  (I453),1  or, 
as  seems  likely,  at  King's  College,  Cambridge,  and  Eton. 

Now  the  library  over  the  Congregation  House  was  all 
too  small.  A  Divinity  School  seems  to  have  been  first 
projected  in  1423;  building  began  about  seven  years 
later ; 2  but  the  work  proceeded  very  slowly,  owing  to 
want  of  money,  which  the  authorities  tried  to  raise  in 
various  ways,  even  by  granting  degrees  on  easy  terms. 
When  Gloucester's  books  came  to  overcrowd  the  old 
library — and  the  books  were  chained  so  closely  together 
that  a  student  when  reading  one  prevented  the  use  of 
three  or  four  books  near  to  it — the  idea  was  apparently 
first  mooted  of  erecting  a  bigger  room  over  the  new  school, 
where  scholars  might  study  far  from  the  hum  of  men  (a 
strepitu  saeculari}.  The  University  sent  an  appeal  to  the 
Duke  for  help  to  carry  out  this  scheme  (1445),  but  he  had 
then  lost  power  and  was  in  trouble,  and  does  not  seem  to 
have  responded  favourably,  albeit  they  suggested  adroitly 
the  new  library  should  bear  his  name.3  The  building  was 

1  0.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  285-86,  300-1,  318. 

2  0.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  9,  46.  3  0.  H.  S.  35,  Anstey,  245-46. 


PLATE 


:- 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     145 

finished  forty  years  after  his  death.  This  ultimate  success 
was  due  chiefly  to  the  generosity  of  Cardinal  Beaufort,  the 
Duchess  of  Suffolk,  and  Cardinal  Kempe — whose  own 
library  was  magnificent.1 

By  1488,  then,  the  University  was  in  full  enjoyment  of 
the  chamber  known  ever  since  as  Duke  Humfrey's  Library, 
the  noblest  storehouse  of  books  then  existing  in  England.2 
In  the  same  year  an  old  scholar,  not  known  by  name, 
gave  31  books,  and  in  1490  Dr.  Litchfield,  Archdeacon 
of  Middlesex,  presented  132  volumes  and  a  sum  of  .£200. 
These  gifts  mark  the  culminating  point  in  the  history  of  the 
first  University  library — a  collection  over  a  century  and  a 
half  old,  accumulated  slowly  by  the  forethought  and  gener- 
osity of  the  University's  friends,  only,  alas !  in  a  few  years' 
time  to  be  almost  completely  dispersed  and  destroyed. 

§" 

Before  speaking  of  the  dispersion  of  the  University 
collection  it  will  be  well  to  observe  what  had  been  done  in 
the  colleges,  where  libraries  must  have  formed  an  important 
part  of  the  collegiate  economy.  Books,  indeed,  were  eagerly 
sought,  carefully  guarded  and  preserved ;  and  wealthy  Fellows 
— even  Fellows  not  to  be  described  as  wealthy — often  proved 
their  affection  for  their  college  by  giving  manuscripts. 

The  first  house  of  the  University,  William  of  Durham's 
Hall  or  University  Hall  (now  University  College),  was  founded 
between  1249  and  1292,  when  its  statutes  were  drawn  up. 
In  these  statutes  are  the  earliest  regulations  of  the  Uni- 
versity for  dealing  with  books  in  its  possession.3  It  seems 


1  0.  H.  S.  35-36,  Anstey,  326,  439. 

2  The  plan  resembled  that  of  the  old  library  built  by  Adam  de  Brome.     For 
notes  on  the  architectural  history  of  this  library,  see  Pietas  O. 

3  Mun.  Acad.,  58,  59  ;  cf.  Smith,  Annals  of  rj.  (7.,  37-39. 

10 


i46          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

clear  that  the  college  enjoyed  a  library — perhaps  of  some  im- 
portance,— with  excellent  regulations  for  its  use,  at  the  end  of 
the  thirteenth  century.  What  is  true  of  University  College 
is  true  also  of  nearly  all  the  other  colleges.  Although  most 
of  them  were  not  rich  foundations,  one  of  the  first  efforts 
of  a  society  was  to  collect  books  for  common  use.  A 
few  years  after  Merton's  inception  (1264)  the  teacher  of 
grammar  was  supplied  with  books  out  of  the  common 
purse,  and  directions  were  given  for  the  care  of  books.1 
To  Balliol,  Bishop  Gravesend  of  London  bequeathed  books 
(1336)  some  fifty  years  after  the  statutes  were  given  by 
the  founder's  wife.2  Four  years  later  Sir  William  de 
Felton  presented  to  the  college  the  advowson  of  the 
Church  of  Abboldesley,  so  that  the  number  of  scholars 
could  be  raised,  each  could  have  sufficient  clothing,  receive 
twelvepence  a  week,  and  possess  in  common  books  relating 
to  the  various  Faculties.3  The  earliest  reference  to  the 
library  of  Exeter  College,  or  Stapledon  Hall,  occurs  also 
about  half  a  century  after  its  foundation  :  in  1366  payment 
was  made  for  copying  a  book  called  Domyltone — possibly 
one  of  John  of  Dumbleton's  works.  Oriel  College  either 
had  a  library  from  its  foundation,  or  the  regulations  of 
1329  were  drawn  up  for  Bishop  Cobham's  books,  which 
Adam  de  Brome  had  redeemed.  In  1375  Oriel  certainly 
had  its  own  library  of  nearly  one  hundred  volumes,  more 
than  half  of  them  being  on  theology  and  philosophy,  with 
some  translations  of  Aristotle,  but  otherwise  not  a  single 
classic  work ;  a  collection  to  be  fairly  considered  as 
representative  of  the  academic  libraries  of  this  period.4 
Queen's  College  was  one  of  those  to  which  Simon  de  Bredon, 
the  astronomer,  bequeathed  books  in  1368,  nearly  thirty 

1  Commiss.  Docts.,  Oxford,  i.,  Statutes,  p.  24.  2  Lyte,  181. 

3  Paravicini,  Ball.  Coll.,  169,  173. 

4  6>,  H.  S.  5,  Collect.,  i.  66. 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     147 

years  after  its  foundation.1  "  Seint  Marie  College  of 
Wynchestr,"  or  New  College,  made  a  better  start  than  any 
house  (1380).  The  founder,  William  of  Wykeham,  en- 
dowed it  with  no  fewer  than  240  or  243  volumes,  of  which 
135  or  138  were  theology,  2  8  philosophy,  4 1  canon  law, 
36  civil  law;  somebody  unnamed,  but  possibly  the  founder, 
presented  37  volumes  of  medicine  and  15  chained  books 
in  the  library  ;  and  Bishop  Reed — also  the  good  friend  of 
Merton — gave  58  volumes  of  theology,  2  of  philosophy, 
and  3  of  canon  law.2  Lincoln  College  had  a  collection  of 
books  at  its  foundation  (1429);  Dr.  Gascoigne  gave  6 
manuscripts  worth  nearly  three  pounds  apiece  (1432);  and 
Robert  Flemming,  a  cousin  of  the  founder,  renowned  for 
his  travels  and  studies  and  collections  in  Italy,  left  a 
number  of  manuscripts,  variously  estimated  at  25 
and  38  in  number,  to  his  house.  In  1474  this 
college  had  135  manuscripts,  stored  in  seven  presses. 
Rules  for  the  use  of  books  were  included  in  the  first 
statutes  of  All  Souls  College,  founded  in  1438.  At 
Magdalen  the  library  had  a  magnificent  start  when 
William  of  Waynflete  brought  with  him  no  fewer  than 
800  volumes  on  his  visit  in  1481  ;  many  of  these  were 
printed  books. 

To  tell  the  story  of  each  of  these  early  college  libraries 
with  continuity  is  not  to  our  purpose,  and  is  perhaps  not 
feasible.  So  many  details  are  lacking.  We  do  not  know 
whether  all  the  libraries,  once  started,  were  constantly 
maintained  ;  but  it  is  reasonable  to  assume  they  were,  as 
records — a  few  only — of  purchases  and  donations  are 
preserved.  Usually  gifts  were  made  only  to  the  college  in 
which  the  donor  felt  special  interest,  but  sometimes  generous 

1  Hist.  MSS.,  ix.  I,  46. 

2  O.  H.  S.  32,  Collect.,  iii.  225;    cf.  Hist.  MSS.  2nd  Rep.,  App.   I35a; 
Walcott,  W.  of  Wykeham,  285. 


148  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

men  were  more  catholic.  Four  colleges — University,  Balliol, 
Merton,  and  Oriel — benefited  under  Bishop  Stephen 
Gravesend's  will  (1336);  six — University,  Balliol,  Merton, 
Exeter,  Oriel,  and  Queen's — under  the  will  of  Simon  de 
Bredon,  astronomer  and  sometime  Proctor  of  the  University 
(1368):  in  both  cases  the  testators  distributed  their  gifts 
among  all  the  secular  colleges  in  existence  at  the  time.1 
Dr.  Thomas  Gascoigne  gave  many  books  to  Balliol,  Oriel, 
Durham,  and  Lincoln  Colleges  (I432).2  William  Reed, 
Bishop  of  Chichester,  also  was  the  friend  of  more  than 
one  society,  for  New  College,  as  we  have  seen,  got  63 
volumes  from  him,  Exeter  some  others,  and  Merton 
99.3  Roger  Whelpdale  (d.  1423)  bequeathed  books  to 
Balliol  and  Queen's  Colleges.  Henry  VI  gave  23  manu- 
scripts to  All  Souls  College  (1440).  Robert  Twaytes 
gave  books  to  Balliol  in  145  I  :  his  example  was  followed 
by  George  Nevil,  Bishop  of  Exeter  and  afterwards  Arch- 
bishop of  York  (1455,  1475),  Dr.  Bole  (1478),  and  John 
Waltham  (1492).  An  old  Fellow  showed  his  gratitude 
to  University  College  by  bestowing  68  books,  mostly 
Scriptural  commentaries,  on  its  library  (1473).  Some  of 
the  gifts  were  smaller.4  A  chancellor  of  the  church  of 
York  bequeathed  a  single  volume  to  Merton.  Bishop 
Skirlaw — a  good  friend  of  the  college  in  other  ways — gave 
6  books  to  University  in  1404:  they  were  to  be  chained 
in  the  library  and  never  lent.  Such  gifts  were  received  as 
gratefully  as  the  larger  donations ;  indeed,  it  was  esteemed 
a  feather  in  the  cap  of  the  Master  that  while  he  held  office 
Skirlaw's  books  were  received.  Never  at  any  time  were 
books  more  highly  appreciated  than  in  Oxford  of  the 

1  Hist.  MSS.  9th  Rep.,  i.  46;  Reg.  Abp.  Whittlesey,  fo.  122,  cited  by  Lyte, 
181. 

2  Rogers,  Agric.  and  Prices,  iv.  599-600. 

3  O.  H.  S.  32,  Collect.,  223,  214-15. 

4  See  the  gifts  to  Exeter  College,  O.  H.  S.  27,  Boase,  passim. 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     149 

fourteenth  and  fifteenth  centuries.  Sometimes  gifts  took 
the  form  of  money  for  a  curious  purpose.  For  example, 
Robert  Hesyl,  a  country  rector,  bequeathed  the  sum  of 
6s.  8d.  "  ad  intitulandum  nomina  librorum  in  libraria  collegii 
Lincoln :  contentorum,  supra  dorsa  eorum  cooperienda 
cornu  et  clavis."  1  But  the  colleges  did  not  depend  wholly 
on  gifts,  for  records  are  preserved  of  purchases  for  Queen's 
College  in  1366—67  ;2  All  Souls  College  between  1449  and 
1460;  for  Magdalen  College  between  1481  and  1539;  for 
Merton  College  between  1322  and  1379;  and  for  New 
College  between  1462  and  1481. 

The  growth  of  the  libraries  made  the  provision  of 
special  bookrooms  a  necessity.  A  library  on  the  ground 
floor  of  University  College  is  referred  to  in  the  Bursar's 
Roll  (1391).  At  Merton  the  books  were  originally  kept 
in  a  chest  under  three  locks.  A  room  was  set  apart  quite 
early:  books  were  chained  up  in  it  in  1284.  In  1354  a 
carpenter  was  paid  for  fittings  and  "  deskis."  Bishop 
Reed  of  Chichester  erected  a  library  building  in  1377—79  J 
Wyllyot  and  John  Wendover  contributed  towards  the  cost, 
which  amounted  to  £462.  With  the  exception  of  the 
room  thrown  into  the  south  library  at  its  eastern  end,  of 
two  large  dormers,  and  of  the  glass  in  the  west  room,  the 
original  structure  has  been  altered  very  little,  and  it  is 
therefore  one  of  the  best  examples  of  a  medieval  library  in 
this  country.  When  the  old  library  of  Exeter  College  was 
first  used  we  do  not  know :  it  was  possibly  one  of  the 
tenements  originally  given  to  the  college  by  Peter  de 
Skelton  and  partly  repaired  by  the  founder.  Money  was 
disbursed  for  thatching  it  in  I375-3  Nearly  ten  years 
later  a  new  library  was  put  up.  Bishop  Brantingham  and 
John  More,  rector  of  St.  Petrock's,  Exeter,  contributed 

1  Mun.  Acad.,  ii.  706.  2  Hist.  MSS.  2nd  Rep.,  I4oa. 

3  Hist.  MSS.  App.  2nd  Rep.,  129;  0.  H.  S.  27,  Boase,  xlvii. 


150          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

handsomely  towards  the  cost ;  another  Bishop  of  Exeter, 
Edmund  Stafford, — in  whose  time  the  name  of  the  house 
was  changed  from  Stapledon  Hall  to  Exeter  College, — 
enlarged  the  building  in  1404;  and  Bishops  Grandisson, 
Brantingham,  Stafford,  and  Lacy  gave  books.1  In  the 
library  room  some  of  the  books  were  chained  to  desks,  and 
some  were  kept  in  chests.2  All  this  points  to  a  flourishing 
library  at  Exeter  ;  although,  on  occasions  when  their  yearly 
expenses  were  heavier  than  usual,  the  Fellows  were  obliged 
to  pawn  books  to  one  of  the  loan  chests  of  the  University, 
or  even  to  their  barber.3 

The  monastic  college  of  Durham  enjoyed  a  "  fayre 
library,  well-desked  and  well  flowred  withe  a  timber  Flowre 
over  it,"  built  in  1417  and  fitted  in  1431.*  Another  college 
belonging  to  the  monks  of  Christ  Church,  Canterbury, 
also  had  a  library,  which  had  been  replenished  with  books 
from  the  mother-house.5  In  1431  a  library  building  was 
begun  at  Balliol  College  by  Mr.  Thomas  Chace,  after  he 
had  resigned  the  office  of  Master.  Bishop  William  Grey, 
besides  enriching  his  college  with  manuscripts,  also  com- 
pleted the  home  for  them  (c.  1477),  on  a  window  of  which 
are  still  to  be  read  his  name  and  the  name  of  Robert 
Abdy,  the  Master. 


"  His  Deus  adjecit ;  Deus  his  det  gaudia  cell ; 
Abdy  perfecit  opus  hoc  Gray  presul  et  Ely."6 


1  Brantingham   gave  £20  towards  the  building  ;   More,  £10.     Account  of 
building  expenses,  amounting  to  ^57,  135.  5|d.,  is  given  in  O.  H.  S.,  27,  Boase, 
345  ;  see  p.  liii. 

2  O.  H.  S.  27,  Boase,  xlviii.     In  1392  "iiiij  pro  ligacione  septem  librorum  et 
id  pro  cervisia  in  eisdem  ligatoribus,   vid  erario  pro  labore  suo  circa  eosdem 
libros,  et  lid  Johanni  Lokyer  pro  impositione  eorundem  librorum  in  descis." 

3  Ibid.,  xlviii. 

4  The  building,  which  is  still  standing  as  a  part  of  Trinity  College,  cost  £42  ; 
fittings,  £6,  i6s.  8d.     Blakiston,  Trin.  Coll.,  26. 

5  James,  xlvii.  6  Cf.  Willis,  Arch.  Hist.  Camb.,  ii.  410. 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     151 

In  another  window,  on  the  north  side,  was  inscribed— 

"Conditor  ecce  novi  structus  hujus  fuit  Abdy. 
Praesul  et  huic  GEdi  Gray  libros  contulit  Ely." 

The  first  library  of  Oriel  College,  on  the  east  side  of 
the  quadrangle,  was  not  erected  until  about  1444  ;  before 
that  the  books  seem  to  have  been  kept  in  chests,  although 
the  collection  was  large  for  the  time.1  As  early  as  I  388-89 
payments  were  made  for  making  desks  for  the  library  of 
Queen's  College.2  In  the  case  of  New,  Lincoln,  All  Souls, 
and  Magdalen  Colleges,  library  rooms  were  included  when 
the  college  buildings  were  first  erected.  Magdalen's  library 
was  copied  from  All  Souls  :  the  windows  in  it  were  "  to  be 
as  good  as  or  better  than  "  those  in  the  earlier  foundation. 

§in 

Towards  the  end  of  the  fifteenth  century  the  beginning 
of  the  sad  end  of  all  this  good  work  may  be  traced.  Some 
part  of  the  collections  disappeared  gradually.  In  1458 
books  were  chained  at  Exeter  College,  because  some  of 
them  had  been  taken  away.  When  volumes  became 
damaged  and  worn  out,  they  were  not  replaced  by  others. 
Some  were  pledged,  and  although  every  effort  was  made 
to  redeem  them,  as  at  Exeter  College  in  1466,  1470, 
1472  and  1473,  yet  it  seems  certain  many  were  per- 
manently alienated.  Others  were  perhaps  sold,  or  given 
away,  as  John  Phylypp  gave  away  two  Exeter  College 
manuscripts  in  I468.3  The  University  library  was  in 
'similar  case.  When  Erasmus  saw  the  scanty  remains  of 


1  Willis,  iii.  410.  2  Hist.  MSS.  2nd  Rep.,  I4ia. 

3O.  H.  S.  27,  Boase;  O.  H.  S.  5,  Collect.,  62.  At  C.  C.,  Christ  Church, 
and  St.  John's  Colleges  the  least  useful  books  could  be  sold  if  the  libraries 
became  too  large. — Oxford  Stat. 


152  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

this  collection  he  could  have  wept.  "  Before  it  had 
continued  eighty  years  in  its  flourishing  state,"  writes 
Wood  of  the  library,  "  [it]  was  rifled  of  its  precious  treasure 
by  unreasonable  persons.  That  several  scholars  would, 
upon  small  pledges  given  in,  borrow  books  .  .  .  that  were 
never  restored.  Polydore  Virgil  .  .  .  borrowed  many  after 
such  a  way ;  but  at  length  being  denied,  did  upon  petition 
made  to  the  king  obtain  his  license  for  the  taking  out  of 
any  MS.  for  his  use  (in  order,  I  suppose,  for  the  collecting 
materials  for  his  English  History  or  Chronicle  of  England), 
which  being  imitated  by  others,  the  library  thereby  suffered 
very  great  loss."  Matters  became  still  worse.  Owing  to 
the  threatened  suppression  of  the  religious  houses,  the 
number  of  students  at  Oxford  decreased  enormously.  In 
I535>  l°8  men  graduated,  in  the  next  year  only  44  did 
so ;  until  the  end  of  Henry  vm's  reign  the  average  number 
graduating  was  57,  and  in  Edward's  reign  the  average  was 
33.1  Naturally,  therefore,  some  laxity  crept  into  the 
administration  of  the  University  and  the  colleges.  Active 
enemies  of  our  literary  treasures  were  not  behindhand. 
In  1535  Dr.  Layton,  visitor  of  monasteries,  descended 
upon  Oxford.  "  We  have  sett  Dunce  [Duns  Scotus]  in 
Bocardo,  and  have  utterly  banisshede  hym  Oxforde  for 
ever,  with  all  his  blinde  glosses,  and  is  nowe  made  a  comon 
servant  to  evere  man,  faste  nailede  up  upon  postes  in  all 
comon  howses  of  easment :  id  quod  oculis  meis  vidi. 
And  the  seconde  tyme  we  came  to  New  Colege,  affter  we 
hade  declarede  your  injunctions,  we  fownde  all  the  gret 
quadrant  court  full  of  the  leiffes  of  Dunce,  the  wynde 
blowyng  them  into  evere  corner.  And  ther  we  fownde 
one  Mr.  Grenefelde,  a  gentilman  of  Bukynghamshire, 
getheryng  up  part  of  the  saide  bowke  leiffes  (as  he  saide) 
therwith  to  make  hym  sewelles  or  blawnsherres  to  kepe  the 

1  Camb.  Lit.y  iii.  50. 


PLATE  XXV II 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   OXFORD     153 

dere  within  the  woode,  therby  to  have  the  better  cry  with 
his  howndes." l  A  commission  assembled  at  Oxford  in 
1550,  and  met  many  times  at  St.  Mary's  Church.  No 
documentary  evidence  of  their  treatment  of  libraries 
remains,  but  it  was  certainly  most  drastic.  Any  illuminated 
manuscript,  or  even  a  mathematical  treatise  illustrated  with 
diagrams,  was  deemed  unfit  to  survive,  and  was  thrown  out 
for  sale  or  destruction.  Some  of  the  college  libraries  did 
not  suffer  severely.  Most  of  Grey's  books  survived  in 
Balliol,  although  the  miniatures  were  cut  out.  Queen's, 
All  Souls,  and  Merton  came  through  the  ordeal  nearly 
unscathed.  But  Lincoln  lost  the  books  given  by  Gascoigne 
and  the  Italian  importations  of  Flemming ;  Exeter  College 
was  purged.  The  University  library  itself  was  entirely  dis- 
persed. One  of  the  commissioners,  "  by  name  Richard 
Coxe,  Dean  of  Christ  Church,  shewed  himself  so  zealous 
in  purging  this  place  of  its  rarities  .  .  .  that  .  .  .  savoured 
of  superstition,  that  he  left  not  one  of  those  goodly  MSS. 
given  by  the  before  mentioned  benefactors.  Of  all  which 
there  were  none  restored  in  Q.  Mary's  reign,  when  then  an 
inquisition  was  made  after  them,  but  only  one  of  the  parts 
of  Valerius  Maximus,  illustrated  with  the  Commentaries  of 
Dionysius  de  Burgo,  an  Augustine  Fryer,  and  with  the 
Tables  of  John  Whethamsteed,  Abbat  of  St.  Alban's. 
That  some  of  the  books  so  taken  out  by  the  Reformers  were 
burnt,  some  sold  away  for  Robin  Hood's  pennyworths,2 
either  to  Booksellers,  or  to  Glovers,  to  press  their  gloves, 
or  Taylors  to  make  measures,  or  to  bookbinders  to  cover 
books  bound  by  them,  and  some  also  kept  by  the  Re- 
formers for  their  own  use.  That  the  said  library  being 
thus  deprived  of  its  furniture  was  employed,  as  the  schools 
were,  for  infamous  uses.  That  in  laying  waste  in  that 
manner,  and  not  in  a  possibility  (as  the  academians 

1  Cam.  Soc.>  xxvi.  71.  2  I.e.  for  practically  nothing,  a  mere  song. 


154          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

thought)  of  restoring  it  to  its  former  estate,  they  ordered 
certain  persons  in  a  Convocation  (Reg.  I.  fol.  I57a)  held 
Jan.  25,  1555—56  to  sell  the  benches  and  desks  therein  ;  so 
that  being  stript  stark  naked  (as  I  may  say)  continued  so 
till  Bodley  restored  it."  l  The  only  cheerful  reference  to 
this  period  is  that  by  Wood,  who  tells  us  some  friendly 
people  bought  in  a  number  of  the  manuscripts,  and 
ultimately  handed  them  over  to  the  University  after  the 
library's  restoration.2  But  of  all  the  books  given  by  the 
Duke  of  Gloucester  only  three  are  now  in  the  Bodleian, 
and  only  three  others  in  Corpus  Christi,  Oriel,  and 
Magdalen.  The  British  Museum  possesses  nine ;  Cam- 
bridge one ;  private  collectors  two.  Six  are  in  France : 
two  Latin — both  Oxford  books — and  three  French  manu- 
scripts in  the  Bibliotheque  Nationale,  and  one  manuscript 
at  the  Bibliotheque  Ste.  Genevieve.  The  Ste.  Genevieve 
book  3  is  a  magnificent  Livy,  once  belonging  to  the  famous 
Louvre  Library.  It  bears  the  inscription  :  "  Cest  livre  est  a 
moy  Homfrey,  due  de  Gloucestre,  du  don  mon  tres  chier 
cousin  le  conte  de  Warewic.'H 

1  Wood  (Gutch),  918-19. 

2  With  Bodley's  noble  work  this  book  has  no  concern.     The  story  has  been 
told  briefly  in  Mr.   Nicholson's  Pietas  Oxoniensis,  and  with  more  detail  in  Dr. 
Macray's  Annals  of  the  Bodleian. 

3  MS.  franfats,  I.  i.  4  Delisle,  Le  Cabinet  des  MSS.,  i.  152. 


CHAPTER    VII 
ACADEMIC   LIBRARIES:    CAMBRIDGE 

§1 

AS  the  libraries  of  Cambridge  were  mostly  of  later 
foundation  than  those  at  Oxford,  and  as  the  collec- 
tions were  of  the  same  character,  it  is  less  necessary 
to  describe  them  in  detail,  especially  after  having  dealt 
fully  with  the  collections  of  the  sister  university.  Cam- 
bridge University  does  not  seem  to  have  owned  books  in 
common  until  the  first  quarter  of  the  fifteenth  century. 
Before  that,  in  1384,  the  books  intended  for  use  in  the 
University  were  submitted  to  the  Chancellor  and  Doctors, 
so  that  any  containing  heretical  and  objectionable  opinions 
could  be  weeded  out  and  burnt.  In  1408-9  it  was 
ordered  that  books  suspected  to  contain  Lollard  doctrines 
should  be  examined  by  the  authorities  of  both  Universities  ; 
if  approved  by  them  and  by  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury, 
they  could  be  delivered  to  the  stationers  for  copying,  but 
not  before.  And  in  1480  keepers  of  chests  were  forbidden 
to  receive  as  a  pledge  any  book  written  on  paper ^  Certain 
regulations  were  also  made  with  regard  to  the  status  of 
stationers  and  others  engaged  in  book-making  in  the  town. 
But  there  seems  to  have  been  no  common  library. 

About  the  time  when  Gloucester  made  his  first  gift  of 
books  to   Oxford  University  a  public   library  was  possibly 

1  Cooper,  i.  128,  152,  224. 
155 


156  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

"  founded  "  by  John  Croucher,  who  gave  a  copy  of  Chaucer's 
translation  of  Boethius'  De  Consolatione  philosophiae.  Richard 
Holme,  Warden  of  King's  Hall,  who  died  in  1424,  gave 
sixteen  volumes.  At  this  time  the  collection  amounted  to 
seventy-six  volumes.  Robert  Fitzhugh,  Bishop  of  London, 
now  left  two  books,  a  Textus  moralis  philosophiae  and 
Codeton  Super  quatuor  libros  Sententiarum  (1435—6).  By 
1435  or  1440  it  had  increased  to  one  hundred  and 
twenty-two  books :  theology  accounting  for  sixty-nine, 
natural  and  moral  philosophy  for  seventeen,  canon  law 
for  twenty- three,  medicine  for  five,  grammar  for  six,  and 
logic  and  sophistry  for  one  each.  Besides  Holme's  books 
there  were  in  this  library  eight  books  given  by  John 
Aylemer,  six  given  by  Thomas  Paxton,  ten  by  James 
Matissale,  five  each  by  John  Preston,  John  Water, 
Robert  Alne  (I44O),1  and  John  Tesdale :  other  benefactors 
gave  one  or  two  or  three.2 

In  1423  one  John  Herrys  or  Harris  gave  ten  pounds 
for  the  library,  possibly  for  a  building,  as  books  do  not 
seem  to  have  been  bought  with  it.3  A  common  library 
is  mentioned  in  I438.4  In  the  same  year  a  grant  was 
made  by  the  king  of  the  manor  of  Ruyslip  and  a  place 
called  Northwood  for  a  library.  The  first  room  was  erected 
between  this  year  and  1457.  After  1454  many  entries 
occur  in  the  University  accounts  for  the  roof  of  the  new 
chapel  and  the  library,  for  the  general  repairs  of  the  same 
buildings,  for  the  chaining  and  binding  of  books,  and  for 
their  custody  during  a  fire  in  King's  College  in  145 /.5  A 
sketch  of  the  Schools  quadrangle  drawn  about  1459  shows 
this  library,  libraria  nova,  above  the  Canon  Law  schools,  on 
the  west  side.6  Between  the  completion  of  this  library 

1  Surtees  Soc.,  xxx.  78-79.  2  Bradshaw,  19-34  ;  Willis,  iii.  404. 

3  Cooper,  i.  170  ;  Rotuli  Parl.,  iv.  321. 

4  Willis,  Arch.  Hist.  Camb.,  iii.  u.         5  Ibid.,  iii.  12.  6  Ibid.,  iii.  5. 


PL  A  TE  X  XVIII 


UiL 


a 


• 


-T 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:  CAMBRIDGE    157 

and  1470  the  south  side  of  the  quadrangle  was  built,  the 
school  of  civil  law  occupying  the  ground  floor,  and  the 
Great  Library  or  Common  Library  the  first  floor.  The 
second  extant  catalogue  of  books  (1473)  relates  to  the 
books  in  this  room :  possibly  the  west  room  had  been 
cleared  for  other  purposes.  Now  the  inventory  proves  the 
library  to  have  been  in  possession  of  three  hundred  and 
thirty  volumes,  stored  upon  eight  stalls  or  desks  on  the  north 
side  and  upon  nine  stalls  on  the  southern  side,  facing  King's 
College  Chapel.1  But  in  a  few  years  the  buildings  were 
extended  and  the  collection  augmented  munificently  by 
Thomas  Rotherham  or  Scot,  then  Chancellor  of  the 
University  and  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  afterwards  Archbishop 
of  York.  Rotherham  completed  the  building  begun  on 
the  east  side  of  the  quadrangle  by  erecting  the  library 
which  occupies  the  whole  of  the  first  floor  (1470—75).  In 
this  libraria  domini  cancellarii  his  own  books  were  stored. 
His  generosity  was  recognised  by  the  University  in  the 
fullest  possible  manner ;  special  care  was  taken  of  his 
books,  and  his  library  came  to  be  known  as  the  private 
library,  to  which  only  a  few  privileged  persons  were 
admitted,  while  the  great  library  remained  in  use  as  the 
public  room.2 

The  learned  Bishop  Tunstall  gave  some  Greek  books 
to  the  library  in  1529,  just  before  he  was  translated  to 
the  see  of  Durham.  Even  then,  however,  the  collection 
was  on  the  down  grade.  Nine  years  later,  owing  to  a 
decline  in  numbers  at  the  University  and  a  loss  of  revenue, 
some  of  the  books,  described  as  "  useless,"  were  sold.3 
Then  again,  in  1547,  occurs  a  more  significant  notice.  A 
Grace  was  passed  recommending  the  conversion  of  the 
great  or  common  library  into  a  school  for  the  Regius 

1  Bradshaw,  35-53  ;  C.  A.  S.  Coimn.,  ii.  258. 

2  Willis,  iii.  25.  3  Mullinger,  ii.  50. 


158  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

Professor  of  Divinity,  because  "  in  its  present  state  it  is  no 
use  to  anybody." 1  Neglect  and  worse  had  laid  this  part 
of  the  library  as  waste  as  Duke  Humfrey's  room  at  Oxford. 
Apparently  then  only  the  Chancellor's  library  remained. 
More  "  old "  books  were  removed  from  the  collection  in 
J572— 3-  In  this  same  year  a  catalogue  was  drawn  up. 
Only  one  hundred  and  seventy-seven  volumes  were  left : 
"  moste  parte  of  all  theis  bookes  be  of  velam  and  parchment, 
but  very  sore  cut  and  mangled  for  the  lymned  letters  and 
pictures."  2  Clearly  sad  havoc  had  been  played  with  this 
library,  which  had  started  with  so  much  promise. 

§" 

The  earliest  collegiate  libraries  were  Peterhouse, 
Pembroke  Hall,  Clare  Hall,  Trinity  Hall,  and  Gonville. 
Peterhouse  had  the  first  library  in  Cambridge.  Hugh  of 
Balsham,  Bishop  of  Ely,  introduced  into  an  Augustinian 
Hospital  at  Cambridge  a  number  of  scholars  who  were  to 
live  with  the  brethren.  Before  Hugh  died  the  brethren 
and  the  scholars  quarrelled,  and  the  latter  were  removed 
to  two  hostels  on  the  site  of  the  present  college  (1281—84). 
He  did  not  forget  to  provide  his  new  foundation  with 
books,  among  other  properties.  In  the  statutes  of  1344 
are  stringent  provisions  for  the  care  of  books,  which  prove 
that  the  society  had  a  library  worthy  of  some  thought. 
Clare  College  was  founded  by  the  University  as  University 
Hall  (1326),  then  refounded  twelve  years  later  by  Lady 
Elizabeth  de  Clare  as  Clare  Hall.  In  1355  she  bequeathed 
a  few  books.  Pembroke  College,  founded  in  1346,  re- 
ceived a  gift  of  ten  books  from  the  first  Master,  William 
Styband.  The  statutes  of  Trinity  Hall,  which  was 
founded  by  Bishop  William  Bateman  in  1350,  partly  to 

1  Willis,  iii.  25.  2  Ibid.,  iii.  25-2611. 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:  CAMBRIDGE    159 

repair  the  losses  of  scholarly  clergy  during  the  Black 
Death,  also  contain  a  special  section  relating  to  the  college 
books.  It  was  not  drawn  up  in  anticipation  of  the  forma- 
tion of  a  library,  for  the  founder  himself  gave  seventy 
volumes  on  civil  and  canon  law  and  theology,  besides 
fourteen  books  for  the  chapel ;  forty-eight,  including  seven 
chapel  books,  were  reserved  for  the  Bishop's  own  use  during 
his  life.1  To  Gonville  College,  founded  as  the  Hall  of  the 
Annunciation  in  1348,  Archdeacon  Stephen  Scrope  left  a 
Catholicon  in  I4i8.2  King's  Hall,  later  absorbed  in 
Trinity  College,  some  sixty  years  after  its  foundation, 
possessed  a  library  of  eighty-seven  volumes  (1394).  Gifts 
of  books  were  made  to  Corpus  Christi  College  soon  after 
its  foundation  in  1352,  but  a  library  is  not  referred  to  in 
the  old  statutes.  Thomas  de  Eltisle,  the  first  Master, 
gave  several  books,  among  them  a  very  fine  missal,  "  most 
excellently  annotated  throughout  all  the  offices,  and  bound 
with  a  cover  of  white  deer  leather,  and  with  red  clasps." 
At  this  time  (1376)  we  find  an  inventory  showing  that 
the  contents  of  the  library  were  chiefly  theological  and 
law  books. 

The  intention  of  King  Henry  VI  was  to  make  the 
library  of  King's  College  and  that  of  Eton  very  good.  In 
his  great  plan  for  the  former,  which  was  never  carried  out, 
Henry  proposed  to  have  in  the  west  side  of  the  court, 
"  atte  the  ende  toward  the  chirch,"  "  a  librarie,  conteynyng 
in  lengthe  .  ex  .  fete,  and  in  brede  .  xxiiij  .  fete,  and  under 
hit  a  large  hous  for  redyng  and  disputacions,  conteynyng 
in  lengthe  .  xl .  fete,  and.  .  ij  .  chambres  under  the  same 
librarie,  euery  conteynyng  .  xxix  .  fete  in  lengthe  and  in 
brede  .  xxiiij  .  fete." 3  But  an  apartment  was  set  aside 
for  books,  and,  as  a  charge  was  incurred  for  strewing  it 

1  C.  A.  S.  Comm.,  ii.  73  ;  Willis,  iii.  402. 

2  Surtees  Soc.,  iv.  385.  3  Willis,  i.  370. 


160          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

with  rushes  in  expectation  of  a  visit  from  the  king,  it  was 
evidently  a  repository  worth  seeing.1  Early  in  1445  the 
king  sent  Richard  Chester,  sometime  his  envoy  at  the 
Papal  court,  to  France  and  other  countries,  and  to  certain 
parts  of  England,  in  search  of  books  and  relics  for  his 
foundations.  Within  two  years,  however,  a  joint  petition 
came  from  Eton  and  King's  College,  stating  that  neither 
of  these  colleges  "  nowe  late  fownded  and  newe  growyng  " 
11  were  sufficiently  supplied  with  books  for  divine  service  and 
for  their  libraries  and  studies,  or  with  vestments  and 
ornaments,  '  whiche  thinges  may  not  be  had  withoute 
great  and  diligente  labour  be  longe  processe  and  right 
besy  inquisicion.'  They  therefore  begged  that  the  king 
would  order  Chester  to  '  take  to  hym  suche  men  as  shall 
be  seen  to  hym  expedient  and  profitable,  and  in  especiall 
John  Pye,'  the  King's  '  stacioner  of  London,  and  other 
suche  as  ben  connyng  and  have  undirstonding  in  such 
matiers,'  charging  them  all  '  to  laboure  effectually,  inquere 
and  diligently  inserche  in  all  place  that  ben  under '  the 
King's  *  obeysaunce,  to  gete  knowleche  where  suche  bokes, 
onourmentes,  and  other  necessaries  for '  the  '  saide  colleges 
may  be  founden  to  selle.'  They  were  anxious  that 
Richard  Chester  should  have  authority  '  to  bye,  take,  and 
receive  alle  suche  goodes  afore  eny  other  man  .  .  .  satis- 
fying to  the  owners  of  suche  godes  suche  pris  as  thei  may 
resonably  accorde  and  agree.  Soo  that  he  may  have  the 
ferste  choise  of  alle  suche  goodes  afore  eny  other  man, 
and  in  especiall  of  all  maner  bokes,  ornementes,  and  other 
necessaries  as  nowe  late  were  perteyning  to  the  Duke  of 
Gloucestre.' " 2  At  King's  College  many  charges  were 
incurred  for  books  a  year  later,  in  1448.  By  1452  this 
foundation  had  174  or  175  books,  on  philosophy,  theology, 
medicine,  astrology,  mathematics,  canon  law,  grammar,  and 
1  Willis,  i.  537.  2  Lyte,  Eton,  28-29. 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:  CAMBRIDGE    161 

in  classical  literature.1  The  only  volume  now  remaining 
of  this  collection  once  belonged  to  Duke  Humfrey,  and  as 
the  list  contains  a  fair  number  of  classical  books — Aristotle, 
Liber  policie  Platonis,  Tullius  in  noua  rethorica,  Seneca, 
Sallust,  Ovid,  Julius  Caesar,  Plutarch — besides  a  book  of 
Poggio  Bracciolini,  it  seems  likely  that  King's  College,  and 
perhaps  Eton,  received  some  of  the  books  promised  by  the 
Duke  to  Oxford  University  and  begged  for  repeatedly  and 
in  vain  by  that  University,  after  his  death.2 

Likewise  at  Eton — which  may  be  referred  to  appro- 
priately here — the  king  desired  to  have  a  good  library. 
"  Item  the  Est  pane  in  lengthe  within  the  walles  .  ccxxx  . 
fete  in  the  myddel  whereof  directly  agayns  the  entre  of 
the  cloistre  a  librarie  conteynyng  in  lengthe  .  lij  .  fete  and 
in  brede  .  xxiiij .  fete  with  .  iij  .  chambres  aboue  on  the 
oon  side  and  .  iiij .  on  the  other  side  and  benethe  .  ix . 
chambres  euery  of  them  in  lengthe  .  xxvj .  fete  and  in  brede 
.  xviij  .  fete  with  .  v .  utter  toures  and  .  v  .  ynner  toures."  3 

A  library  room  is  referred  to  in  1445  or  1446;  then 
"  floryshid  "  glass  was  bought  for  the  windows  of  it.4  In 
1484-85  it  is  again  mentioned  in  connexion  with  repairs. 
A  year  later  a  lock  and  twelve  keys  for  the  library  were 
paid  for.5  Then  in  1 5  17,  we  are  told,  "the  fyrst  stone  was 
layd  yn  the  fundacyon  off  the  weste  parte  off  the  College, 
whereon  ys  bylded  Mr.  Provost's  logyn,  the  Gate,  and  the 
Lyberary." 6  It  would  seem  that  these  several  references 
are  to  the  vestry  of  the  Chapel,  in  which  the  books  were 
first  kept,  and  then  to  the  Election  Hall,  to  which  they  were 
subsequently  removed.7  Henry  VI  seems  to  have  given 
£200  "for  to  purvey  them  books  to  the  pleasure  of  God."8 

St.  Catharine's   Hall,  founded   in    1473-75,  m  a  few 

1  James2,  72-83.  2  James2,  70-71  ;  and  see  p.  144.       3  Willis,  i.  356. 

4  Lyte,  Eton,  37  ;  Willis,  i.  393.  5  Willis,  i.  414. 

6  Lyte,  Eton,  101.         7  James14,  viii.  8  Lyte,  Eton,  29. 

U 


i62  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

years  enjoyed  the  use  of  104  volumes,  of  which  85  were 
given  by  the  founder,  Dr.  Robert  Wodelarke.  At  Queens' 
College  a  library  was  included  in  the  first  buildings ;  and 
some  twenty-five  years  after  the  foundation  in  1448,  no 
fewer  than  224  volumes  were  on  the  desks.1 

As  at  Oxford,  these  collections  were  augmented  by  the 
gifts  of  generous  friends  and    loyal  scholars.     Peterhouse 
had  many  friends.     Thomas  Lisle,   Bishop  of  Ely,  gave  a 
large  Bible  (I3OO).2      In    1418  a  welcome  gift  came  from 
a  former  Master,  John  de  Newton,  who  had  reserved  some 
theological   books,    Seneca,  Valerius   Maximus,  and   other 
books  for  his  old  house.     At  this  time  Peterhouse  had  380 
volumes :  at  Oxford  the  University  library  was  no  larger, 
although  it  was  possibly  richer,  and  in  numbers  only  the 
library  of  New  College  can  have  beaten  it.      Sir   Thomas 
Beaufort,  Duke  of  Exeter,  bequeathed  a  volume  of  sermons 
in  I427.3     Later  Dr.  Thomas  Lane  gave  some  good  books 
(1450).       Then    Dr.    Roger    Marshall    presented    a    large 
number  of  volumes,  some  of  which  were  to  be  placed  in 
libraria  secretiori^  and  in  chains,  if  the  Master  and  Fellows 
thought  fit,  while  the  remainder  were  to  be  chained  in  aper- 
tiori  libraria,  where  they  could  not  be  borrowed,  but  were 
easily  accessible    (1472):    this    benefactor   evidently   fully 
appreciated  Peterhouse's  division  of  its  library  into  reference 
and  lending  sections.      Less  than  a  decade  later  Dr.  John 
Warkworth,  the  Master,    presented    fifty-five    manuscripts, 
among  which  was  his  own    Chronicle.      "  Among  the  gifts 
made  to  the  library  in  the  fifteenth  century  are  one  or  two 
which  raise  curious  questions.     One  book  comes  from  Bury 
and  has  the  Bury  mark.     Another  belonged  to  the  canons 
of  Hereford  ;  another  to  Worcester ;  another  to  Durham  (it 
is  still  identifiable  in  the  Durham  catalogue  of  1391);  and 

1  C.  A.  S.  Comm.,  ii.  165. 

2  C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  iii.  (8vo.  ser.)  398.  3  Ibid.,  399. 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:  CAMBRIDGE    163 

there  are  other  instances  of  the  kind.  Such  a  phenomenon 
makes  one  very  anxious  to  know  how  freely  and  under  what 
conditions  collegiate  and  monastic  bodies  were  in  the  habit 
of  parting  with  their  books  during  the  time  before  the 
Dissolution.  Was  there  not  very  probably  an  extensive 
system  of  sale  of  duplicates  ?  I  prefer  this  notion,"  writes 
Dr.  James,  "  to  the  idea  that  they  got  rid  of  their  books 
indiscriminately,  because  the  study  of  monastic  catalogues 
shows  quite  plainly  that  the  number  of  duplicates  in  any 
considerable  library  was  very  large.  On  the  other  hand,  it 
is  clear  that  books  often  got  out  of  the  old  libraries  into  the 
hands  of  quite  unauthorised  persons  :  so  that  there  was 
probably  both  fair  and  foul  play  in  this  matter." 1  To 
Pembroke  College  came  gifts  from  successive  Masters  and 
from  friends  between  the  date  of  foundation  and  the  year 
1484,  when  the  College  had  received  158  volumes  in  this 
way.2  One  of  the  donors  was  Rotherham,  the  great  friend 
of  the  public  library.  During  the  same  period  a  number  of 
books  were  also  purchased.  Corpus  Christi  received  a  like 
series  of  donations.  The  third  Master,  John  Kynne,  gave 
a  Bible,  which  he  had  "  bought  at  Northampton  at  the  time 
(1380)  when  the  Parliament  was  there,  for  the  purpose  of 
reading  therefrom  in  the  Hall  at  the  time  of  dinner."  The 
fifth  and  sixth  Masters,  Drs.  Billingford  and  Tytleshale, 
were  benefactors  to  the  library  ;  and  during  the  latter's 
mastership  one  of  the  fellows,  Thomas  Markaunt  the 
antiquary,  bequeathed  seventy-six  volumes,  then  valued  at 
over  £100  (I439).3  Later  Dr.  Cosyn  presented  books  ;  and 
Dr.  Nobys,  the  twelfth  Master,  left  a  large  number  of 
volumes,  which  were  chained  in  the  library. 

1  C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  Hi.  (8vo.  ser.),  399- 

2  James  (M.  R.)10,  xiii.-xvii.  ;  C.  A.  S.,  ii.  (8vo.  ser.  1864),  13-21. 

3  MS.  232,  in  the  library,  contains  his  will,  a  list  of  his  books  with  their  prices, 
another  catalogue,   and  a  register  of  the  borrowers  of  the  books  from   1440 
to  1516. 


164          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

A  vicar  of  St.  Mary's,  Nottingham,  named  John  Hurte, 
gave  books  to  several  colleges — to  Clare  Hall  seven  books, 
including  Guido  delle  Colonne's  Troy  book,  Ptolemy  in 
Quadripartite]  to  the  College  of  God's  House,  afterwards 
absorbed  in  Christ's  College,  Egidius  and  a  Doctrinale\  to 
King's  College  Isaac  de  Urinis ;  to  the  University  Library 
three  books ;  as  well  as  an  astronomical  work  to  Gotham 
Chest  (I476).1 

At  Peterhouse  in  1414  special  provision  was  being 
made  for  the  books  in  a  long  room  on  the  first  floor.  The 
workman  employed  on  the  job  was  to  receive,  in  addition 
to  his  wages,  a  gown  if  the  College  were  pleased  with  his 
work.  By  1431  a  new  library  was  necessary,  and  a 
contract  was  entered  into  for  building  it.  Sixteen  years 
later  the  work  had  so  progressed  that  desks  were  being 
made.  In  1450  the  old  desks  were  broken  up,  and  locks 
and  keys  were  bought  for  sixteen  new  cases.  This  library 
was  on  the  west  side  of  the  quadrangle.  A  library  for 
Clare  Hall  was  built  between  1420  and  1430.  A  little 
before  this  a  new  library  was  begun  for  King's  Hall, 
probably  to  replace  a  smaller  room.  For  the  books  of 
Pembroke  College  a  storey  was  added  to  the  Hall  about 
1452.  The  early  collection  of  Gonville  Hall  was  kept  in 
a  strong-room  ;  then  in  1441  a  special  room  was  included 
in  the  buildings  on  the  west  side  of  the  quadrangle.  At 
Trinity  Hall  the  books  were  stored  in  a  room  over  the 
passage  from  one  court  to  the  other  and  at  the  east  end  of 
the  chapel,  and  here  they  remained  until  after  the  Refor- 
mation. The  early  library  room  of  Corpus  Christi  was  in 
the  Old  Court,  on  the  first  floor  next  to  the  Master's  lodge. 
In  Queens',  St.  Catharine's,  Jesus,  Christ's,  St.  John's  and 
Magdalene  a  library  formed  a  part  of  the  original  quadrangle.2 

1  Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  220-22.  2  Willis,  i.  200,  226  ;  iii.  411. 


CHAPTER    VIII 
ACADEMIC   LIBRARIES:   THEIR   ECONOMY 

HERE  it  will  be  convenient  to  give  some  account  of  the 
regulations  for  the  use  of  books  in  colleges,  both  at 
Oxford  and  Cambridge.  The  University  libraries 
were  for  reference :  the  College  libraries  were  for  both 
reference  and  lending  use,  and  the  regulations  are  there- 
fore different  in  essentials.  By  the  statutes  of  University 
College  (1292)  one  book  of  every  kind  that  the  college  had 
was  to  be  put  in  some  common  and  safe  place,  so  that 
the  Fellows,  and  others  with  the  consent  of  the  Fellows, 
might  have  the  use  of  it.  Sometimes,  especially  in  the 
colleges  of  early  foundation,  this  common  collection  was 
kept  in  chests ;  usually  the  books  were  securely  chained  to 
desks.  The  common  books  were  chained  at  New  College 
(statutes,  1400)  and  at  Lincoln  College  (1429).  At  Peter- 
house,  soon  after  1418,  some  220  volumes  were  preserved  for 
reference,  and  1 60  were  distributed  among  the  Fellows.1  At 
All  Souls  College  a  number  of  books  selected  by  the  warden, 
vice-wardens,  and  deans,  were  chained,  together  with  the 
books  given  on  the  express  condition  that  they  should  be 
chained  (statutes,  1443).  This  collection,  then,  was  the 
college  reference  library ;  corresponding  with  the  common 
aumbry  of  the  monastery,  but  also  indicative  of  the  principle 
of  all  library  organisation  that,  while  it  is  desirable  to  lend 
books,  it  is  also  necessary  to  keep  a  number  of  them  all 
together  in  one  fixed  place  for  reference. 

1  Clark,  140. 
165 


1 66          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

The  libri  distribuendi,  or  books  for  lending,  were  the 
special  feature  of  the  college  library.  At  Merton  the 
books  were  distributed  by  the  warden  and  sub-warden 
under  an  adequate  pledge  (1276).  Once  a  year,  after 
the  books  had  been  inspected,  each  Fellow  of  Oriel  could 
select  a  book  on  the  subject  he  was  reading  up,  and  could 
keep  it,  if  he  chose,  until  the  next  distribution  a  year 
later,  while  if  there  were  more  books  than  Fellows,  those 
over  could  be  selected  in  the  same  way  (statutes,  1 329).  At 
Peterhouse,  the  Senior  Dean  distributed  the  books  to  scholars 
in  the  manner  he  saw  fit;  later  it  was  ruled  that  all  the 
books  not  chained  might  be  circulated  once  every  two  years 
on  a  day  to  be  fixed  by  the  Master  and  Senior  Dean 
(statutes,  1344,  1480).  At  New  College  students  in  civil 
and  canon  law  could  have  two  books  for  their  special  use 
during  the  time  they  devoted  themselves  to  those  faculties, 
if  they  did  not  own  the  books  themselves.  If  books 
remained  over,  after  this  distribution,  they  were  to  be 
distributed  annually  in  the  usual  way  (statutes,  1400). 
Similarly  the  books  were  circulated  at  All  Souls  (statutes, 
1443),  at  Magdalen  (1459),  at  Exeter1  and  at  Queen's.  At 
Lincoln  College  bachelors  could  only  have  logical  and 
philosophical  books  distributed  to  them,  and  not  theology 
(statutes,  1429). 

The  procedure  was  the  same  as  at  the  annual  claustral 
distribution.  Although  these  regulations  suggest  restric- 
tions and  little  else,  the  students  were  as  a  rule  fairly 
well  provided  with  books.  Even  if  they  did  not  own  a 
single  volume  of  their  own,  they  had  the  use  of  the  public 

1  In  winter  1382  "vhW.  ob  pro  ligatura  cuiusdam  textus  philosophic  de 
eleccione  Johannis  Mattecote."  Winter  1405,  "  \d.  ob  pro  pergameno  empto  pro 
novo  registro  faciendo  pro  eleccione  librorum " ;  winter  1457?  "iiiu/.  More 
stacionario  pro  labore  suo  duobus  diebus  appreciando  libros  collegii  qui  traduntur 
in  eleccionibus  sociorum."  Autumn  1488,  "ii.r.  \d.  pro  redempcione  librorum 
quondam  eleccionis  domini  Ricardi  Symon." — 0.  H.  S.  27,  Boase,  xlix. 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   ECONOMY     167 

library  of  the  University,  and  of  the  college  common 
library.  It  is  true  the  distribution  or  electio  librorum  took 
place  only  once  or  twice  a  year,  and  then  a  student  got 
only  a  few  volumes.  Yet  we  should  not  assume  that  he 
was  obliged  to  confine  his  attention  to  this  small  dole  alone, 
for  it  is  but  reasonable  to  suppose  he  could  exchange  his 
books  with  those  selected  by  another  student.  The  electio 
librorum  was  a  method  of  securing  the  safety  of  the  books 
by  distributing  the  responsibility  for  making  good  losses 
equally  over  the  whole  community.  In  the  case  of 
University  College  an  Opponent  in  theology,  a  teacher 
of  the  Sentences,  and  a  Regent  who  also  taught,  had  the 
right  to  borrow  freely  any  book  he  wanted  if  he  would 
restore  it,  when  he  had  done  with  it,  to  the  Fellow  who 
had  chosen  it  at  the  distribution  (statutes,  1292). 

A  register  of  loans  was  carefully  maintained.  The 
Fellows  of  All  Souls  were  required  to  have  a  small 
indenture  drawn  up  for  each  book  borrowed,  and  such 
indenture  was  to  be  left  with  the  warden  or  the  vice- 
warden  (statutes,  1443).  At  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge, 
the  librarian  or  keeper  was  to  prepare  large  tablets  covered 
with  wax  and  parchment :  on  the  latter  were  to  be  written 
the  titles  of  books,  on  the  former  the  names  of  the 
borrowers ;  when  each  book  was  returned,  the  borrower's 
name  was  pressed  out.  This  was  a  monastic  practice. 
Such  records,  even  if  trifling,  were  in  turn  the  subject  of  an 
indenture  if  they  were  transferred  from  one  person  to 
another.1 

The  rules  drawn  up  to  prevent  loss  were  as  stringent 
for  college  as  for  monastic  libraries.  No  Fellow  of 
University  College  could  take  away,  sell,  or  pawn  books 
belonging  to  his  house  without  the  consent  of  all  the 
fellows  (statutes,  1292).  At  Peterhouse  scholars  were 

1  P.R.O.,  Anc.  Deeds,  c.  1782. 


i68          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

bound  by  oath  to  similar  effect  (statutes,  1 344).  A 
statute  of  Magdalen  is  most  insistent — a  book  could  not  be 
alienated,  under  any  excuse  whatever,  nor  lent  outside 
the  college,  nor  could  it  be  lent  in  quires  for  copying  to 
a  member  of  the  College  or  a  stranger,  either  in  the  Hall 
or  out  of  it,  nor  could  it  be  taken  out  of  the  town,  or 
even  out  of  the  Hall,  either  whole  or  in  sheets,  by  the 
Master  or  any  one  else,  but  to  the  schools  it  could  be 
taken  when  necessary  and  on  condition  that  it  was  brought 
back  to  the  college  before  nightfall  (1459).  A  like 
injunction  was  given  at  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge,  and 
Brasenose  College. 

Lending  outside  a  college  was  unusual,  but  was  some- 
times allowed,  as  in  monasteries,  under  indenture,  and  upon 
deposit  of  a  pledge  of  greater  value  than  the  book  lent, 
and  with  the  general  consent  of  Fellows  (University  College 
statutes,  1292;  All  Souls  statutes,  1443).  Every  book 
belonging  to  University  College  had  a  high  value  set  upon 
it,  so  that  a  borrower  should  not  be  careless  in  his  use  of 
it  (statutes,  1292);  and  at  Peterhouse  the  Master  and  two 
Deans  were  expected  to  set  a  value  upon  the  books  (special 
statute,  1480).  Punishment  for  default  was  severe.  Any 
Fellow  of  Oriel  neglecting  or  refusing  to  restore  his  books, 
or  to  pay  the  value  set  upon  them,  forfeited  his  right  of 
selecting  for  another  year,  and  if  he  failed  to  make  good 
the  loss  before  the  following  Christmas,  he  was  no  longer  a 
Fellow — eo  facto  non  socius  ibidem  existat  (1441).  If  a 
Fellow  of  Peterhouse  did  not  produce  his  book  at  the  fresh 
selection,  or  appoint  a  deputy  to  bring  it,  he  was  liable  to  be 
put  out  of  commons  until  he  restored  it  (statute,  1480). 

Equal  care  was  taken  of  the  books  which  were  not 
circulated.  At  Merton  they  were  to  be  kept  under  three 
locks  (1276).  The  deeds,  books,  muniments,  and  money 
of  Stapeldon  Hall  or  Exeter  College  were  kept  in  a 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   ECONOMY     169 

chest,  of  which  one  key  was  in  the  hands  of  the  Rector, 
another  of  the  Senior  Scholar,  and  a  third  of  the  Chaplain 
(statutes,  1316).  Three  different  locks,  two  large  and  one 
small,  were  used  to  secure  the  library  door  of  New  College : 
the  Senior  Dean  and  the  Senior  Bursar  had  the  keys  of  the 
large  locks,  and  each  Fellow  had  a  key  of  the  small  lock ; 
all  three  locks  were  to  be  secured  at  night  (statutes,  1400). 
An  indenture  was  drawn  up  of  all  the  books,  charters,  and 
muniments  of  Peterhouse  in  the  presence  of  the  greater 
number  of  the  scholars :  all  the  books  were  named  and 
classified  according  to  faculty.  One  part  of  the  indenture 
was  retained  by  the  Master,  the  other  part  by  the  Deans. 
All  these  books  and  records  were  preserved  in  chests,  each 
of  which  had  two  keys,  one  in  the  care  of  the  Master,  the 
other  in  the  hands  of  the  Senior  Dean  (statutes,  1344). 
Books  being  regarded  as  an  inestimable  treasure,  which 
ought  to  be  most  religiously  guarded,  they  could  not  be 
taken  from  Peterhouse,  if  chained  up,  except  with  the 
consent  of  the  Master  and  all  the  Fellows  in  residence,  who 
must  be  a  majority  of  the  whole  Society ;  and  books  given 
on  condition  of  being  chained  were  not  to  be  removed 
under  any  pretext,  excepting  only  for  repair.  Even  libri 
distribuendi  were  not  to  be  without  the  college  at  night, 
except  by  permission  of  the  Master  or  a  Dean,  and  then 
they  could  not  be  retained  for  six  months  in  succession 
(statute,  1480). 

To  detect  missing  books  stock  was  taken,  usually  once 
a  year :  again,  as  in  the  monasteries.  Once  a  year  on  a 
fixed  day  the  books  of  Oriel  were  to  be  brought  out  and 
displayed  for  inspection  before  the  Provost  or  his  deputy 
and  all  the  Fellows  (statutes,  1329).  The  same  ceremony 
took  place  at  Trinity  Hall  twice  a  year  ;  the  books  were  to 
be  laid  out  one  by  one,  so  that  they  could  be  seen  by 
everybody  (statutes,  1350);  at  Peterhouse  the  inspection 


170          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

was  held  only  once  in  two  years  (statute,  1480).  At  All 
Souls  an  inspection  was  held  (statutes,  1443);  at  the 
Pembroke  College  inspection  each  book  was  exhibited  in 
order  to  the  Masters  and  Fellows.  At  Magdalen,  as  else- 
where, the  inspection  was  thorough :  the  books  were  to  be 
shown  realiter,  visibiliter,  et  distincte. 

The  above  rules  embody  the  common  practice  of  the 
colleges.  Certain  houses  had  unusual  provisions.  Every 
Fellow  of  Magdalen  College  was  to  close  the  book  he  had 
been  reading  before  he  left,  and  also  shut  the  windows 
(statutes,  1459).  With  the  beginning  of  the  sixteenth 
century  comes  a  faint  hint  of  discrimination  in  selecting 
books.  No  book  was  to  be  brought  into  the  library  of 
Corpus  Christi  College,  Oxford,  or  chained  there,  if  it  were 
not  of  sufficent  worth  and  importance  (nisi  sit  competentis 
pretii  aut  utilitas)  (unless  it  had  been  given  with  specific 
direction  that  it  should  be  chained),  but  it  was  to  go  among 
the  books  for  lending  (statutes,  i  5  1 7).1 

In  certain  of  the  colleges  a  book  was  read  aloud  during 
meals.  It  is  noted  that  in  1284  the  scholars  of  Merton 
were  so  noisy  that  the  person  appointed  to  read  from 
Gregory's  Moralia  could  not  be  properly  heard.2  Reading 
aloud  was  also  enjoined  at  University  Hall,  Oxford.3 
This  was,  of  course,  a  monastic  practice. 

This  brief  description  of  the  practice  of  the  colleges  in 
regard  to  books  may  be  concluded  fittingly  with  an  account 
of  the  rules  which  Richard  de  Bury  proposed  to  apply  for 
the  safety  of  his  library  when  reposed  within  the  walls  of 
Durham  Hall.  These  provisions  are  specially  interesting 
as  an  example  of  the  care  with  which  a  fussy  bookworm 


1  See  further,  Documents  relating  to  the  University  and  Colleges  of  Cambridge 
(3v.   1852) ;   Statutes  of  the  College  of  Oxford  (3v.   1853),  especially  i.   54,  97; 
ii.  60,  89 ;  and  Mun.  Acad.    Cf.  Willis,  Camb.,  iii.  387. 

2  Lyte,  8 1.  3  Ibid.,  84. 


PL  A  TE  XXIX 


ACADEMIC  LIBRARIES:   ECONOMY     171 

attempted  to  safeguard  his  treasures,  and  because  they 
permit  free  lending  of  books  outside  the  Hall.  Five  of 
the  scholars  sojourning  in  the  Hall  were  to  be  appointed 
by  the  Master  to  have  charge  of  the  books,  "  of  which  five 
persons  three  and  not  fewer"  might  lend  any  book  or 
books  for  inspection  and  study.  No  book  was  to  be 
allowed  outside  the  walls  of  the  house  for  copying. 
"  Therefore,  when  any  scholar,  secular  or  religious,  whom 
for  this  purpose  we  regard  with  equal  favour,  shall  seek 
to  borrow  any  book,  let  the  keepers  diligently  consider  if 
they  have  a  duplicate  of  the  said  book,  and  if  so,  let 
them  lend  him  the  book,  taking  such  pledge  as  in  their 
judgment  exceeds  the  value  of  the  book  delivered,  and 
let  a  record  be  made  forthwith  of  the  pledge,  and  of  the 
book  lent,  containing  the  names  of  the  persons  delivering 
the  book  and  of  the  person  who  receives  it,  together  with 
the  day  and  year  when  the  loan  is  made."  But  if  the 
book  was  not  in  duplicate,  the  keepers  were  forbidden  to 
lend  it  to  anybody  not  belonging  to  the  Hall,  "unless 
perhaps  for  inspection  within  the  walls  of  the  aforesaid 
house  or  Hall,  but  not  to  be  carried  beyond  it." 

A  book  could  be  lent  to  any  of  the  scholars  in  the 
Hall  by  three  of  the  keepers,  on  condition  that  the 
borrower's  name  and  the  date  on  which  he  received  the 
book  were  recorded.  This  book  could  not  be  transferred 
to  another  scholar  except  by  permission  of  three  keepers, 
and  then  the  record  must  be  altered. 

"  Each  keeper  shall  take  an  oath  to  observe  all  these 
regulations  when  they  enter  upon  the  charge  of  the  books. 
And  the  recipients  of  any  book  or  books  shall  thereupon 
swear  that  they  will  not  use  the  book  or  books  for  any 
other  purpose  but  that  of  inspection  or  study,  and  that 
they  will  not  take  or  permit  to  be  taken  it  or  them  beyond 
the  town  and  suburbs  of  Oxford. 


172          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

"  Moreover,  every  year  the  aforesaid  keepers  shall  render 
an  account  to  the  Master  of  the  House  and  two  of  his 
scholars  whom  he  shall  associate  with  himself,  or  if  he 
shall  not  be  at  leisure,  he  shall  appoint  three  inspectors, 
other  than  the  keepers,  who  shall  peruse  the  catalogue  of 
books,  and  see  that  they  have  them  all,  either  in  the 
volumes  themselves  or  at  least  as  represented  by  deposits. 
And  the  more  fitting  season  for  rendering  this  account  we 
believe  to  be  from  the  first  of  July  until  the  festival  of 
the  Translation  of  the  Glorious  Martyr  S.  Thomas  next 
following. 

"  We  add  this  further  provision,  that  anyone  to  whom 
a  book  has  been  lent,  shall  once  a  year  exhibit  it  to  the 
keepers,  and  shall,  if  he  wishes  it,  see  his  pledge.  More- 
over, if  it  chances  that  a  book  is  lost  by  death,  theft,  fraud, 
or  carelessness,  he  who  has  lost  it  or  his  representative  or 
executor  shall  pay  the  value  of  the  book  and  receive  back 
his  deposit.  But  if  in  any  wise  any  profit  shall  accrue  to 
the  keepers,  it  shall  not  be  applied  to  any  purpose  but 
the  repair  and  maintenance  of  the  books." l 

It  will  be  seen  that  had  De  Bury's  aim  been  consum- 
mated, a  small  public  lending  library  would  have  been 
founded  in  Oxford,  from  which  at  first  only  a  few  duplicates 
would  be  issued,  but  which  might,  in  time,  have  become 
an  important  institution. 

1  R.  de  B.,  ed.  Thomas,  pp.  246-48. 


CHAPTER    IX 

THE   USE   OF   BOOKS   TOWARDS   THE   END   OF 
THE   MANUSCRIPT   PERIOD 

§1 

THE  cheapening  of  books  has  brought  many  pleasures, 
but  has  been  the  cause  of  our  losing — or   almost 
losing — one    pleasant  social   custom, — the  pastime 
of  reciting  tales  by  the  fireside  or  at  festivities,  which  was 
popular  until  the  end  of  the  manuscript  age. 

i 
"  Men  lykyn  jestis  for  to  here 

And  romans  rede  in  divers  manere." 

At  their  games  and  feasts  and  over  their  ale  men  were 
wont  to  hear  tales  and  verses.1  The  tale-tellers  were 
usually  professional  wayfaring  entertainers:  "japers  and 
'  mynstralles '  that  sell  '  glee,' "  as  the  scald  sang  his  lays 
before  King  Hygelac  and  roused  Beowulf  to  slay 
Grendel — 

"Gestiours,  that  tellen  tales 
Bothe  of  weping  and  of  game."  2 

Call  hither,  cries  Sir  Thopas,  minstrels  and  gestours,  "  for 
to  tellen  tales  " — 

"  Of  romances  that  been  royales, 
Of  popes  and  of  cardinals, 

And  eek  of  love-lykinge."    (11.  2035-40). 

1  Piers  Plowman.  a  Hous  of 'Fame ,  1.  1198. 

173 


174          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Rhymers   and   poets    had    these    entertainments    in    mind 
when  they  wrote — 

"And  red  wher-so  thou  be,  or  elles  songe, 
That  thou  be  understonde  I  god  beseche," 

cries    Chaucer.1      Note    also    the    preliminary   request   for 
silence  and  attention  at  the  beginning  of  Sir  Thopas — 

"Listeth,  lordes,  in  good  entent, 
And  I  wol  telle  verrayment 

Of  mirthe  and  of  solas  [solace]  ; 
Al  of  a  knyght  was  fair  and  gent  [gallant] 
In  bataille  and  in  tourneyment, 

His  name  was  Sir  Thopas." 

At  the  beginning  of  his  metrical  chronicle  of  England 
Robert  Mannyng  of  Brunne  begs  the  "  Lordynges  that  be 
now  here "  to  listen  to  the  story  of  England,  as  he  had 
found  it  and  Englished  it  for  the  solace  of  those  "  lewed  " 
men  who  knew  not  Latin  or  French.2 

References  to  these  minstrels  are  common — 

"  I  warne  you  furst  at  the  beginninge, 
That  I  will  make  no  vain  carpinge  [talk] 
Of  dedes  of  armys  ne  of  amours, 
As  dus  mynstrelles  and  jestours, 
That  makys  carpinge  in  many  a  place 
Of  Octoviane  and  Isembrase, 
And  of  many  other  jestes, 
And  namely,  whan  they  come  to  festes  ; 
Ne  of  the  life  of  Bevys  of  Hampton^ 
That  was  a  knight  of  gret  renoun, 
Ne  of  Sir  Gye  of  Warwyke?* 

The  monks  of  Hyde  Abbey  or  New  Minster  paid  an 
annuity  to  a  harper  (1180).  No  less  a  sum  than  seventy 
shillings  was  paid  to  minstrels  hired  to  sing  and  play  the 

1  Troilus,  Bk.  v.  11.  1797-98. 

2  Furnivall's  ed.,  Rolls  S.,  pt.  i,  p.  I. 

3  M§,  Reg.  17,  C.  viii.  f.  2 ;  cited  in  Skeat's  Chaucer,  v.  194. 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD     175 

harp  at  the  feast  of  the  installation  of  an  abbot  of  St. 
Augustine's,  Canterbury  (1309).  When  the  bishop  of 
Winchester  visited  the  cathedral  priory  of  St.  Swithin  or  Old 
Minster,  a  minstrel  was  hired  to  sing  the  song  of  Colbrond  the 
Danish  giant — a  legend  connected  with  Winchester — and 
the  tale  of  Queen  Emma  delivered  from  the  ploughshares 
(1338).  Payments  to  minstrels  were  commonly  made  by 
monks:  at  Bicester  Priory,  for  example  (1431),  and  at 
Maxstoke,  where  mimi>  joculatores,  jocatores^  lusores,  and 
citharistae  were  hired.  A  curious  provision  occurs  in  the 
statutes  of  New  College,  Oxford  (i  380).  The  founder  gives 
his  permission  to  the  scholars,  for  their  recreation  on  festival 
days  in  the  winter,  to  light  a  fire  in  the  hall  after  dinner 
and  supper,  where  they  could  amuse  themselves  with  songs 
and  other  entertainments  of  decent  sort,  and  could  recite 
poems,  chronicles  of  kingdoms,  the  wonders  of  the  world, 
and  such  like  compositions,  provided  they  befitted  the 
clerical  character.  At  Winchester  College — where  minstrels 
were  often  employed — and  Magdalen  College  the  same 
practice  was  followed.  Commonly  minstrels  formed  a 
regular  part  of  the  household  of  rich  men.1 

This  part  of  the  subject  is  so  interesting  that  we  feel 
tempted  to  linger  over  it,  but  it  is  sufficient  for  our  purpose 
to  observe  that  minstrelsy,  before  and  after  the  Conquest 
—indeed,  up  to  nearly  the  end  of  the  manuscript  period — 
was  the  chief  and  almost  the  only  means  of  circulating 
literature  among  seculars.  This  fact  should  be  borne  in 
mind  when  any  comparison  is  made  between  the  number 
of  religious  and  scholastic  books  in  circulation  and  the 
number  of  books  of  lighter  character.  Even  books  of  the 
scholastic  class  were  read  aloud  to  students  in  class,  and 
often  to  small  audiences  of  older  people ;  but  this  method 
had  obvious  disadvantages,  and  the  necessity  of  studying 

1  Warton,  96-99  ;  Rashdall  and  Rait,  New  Coll.,  60. 


176          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

them  personally  soon  came  to  be  recognised  as  imperative. 
Hence  such  books,  and  especially  those  which  summarised 
the  subject  of  study,  were  greatly  multiplied.  On  the  other 
hand,  romances  were  better  heard  than  read,  and  only 
enough  copies  of  them  were  made  to  supply  wealthy 
households  and  the  minstrels  and  jesters  whose  business 
it  was  to  learn  and  recite  them.  Rarely,  therefore,  did  the 
ordinary  layman  of  medieval  England  own  many  books. 
The  large  class  to  whom  romances  appealed  seldom  owned 
books  at  all,  simply  because  the  people  of  this  class,  even 
if  wealthy  and  of  noble  rank,  could  not  in  ninety  cases  out 
of  one  hundred  read  at  all,  or  could  read  so  poorly  that  the 
pastime  was  irksome.  Among  the  educated  classes,  the 
books  needed  were  those  with  which  a  reader  had  made 
acquaintance  at  his  university,  or  which  were  necessary 
for  his  special  study  and  occupation.  Yet  it  is  uncommon 
to  find  private  libraries;  and  with  few  exceptions  they 
were  ridiculously  small.  The  vast  majority  of  the  books 
were  owned  in  common  by  monastic  or  collegiate  societies. 
Let  us  bring  together  the  meagre  records  of  three 
centuries,  and  some  exceptions  to  the  general  rule  which 
serve  only  to  show  up  the  general  poverty  of  the  land. 
Henry  II,  an  ardent  sportsman,  a  ruler  almost  completely 
immersed  in  affairs  of  State,  made  time  for  private  reading 
and  for  working  out  knotty  questions,1  and  very  probably 
he  had  a  library  to  his  hand.  King  John  received  from 
the  sacristan  of  Reading  a  small  collection  of  books  of 
the  Bible  and  severe  theology,  perhaps  as  a  diplomatic 
gift,  perhaps  as  a  subtle  reminder  that  a  little  food  for  the 
spirit  would  improve  his  morals  and  ameliorate  the  lot  of 
his  subjects.  Edward  II  borrowed  at  least  two  books,  the 
Miracles  of  St.  Thomas  and  the  Lives  of  St.  Thomas  and 
St.  Anselm,  from  Christ  Church,  Canterbury.2  Great  Earl 

1  Stubbs,  Lect.  on  Mtd,  Hist.,  137.  2  James  (M.  R.),  148. 


r._    .!-v/-v     - 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    177 

Simon  had  a  Digestum  vetus  from  the  same  source.  Guy 
de  Beauchamp,  Earl  of  Warwick  (d.  1315),  had  a  little 
hoard  of  romances,  and  some  other  books.  Hugh  le 
Despenser  the  elder  enjoyed  a  "  librarie  of  bookes " 
(c.  1321),  how  big  or  of  what  character  we  do  not  know. 
Archbishop  Meopham  (d.  1333)  gave  some  books  to  Christ 
Church,  Canterbury ;  and  his  successor,  John  Stratford, 
presented  a  few  to  the  same  house.  Lady  Elizabeth  de 
Clare,  foundress  of  Clare  Hall,  bequeathed  to  her  foundation 
a  tiny  collection  of  service  books  and  volumes  on  canon 
law  (1355).  William  de  Feriby,  Archdeacon  of  Cleveland, 
left  a  small  theological  library  (1378).  One  John  Percy- 
hay  of  Swinton  in  Rydal  (1392),  Sir  Robert  de  Roos 
(1392),  John  de  Clifford,  treasurer  of  York  Church  (1392), 
Canon  Bragge  of  York  (i  396),  and  Eleanor  Bohun,  Duchess 
of  Gloucester  (i  399),  all  left  Bibles ;  and  small  collections 
of  books,  much  alike  in  character,  consisting  usually  of 
psalters,  books  of  religious  offices,  legends  of  the  saints, 
Peter  of  Blois,  Nicholas  Trivet,  the  Brut  chronicle,  books 
of  Decretals,  and  the  Corpus  Juris  Civilis, — most  of  it  sorry 
stuff,  the  last  achievements  of  dogmatism  on  threadbare 
subjects.  "  Among  all  the  church  dignitaries  whose  wills 
are  recorded  in  Bishop  Stafford's  register  at  Exeter  (1395— 
1419),  the  largest  library  mentioned  is  only  of  fourteen 
volumes.  The  sixty  testators  include  a  dean,  two  arch- 
deacons, twenty  canons  or  prebendaries,  thirteen  rectors, 
six  vicars,  and  eighteen  layfolk,  mostly  rich  people.  The 
whole  sixty  apparently  possessed  only  two  Bibles  between 
them,  and  only  one  hundred  and  thirty-eight  books 
altogether-:  or,  omitting  church  service-books,  only 
sixty ;  i.e.  exactly  one  each  on  an  average.  Thirteen  of 
the  beneficed  clergy  were  altogether  bookless,  though 
several  of  them  possessed  the  baselard  or  dagger  which 
church  councils  had  forbidden  in  vain  for  centuries  past ; 
12 


i;8          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

four  more  had  only  their  breviary.  Of  the  laity  fifteen 
were  bookless,  while  three  had  service  books,  one  of  these 
being  a  knight  who  simply  bequeathed  them  as  part  of  the 
furniture  of  his  private  chapel." 3 

A  few  exceptions  there  were,  as  we  have  said.  Not 
till  the  fifteenth  century  do  we  find  that  a  few  books  were 
commonly  in  the  possession  of  well-to-do  and  cultivated 
people;  suggesting  an  advance  in  culture  upon  the  previous 
age.  But  before  1400  several  book  collectors  were  sharp 
aberrations  from  the  general  rule.  Richard  de  Gravesend, 
Bishop  of  London,  owned  nearly  a  hundred  books,  almost 
all  theological,  and  each  worth  on  an  average  more  than 
a  sovereign  a  volume,  or  in  all  about  £1740  of  our  money. 
A  certain  Abbot  Thomas  of  St.  Augustine's  Abbey, 
Canterbury,  gave  to  his  house  over  one  hundred  volumes.2 
To  the  same  monastery  a  certain  John  of  London,  prob- 
ably a  pupil  of  Friar  Bacon,  left  a  specialist's  library  of 
about  eighty  books,  no  fewer  than  forty-six  being  on 
mathematics,  astronomy,  and  medicine.3  Simon  Langham, 
too,  bequeathed  to  Westminister  Abbey  ninety-one  works, 
some  very  costly.4  John  de  Newton,  treasurer  of  York, 
left  a  good  library,  part  of  which  he  bequeathed  to  York 
Minster  and  part  to  Peterhouse  (1418).  A  canon  of  York, 
Thomas  Greenwood,  died  worth  more  than  thirty  pounds 
in  books  alone  (1421).  And  Henry  Bowet,  Archbishop 
of  York,  left  a  collection  of  thirty-three  volumes,  nearly  all 
of  great  price, — copies  de  luxe,  finely  illuminated  and 
embellished,  worth  on  an  average  a  pound  a  volume 

(1423). 

But  Richard  de  Bury,  Bishop  of  Durham,  is  at  once  the 


1  Coulton,  Chaiicer  and  his  England,  99. 

2  James  (M.  R.),  Ixxii.  ;  this  number  is  probably  correct,  but  owing  to  con- 
fusion between  three  Abbots  of  this  name  it  is  not  certainly  right. 

9  Ibid.)  Ixxiv.  4  Robinson,  4-7. 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    179 

bibliomaniac's  ideal  and  enigma  (1287—1345).     All  accounts 
agree  in  saying  he  collected  a  large  number  of  books. 

What  became  of  them  we  do  not  know.  In  the 
Philobiblon,  of  which  he  is  the  reputed  author,  he  expressed 
his  intention  of  founding  a  hall  at  Oxford,  and  of  leaving 
his  books  to  it.  Durham  College,  however,  was  not  com- 
pleted until  thirty-six  years  after  his  death.  Among  the 
Durham  College  documents  is  a  catalogue  of  the  books  it 
owned  at  the  beginning  of  the  fifteenth  century,  and  only 
the  books  sent  to  Oxford  in  1315,  and  as  many  more  are 
mentioned,  so  that  his  large  library  did  not  go  to  the 
college,  but  was  probably  dispersed.1  De  Bury,  like 
Cobham,  was  a  heavy  debtor,  and  as  he  lay  dying  his 
servants  stole  all  his  moveable  goods  and  left  him  naked 
on  his  bed  save  for  an  undershirt  which  a  lackey  had 
thrown  over  him.2  His  executors,  as  we  know,  were  glad 
to  resell  to  St.  Albans  Abbey  the  books  he  had  bought 
from  the  monks  there. 

De  Bury  has  left  us  an  account  of  his  methods  of 
collecting  which  throws  some  light  upon  the  trade  in  books 
in  his  time.  "  Although  from  our  youth  upwards  we  had 
always  delighted  in  holding  social  commune  with  learned 
men  and  lovers  of  books,  yet  when  we  prospered  in  the 
world,  ...  we  obtained  ampler  facilities  for  visiting  every- 
where as  we  would,  and  of  hunting  as  it  were  certain  most 
choice  preserves,  libraries  private  as  well  as  public,  and  of 
the  regular  as  well  as  of  the  secular  clergy.  .  .  .  There  was 
afforded  to  us,  in  consideration  of  the  royal  favour,  easy 
access  for  the  purpose  of  freely  searching  the  retreats  of 
books.  In  fact,  the  fame  of  our  love  of  them  had  been 
soon  winged  abroad  everywhere,  and  we  were  reported  to 
burn  with  such  desire  for  books,  and  especially  old  ones, 

1  0.  H.  S.,  32,  Collect.  36-40;  also  9. 

8  Blakiston,  Trin.  Coll.  5,  7  ;  A.  de  Murimuth,  171. 


i8o          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

that  it  was  more  easy  for  any  man  to  gain  our  favour  by 
means  of  books  than  of  money.  Wherefore,  since  supported 
by  the  goodness  of  the  aforesaid  prince  of  worthy  memory, 
we  were  able  to  requite  a  man  well  or  ill  ...  there  flowed  in, 
instead  of  presents  and  guerdons,  and  instead  of  gifts  and 
jewels,  soiled  tracts  and  battered  codices,  gladsome  alike  to 
our  eye  and  heart.  Then  the  aumbries  of  the  most  famous 
monasteries  were  thrown  open,  cases  were  unlocked  and 
caskets  were  undone,  and  volumes  that  had  slumbered 
through  long  ages  in  their  tombs  wake  up  and  are 
astonished,  and  those  that  had  lain  hidden  in  dark  places 
are  bathed  in  the  ray  of  unwonted  light.  These  long  life- 
less books,  once  most  dainty,  but  now  become  corrupt  and 
loathesome,  covered  with  litters  of  mice  and  pierced  with 
the  gnawings  of  the  worms,  and  who  were  once  clothed  in 
purple  and  fine  linen,  now  lying  in  sackcloth  and  ashes, 
given  up  to  oblivion,  seemed  to  have  become  habitations  of 
the  moth.  .  .  .  Thus  the  sacred  vessels  of  learning  came  into 
our  control  and  stewardship ;  some  by  gift,  others  by 
purchase,  and  some  lent  to  us  for  a  season." l 

If  his  words  are  true,  monastic  and  other  libraries  must 
have  been  seriously  despoiled  to  build  up  his  own  collection. 
He  was  bribed  by  St.  Albans  Abbey,  and  nobody  need 
disbelieve  him  when  he  says  he  got  many  presents  from 
other  houses,  for  the  merit  of  being  open-handed  was 
rewarded  with  more  good  mediation  and  favours  than  the 
giver's  cause  deserved ;  indeed,  De  Bury  himself  seems  to 
have  made  judicious  use  of  bribes  for  his  own  advance- 
ment.2 Usually  gifts  were  in  jewels  or  plate,  but  books 
were  given  to  men  known  to  love  them ;  as  when 


1  R.  de  B.,  197-199- 

2  "R.  de  Bury  .  .  .  qui  ipsum  episcopatum  et  omnia  sua  beneficia  prius 
habita  per  preces  magnatum  et  ambitionis  vitium  adquisivit,  et  ideo  toto  tempore 
suo  inopia  laboravit  et  prodigus  exstitit  in  expensis." — Murimuth,  171. 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    181 

Whethamstede    presented     Humfrey     of    Gloucester    and 
the  Duke  of  Bedford  with  books  they  coveted. 

While  acting  as  emissary  for  his  "  illustrious  prince," 
de  Bury  hunts  his  quarry  in  the  narrow  ways  of  Paris, 
and  captures  "  inestimable  books "  by  freely  opening  his 
purse,  the  coins  of  which  are,  to  his  mind,  "  mud  and  sand  " 
compared  with  the  treasures  he  gets.  He  blesses  the  friars 
and  protects  them,  and  they  rout  out  books  from  the 
"  universities  and  high  schools  of  various  provinces " ;  but 
how,  whether  rightfully  or  wrongfully,  we  do  not  know. 
He  "  does  not  disdain,"  he  tells  us — in  truth,  he  is  surely 
overjoyed — to  visit  ", their  libraries  and  any  other  repositories 
of  books  "  ;  nay,  there  he  finds  heaped  up  amid  the  utmost 
poverty  the  utmost  riches  of  wisdom.  He  freely  employs 
the  booksellers,  but  the  wiles  of  the  collector  are  as  notorious 
as  the  wiles  of  women,  and  his  chief  aim  is  to  "  captivate 
the  affection  of  all "  who  can  get  him  books ; — not  even 
forgetting  "  the  rectors  of  schools  and  the  instructors  of  rude 
boys,"  although  we  cannot  think  he  gets  much  from  them. 
If  he  cannot  buy  books,  he  has  copies  made :  about  his 
person  are  scribes  and  correctors,  illuminators  and  binders, 
and  generally  all  who  can  usefully  labour  in  the  service  of 
books ;  in  large  numbers — in  no  small  multitude.  And  by 
these  means  he  gets  together  more  books  than  all  the  other 
English  bishops  put  together:  more  than  five  waggon 
loads  ;  a  veritable  hoard,  overflowing  into  the  hall  of  his 
house,  and  into  his  bedroom,  where  he  steps  over  them  to 
get  to  his  couch.  He  was  a  man  "  of  small  learning,"  says 
Murimuth ;  "  passably  literate,"  writes  Chambre ;  at  the 
best,  according  to  Petrarch,  "  of  ardent  temperament,  not 
ignorant  of  literature,  with  a  natural  curiosity  for  out-of-the- 
way  lore  " :  an  antiquarian,  not  of  the  lovable  kind,  but  un- 
scrupulous, pedantic,  and  vain,  indulging  an  inordinate  taste 
for  collecting  and  hoarding  books,  perhaps  to  satisfy  a 


182          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

craving  for  shreds  and  patches  of  knowledge,  but  more 
likely  to  earn  a  reputation  as  a  great  clerk.1  For  De  Bury 
was  something  of  a  humbug;  the  Philobiblon,  if  it  is  his 
work,  reaches  the  utmost  limit  of  affectation  in  the  love  of 
books. 

§n 

The  literature  of  the  later  part  of  the  fourteenth  century 
affords  us  glimpses  of  other  readers  who  were  not  merely 
collectors.  The  author — or  authors — of  Piers  Plowman 
seems  to  have  had  within  his  reach  a  fair  library.  His 
reading  was  carelessly  done  for  the  most  part,  his  references 
are  vague  and  incorrect,  and  his  quotations  not  always  exact. 
But  he  was  well  read  in  the  Scriptures,  which  he  knew  far 
better  than  any  other  book.  From  the^Fathers  he  gathered 
much,  perhaps  by  means  of  collections  of  extracts  from 
their  works.  He  used  the  Golden  Legend^  Huon  de  Meri's 
allegorical  poem  of  the  fight  between  Jesus  and  the  Anti- 
christ, Peter  Comestor's  Bible  History,  Rustebeufs  La  Vote 
de  Paradis,  Grosseteste's  religious  allegory  of  Le  Chastel 
a" Amour,  the  paraded  learning  of  Vincent  of  Beauvais  in 
Speculum  Historiale,  and  other  works — numerous  and  small 
signs  of  booklore,  which  are  completely  overshadowed  by 
his  illuminating  comprehension  of  the  popular  side  in  the 
politics  of  his  day.  Gower,  too,  had  at  his  disposal  a  little 
library  of  some  account,  including  the  Scriptures,  theological 
writings  and  ecclesiastical  histories,  Aristotle,  some  of 
the  classics,  and  a  good  deal  of  romance  in  prose  and 
verse. 

But  Chaucer  was  the  ideal  book-lover :  knowing  Dante, 
Boccaccio,  and  in  some  degree  "  Franceys  Petrark,  the 
laureat  poete,"  who  "  enlumined  al  Itaille  of  poetry,"  Virgil, 
Cicero,  Seneca,  Ovid — his  favourite  author — and  Boethius  ; 

1  "  Volens  tamen  magnus  clericus  reputari." — Murimuth,  171. 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    183 

as  well  as  Guido  delle  Colonne's  prose  epic  of  the  story  of 
Troy,  the  poems  of  Guillaume  de  Machaut,  the  Roman  de 
la  Rose,  and  a  work  on  the  astrolabe  by  Messahala.1  We 
have  some  excellent  pictures  of  Chaucer's  habit  of  reading. 
When  his  day's  work  is  done  he  goes  home  and  buries 
himself  with  his  books — 

"Domb  as  any  stoon, 
Thou  sittest  at  another  boke, 
Til  fully  daswed  is  thy  loke."2 

In  the  Parliament  of  Fowls  he  tells  us  that  he  read  books 
often  for  instruction  and  pleasure,  and  the  coming  on  of 
night  alone  would  force  him  to  put  away  his  book.  He 
would  not  have  been  a  true  reader  had  he  not  developed 
the  habit  of  reading  in  bed. 

".  .  .  Whan  I  saw  I  might  not  slepe, 
Til  now  late,  this  other  night, 
Upon  my  bedde  I  sat  upright 
And  bad  oon  reche  me  a  book, 
A  romance,  and  he  hit  me  took 
To  rede  and  dryve  the  night  away ; 

And  in  this  boke  were  writen  fables 
That  clerkes  hadde,  in  olde  tyme, 
And  other  poets,  put  in  ryme.  .  .  ." 3 

So  he  found  solace  and  delight,  as  countless  thousand's 
have  done,  in  his  Ovid.  The  world  of  books  and  of 
reading  is  apt  to  seem  stuffy,  the  favoured  home  of  the 
moody  spirit,  a  lair  to  which  a  dirty  and  ragged  Maglia- 
bechi  retreats,  a  palace  where  a  Beckford  gloats  solitary 
over  his  treasures — a  world  whence  we  often  desire  to 
escape,  since  we  know  we  can  return  to  it  when  we  will. 
For  if  good  books  shelter  us  from  the  realities  of  life,  life 

1  Skeat's  Chaucer,  vi.  381. 

2  Hous  of  Fame,  Works,  iii.  bk.  ii.  1.  656-58. 

3  Book  of  the  Duchesse,  44. 


1 84          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

itself  refreshes  the  student  like  cool  rain  upon  the  fevered 
brow.  Chaucer  was  the  bright  spirit  who  let  his  books  fill 
their  proper  place  in  his  life.  In  books,  he  says — 

"I  me  delyte, 

And  to  hem  give  I  feyth  and  ful  credence, 
And  in  myn  heart  have  hem  in  reverence 
So  hertely  that  ther  is  game  noon 
That  fro  my  bokes  maketh  me  to  goon." 

Yet  books  are  something  much  less  than  life :  there  is  the 
open  air, — the  meadows  bright  with  flowers, — the  melody 
of  birds, — 

".  .  .  Whan  that  the  month  of  May 
Is  comen,  and  that  I  hear  the  foules  singe, 
And  that  the  flowers  'ginnen  for  to  spring 
Farwel  my  book.  .  .  ."l 

§  in 

By  the  end  of  the  fourteenth  century  we  find  signs 
that  books  more  often  formed  a  part  of  well-to-do  house- 
holds, and  that  the  formal  reading  and  reciting  entertain- 
ments were  giving  place  gradually  to  the  informal  and 
personal  use  of  books.  Among  many  pieces  of  evidence 
that  this  was  so,  Chaucer  himself  furnishes  us  with  two  of 
the  best,  one  in  the  Wife  of  Bath's  Tale,  and  the  other  in 
his  Troilus  and  Criseide.  The  Wife  took  for  her  fifth 
husband,  "  God  his  soule  blesse,"  a  clerk  of  Oxenford— 

"He  was,  I  trowe,  a  twenty  winter  old, 
And  I  was  fourty,  if  I  shal  seye  sooth." 

Joly  Jankin,  as  the  clerk  was  called, 

"  Hadde  a  book  that  gladly,  night  and  day, 
For  his  desport  he  wolde  rede  alvvay. 

1  Legend  of  Good  Women,  prol.  3off. 


CARMELITE   IN    HIS   STUDY 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    185 

He  cleped  [called]  it  Valerie  and  Theofraste,1 
At  whiche  book  he  lough  alwey  ful  faste. 

And  every  night  and  day  was  his  custume, 
When  he  had  leyser  and  vacacioun 
From  other  worldly  occupacioun, 
To  reden  on  this  book  of  wikked  wyves." 2 

And  having  quickly  taken  measure  of  the  Wife's  character, 
he  could  not  refrain  from  reading  to  her  stories  which 
seemed  to  contain  a  lesson  and  to  point  a  moral  for  her. 
She  lost  patience,  and  was  "  beten  for  a  book,  pardee." 

"Up-on  a  night  Jankin,  that  was  our  syre, 
Redde  on  his  book,  as  he  sat  by  the  fyre." 

And  when  his  wife  saw  he  would  "  never  fyne "  to  read 
"  this  cursed  book  al  night,"  all  suddenly  she  plucked 
three  leaves  out  of  it,  "  right  as  he  radde,"  and  with 
her  fist  so  took  him  on  the  cheek  that  he  fell  "  bakward 
adoun "  in  the  fire.  Springing  up  like  a  mad  lion  he 
smote  her  on  the  head  with  his  fist,  and  she  lay  upon  the 
floor  as  she  were  dead.  Whereupon  he  stood  aghast,  sorry 
for  what  he  had  done ;  and  "  with  muchel  care  and  wo " 
they  made  up  their  quarrel :  our  clerk,  let  us  hope,  winning 
peace,  and  his  wife  securing  the  mastery  of  their  household 
affairs  and  the  destruction  of  the  "  cursed  book." 

In  Troilus  we  are  told  that  Uncle  Pandarus  comes 
into  the  paved  parlour,  where  he  finds  his  niece  sitti  \g 
with  two  other  ladies — 

"...  And  they  three 
Herden  a  mayden  reden  hem  the  geste 
Of  the  Sege  of  Thebes  .  .  ." 

1  Valerie:   possibly  Epistola    Valerii  ad  Riifinum  de  uxore  non  ducenda, 
attributed  to  Walter  Mapes ;    it  is  a  short  treatise  of  about  eight  folios ;  it  is 
printed  in  Cam.  Soc.  xvi.  77.     Theofraste  :  Aureolus  liber  de  Nuptiis,  by  one 
Theophrastus. 

2  LI.  669-85. 


1 86          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

'  "  What  are  you  reading  ? "  cries  Pandarus.  "  For 
Goddes  love,  what  seith  it  ?  Tel  it  us.  Is  it  of  love  ?  " 
Whereupon  the  niece  returns  him  a  saucy  answer,  and 
"  with  that  they  gonnen  laughe,"  and  then  she  says — 

"  This  romaunce  is  of  Thebes,  that  we  rede ; 
And  we  can  herd  how  that  King  Laius  deyde 
Thurgh  Edippus  his  sone,  and  al  that  dede ; 
And  here  we  stenten  [left  off]  at  these  lettres  rede, 
How  the  bisshop,  as  the  book  can  telle, 
Amphiorax,  fil  through  the  ground  to  helle."1 

This  picture  of  a  little  informal  reading  circle  is  not  to  be 
found  in  like  perfection  elsewhere  in  English  medieval 
literature.2 

§  IV 

By  the  middle  of  the  fifteenth  century  book-collecting 
was  a  more  fashionable  pastime.  Had  it  not  been  so  we 
should  have  been  surprised.  From  1365  to  1450  was  an 
age  of  library  building.  Oxford  University  now  had  its 
library :  in  quick  succession  the  colleges  of  Merton, 
William  of  Wykeham,  Exeter,  University,  Durham,  Balliol, 
Peterhouse,  Lincoln,  All  Souls,  Magdalen,  Queens' 
(Cambridge),  Pembroke  (Cambridge),  and  St.  John's 
(Cambridge)  followed  the  example.  Library  rooms  also 
had  been  put  up  in  the  cathedrals  of  Hereford,  Exeter, 
York,  Lincoln,  Wells,  Salisbury,  St.  Paul's,  and  Lichfield. 
Moreover,  in  London  had  been  established  the  first 
public  library.  Dick  Whittington,  of  famous  memory, 
and  William  Bury  founded  it  between  1421  and  1426. 
The  civic  records  tell  us  that  "  Upon  the  petition  of  John 


1  Troilus,  ii.  81-105. 

2  It  seems  to  be  Chaucer's  own ;  only  about  one-third  of  the  poem  comes 
from  Boccaccio's  Filostrato.     Chaucer  had  a  copy  of  the  Thebais  of  Statius. — 
Troilus •,  v.  1.  1484. 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    187 

Coventry,  John  Carpenter,  and  William  Grove,  the  executors 
of  Richard  Whittington  and  William  Bury,  the  Custody  of 
the  New  House,  or  Library,  which  they  had  built,  with  the 
Chamber  under,  was  placed  at  their  disposal  by  the  Lord 
Mayor,  Aldermen,  and  Commonalty."  x  The  foundation  is 
described  as  "  a  certen  house  next  unto  the  sam  Chapel 
apperteynyng,  called  the  library,  all  waies  res'ved  for 
students  to  resorte  unto,  wl  three  chambres  under  nithe 
the  saide  library,  which  library  being  covered  wl  slate  is 
valued  together  wl  the  chambres  at  xiijs.  iiijd.  yerely.  .  .  . 
The  saied  library  is  a  house  appointed  by  the  saied  Maior 
and  cominaltie  for  ...  resorte  of  all  students  for  their 
education  in  Divine  Scriptures."2  Stow,  writing  in  1598, 
spoke  of  it  as  "  sometime  a  fayre  and  large  library,  furnished 
with  books.  .  .  .  The  armes  of  Whitington  are  placed  on 
the  one  side  in  the  stone  worke,  and  two  letters,  to  wit, 
W.  and  B.,  for  William  Bury,  on  the  other  side."  Wealthy 
citizens  came  forward  with  pecuniary  aid  then  as  they  have 
ever  done.  William  Chichele,  sometime  Sheriff,  bequeathed 
"  xh  to  be  bestowyed  on  books  notable  to  be  layde  in  the 
newe  librarye  at  the  gildehall  at  London  for  to  be  memoriall 
for  John  Hadle,  sumtyme  meyre,  and  for  me  there  while 
they  mowe  laste."3  This  was  in  1425.  Eighteen  years 
later  one  of  Whittington's  executors,  named  John  Carpenter, 
made  this  direction  in  his  will :  "  If  any  good  or  rare  books 
shall  be  found  amongst  the  said  residue  of  my  goods, 
which,  by  the  discretion  of  the  aforesaid  Master  William 
Lichfield  and  Reginald  Pecock,  may  seem  necessary  to  the 
common  library  at  Guildhall,  for  the  profit  of  the  students 
there,  and  those  discoursing  to  the  common  people,  then  I 


1  Letter-book  K,  fo.  39,  July  4,  1426. 

2  From  schedule  of  the  possessions  of  the  Guildhall  College,  July  24,  1549. — 
L.  A.  R.,  x.  381. 

3  Chichele  Register,  pt.  I,  fo.  3920,  Lamb.  Pal. ;  Z.  A.  R.t  x.  382. 


i88  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

will  and  bequeath  that  those  books  be  placed  by  my 
executors  and  chained  in  that  library  that  the  visitors  and 
students  thereof  may  be  the  sooner  admonished  to  pray  for 
my  soul "  (I442).1  But  this  library,  like  so  many  others,  did 
not  survive  the  disastrous  years  of  mid-sixteenth  century. 

It  would  be  singular  if  this  progress  in  library  making 
were  not  reflected  in  the  habits  of  a  considerable  section  of 
the  people.  The  court  and  its  entourage  set  the  fashion. 
Henry  vi  was  a  lover  of  books  and  a  collector.  His 
uncle,  John,  Duke  of  Bedford,  although  much  occupied 
with  public  affairs  and  mercilessly  warring  with  France, 
got  together  a  rich  library,  particularly  noteworthy  for 
finely  illuminated  books :  the  famous  library  of  the 
Louvre  was  a  part  of  his  French  booty.  Of  his 
brother  Gloucester  we  have  already  spoken.  Arch- 
bishop Kempe  owned  a  library  of  theology,  canon  and 
civil  law,  and  other  books,  worth  more  than  £260.  He 
also  gave  money  towards  the  cost  of  Gloucester's  library  at 
Oxford ;  as  did  also  Cardinal  Beaufort  and  the  Duchess  of 
Gloucester.  Sir  John  Fastolf  possessed  a  small  number 
of  books  at  Caistor  (c.  1450).  The  collection  was  of  some 
distinction,  as  the  inventory  will  show :  "  In  the  Stewe 
hous  ;  of  Frenche  books,  the  Bible,  the  Cronycles  of  France, 
the  Cronicles  of  Titus  Levius,  a  booke  of  Jullius  Cesar,  lez 
Propretez  dez  Choses  [by  Earth  Glanville],  Petrus  de 
Crescentiis,  liber  Almagesti,  liber  Geomancie  cum  iiij  aliis 
Astronomic,  liber  de  Roy  Artour,  Romaunce  la  Rose, 
Cronicles  d'Angleterre,  Veges  de  larte  Chevalerie,  Instituts 
of  Justien  Emperer,  Brute  in  ryme,  liber  Etiques,  liber  de 
Sentence  Joseph,  Problemate  Aristotelis,  Vice  and  Vertues, 
liber  de  Cronykes  de  Grant  Bretagne  in  ryme,  Meditacions 
Saynt  Bernard."  z  Perhaps  this  little  hoard  may  be  taken 

1  Conf.  of  Librarians  (1877),  216 ;  L.  A.  R.,  x.  382. 

2  Hist.  MSS.,  Wi  Kept.,  pt.  I,  268a. 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD     189 

as  a  fair  example  of  a  wealthy  gentleman's  library  in  the 
fifteenth  century.  A  collection  perhaps  accurately  repre- 
senting the  average  prelatical  library  was  that  of  Richard 
Browne,  running  to  more  than  thirty  books  of  the  common 
medieval  character  (1452).  A  canon  residentiary  of  York 
named  William  Duffield  had  a  library  of  forty  volumes,  as 
fine  as  Archbishop  Bowet's  collection,  and  valued  at  a 
higher  figure  (1452).  Ralph  Dreff,  of  Broadgates  Hall, 
possessed  no  fewer  than  twenty-three  volumes,  a  larger 
collection  than  Oxford  students  usually  had.  A  vicar  of 
Cookfield  owned  twenty-four  books,  some  of  them  priced 
cheaply  (1451). 

Some  collections  were  pathetically  small.  A  disreput- 
able student  of  Oxford,  John  Brette,  had  among  his  "  bits 
of  things"  a  book  and  a  pamphlet.  Thomas  Cooper, 
scholar  of  Brasenose  Hall,  enjoyed  the  use  of  six  volumes. 
Another  scholar,  John  Lassehowe,  had  a  like  number ; 
and  another,  Simon  Berynton,  had  fifteen  books,  worth 
sixpence  (c.  1448)!  A  rector  also  had  six,  one  of  them 
Greek ;  a  chaplain  was  equipped  with  six  medical  works ; 
and  James  Hedyan,  bachelor  of  canon  and  civil  law, 
could  employ  his  leisure  in  reading  one  of  his  little  store 
of  eight  volumes.  One  Elizabeth  Sywardby  owned  eight 
books,  three  being  costly  (1468). 

§  v 

More  records  of  the  same  kind  may  be  obtained  from 
almost  any  collection  of  wills  and  inventories,  the  number 
of  them  increasing  towards  the  end  of  the  manuscript  age. 
How  far  this  change  was  due  to  the  influence  of  Italy  we 
do  not  fully  know.  Certainly  before  the  end  of  Henry  Vl's 
reign  the  first  impulse  of  the  Italian  renascence — the 
impulse  to  gather  up  the  materials  of  a  more  catholic  and 


190          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

liberal  knowledge — had  been  transmitted  to  England. 
Students  left  our  shores  to  widen  their  studies  in  Italy. 
Public  men  in  England  corresponded  with  Italians,  and 
fell  into  sympathy  with  their  aims.  Occasionally  scholars 
came  hither  from  Italy.  Manuel  Chrysoloras,  one  of  the 
leading  revivers  of  Greek  studies  in  Italy,  visited  England 
in  the  service  of  Manuel  Palaeologus,  and  possibly  stayed 
at  Christ  Church  monastery  in  I4O8.1  Poggio  Bracciolini 
came  to  this  country  in  1418—23  at  the  invitation  of 
Cardinal  Beaufort :  what  he  did  while  here  we  know  far 
too  little  about,  but  this  visit  of  Italy's  greatest  book- 
collector  and  discoverer  of  Latin  classical  manuscripts 
cannot  have  been  without  some  effect  upon  English 
students.  For  Poggio  the  visit  was  almost  without  result. 
He  was  in  search  of  manuscripts,  but  apparently  failed  to 
get  any  with  which  he  was  unacquainted.  He  dismissed 
our  libraries  with  the  sharp  criticism  that  they  were  full  of 
trash,  and  described  Englishmen  as  almost  devoid  of  love 
for  letters.2  ^Eneas  Sylvius  also  came  here,  and  his  visit 
likewise  must  have  borne  some  fruit  (1435). 

Much  also  was  accomplished  by  correspondence. 
Among  those  in  communication  with  Italians  and  ac- 
quainted with  the  course  of  their  studies,  were  Bishop 
Bekington,  one  of  the  earliest  alumni  of  Wykeham's 
foundation  at  Oxford,  Adam  de  Molyneux,  the  corre- 
spondent of  ^Eneas  Sylvius,  Thomas  Chaundler,  warden 
of  New  College,  Archdeacon  Bildstone,  Archbishop  Arundel, 
the  benefactor  of  Oxford  University  Library  and  corre- 
spondent of  Salutati,  Cardinal  Beaufort's  secretary,  and 
Humfrey  of  Gloucester.  Upon  the  last-named  Italian 
influence  was  strong.  Among  the  books  he  gave  to 

1  Gasquet2,  20;  Sandys,  ii.  220;  Legrand,  Bibliographic  HelUnique,  i.  (1885) 
xxiv.,  where  the  date  is  1405-6. 

2  Epp.  (ed.  Tonelli,  1832-61),  i.  43,  70,  74. 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    191 

Oxford  were  Petrarch,  Dante,  and  Boccaccio,  but  probably 
the  strongest  evidence  of  this  influence  would  be  found  in 
the  books  he  retained  for  his  own  use.  He  sought  a 
rendering  of  Aristotle's  Politics  from  Bruni  ;  of  Cicero's 
Republic  from  Decembrio  ;  of  certain  of  Plutarch's  Lives 
from  Lapo  da  Castiglionchio  ;  and  had  other  works 
translated.1 

But  many  English  students  were  attracted  to  visit  Italy 
for  the  express  purpose  of  sitting  under  Italian  teachers. 
As  early  as  1395,  one  Thomas  of  England,  a  brother  of 
the  Augustine  order,  went  to  Italy  and  purchased  manu- 
scripts, "  books  of  the  modern  poets,"  and  translations  and 
other  early  works  of  Leonardo  Bruni.2  Thomas  was  one 


AUTOGRAPH  OF   DUKE   HUMFREY  OF   GLOUCESTER. 

of  the  first  of  a  number  of  enlightened  Englishmen  who 
journeyed  laboriously  and  in  steady  procession  to  Italy, 
this  time  not  only  to  Rome,  but  to  the  northern  towns, 
then,  with  Venice,  "  the  common  ports  of  humanity," 
whither  they  were  attracted  by  the  fame  of  the  bright 
galaxy  of  humanists  —  of  Coluccio  Salutati,  collector  of 
Latin  manuscripts,  Manuel  Chrysoloras,  Niccolo  de'  Niccoli, 
grubbing  Poggio  Bracciolini,  Pope  Nicholas,  sometime 
Cosimo  de'  Medici's  librarian  and  the  founder  of  the 
Vatican  Library,  Giovanni  Aurispa,  famous  collector  of 

1  "  Cest  livre  est  a  moy  Homfrey  Due  de  Glocestre,  lequel  je  fis  translater 
de  Grec  en  Latin  par  un  de  mes  secretaires,  Antoyne  de  Beccariane  de  Verone." 
—Cam.  Soc.  1843,  Ellis,  Letters,  357. 

2  Gherardi,  Statuti  delta  Univ.  e  Studio  Fiorentino,  364  ;  Sandys,  ii.  220  ; 
Einstein,  15. 


192  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Greek  manuscripts  in  the  East,  the  renowned  Guarino  da 
Verona,  Palla  degli  Strozzi,  would-be  founder  of  a  public 
library,  Cosimo  de'  Medici,  whose  princely  collections  are 
the  chiefest  treasures  of  the  Laurentian  Library,  Francesco 
Filelfo,  another  importer  of  Greek  books  from  Constantinople, 
and  Vespasiano,  the  great  bookseller. 

Sometimes  these  pilgrims  to  Italy  were  poor  men, 
as  were  John  Free,  and  the  two  Oxford  men,  Norton 
and  Bulkeley,  who  went  thither  in  I425-29.1  But  as  a 
rule  such  a  journey  was  only  possible  for  wealthy  men. 
An  important  pilgrim  was  Andrew  Holes,  who  repre- 
sented England  a,t  the  Pope's  court  in  Florence.2  In 
the  eyes  of  Vespasiano,  Holes  was  one  of  the  most 
cultivated  of  Englishmen.  He  appears  to  have  bought 
too  many  books  to  send  by  land,  and  so  was  obliged  to 
wait  for  a  ship  to  transport  them.  What  became  of  these 
books  ? — did  he  collect  for  his  own  use  ? — or  was  he  acting 
merely  for  Duke  Humfrey  or  the  king? — or  did  he  leave 
them,  as  it  is  said,  to  his  Church  ?  Unfortunately  these 
are  questions  which  cannot  be  answered. 

Four  other  men,  Tiptoft,  Grey,  Free,  and  Gunthorpe, 
all  of  Balliol  College,  where  the  influence  of  Duke  Humfrey 
may  fairly  be  suspected,  journeyed  to  Italy.  "Butcher" 
Tiptoft,  an  intimate  of  another  enlightened  community  at 
Christ  Church,  visited  Guarino,  walked  Florentine  streets 
arm-in-arm  with  Vespasiano,  thrilled  yEneas  Sylvius,  then 
Pope,  with  a  Latin  oration,  and  returned  to  his  own  country 
with  many  books,  some  of  which  he  intended  to  give 
to  Oxford  University — one  of  the  best  deeds  of  his 
unhappy  and  calamitous  life.3  While  in  Italy,  William 
Grey,  who  sat  under  Guarino,  and  made  Niccolo  Perotti, 

1  O.H.S.,  35,  Anstey,  17,  45. 

3  "  Messer  Andrea  Ols  "  in  Italian  authority ;  identified  by  Dr.  Sandys. 

3  O.H.S.,  36,  Anstey,  ii.  389-91 ;  Sandys,  ii.  221-26;  Einstein,  26. 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    193 

well  known  as  a  grammarian,  free  of  his  princely  establish- 
ment, was  conspicuously  industrious  in  accumulating  books. 
If  he  could  not  obtain  them  in  any  other  way  he  employed 
scribes  to  copy  for  him,  and  an  artist  of  Florence  to  adorn 
them  in  a  costly  manner  with  miniatures  and  initials.  In 
nearly  six  years  he  collected  over  two  hundred  volumes 
of  manuscripts,  some  as  old  as  the  twelfth  century; 
probably  the  finest  library  sent  to  England  in  that  age. 
No  fewer  than  152  of  his  manuscripts  are  now  in  the 
Balliol  College  library,  to  which  he  gave  his  whole  collec- 
tion in  1478;  unfortunately  most  of  the  miniatures  are 
destroyed.  To  his  patronage  of  learning  and  his  book- 
collecting  propensities  Grey  owed  his  friendship  with 
Nicholas  V,  and  his  bishopric  of  Ely.  Grey  was  also  a 
good  friend  to  Free  or  Phreas,  a  poor  student,  and  aided 
him  in  Italy  with  money  for  his  expenses  of  living  and  to 
obtain  Greek  manuscripts  to  translate.1  Free  and  John 
Gunthorpe,  Dean  of  Wells,  went  to  Italy  together :  Free 
did  not  live  to  return,  but  Gunthorpe  brought  home 
manuscripts.  He  gave  the  bulk  of  them  to  Jesus  College, 
where  only  one  or  two  are  left;  some  have  found  their 
way  to  other  Cambridge  Colleges.2  Another  Oxford 
scholar,  Robert  Flemming,  was  in  Italy  in  1450:  here  he 
became  the  friend  of  the  great  librarian  of  the  Vatican, 
Platina ;  and  got  together  a  number  of  manuscripts, 
afterwards  given  to  Lincoln  College. 

§  VI 

The  intercourse  of  all  these  scholars  with  Italians  was 
carried  on  before  mid-fifteenth  century.     Their  chief  interest 

1  MS.  587  Bodl. 

2  Leland3,  463  ;  Leland,  iii.  13  ;  Einstein,  23,  54-5  ;  C.A.S.,  8vo  ser.,  No.  32 
(1899),  13- 


194          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

was  in  Latin  books,  although  a  large  number  of  Greek 
manuscripts  had  been  brought  to  Italy  by  Angeli  da 
Scarparia,  Guarino,  Giovanni  Aurispa,  and  Filelfo.  After 
the  fall  of  Constantinople  the  Greek  immigrants  introduced 
books  into  Italy  much  more  freely.  George  Hermonymus 
of  Sparta,  a  Greek  teacher  and  copyist  of  Greek  manu- 
scripts, visited  England  on  a  papal  mission  in  1475,  but 
whether  he  had  any  influence  on  our  intellectual  pursuits 
does  not  appear.1  Certainly,  however,  English  scholars 
soon  appreciated  this  new  literature. 

Letters  sent  to  Pope  Sixtus  in  1484  by  the  king,  refer 
to  the  skill  of  John  Shirwood,  bishop  of  Durham,  in  Latin 
and  Greek.2  Shirwood  seems  to  have  collected  a  respectable 
library.  His  Latin  books  were  acquired  by  Bishop  Foxe, 
and  formed  the  nucleus  of  the  library  with  which  the  latter 
endowed  Corpus  Christi  College,  Oxford.  Some  thirty 
volumes,  a  number  of  them  printed,  now  remain  at  the 
College  to  bring  him  to  mind :  among  them  we  find  Pliny, 
Terence,  Cicero,  Livy,  Suetonius,  Plutarch,  and  Horace. 
Less  fortunate  has  been  the  fate  of  his  Greek  books,  which 
went  to  the  collegiate  church  of  Bishop  Auckland.  At  the 
end  of  the  fifteenth  century  this  church  owned  about  forty 
volumes.  The  only  exceptions  to  its  medieval  character 
were  Cicero's  Letters  and  Offices,  Silius  Italicus,  and 
Theodore  Gaza's  Greek  grammar.3  But  Leland  tells  us 
that  Tunstall,  who  succeeded  to  the  bishopric  in  1530, 
found  a  store  of  Shirwood's  Greek  manuscripts  at  this 
church.  What  became  of  them  we  do  not  know.4 

About  this  same  time  a  certain  Emmanuel  of  Con- 
stantinople seems  to  have  been  employed  in  England  as  a 


1  E.  H.  R.,  xxv.  449. 

2  Rymer,  Foedera,  xii.  214,  216;  E.  H.  R.,  xxv.  450. 

3  Now  MS.  li.  4,  1 6,  at  Cambridge  University  Library. 

4  On  Shirwood's  books  see  E.  H.  R.,  xxv.  449-53. 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    195 

copyist.  For  Archbishop  Neville  he  produced  a  Greek 
manuscript  containing  some  sermones  judiciales  of  Demos- 
thenes, and  letters  of  Aeschines,  Plato,  and  Chion  (I468).1 
Dr.  Montague  James  has  shown  that  this  manuscript  of 
Emmanuel  is  by  the  same  hand  as  the  manuscripts  known 
as  the  "  Ferrar  group,"  which  comprises  "  a  Plato  and 
Aristotle  now  at  Durham,  two  psalters  in  Cambridge 
libraries,  a  psalter  and  part  of  a  Suidas  at  Oxford,  and 
the  famous  Leicester  Codex  of  the  Gospels."  2  Dr.  James 
believes  the  Plato  and  the  Aristotle  to  have  been  transcribed 
for  Neville  by  Emmanuel.  In  1472  the  archbishop's  house- 
hold was  broken  up,  and  the  "  greete  klerkys  and  famous 
doctors "  of  his  entourage  went  to  Cambridge.  Among 
them,  it  is  conjectured,  was  Emmanuel,  and  so  it  came  to 
pass  that  three  manuscripts  in  his  writing  have  been  at 
Cambridge ;  two  psalters,  as  we  have  said,  are  there  now, 
and  in  the  beginning  of  the  sixteenth  century  one  of  them, 
with  the  Leicester  Codex,  was  certainly  in  the  hands  of  the 
Grey  Friars  at  Cambridge.  This  happy  fruit  of  Dr.  James' 
research  throws  a  welcome  ray  of  light  on  the  pursuit  of 
Greek  studies  in  the  last  quarter  of  the  fifteenth  century.3 

In  view  of  all  the  hard  things  which  have  been  said  of 
the  religious,  it  is  significant  to  find  them  taking  a  leading 
part  in  bringing  Greek  studies  to  England.  We  cannot 
collate  all  the  instances  here,  but  a  few  may  be  brought 
together.  Two  Benedictines  named  William  of  Selling  and 
William  Hadley,  some  time  warden  of  Canterbury  College, 
Oxford,  were  in  Italy  studying  and  buying  books  for 
three  years  after  1464.*  The  former  became  distinguished 
for  his  aptitude  in  learning  the  ancient  tongues,  and 

1  Leiden,  Voss.  MSS.  Graec.,  56. 

2  On  this  group  see  Harris,  Jas.  Rendel,  The  Leicester  Codex. 

3  E.  H.  R.,  xxv.  446-7  j  James. 

4  Liter ae   Cant.    (Rolls   Ser.),   iii.  239;   cf.  Campbell,  Math  for  Hist,  of 
H.  vn.,  ii.  85,  114,  224. 


196  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

consequently  won  the  friendship  of  Angelo  Poliziano. 
At  least  two  other  visits  to  Italy  were  made  by  him ; 
the  last  being  undertaken  as  an  emissary  of  the  king. 
On  these  occasions  he  got  together  as  many  Greek 
and  Latin  books  as  he  could,  and  brought  them — a 
large  and  precious  store  —  to  Canterbury.1  For  some 
reason  the  books  were  kept  in  the  Prior's  lodging 
instead  of  in  the  monastic  library,  and  here  they  perished 
through  the  carelessness  of  Layton's  myrmidons.2  Among 
the  books  lost  was  possibly  a  copy  of  Cicero's  Republic. 
Only  five  manuscripts  have  been  found  which  can  be  con- 
nected with  Selling's  library:  a  fifteenth-century  Greek 
Psalter,  a  copy  of  the  Psalms  in  Hebrew  and  Latin,  a 
Euripides,  a  Livy,  and  a  magnificent  Homer.3  This 
Homer  we  have  already  referred  to  in  an  earlier  chapter, 
when  describing  the  work  of  Theodore  of  Tarsus.  The 
signature  ©eo&wpo?  has  now  been  more  plausibly  explained. 
"  The  following  note,"  writes  Dr.  James,  "  which  I  found  in 
Dr.  Masters's  copy  of  Stanley's  Catalogue,  preserved  in 
[Corpus  Christi]  College  Library,  suggests  another  origin 
for  this  Homer.  I  have  been  unable  to  identify  the  docu- 
ment to  which  reference  is  made.  It  should  obviously  be  a 
letter  of  an  Italian  humanist  in  the  Harleian  collection.  .  .  . 
'  Mem. :  Humphrey  Wanley,  Librarian  to  the  late  Earl  of 
Oxford,  told  Mr.  Fran :  Stanley,  son  of  the  author,  a  little 
before  his  death,  that  in  looking  over  some  papers  in  the 
papers  in  the  Earl's  library,  he  found  a  Letter  from  a  learned 
Italian  to  his  Friend  in  England,  wherein  he  told  him  there 
was  then  a  very  stately  Homer  just  transcribed  for  Theodorus 

1  Leland3,  482.     The  Obit  in  Christ  Church  MS.  D.  12  refers  to  Selling  as 
"  Sacrae  Theologiae  Doctor.     Hie  in  divinis  agendis  multum  devotus  et  lingua 
Graeca  et  Latina  valde  eruditus." — Gasquet2,  24. 

2  Gasquet2,  24 ;  James,  li. 

3  Homer  and   Euripides  are  in  Corpus  Christi  College,   Cambridge;    the 
others  are  in  Trinity  College,  Cambridge. — James16,  9  ;  Gasquet2,  30, 


A   SCRIBE   (ST.  MARK   WRITING   HIS   GOSPEL) 

FROM   THE    BEDFORD    HOURS 


END  OF  THE  MANUSCRIPT  PERIOD    197 

Gaza,  of  whose  Illumination  he  gives  him  a  very  particular 
description,  which  answer'd  so  exactly  in  every  part  to  that 
here  set  forth,  that  he  [Wanley]  was  fully  perswaded  it  was 
this  very  Book,  and  yl  the  OeoSwpos  at  the  bottom  of  1st 
page  order'd  to  be  placed  there  by  Gaza  as  his  own  name, 
gave  occasion  to  Abp.  Parker  to  imagine  it  might  have 
belonged  to  Theodore  of  Canterbury,  which  however  Hody 
was  of  opinion  could  not  be  of  that  age.'  Th.  Gaza," 
continues  Dr.  James,  "  died  in  1478;  the  suggestion  here 
made  is  quite  compatible  with  the  hypothesis  that  Sellinge 
was  the  means  of  conveying  the  Homer  to  England, 
and  does  supply  a  rather  welcome  interpretation  of  the 
OeoBwpos  inscription."  This  reasonable  hypothesis  may 
be  strengthened  if  we  point  out  that  Gaza  was  in  Rome 
from  1464  to  1472,  and  Selling  visited  that  city  between 
1464  and  1467  and  again  in  1469.  Selling  may  have  got 
the  manuscript  from  Gaza  on  one  of  these  occasions. 

There  is  evidence  of  Greek  studies  at  other  monasteries, 
— at  Westminster  after  1465,  when  Millyng,  an  "able 
graecian,"  became  prior  at  Reading  in  1499  and  1500, 
and  at  Glastonbury  during  the  time  of  Abbot  Bere.1 

But  Canterbury's  share  was  greatest  Selling  seems 
to  have  taught  Greek  at  Christ  Church.  In  the  monastic 
school  there  Thomas  Linacre  was  instructed,  and  probably 
got  the  rudiments  of  Greek  from  Selling  himself.  Thence 
Linacre  went  to  Oxford,  where  he  pursued  Greek  under 
Cornelius  Vitelli,  an  Italian  visitor  acting  as  praelector  in 
New  College.2  In  1485—6  Linacre  went  with  his  old 
master  to  Italy — his  Sancta  Mater  Studiorum — where  Sell- 
ing seems  to  have  introduced  him  to  Poliziano.  Linacre 
perfected  his  Greek  pursuits  under  Chalcondylas,  and 

1  Gasquet 2,  37. 

2  The  point  is  disputed ;  cf.  Einstein,  32  ;  Lyte,  386 ;  Camb.  Lit.,  iii.  5,  6 ; 
Rashdall  and  Rait,  New.  Coll.,  93  ;  Dr.  Sandys  does  not  mention  Vitelli. 


i98          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

became  acquainted  with  Aldo  Manuzio  the  famous  printer, 
and  Hermolaus  Barbarus.  A  little  story  is  told  of 
his  meeting  with  Hermolaus.  He  was  reading  a  copy  of 
Plato's  Phaedo  in  the  Vatican  Library  when  the  great 
humanist  came  up  to  him  and  said  "  the  youth  had  no 
claim,  as  he  had  himself,  to  the  title  Barbarus,  if  it  were 
lawful  to  judge  from  his  choice  of  a  book  " — an  incident 
which  led  to  a  great  friendship  between  the  two.  Grocyn 
and  Latimer  were  with  Linacre  in  Rome.  The  former 
was  the  first  to  carry  on  effectively  the  teaching  of  Greek 
begun  at  Oxford  possibly  by  Vitelli ;  but  he  was  neverthe- 
less a  conservative  scholar,  well  read  in  the  medieval 
schoolmen,  as  his  library  clearly  proves.  This  library  is  of 
interest  because  one  hundred  and  five  of  the  one  hundred 
and  twenty-one  books  in  it  were  printed.  The  manuscript 
age  is  well  past,  and  the  costliness  of  books,  the  chief 
obstacle  to  the  dissemination  of  thought,  was  soon  to  give 
no  cause  for  remark. 


CHAPTER    X 
THE    BOOK  TRADE 

SECULAR  makers  of  books  have  plied  their  trade  in 
Europe  since  classic  times,  but  during  the  early  age 
of  monachism  their  numbers  were  very  small  and 
they  must  have  come  nigh  extinction  altogether.  In  and 
after  the  eleventh  century  they  increased  in  numbers  and 
importance ;  their  ranks  being  recruited  not  only  by 
seculars  trained  in  the  monastic  schools,  but  by  monks 
who  for  various  reasons  had  been  ejected  from  their  order. 
These  traders  were  divided  into  several  classes :  parchment- 
makers,  scribes,  rubrishers  or  illuminators,  bookbinders, 
and  stationers  or  booksellers.  The  stationer  usually  con- 
trolled the  operations  of  the  other  craftsmen  ;  he  was  the 
middleman.  Scribes  were  either  ordinary  scriveners  called 
librarii,  or  writers  who  drew  up  legal  documents,  known  as 
notarii.  But  the  librarius  and  notarius  often  trenched 
upon  each  other's  work,  and  consequently  a  good  deal  of 
ill-feeling  usually  existed  between  them. 

Bookbinders,  and  booksellers  or  stationarii,  probably 
first  plied  their  trade  most  prosperously  in  England  at 
Oxford  and  Cambridge.  By  about  1 1  80  quite  a  number  of 
such  tradesmen  were  living  in  Oxford ;  a  single  document 
transferring  property  in  Cat  Street  bears  the  names  of 
three  illuminators,  a  bookbinder,  a  scribe,  and  two  parch- 
menters.1  Half  a  century  later  a  bookbinder  is  mentioned 

1  Rashdall,  ii.  343. 

IQQ 


200          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

in  a  deed  as  a  former  owner  of  property  in  the  parish  of 
St.  Peter's  in  the  East ;  another  bookbinder  is  witness  to  the 
deed  (c.  1232-4.0)}-  After  this  bookbinders  and  others  of 
the  craft  are  frequently  mentioned.  Towards  the  end  of  the 
thirteenth  century  Schydyerd  Street  and  Cat  Street,  the 
centre  of  University  life,  were  the  homes  of  many  people 
engaged  in  bookmaking  and  selling;  the  former  street 
especially  was  frequented  by  parchment  makers  and 
sellers.  In  this  street,  too,  "  a  tenement  called  Bokbynder's 
is  mentioned  in  a  charter  of  I  363-4 ;  and  although  book- 
binding may  not  have  been  carried  on  there  at  that  date, 
the  fact  of  the  name  having  been  attached  to  the  place 
seems  sufficient  to  justify  the  assumption  that  a  binder 
or  guild  of  binders  had  formerly  been  established  there. 
In  Cat  Street  a  Tenementum  Bokbyndere,  owned  by  Osney 
Abbey,  was  rented  in  1402  by  Henry  the  lymner,  at  a  some- 
what later  date  by  Richard  the  parchment-seller,  and  in 
1453  by  All  Souls'  College."2 

Stationers  had  transcripts  made,  bought,  sold  and  hired 
out  books  and  received  them  in  pawn.  They  acted  as 
agents  when  books  and  other  goods  were  sold;  in  1389,  for 
example,  a  stationer  received  twenty  pence  for  his  services 
in  buying  two  books,  one  costing  £4  and  the  other  five 
marks.3  They  attended  the  fair  at  St.  Giles  near  Oxford 
to  sell  books.  This  was  not  their  only  interest,  for  they 
dealt  in  goods  of  many  kinds.  They  were  in  fact  general 
tradesmen  :  sellers,  valuers,  and  agents ;  liable  to  be  called 
upon  to  have  a  book  copied,  to  buy  or  sell  a  book,  to  set  a 
value  upon  a  pledge,  to  make  an  inventory  and  valuation 
of  a  scholar's  goods  and  chattels  after  his  death.  Their 
office  was  such  an  important  one  for  the  well-being  of 

1  Biblio.  Soc.  Monogr.  x.  (S.  Gibson),  43-6. 

2  Ibid.,  p.  i  ;  O.ff.S.,  29  ;  Madan,  267,  contains  long  list  of  references. 

3  0.  H.  S.,  27,  Boase,  xxxvi. 


THE  BOOK  TRADE  201 

the  scholars  that  it  was  found  convenient  to  extend  to 
them  the  privileges  and  protection  of  the  University,  and 
in  return  to  exact  an  oath  of  fairdealing  from  them.1 

Before  the  end  of  the  thirteenth  century  the  Univer- 
sity's privileges  had  been  extended  to  servientes  known 
as  parchment-makers,  scribes,  and  illuminators;  in  1290 
the  privileges  were  confirmed.2  Certain  stationers  were 
then  undoubtedly  within  the  University  as  servientes t  but 
in  1356  they  are  recorded  positively  as  being  so  with  parch- 
menters,  illuminators,  and  writers:  and  again  in  1459  "  alle 
stationers  "  and  "  alle  bokebynders  "  enjoyed  the  privileges 
of  the  University,  with  "  lympners,  wryters,  and  perge- 
meners."  3  These  privileges  took  them  out  of  the  jurisdic- 
tion of  the  city,  although  they  still  had  to  pay  taxes,  which 
were  collected  by  the  University  and  paid  over  to  the  city 
treasurer. 

Stationers  regarded  as  the  University's  servants  were 
sworn,  as  we  have  already  indicated.  The  document 
giving  the  form  of  their  oath  is  undated,  but  most  likely 
the  rules  laid  down  were  observed  from  the  time  the 
stationers  were  first  attached  to  the  University.  The  oath 
was  strict.  A  part  of  their  duties  was  the  valuation  of 
books  and  other  articles  which  were  pledged  by  scholars 
in  return  for  money  from  the  University  chests.  These 
chests  or  hutches  were  expressly  founded  by  wealthy  men 
for  the  assistance  of  poor  scholars.  By  the  end  of  the 
fifteenth  century  there  were  at  Oxford  twenty-four  such 
chests,  valued  at  two  thousand  marks ;  a  large  pawnbroking 
fund,  but  probably  by  no  means  too  large.4  Mr.  Anstey,  the 
editor  of  Munimenta  Academica,  has  drawn  a  vivid  picture 
of  the  inspection  of  one  of  these  chests  and  of  the  business 

1  Cf.  Grace  B.  A  ix,  xlii,  xliii.  ;  O.H.S.,  29,  Madan,  Early  Oxf.  Press,  266  ; 
Mun.  Acad.,  532,  544,  579. 

2  Mun.  Acad.,  52.  3  Ibid.,  174,  346.  4  Ibid.,  xxxviii. 


202  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

conducted  round  them,  and  we  cannot  do  better  than 
reproduce  it.  Master  T.  Parys,  principal  of  St.  Mary  Hall, 
and  Master  Lowson  are  visiting  the  chest  of  W.  de  Seltone. 
We  enter  St.  Mary's  Church  with  them,  "and  there  we 
see  ranged  on  either  side  several  ponderous  iron  chests, 
eight  or  ten  feet  in  length  and  about  half  that  width,  for 
they  have  to  contain  perhaps  as  many  as  a  hundred  or 
more  large  volumes,  besides  other  valuables  deposited  as 
pledges  by  those  who  have  borrowed  from  the  chest. 
Each  draws  from  beneath  his  cape  a  huge  key,  which  one 
after  the  other  are  applied  to  the  two  locks ;  a  system  of 
bolts,  which  radiate  from  the  centre  of  the  lid  and  shoot 
into  the  iron  sides  in  a  dozen  different  places,  slide  back, 
and  the  lid  is  opened.  At  the  top  lies  the  register  of 
the  contents,  containing  the  particulars ; — dates,  names, 
and  amounts — of  the  loans  granted.  This  they  remove 
and  begin  to  compare  its  statements  with  the  contents  of 
the  chest.  There  are  a  large  number  of  manuscript 
volumes,  many  of  great  value,  beautifully  illuminated  and 
carefully  kept,  fof  each  is  almost  the  sole  valuable  posses- 
sion perhaps  of  its  owner  !  Then  the  money  remaining  in 
one  corner  of  the  chest  is  carefully  counted  and  compared 
with  the  account  in  the  register.  If  we  look  in  we  can 
see  also  here  and  there  among  the  books  other  valuables 
of  less  peaceful  character.  There  lie  two  or  three  daggers 
of  more  than  ordinary  workmanship,  and  by  them  a  silver 
cup  or  two,  and  again  more  than  one  hood  lined  with 
minever.  By  this  time  a  number  of  persons  has  collected 
around  the  chest,  and  the  business  begins.  That  man  in 
an  ordinary  civilian's  dress  who  stands  beside  Master 
Parys  is  John  More,  the  University  stationer,  and  it  is  his 
office  to  fix  the  value  of  the  pledges  offered,  and  to  take 
care  that  none  are  sold  at  less  than  their  real  value.  It  is 
a  motley  group  that  stands  around ;  there  are  several 


PLATE  XXXII 


A   SCR  I  HE   AT   WORK 


THE  BOOK  TRADE  203 

masters  and  bachelors, .  .  .  but  the  larger  proportion  is  of 
boys  or  quite  young  men  in  every  variety  of  coloured  dress, 
blue  and  red,  medley,  and  the  like,  but  without  any 
academical  dress.  Many  of  them  are  very  scantily  clothed, 
and  all  have  their  attention  rivetted  on  the  chest,  each  with 
curious  eye  watching  for  his  pledge,  his  book  or  his  cup, 
brought  from  some  country  village,  perhaps  an  old  treasure 
of  his  family,  and  now  pledged  in  his  extremity,  for  last 
term  he  could  not  pay  the  principal  of  his  hall  the  rent 
of  his  miserable  garret,  nor  the  manciple  for  his  battels,  but 
now  he  is  in  funds  again,  and  pulls  from  his  leathern 
money-pouch  at  his  girdle  the  coin  which  is  to  repossess 
him  of  his  property."  x  Naturally  their  duty  as  valuers  of 
much-prized  property  invested  the  stationers  with  some 
importance.  Their  work  was  thought  to  be  so  laborious 
and  anxious  that  about  1400  every  new  graduate  was 
expected  to  give  clothes  to  one  of  them ;  such  method  of 
rewarding  services  with  livery  or  clothing  being  common  in 
the  middle  ages.2  The  form  of  their  oath  was  especially 
designed  to  make  them  protect  the  chests  from  loss.  All 
monies  received  by  them  for  the  sale  of  pledges  were  to  be 
paid  into  the  chests  within  eight  days.  The  sale  of  a  pledge 
was  not  to  be  deferred  longer  than  three  weeks.  Without 
special  leave  they  could  not  themselves  buy  the  pledges, 
directly  or  indirectly :  a  wholesome  and  no  doubt  very 
necessary  provision.  Pledges  were  not  to  be  lent  for  more 
than  ten  days.  All  pledges  were  to  be  honestly  appraised. 
When  a  pledge  was  sold,  the  buyer's  name  was  to  be 
written  in  the  stationer's  indenture.  No  stationer  could 
refuse  to  sell  a  pledge ;  nor  could  he  take  it  away  from 
Oxford  and  sell  it  elsewhere.  He  was  bound  to  mark  all 
books  exposed  for  sale,  as  pledges,  in  the  usual  way,  by 
quoting  the  beginning  of  the  second  folio.  All  persons 

1  Mun.  A  cad.,  xl.-xlii.  2  Ibid.,  253. 


204          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

lending  books,  whether  stationers  or  other  people,  were 
bound  to  lend  perfect  copies.  This  oath  was  sworn  afresh 
every  year.1 

Many  stationers  were  not  sworn.  They  speedily 
became  serious  competitors  with  the  privileged  traders. 
By1 3 73  their  number  had  increased  largely,  and  restric- 
tions were  imposed  upon  them.  Books  of  great  value  were 
sold  through  their  agency,  and  carried  away  from  Oxford. 
Owners  were  cheated.  All  unsworn  booksellers  living  within 
the  jurisdiction  of  the  University  were  forbidden,  there- 
fore, to  sell  any  book,  either  their  own  property,  or  belonging 
to  others,  exceeding  half  a  mark  in  value.  If  disobedient 
they  were  liable  to  suffer  pain  of  imprisonment  for  the  first 
offence,  a  fine  of  half  a  mark  for  the  second — a  curious 
example  of  graduated  punishment — and  a  prohibition  to  ply 
their  trade  within  the  precincts  of  the  University  for  the 
third.2 

At  this  time  bookselling  was  a  thriving  trade.  De 
Bury  tells  us :  "  We  secured  the  acquaintance  of  stationers 
and  scribes,  not  only  within  our  own  country,  but  of  those 
spread  over  the  realms  of  France,  Germany  and  Italy, 
money  flying  forth  in  abundance  to  anticipate  their  demands  : 
nor  were  they  hindered  by  any  distance,  or  by  the  fury  of 
the  seas,  or  by  the  lack  of  means  for  their  expenses,  from 
sending  or  bringing  to  us  the  books  that  we  required."  3 

Records  of  various  transactions  are  extant,  of  which  the 
following  may  serve  as  examples.  In  1445,  a  stationer  and 
a  lymner  in  his  employ  had  a  dispute,  and  as  the  two  arbiters 
to  whom  the  matter  was  referred  failed  to  reach  a  settle- 
ment in  due  time,  the  Chancellor  of  the  University  stepped 
in  and  determined  the  quarrel.  The  judgment  was  as 
follows :  the  lymner,  or  illuminator,  was  to  serve  the 
stationer,  in  liminando  bene  et  fideliter  libros  suos>  for  one 

1  Mun.  Acad.,  383-7.  2  Ibid.,  233-4.  8  R.  de  B.,  205. 


THE  BOOK  TRADE  205 

year,  and  meantime  was  to  work  for  nobody  else.  His 
wage  was  to  be  four  marks  ten  shillings  of  good  English 
money.  The  lymner  in  person  was  to  fetch  the  materials 
from  his  master's  house,  and  to  bring  back  the  work  when 
finished.  He  was  to  take  care  not  to  use  the  colours 
wastefully.  The  work  was  to  be  done  well  and  faithfully, 
without  fraud  or  deception.  For  the  purpose  of  super- 
intending the  work  the  stationer  could  visit  the  place 
where  the  lymner  wrought,  at  any  convenient  time.1 
The  yearly  wage  for  this  lymner  was  nearly  fifty  pounds 
of  our  money. 

An  inscription  in  one  codex  tells  us  it  was  pawned 
to  a  bookseller  in  1480  for  thirty-eight  shillings.  Pawn- 
broking  was  an  important  part  of  a  bookseller's  business. 
Lending  books  on  hire  was  usual  among  both  booksellers 
and  tutors,  for  it  was  the  exception,  rather  than  the  rule, 
for  university  students  to  own  books,  while  in  the  college 
libraries  there  were  sometimes  not  enough  books  to  go 
round.  For  example,  the  statutes  of  St.  Mary's  College, 
founded  in  1446,  forbade  a  scholar  to  occupy  a  book  in 
the  library  above  an  hour,  or  at  most  two  hours,  so  that 
others  should  not  be  hindered  from  the  use  of  them.2 

At  Cambridge  the  trade  was  not  less  flourishing.  From 
time  to  time  it  was  found  necessary  to  determine  whether 
the  booksellers  and  the  allied  craftsmen  were  within  the 
University's  jurisdiction  or  not.  In  1276  it  was  desired 
to  settle  their  position  as  between  the  regents  and  scholars 
of  the  University  and  the  Archdeacon  of  Ely.  Hugh  de 
Balsham,  Bishop  of  Ely,  when  called  in  as  arbiter,  decided 
that  writers,  illuminators,  and  stationers,  who  exercise  offices 
peculiarly  for  the  behoof  of  the  scholars,  were  answerable  to 

1  Mun.  Acad.y  550. 

2  Bodl.  MS.  Rawlinson,  34,  fo.  21,  Stat,   Coll,  S,  Mariae  pro  Oseney :  Dt 
Libraria, 


206          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

the  Chancellor ;  but  their  wives  to  the  Archdeacon.  Nearly 
a  century  later,  in  1353—54,  we  find  Edward  III  issuing  a 
writ  commanding  justices  of  the  peace  of  the  county  of 
Cambridge  to  allow  the  Chancellor  of  the  University  the 
conusance  and  punishment  of  all  trespasses  and  excesses, 
except  mayheim  and  felony,  committed  by  stationers, 
writers,  bookbinders,  and  illuminators,  as  had  been  the 
custom.  But  the  question  was  again  in  debate  in  1393-94, 
when  the  Chancellor  and  scholars  petitioned  Parliament  to 
declare  and  adjudge  stationers  and  bookbinders  scholars' 
servants,  as  had  been  done  in  the  case  of  Oxford.  This 
petition  does  not  seem  to  have  been  answered.  But  by 
the  Barn  well  Process  of  1430,  it  was  decided  that 
"  transcribers,  illuminators,  bookbinders,  and  stationers  have 
been,  and  are  wont  and  ought  to  be — as  well  by  ancient 
usage  from  time  immemorial  undisturbedly  exercised,  as 
by  concession  of  the  Apostolic  See — the  persons  belong 
and  are  subject  to  the  ecclesiastical  and  spiritual  juris- 
diction of  the  Chancellor  of  the  University  for  the  time 
being."  Again  in  1503  was  it  agreed,  this  time  between 
the  University  and  the  Mayor  and  burgesses  of  Cambridge, 
that  "  stacioners,  lymners,  schryveners,  parchment-makers, 
boke-bynders,"  were  common  ministers  and  servants  of  the 
University  and  were  to  enjoy  its  privileges.1 

Fairs  were  so  important  a  means  of  bringing  together 
buyers  and  sellers  that  we  should  expect  books  to  be  sold 
at  them.  And  in  fact  they  were.  The  preamble  of  an 
Act  of  Parliament  reads  as  follows :  "  Ther  be  meny  feyers 
for  the  comen  welle  of  your  seid  lege  people  as  at 
Salusbury,  Brystowe,  Oxenforth,  Cambrigge,  Notyngham, 
Ely,  Coventre,  and  at  many  other  places,  where  lordes 
spirituall  and  temporall,  abbotes,  Prioures,  Knyghtes, 
Squerys,  Gentilmen,  and  your  seid  Comens  of  every  Countrey, 

1  Cooper,  i.  57,  104,  141,  262  j  cf,  Biblio.  Soc.  Monogr.  13,  p.  1-6. 


THE  BOOK  TRADE  207 

hath  their  comen  resorte  to  by  and  purvey  many  thinges 
that  be  gode  and  profytable,  as  ornaments  of  holy  church 
chaleis,  bokes,  vestmentes  [etc.]  .  .  .  also  for  howsold,  as  vytell 
for  the  tyme  of  Lent,  and  other  Stuff,  as  Lynen  Cloth,  wolen 
Cloth,  brasse,  pewter,  beddyng,  osmonde,  Iren,  Flax  and  Wax 
and  many  other  necessary  thinges." *  The  chief  fairs  for 
the  sale  of  books  were  those  of  St.  Giles  at  Oxford,  at 
Stourbridge,  Cambridge,  and  St.  Bartholomew's  Fair  in 
London. 

London,  however,  speedily  asserted  its  right  to  be 
regarded  as  England's  publishing  centre.  The  booksellers 
with  illuminators  and  other  allied  craftsmen  established 
themselves  in  a  small  colony  in  "  Paternoster  Rewe," 
and  they  attended  St.  Bartholomew's  Fair  to  sell  books. 
By  1403  the  Stationers'  Company,  which  had  long  been 
in  existence,  was  chartered ;  its  headquarters  were  in 
London,  at  a  hall  in  Milk  Street.  This  guild  did  not 
confine  its  attention  to  the  book-trade ;  nor  did  the  book- 
sellers sell  only  books.  Often,  indeed,  this  was  but  a  small 
part  of  general  mercantile  operations.  For  example, 
William  Praat,  a  London  mercer,  obtained  manuscripts 
for  Caxton.  Grocers  also  sold  manuscripts,  parchment, 
paper  and  ink.  King  John  of  France,  while  a  prisoner  in 
England  in  1360,  bought  from  three  grocers  of  Lincoln 
four  "  quaires  "  of  paper,  a  main  of  paper  and  a  skin  of 
parchment,  and  three  "  quaires "  of  paper.  From  a  scribe 
of  Lincoln  named  John  he  also  bought  books,  some  of 
which  are  now  in  the  Bibliotheque  Nationale,  Paris.2 

We  have  a  record  of  an  interesting  transaction  which 
took  place  at  the  end  of  the  manuscript  period  (1469). 
One  William  Ebesham  wrote  to  his  most  worshipful  and 

1  3  H.  vii.,  cap.  9,  10,  Stat.  of  the  Realm,  ii.  518. 

2  Donn^e  des  comptes  des  Roys  de  France,  au  14°  siecle  (1852),  227  ;  Putnam, 
i.  312  ;  Library,  v.  3-4. 


208          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

special  master,  Sir  John  Paston,  asking,  in  a  hesitating, 
cringing  sort  of  way,  for  the  payment  of  his  little  bill, 
which  seems  to  have  been  a  good  deal  overdue,  as  is  the 
way  with  bills.  All  this  service  most  lowly  he  recommends 
unto  his  good  mastership,  beseeching  him  most  tenderly 
to  see  the  writer  somewhat  rewarded  for  his  labour  in  the 
"  Grete  Boke  "  which  he  wrote  unto  his  said  good  master- 
ship. And  he  winds  up  his  letter  with  a  request  for  alms 
in  the  shape  of  one  of  Sir  John's  own  gowns  ;  and  beseeches 
God  to  preserve  his  patron  from  all  adversity,  with  which 
the  writer  declares  himself  to  be  somewhat  acquainted. 
He  heads  his  bill :  Following  appeareth,  parcelly,  divers 
and  sundry  manner  of  writings,  which  I  William  Ebesham 
have  written  for  my  good  and  worshipful  master,  Sir  John 
Paston,  and  what  money  I  have  received,  and  what  is 
unpaid.  For  writing  a  "  litill  booke  of  Pheesyk  "  he  was 
paid  twenty  pence.  Other  writing  he  did  for  twopence 
a  leaf.  Hoccleve's  de  Regimine  Principum  he  wrote 
for  one  penny  a  leaf,  "  which  is  right  wele  worth." 
Evidently  Ebesham  did  not  find  scrivening  a  too  profit- 
able occupation.1 

1  Gairdner,  Paston  letters,  v.  1-4,  where  the  whole  bill  is  transcribed. 


CHAPTER    XI 

THE  CHARACTER  OF  THE  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY, 
AND  THE  EXTENT  OF  CIRCULATION  OF  BOOKS 

"  Some  ther  be  that  do  defye 
All  that  is  newe,  and  ever  do  crye 
The  olde  is  better,  away  with  the  new 
Because  it  is  false,  and  the  olde  is  true. 
Let  them  this  booke  reade  and  beholde, 
For  it  preferreth  the  learning  most  olde." 
A  Comparison  betwene  the  old  learnynge  and  the  newe  (i$37).1 


AFTER  a  storm  a  fringe  of  weed  and  driftwood 
stretches  a  serried  line  along  the  sands,  and  now 
and  then  —  too  often  on  the  flat  shores  of  one  of 
our  northern  estuaries,  whence  can  be  seen  the  white  teeth 
of  the  sea  biting  at  the  shoals  flanking  the  fairway  —  are 
mingled  with  the  flotsam  sodden  relics  of  life  aboard  ship 
and  driftwood  of  tell-tale  shape,  which  silently  point  to  a 
tragedy  of  the  sea.  Usually  the  daily  paper  completes 
the  tale  ;  but  on  some  rare  occasion  these  poor  bits  of 
drift  remain  the  only  evidence  of  the  vain  struggle,  and 
from  them  we  must  piece  together  the  narrative  as  best 
we  can.  And  as  the  sea  does  not  give  up  everything,  nor 
all  at  once,  some  wreckage  sinking,  or  perishing,  or  float- 
ing upon  the  water  a  long  time  before  finding  a  well- 
concealed  hiding-place  upon  some  unfrequented  shore,  so 
the  past  yields  but  a  fraction  of  its  records,  and  that 

1  Cited  in  Gasquei*,  17. 
14 


210          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

fraction  slowly  and  grudgingly.  So  far  this  book  has 
been  a  gathering  of  the  flotsam  of  a  past  age :  odd  relics 
and  scattered  records,  a  sign  here  and  a  hint  there ;  often 
unrelated,  sometimes  contradictory.  In  more  skilful  hands 
possibly  a  coherent  story  might  be  wrought  out  of  these 
pieces  justificatives ;  but  the  author  is  too  well  aware  of 
the  difficulty  of  arranging  and  selecting  from  the  mass  of 
material,  remembers  too  well  the  tale  of  mistakes  thank- 
fully avoided,  and  is  too  apprehensive  that  other  errors 
lurk  undiscovered,  to  be  confident  that  he  has  succeeded 
in  his  aim.  Whether  the  story  is  worth  telling  is  another 
matter.  Surely  it  is.  To  be  able  to  follow  the  history 
of  the  Middle  Ages,  to  become  acquainted  with  the  people, 
their  mode  of  life  and  customs  and  manners,  is  of  profound 
interest  and  great  utility ;  and  it  is  by  no  means  the  least 
important  part  of  such  study  to  discover  what  books  they 
had,  how  extensively  the  books  were  read,  and  what 
section  of  the  people  read  them. 

Let  us  here  sum  up  the  information  given  in  detail  in 
the  foregoing  pages ;  adding  thereto  some  other  facts  of 
interest.  And  first,  what  of  the  character  of  the  medieval 
library  ? 

During  the  earlier  centuries  monastic  libraries  con- 
tained books  which  were  deemed  necessary  for  gram- 
matical study  in  the  claustral  schools,  and  other  books, 
chiefly  the  Fathers,  as  we  have  seen,  which  were  regarded 
as  proper  literature  for  the  monk.  The  books  used  in  the 
cathedral  schools  were  similar.  Such  schools  and  such 
libraries  were  for  the  glory  of  God  and  the  increase  of 
clergy  and  religious.  At  first,  especially,  the  ideal  of  the 
monks  was  high,  if  narrow.  It  is  epitomised  in  the 
untranslatable  epigram  —  Claustrum  sine  armario  (esf] 
quasi  castrum  sine  armamentaria^  "  The  library  is  the 
1  Martene,  Thesaurus  t  i.  511. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  211 

monastery's    true    treasure,"    writes    Thomas    a    Kempis ; 1 
"  without  which  the  monastery  is  like  ...  a  well  without 
water  ...  an  unwatched  tower."      Again :   "  Let   not   the 
toil    and   fatigue  pain    you.      They    who  read    the    books 
formerly    written   beautifully    by    you    will    pray  for    you 
when  you  are  dead.     And  if  he  who  gives  a  cup  of  cold 
water  shall  not  lack  his  guerdon,  still  less   shall   he  who 
gives    the    living    water    of    wisdom    lose    his    reward     in 
heaven."2     St.  Bernard  wrote  in  like  terms.      Books  were 
their  tools,  "the  silent  preachers  of  the  divine  word,"  or 
the  weapons  of  their  armoury.      "  Thence  it  is,"  writes  a 
sub-prior  to  his  friend,  "  that  we  bring  forth  the  sentences 
of  the  divine  law,  like  sharp  arrows,  to  attack  the  enemy. 
Thence  we  take  the  armour  of  righteousness,  the  helmet 
of    salvation,   the   shield   of  faith,   and   the   sword    of   the 
Spirit  which  is  the  Word  of  God." 3     With  such  an  end 
in  view  Reculfus  of  Soissons  required  his  clergy  to  have 
a    missal,   a    lectionary,   the    Gospels,    a    martyrology,   an 
antiphonary,  a  psalter,  a  book  of  forty  homilies  of  Gregory, 
and    as    many  Christian  books    as   they  could  get   (879). 
With   this  end   in   view    were   chosen    for  reading   in    the 
Refectory   at  Durham   (1395)    such    books    as   the   Bible, 
homilies,  Legends  of  the  Saints,  lives  of  Gregory,  Martin, 
Nicholas,  Dunstan,  Augustine,  Cuthbert,  King  Oswald,  Aidan, 
Thomas  of  Canterbury,  and  other  saints.4     With  this  end 
in    view    the    monastic    libraries    contained    a    very    large 
proportion  of  Bibles,  books  of  the  Bible,  and  commentaries 
— a  proportion  suggesting  the  Scriptures  were  studied  with 
a  closeness  and  assiduity  for  which  the  monks   have  not 
always  received  due  credit.5     A  great  deal   of  room  was 


1  Opera,  fo.  1523.     Fo.  xlvii.  7,  Doctrinale  juvenum,  c.  v. 

2  Ibid.,  c.  iv.  3  Maitland,  200. 

4  Surtees  Soc.,  vii.  80. 

5  V.  Catalogues  in  Becker  ;  James  (M.  R. ) ;  Bateson  ;  Surtees  Soc.,  vii.  ;  etc. 


212  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

given  up  to  the  works  of  the  Fathers — their  confessions, 
retractations,  and  letters,  their  polemics  against  heresies, 
their  dogmatic  and  doctrinal  treatises,  and  their  sermons 
and  ethical  discourses.  Of  all  these  writings  those  of 
Hilary,  Basil,  Ambrose,  Chrysostom,  Jerome,  and  the  great 
Augustine  were  most  popular.  John  Cassian,  Leo,  Prosper, 
Cassiodorus,  Gregory  the  Great,  Aldhelm,  Bede,  Anselm, 
and  Bernard,  and  the  two  encyclopaedists,  Martianus  Capella 
and  Isidore  of  Seville,  were  the  church's  great  teachers,  and 
their  works  and  the  sacred  poetry  and  hymns  of  Juvencus 
the  Spanish  priest,  of  Prudentius,  of  Sedulius,  the  author 
of  a  widely-read  and  influential  poem  on  the  life  of  Christ, 
and  of  Fortunatus,  were  nearly  always  well  represented  in 
the  monastic  catalogues,  as  may  be  seen  on  a  cursory 
examination  of  those  of  Christ  Church  and  St.  Augustine's, 
Canterbury,  of  Durham,  of  Glastonbury  in  1248,  of  Peter- 
borough in  1400,  and  of  Syon  in  the  sixteenth  century. 
In  the  earlier  libraries  the  greater  part  of  the  books  were 
Scriptural  and  theological ;  to  these  were  added  later  a 
mass  of  books  on  canon  and  civil  law ;  so  that  the 
monastic  collection  may  be  characterised  as  almost  entirely 
special  and  fit  for  Christian  service,  as  this  service  was 
conceived  by  the  religious. 

And  classical  literature  was  received  into  the  fold  for  a 
like  purpose.  From  the  earliest  days  of  Christendom 
prejudice  against  the  classics  was  widespread  among 
Christians.  Such  books,  it  was  urged,  had  no  connexion 
with  the  Church  or  the  Gospel ;  Ciceronianism  was  not  the 
road  to  God  ;  Plato  and  Aristotle  could  not  show  the  way 
to  happiness ;  Ovid,  above  all,  was  to  be  avoided.1  In 
dreams  the  poets  took  the  form  of  demons ;  they  must  be 
exorcised,  for  the  soul  did  not  profit  by  them.  The  precepts 
— and  for  these  the  Christian  sought — in  the  poems  were 

1  Sandys,  i.  638  ;  and  see  Jerome,  Ep.  xxii.,  ed.  1734,  i.  114. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  213 

like  serpents,  born  of  the  evil  one ;  the  characters,  devils. 
Some  Christians  sighed  as  they  thrust  the  tempting  books 
away.     Jerome    frankly  confesses    he  cared    little   for   the 
homely   Latin  of  the  Psalms,  and  much  for  Plautus  and 
Cicero.     For  a  time  he  renounced  them  with  other  vanities 
of  the  world ;    yet  when  going  through  the  catacombs  at 
Rome,  where  the  Apostles  and  Martyrs  had  their  graves,  a 
fine  line  of  Virgil  thrills  him  ;  and  later  he  instructed  boys 
at  Bethlehem  in  Plautus,  Terence,  and  Virgil,  much  to  the 
horror  of  Rufinus.     Even  in  the  eleventh  century  this  feeling 
existed.     Lanfranc  wrote  to  Dumnoaldus  to  say  it  was  un- 
befitting   he  should    study  such  books,   but  he    confessed 
that  although  he  now  renounced  them,  he  had  read  them 
a    good    deal    in    his    youth.       Somewhat    later    Herbert 
"  Losinga,"  abbot  of  Ramsey,  had  a  dream  which  led  him 
to  cease  reading  and  imitating  Virgil  and  Ovid ;   but  else- 
where he  recommends  his  pupils  to  accept  Ovid  as  a  model 
in  Latin  verse,  while  he  quotes  the  Tristia.1     The  rules  of 
some    orders,    as    those    of    Isidore,    St.    Francis,  and   St. 
Dominic,  forbade  the  reading  of  the  classics,  save  by  per- 
mission.    For    their    value    in    teaching   grammar  and  as 
models  of  literary  style,  however,  certain  classic  authors — 
especially  Virgil,  Ovid,  Cicero,  Horace,  Juvenal,  and  Statius 
— were   regarded    as    supplementary    to    the   grammatical 
works  of  Donatus,  Victorinus,  Macrobius,  and  Priscian,  and 
were  studied  by  the  religious  throughout  the  Middle  Ages. 
They  were  grammatical  text-books,  as  indeed  they  are  still ; 
but   then   they  were  very  little  else.      A  man  would  call 
himself  Virgil,  not  from  inordinate  vanity,  but  from  a  naive 
pride  in  his  profession  of  grammarian  :  to  his  way  of  thinking 
the  great  poet  was  no  more.2    "  As  decade  followed  decade," 
writes  Mr.  H.  O.  Taylor,  "  and  century  followed  century, 
there  was  no  falling  off  in  the  study  of  the  ALneid.    Virgil's 

1  Sandys  i.  618.  2  Comparetti,  Vergil  in  the  M.  A.,  77. 


214          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

fame  towered,  his  authority  became  absolute.  But  how? 
In  what  respect?  As  a  supreme  master  of  grammatical 
correctness  and  rhetorical  excellence  and  of  all  learning. 
With  increasing  emptiness  of  soul,  the  grammarians — the 
'  Virgils ' — of  the  succeeding  centuries  put  the  great  poet  to 
ever  baser  uses." 1 

From  time  to  time  the  use  of  the  classics  even  for 
grammatical  purposes  was  condemned,  though  unavailingly. 
They  were  necessary  in  the  schools ;  evils,  doubtless,  but 
unavoidable.  Then,  again,  some  of  the  classics  were  looked 
upon  as  allegorical :  from  the  sixth  century  to  the  Renascence 
the  ALneid  was  often  interpreted  in  this  way  ;  and  Virgil's 
Fourth  Eclogue  was  thought  to  be  a  prophecy  of  Christ's 
coming.  Ovid  allegorised  contained  profound  truths ;  his 
Art  of  Love,  so  treated,  was  not  unfit  for  nuns.2  Other 
writers,  as  Lucan,  were  appreciated  for  their  didacticism  ; 
Juvenal,  Cato  and  Seneca  the  younger  as  moralists.  And 
some  of  the  religious  fell  a  prey  to  these  evils,  inasmuch  as 
they  assessed  them  at  their  true  value  as  literature. 

The  classics  therefore  were  accepted.  Anselm  recom- 
mended Virgil.  Horace,  in  his  most  amorous  moods,  was 
sung  by  the  monks.  Ovid,  either  adapted  or  in  his  natural 
state,  was  a  great  favourite.  In  an  appendix  we  have 
scheduled  the  chief  classics  found  in  English  monastic 
catalogues  to  indicate  roughly  the  extent  to  which  they 
were  collected  and  used.  A  glance  at  Becker's  sheaf  of 
catalogues  will  show  us  that  Aristotle,  Horace,  Juvenal, 
Lucan,  Persius,  Plato,  Pliny  the  elder,  Porphyry,  Sallust, 
Statius,  Terence,  and  especially  Cicero,  Ovid,  Seneca,  and 
Virgil  are  well  represented.  But  it  must  not  be  supposed 
that  they  were  in  monastic  libraries  in  excessive  numbers. 
On  the  contrary.  An  inspection  of  almost  any  catalogue  of 

1  Taylor,  Classical  Heritage,  37. 

2  Sandys,  i.  638-39 ;  see  what  is  said  about  use  of  Ovid  at  Canterbury. 


PL  A  TE  XXXIII 


CD  mtnr  <itm>  mttlttpltcati  ftmr  qitt  m 
j|jttianrni€*mttlttmftttigtmttajttcttitnt' 
•|,«to  eltcttnr  ottmtcmccrnon  eft  torn  tp^ 

@pu  dttttm  ismtttc  fttfccptoi  mftts  cs* 
tnca  cr  milmns  m}ntrntcttm^ 
U,ccc  mm  as  t»mtnttm  damatu: 
ce  morar  famte  ftto « 

mttttt  cr  f0$m<mts  fttm:  ct  ^tfttttttt  qut    ^  ? 
a  Dornmtts  rttfccptrt^c.HHHHHB^mnH 


luigt  comttue  totttm  me  fetca^s  mcttsi 
ttottfctmttt  pmtfltftt  omncs  ttdtiofttntts  ^\( 


^qtmttts  mcnmmtmli 
fotott  quwttttn  tntttfimutriommttsl 


ENGLISH   ILLUMINATED  WORK  UNDER   FRENCH   INFLUENCE 

THIRTEENTH  CENTURY 
FROM  "TENISON  PSALTER,"  BRIT.  MUS.  ADD.  MS.  24686,  F.  12 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  215 

such  a  library  will  prove  that  only  a  small  proportion  of  it 
consisted  of  classical  writings,  especially  in  those  catalogues 
compiled  prior  to  the  time  when  Aristotle's  works  dominated 
the  whole  of  medieval  scholarship.  The  monastic  library 
was  throughout  the  Middle  Ages  the  armoury  of  the 
religious  against  evil,  and  the  few  slight  changes  of  character 
which  it  underwent  at  one  time  and  another  do  not  alter 
the  fact  that  on  the  whole  it  was  a  fit  and  proper  collection 
for  its  purpose.1 

5" 

After  the  twelfth  century  broadening  influences  were  at 
work.  The  education  given  in  the  cathedral  and  monastic 
schools  was  found  to  be  too  restricted ;  the  monasteries, 
moreover,  now  began  to  refuse  assistance  to  secular  students.2 
To  some  extent  the  catechetic  method  of  the  theologians 
was  forced  to  give  place  to  the  dialectic  method,  equally 
dogmatic,  but  more  exciting  and  stimulating.  Hence 
was  compiled  such  a  book  as  Peter  Lombard's  Sentences 
(l  145—50),  a  cyclopaedia  of  disputation,  wherein  theological 
questions  were  collected  under  heads,  together  with  Scriptural 
passages  and  statements  of  the  Fathers  bearing  on  these 
questions.  By  the  thirteenth  century  Lombard  was  the 
standard  text-book  of  the  schools  :  a  work  of  such  reputation 
that  it  was  studied  in  preference  to  the  Scriptures,  as 
Bacon  complained. 

A  demand  also  arose  for  instruction  in  civil  and  canon 
law,  which  the  existing  schools  did  not  supply.  This 
broader  learning  was  provided  in  the  early  universities,  at 
first  to  the  dislike  of  the  Church,  and  sometimes  to  the 

1  On  the  use  of  classics  in  the  Middle  Ages  see  Sandys,  i.  630  (Plautus  and 
Terence),  631  (Lucretius),  633  (Catullus  and  Virgil),  635  (Horace),  638  (Ovid), 
641    (Lucan),  642  r(Statius),  643   (Martial),  644  (Juvenal),  645  (Persius),  648 
(Cicero),  653  (Seneca),  654  (Pliny),  655  (Quintilian),  etc. 

2  Rashdall,  i.  42. 


216          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

annoyance  of  royal  heads.  Particular  objection  was  taken 
to  the  study  of  law.  An  Italian  named  Vicario  (Vacarius) 
lectured  on  Justinian  at  Oxford  in  1 149.  Then  he  abridged 
the  Code  and  Digest  for  his  students  there.  King  Stephen 
forbade  him  to  proceed  with  his  lectures,  and  prohibited  the 
use  of  treatises  on  foreign  law,  many  manuscripts  of  which 
were  consequently  destroyed.  But  these  measures  were 
not  very  effectual.  Within  a  short  time  civil  law  became 
recognised  in  the  University  as  a  proper  subject  of  study. 
By  1275,  when  another  Italian  jurist  named  Francesco 
d'Accorso,  a  distinguished  teacher  at  Bologna,  came  to 
Oxford  to  lecture,  the  study  of  civil  law  was  pursued  with 
the  royal  favour.1 

The  searcher  among  old  wills  cannot  fail  to  be  struck 
with  the  number  of  law  books  in  the  small  private  libraries. 
Sometimes  the  whole  of  one  of  these  little  collections  con- 
sists of  law  books  ;  often  there  are  more  books  of  this 
kind  than  of  any  other.  For  example,  of  eighty  books 
bequeathed  by  Prior  Eastry  to  Christ  Church,  Canterbury, 
forty-three  were  on  canon  and  civil  law :  of  eighty-four 
books  given  to  Trinity  Hall,  Cambridge,  by  the  founder, 
exactly  one-half  were  juridical.  A  wealthy  canon  of  York 
left  but  half  a  dozen  books,  all  on  law.  The  books  be- 
queathed to  Peterborough  Abbey  by  successive  abbots  were 
chiefly  on  law.  Many  other  examples  could  be  recited. 
There  was  a  reason  for  this.  Friar  Bacon,  writing  in  1271, 
complained  that  jurists  got  all  rewards  and  benefices,  while 
students  of  theology  and  philosophy  lacked  the  means  of 
livelihood,  could  not  obtain  books,  and  were  unable  to  pursue 
their  scientific  studies.  Canonists,  even,  were  only  rewarded 
because  of  their  previous  knowledge  of  civil  law  :  at  Oxford 
three  years  had  to  be  devoted  to  the  study  of  civil  law 
before  a  student  could  be  admitted  as  bachelor  of  canon 

1  Lyte,  88-89  ;  Einstein,  180. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  217 

law.  Consequently  a  man  of  parts,  with  a  leaning  towards 
theological  and  philosophical  learning,  took  up  the  study  of 
civil  law,  with  the  hope  of  more  easily  winning  preferment.1 
"  Compared  with  such  [legal]  lore,"  writes  Mr.  Mullinger, 
"  theological  learning  became  but  a  sorry  recommendation 
to  ecclesiastical  preferment ;  most  of  the  Popes  at  Avignon 
had  been  distinguished  by  their  attainments  in  a  subject 
which  so  nearly  concerned  the  temporal  interests  of  the 
Church  ;  and  the  civilian  and  the  canonist  alike  looked  down 
with  contempt  on  the  theologian,  even  as  Hagar,  to  use  the 
comparison  of  Holcot,  despised  her  barren  mistress."  2  The 
most  casual  glance  through  some  pages  of  monastic  records 
will  show  how  frequent  and  endless  was  the  litigation  in 
which  the  Church  was  engaged,  and  consequently  how  use- 
ful a  knowledge  of  civil  law  would  be. 

But  these  changes  were  trifling  compared  with  the 
stimulus  given  to  medieval  learning  by  the  influx  of  Greek 
books  and  of  Arabic  versions  of  them.  In  the  second  half 
of  the  eleventh  century  the  works  of  Galen  and  Hippocrates 
were  re-introduced  into  Italy  from  the  Arabian  empire  by  a 
North  African  named  Constantine,  who  translated  them 
at  the  famous  monastery  of  Monte  Cassino.  These  trans- 
lations, with  the  numerous  Arabian  commentaries,  and 
the  conflict  of  the  physicians  of  the  new  school  with  those 
of  the  old  and  famous  school  of  Salerno,  constitute  the 
revival  of  medical  studies  which  occurred  at  that  time.3 
It  would  seem  that  this  revival  was  felt  quickly  in  England, 
as  in  the  twelfth  century  four  books  by  Galen  and  two  by 
Hippocrates,  with  some  Arabian  works,  were  to  be  found 
in  the  monastic  library  of  Durham  ;  a  number  significant  of 
the  liberal  feeling  of  the  monks  of  this  house,  inasmuch  as 
in  all  the  catalogues  transcribed  by  Becker  appear  only 

1  Bacon,  Op.  ined.,  84,  148.  2  Mullinger,  211. 

3  Rashdall,  i.  77-8. 


2i8          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

ten  books  by  Galen  and  nine  by  Hippocrates.1  Before 
1150  the  whole  of  the  Organon  of  Aristotle  was  known  to 
scholars ; 2  but  not  till  about  that  time  did  the  other  works 
begin  to  be  exported  from  Arabic  Spain.  Then  Latin 
versions  of  Arabic  translations  of  the  Physics  and  Meta- 
physics were  first  made. 

Daniel  of  Morley  (fl.  1 170-90)  brought  into  this  country 
manuscripts  of  Aristotle,  and  commentaries  upon  him  got 
in  the  Arab  schools  of  Toledo,  then  the  centre  of  Moham- 
medan learning.  Michael  the  Scot  (r.  1 175— 1234), 
"  wondrous  wizard,  of  dreaded  fame,"  was  another  agent 
of  the  Arab  influence.  He  received  his  education  perhaps 
at  Oxford,  certainly  at  Paris  and  Toledo.  From  manu- 
scripts obtained  at  the  last  place  he  translated  two 
abstracts  of  the  Historia  animalium^  and  some  com- 
mentaries of  Averroes  on  Aristotle  (1215— 3o).3  A  third 
pilgrim  from  these  islands,  Alfred  the  Englishman,  also 
made  use  of  Arabic  versions ;  and  most  likely  both  he 
and  Michael  brought  home  with  them  manuscripts  from 
Toledo  and  Paris.  Of  the  renderings  made  by  these  men 
and  by  some  foreign  workers  in  the  same  field,  Friar  Bacon 
speaks  with  the  utmost  contempt.  Their  writings  were 
utterly  false.  They  did  not  know  the  sciences  they  dealt 
with.  The  Jews,  the  Arabs,  and  the  Greeks,  who  had  good 
manuscripts,  destroyed  and  corrupted  them,  rather  than  let 
them  fall  into  the  hands  of  unlettered  and  ignorant 
Christians.4  Aristotle  should  be  read  in  the  original,  he 
also  says ;  it  would  be  better  if  all  translations  were  burnt. 
The  criticism  is  acrid ;  but  the  men  he  contemns  served 
scholarship  well  by  quickening  the  interest  in  Greek  books, 

1  Becker,  244.  2  Cf.  Becker,  index. 

3  On  Michael,  see   Bacon,    Op.  maj.,  36,  37;    Dante,  Inferno,  xx.    116; 
Boccaccio,  8  day,  9  novel ;   Scott,  Lay,  II.  xi.  ;   Brown,  Life  and  Legend  of 
M.  S.  (1897). 

4  Bacon,  Op.  ined.,  Comp.  stud.,  472  (Rolls  Series). 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  219 

and  they  succeeded  so  well  because  they  gave  to  the 
schoolmen  not  only  versions  of  Aristotle's  text,  but 
commentaries  and  elucidations  written  by  Arabs  and 
Jews  who  had  carefully  studied  the  text,  and  could 
explain  the  meaning  of  obscure  passages  in  it.1 

When  these  translations  were  coming  to  England, 
travellers  were  bringing  Greek  books  directly  from  the 
East.  A  doctor  of  medicine  named  William  returned  to 
Paris  from  Constantinople  in  1167,  carrying  with  him 
"many  precious  Greek  codices."2  About  1209  a  Latin 
translation  of  Aristotle's  Physics  or  Metaphysicsvws  made  from 
a  Greek  manuscript  brought  straight  from  Constantinople. 
Some  of  these  few  importations  were  certainly  destroyed 
at  once,  probably  all  were,  for  Aristotle  was  proscribed  in 
Paris  in  the  following  year,  and  again  in  1215,  at  the 
very  time  when  Michael  the  Scot  was  procuring  versions 
in  another  direction,  at  Toledo.3  Not  until  mid-thirteenth 
century  was  the  ban  wholly  removed. 

For  a  time,  owing  to  the  capture  of  Constantinople  by 
the  Crusaders,  intercourse  between  East  and  West  had 
become  far  freer  than  it  had  been  for  centuries  (1203—61). 
Certain  Greek  philosophers  of  learned  mien  came  to 
England  about  1202,  but  did  not  stay;  and  some 
Armenians,  among  them  a  bishop,  visited  St.  Albans. 
Whether  they  or  Nicholas  the  Greek,  clerk  to  the  abbot 
of  that  monastery,  brought  books  with  them  we  do  not 
know ;  Nicholas,  at  any  rate,  seems  to  have  assisted 
Grosseteste  in  his  Greek  studies.4  John  of  Basingstoke, 


1  In  Peterhouse  Library,  Cambridge,  is  a  manuscript  of  Aristotle's  Meta- 
physica,    with   Latin   translations   from   the   Arabic  and  the  Greek  in  parallel 
columns :   the  one  being  called  the  old  translation,  the  other  the  new.     The 
manuscript  is  of  the  thirteenth  or  fourteenth  century. — James8,  43. 

2  Gasquet3,  143-44  ;  see  other  instances,  Camb.  Mod.  Hist.,  i.  588. 

3  Jourdain,  Recherches  .  .  .   traductions  Latines  cCA.,  187  ;  Gasquet3,  148. 

4  Paris,  Chron.  Maj.,  iv.  232-3 ;  cp.  Bacon,  Op.  ined.,  91,  434. 


220          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Grosseteste's  archdeacon,  carried  Greek  manuscripts — many 
valuable  manuscripts,  we  are  told — from  Athens,  whither 
Grosseteste  had  sent  him.  The  bishop  himself  imported 
books  to  this  country,  probably  from  Sicily  and  South 
Italy.1  He  had  a  copy  of  Suidas'  Lexicon,  possibly  the 
earliest  copy  brought  to  the  West.  The  Testaments  of  the 
Twelve  Patriarchs  was  also  in  Grosseteste's  possession :  the 
manuscript  was  brought  home  by  John  of  Basingstoke,  and 
still  exists  in  the  Cambridge  University  Library.2  These 
forged  Testaments  were  translated  by  Nicholas  the  Greek, 
and  as  no  fewer  than  thirty-one  copies  of  the  Latin  version 
still  remain  they  must  have  had  a  good  circulation.8 
Possibly  the  Greek  Octateuch  (Genesis  to  Ruth),  now  in 
the  Bodleian  Library,  was  imported  into  this  country  by 
Grosseteste  or  by  somebody  for  him ;  at  one  time  the 
manuscript  was  in  the  library  of  Christ  Church,  Canterbury.4 
Among  other  Greek  books  which  Grosseteste  used  and 
translated,  or  had  translated  under  his  direction,  were  the 
Epistles  of  St.  Ignatius,  a  Greek  romance  of  Asenath,  the 
Egyptian  wife  of  the  patriarch  Joseph,  and  some  writings 
of  Dionysius  the  Areopagite.  At  Ramsey,  where  the 
bishop's  influence  may  be  suspected,  Prior  Gregory  (fl.  1 290) 
owned  a  Grseco-Latin  psalter,  still  extant.5  Possibly  all  the 
importations  were  of  similar  character,  and  the  number  of 
them  cannot  have  been  great  or  we  should  have  heard  more 
of  them. 

Friar  Bacon,  writing  about  1 270,  complains  that  he  could 
not  get  all  the  books  he  wanted,  nor  were  the  versions  of 
the  books  he  had  satisfactory.  Parts  of  the  Scriptures  were 
untranslated,  as,  for  example,  two  books  of  Maccabees, 

1  Stevenson,  224,  227;  Camb.  Mod.  Hist.,  i.  586  ;  James,  Ixxxvi. 

2  MS.  Ff.  i.  24;  Paris,  C.M.  iv.  232;  cf.  v.  285.  3  Sandys,  i.  576. 

4  Now  Canon,   gr.   35   Bodleian  ;  James,  Ixxxvi.     This  may  be   the  Liber 
grccorum  in  the  list  of  books  repaired  in  1508. — James,  Ixxxvi.,  163. 

5  James16,  10. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  221 

which  he  knew  existed  in  Greek,  and  books  of  the  Prophets 
referred  to  in  the  books  of  Kings  and  Chronicles ;  the 
chronology  of  the  Antiquities  of  Josephus  was  incorrectly 
rendered,  and  biblical  history  could  not  be  usefully  studied 
without  a  true  version  of  this  book.  Books  of  the  Hebrew 
and  Greek  expositors  were  almost  wanting  to  the  Latins  : 
Origen,  Basil,  Gregory,  Nazianzene,  John  of  Damascus, 
Dionysius,  Chrysostom,  and  others,  both  in  Hebrew  and 
Greek.1  The  scientific  books  of  Aristotle,  of  Avicenna,  of 
Seneca,  and  other  ancients  could  only  be  had  at  great  cost. 
Their  principal  works  had  not  been  translated  into  Latin. 
"  The  admirable  books  of  Cicero  De  Republica  are  not  to 
be  found  anywhere,  as  far  as  I  can  hear,  although  I  have 
made  anxious  inquiry  for  them  in  different  parts  of  the 
world  and  by  various  messengers."  2 

The  period  during  which  the  intellectual  life  of  the 
Middle  Ages  was  broadened  by  the  introduction  of  new 
knowledge  and  ideas  originally  from  Greek  sources,  began, 
as  we  have  said,  with  the  influx  of  translations  from  the 
Arabic.  The  movement  culminated  with  the  work  of 
William  of  Moerbeke,  Greek  Secretary  at  the  Council  of 
Lyons  (1274),  who,  between  1270  and  1281,  translated 
several  of  Aristotle's  works  from  the  Greek,  including  the 
Rhetorica  and  the  Politico,.  Fortunately  we  have  a  record 
belonging  to  this  time  of  a  collection  of  books  which  shows 
admirably  the  character  of  the  change.  A  certain  John  of 
London  (V.  1 270-1 330),  believed  to  have  been  Bacon's 
pupil,  probably  became  a  monk  of  St.  Augustine's  Abbey, 
Canterbury,  and  in  due  course  bequeathed  a  library  of 
books  to  his  house.  This  collection  amounted  to  nearly 
eighty  books,  of  which  twenty-three  were  on  mathematics 
and  astronomy,  a  like  number  on  medicine,  ten  on 
philosophy,  six  on  logic,  four  historical,  three  on  grammar, 

1  Op.  Maj. ,  46.  z  Op.  Tertium,  p.  55,  56. 


222  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

one  poetry,  and  the  rest  collections.1  Such  a  collection  is 
remarkable  not  only  for  its  character,  but  on  account  of  its 
size,  which  was  very  large  for  anybody  to  own  privately  in 
that  age. 

§  HI 

On  one  occasion,  after  spending  much  time  in  search- 
ing wills  and  in  examining  catalogues  without  finding  a 
reference  to  an  interesting  book — to  either  an  ancient  or  a 
medieval  classic — the  writer  well  remembers  the  little 
shock  of  pleasure  he  felt  when,  in  a  single  half-hour,  he 
noted  Piers  Plowman  in  one  brief  unpromising  will,  and 
six  English  books  among  the  relics  of  a  mason.  Nearly 
all  the  libraries  of  private  persons  and  of  academies  are 
depressing  in  character.  Rarely  can  be  found  a  bright 
human  book  gleaming  like  a  diamond  in  the  dust.  Score 
after  score  of  decreta,  decretales,  Sextuses,  and  Clementines, 
and  chestsful  of  the  dreariest  theological  disquisition  impress 
upon  the  weary  searcher  the  fact  that  academic  libraries 
were  usually  even  more  dryasdust  than  monastic  collec- 
tions, and  he  begins  to  understand  how  prosperous  law 
may  be  as  a^  calling,  and  to  have  an  inkling  of  what  is 
known,  in  classic  phrase,  as  a  good  plain  Scotch  education. 

Between  an  academic  library  and  a  monastic  collection 
there  were  differences  of  character  and  in  the  beauty  and 
value  of  the  manuscripts.  As  a  general  rule  a  large  pro- 
portion of  the  monks'  books  were  more  or  less  richly 
ornamented :  they  were  the  treasures  as  well  as  the  tools 
of  the  community.  The  books  of  the  colleges  were  usually 
for  practical  purposes :  they  were  tools,  treasured,  doubtless, 
for  their  contents,  not  for  the  beauty  of  the  writing  or 
because  they  were  decorated.  The  difference  in  character 
of  the  collections  as  a  whole  was  one  of  proportion  in  the 

1  James  (M.  R.),  Ixxiv. 


PLATE  XXXIV 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  223 

representation  of  the  various  classes  of  books.  Generally 
speaking,  the  monastic  collection  comprised  proportionately 
more  theology  and  less  canon  and  civil  law  than  the 
academic  library.  In  the  subjects  of  the  trivium  and 
the  quadrivium,  and  in  philosophy,  a  college  was  more 
strongly  equipped  than  a  monastery ;  on  the  other  hand,  a 
monastery  frequently  had  a  larger  proportion  of  classical 
literature,  and  always  more  "  light "  or  romance  literature. 

Early  university  studies  were  in  two  parts,  the  trivium 
— grammar,  rhetoric,  and  logic,  and  the  quadrivium — 
music,  astronomy,  geometry,  and  arithmetic.  These  were 
the  seven  liberal  arts.  A  fresco  in  a  chapel  in  the  Church 
of  S.  Maria  Novella  at  Florence  illustrates  these  arts. 
On  the  right  of  the  cartoon  is  the  figure  of  grammar ; 
beneath  is  Priscian.  For  the  study  of  this  subject  John 
Garland  recommended  Priscian  and  Donatus.  Priscian 
was  a  leading  text-book  on  the  subject,  and  it  was  supported 
by  a  short  manual  compiled  from  Donatus.  At  Oxford 
extracts  from  these  authors  were  thrown  into  the  form  of 
logical  quaestiones  to  afford  subjects  of  argument  at  the 
disputations  held  once  a  week  before  the  masters  of 
grammar.1  To  these  books  should  be  added  a  dictionary, 
with  some  peculiar  and  quaint  etymologies,  by  Papias 
the  Lombard ;  grammatical  works  by  John  Garland ; 
Bishop  Hugutio's  etymological  dictionary  (c.  1192); 
a  dreary  hexameter  poem  by  Alexander  Gallus,  the 
Breton  Friar  (d.  1240) — "the  olde  Doctrinall,  with  his 
diffuse  and  unperfite  brevitie " ;  Eberhard's  similar  poem 
(c.  121 2),  called  Graecismus,  because  it  includes  a  chapter 
on  derivations  from  the  Greek ;  and  a  very  large  book,  the 


1  Mun.  Acad^  86,  430,  444  ;  cf.  Lyte,  235.  Donatus  came  to  be  regarded  as 
a  synonymous  term  for  grammar.  In  Piers  Plowman  a  grammatical  lesson  or 
text-book  is  called  "  Donet."  A  Greek  grammar  was  called  a  "Donatus 
Graecorum." 


224          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Catholicon  (c.  1286),  partly  a  grammar  and  partly  a 
dictionary,  with  copious  quotations  from  Latin  classics, 
which  had  been  compiled  with  some  skill  and  care  by  John 
Balbi,  a  Genoese  Black  Friar.  Papias  and  Hugutio  were 
sharply  condemned  by  Friar  Bacon,  but  they  remained 
in  use  long  after  his  time,  and  Balbi  owed  much  to  both 
of  them.  Many  copies  of  the  Catholicon  seem  to  have 
been  made,  although  the  transcription  of  so  large  a  book 
was  costly:  even  before  it  was  printed  (1460),  copies  for 
reference  were  sometimes  chained  up  in  English  churches, 
and  after  it  was  printed  this  practice  became  more  general, 
at  any  rate  in  France.  By  the  fourteenth  century  Priscian 
was  almost  superseded  by  Alexander  and  Eberhard,  whose 
versified  grammars  came  into  common  use ;  a  jingle, 
whether  it  be — 

"'Ne  facias*  dicas  '  oroque  ne  facias? 
Humane,  dure,  large,  firmest,  benigne, 
Ignaveopz,  probe  vel  avare  sive  severe, 
Inde  nove,  plene,  vel  abunde  sive  proterve, 
Dicis  in  er  vel' in  e,  quamvis  sint  ilia  sectmdae," 

in  the  fourteenth  century,  or 

"Feminine  is  Linter,  boat 
Learn  these  neuters  nine  by  rote," 

in  the  twentieth  century,  seems  to  help  the  harassed  student 
along  the  linguistic  path.  The  reading  of  Virgil  and 
Statius  and  some  other  writers  put  flesh  upon  these 
grammatical  dry  bones.  But  as  the  masters  of  grammar 
at  Oxford  were  expected  to  be  guardians  of  morals  as 
well,  they  were  expressly  forbidden  to  read  and  expound 
to  their  pupils  Ovid's  Ars  amandi,  the  Elegies  of  Pamphilus, 
and  other  indecent  books.1 

Next  to  the  figure  of  Grammar  is  Rhetoric,  with  Cicero 

1  Mun.  Acad.,  441. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  225 

seated  beneath.  Cicero,  with  Aristotle,  Quintilian  and 
Boethius  were  the  chief  exponents  of  rhetoric ;  with  Virgil, 
Ovid,  Statius,  and  sometimes  such  a  book  as  Guido  delle 
Colonne's  epic  of  Troy,  as  examples  of  literary  style. 
John  Garland  (fl.  1230)  recommended  Cicero's  De 
Inventione  (Rhetoricd),  De  Orator  e,  the  Ad  Herennium 
ascribed  to  Cicero,  Quintilian's  Institutes  and  the  Declama- 
tiones  ascribed  to  him.  The  third  figure  is  Logic,  coupled 
with  the  figure  of  Aristotle.  The  Categories  and  Porphyry's 
Isagoge  were  the  books  of  greatest  service  in  the  study  of 
this  subject ;  with  Boethius'  translations  and  expositions  of 
Aristotle  and  Porphyry.  All  the  foregoing  and  Cicero's 
Topica  are  selected  by  John  Garland.  Later  the 
Summulae  logicales  of  Peter  the  Spaniard  (fl.  1276),  William 
of  Heytesbury's  Sophismata  (c.  1340),  the  Summa  logices 
of  the  great  English  schoolman,  William  of  Ockham 
(d.  c.  1349),  and  the  Quaestiones  of  William  Brito  (d.  1356) 
were  the  chief  manuals  of  dialectic. 

The  first  figure  in  the  representation  of  the  quadrivium 
is  Music,  with  Tubal  Cain  beneath.  In  this  subject,  for 
which  few  books  were  necessary,  Boethius  was  the  guide. 
With  Astronomy  is  associated  Ptolemy.  The  Cosmo- 
graphia  and  Almagest  of  Ptolemy,  and  the  works  of  some 
Arabian  authors,  with  books  of  tables,  were  the  student's 
manuals.  In  our  cartoon  Geometry  has  Euclid  for  com- 
panion. Arithmetic  is  associated  with  Pythagoras  in  the 
picture :  for  this  subject  Boethius  was  the  text-book.1 

Besides  the  seven  liberal  arts,  natural,  metaphysical,  and 
moral  philosophy,  or  the  three  philosophies,  were  added  in 
the  thirteenth  century.  For  these  studies  Aristotle  and  his 

1  In  the  right-hand  doorway  of  the  west  front  of  Chartres  Cathedral  are 
figures  of  the  Seven  Arts,  Grammar  being  associated  with  Priscian,  Logic  with 
Aristotle,  Rhetoric  with  Cicero,  Music  with  Pythagoras,  Arithmetic  with 
Nicomachus,  Geometry  with  Euclid,  and  Astronomy  with  Ptolemy.  Cf. 
Marriage,  Sculp,  of  Chartres  Cat  A.,  71-73  (1909). 


226          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

commentators  were  the  chief  guides.  The  medical 
authorities  of  the  middle  ages  have  been  catalogued  for  us 
by  Chaucer  in  his  description  of  a  doctor  of  "  phisyk  " — 

"Wei  knew  he  the  olde  Esculapius 
And  Deiscorides,  and  eek  Rufus, 
Old  Ypocras,  Haly  and  Galien  ; 
Serapion,  Razis  and  Avicen  ; 
Averrois,  Damascien  and  Constantyn  ; 
Bernard,  and  Gatesden,  and  Gilbertyn." 

Of  these  names  eight  are  included  in  Duke  Humfrey's  gifts 
to  Oxford  in  1439  and  1443;  and  ten  of  them  are 
represented  in  the  catalogue  of  Peterhouse  Library  in  1418. 
Besides  the  writers  mentioned  by  Chaucer,  works  on  fevers 
by  Isaac  the  Arab,  the  Antidotarium  of  Nicholas,  and  the 
Isagoge  of  Johannicius  were  in  general  use. 

Next  to  theology — in  which  class  the  chief  books  were 
the  same  as  in  the  claustral  library,  although  liturgical  books 
are  more  rarely  found — the  largest  section  of  an  academic 
collection  was  that  of  civil  and  canon  law.  It  comprised 
the  various  digests,  the  works  of  Cinus  of  Pistoia  and  Azo ; 
texts  of  decrees,  decretals,  Liber  Sextus  Decretalium,  Liber 
Clementinae,  with  many  commentaries,  the  Constitutions  of 
Ottobon  and  Otho,  the  book  compiled  by  Henry  of  Susa, 
Cardinal  Bishop  of  Ostia,  called  Summa  Ostiensis,  the 
Rosarium  of  Archdeacon  Guido  de  Baysio,  and  Durand's 
Speculum  Judiciale.  The  last  three  books  are  frequently 
met  with,  and  were  highly  esteemed  by  medieval  jurists.1 

In  a  previous  chapter  we  have  noted  the  somewhat 
fresher  character  of  the  library  given  to  Oxford  University 
by  the  Duke  of  Gloucester.  We  have  two  later  records 
which  may  be  referred  to  now  to  indicate  the  change 
wrought  by  the  Renascence.  A  catalogue  of  William 

1  On  medieval  studies  see  further   Mun.  Acad,,  34,    242-43,  285,  412-13; 
Sandys,  i.  670. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  227 

Grocyn's  books  was  drawn  up  soon  after  his  death  in  1519. 
This  collection  proves  its  owner  to  have  been  conservative 
in  his  tastes,  as  the  medieval  favourites  are  well  represented. 
Of  Greek  books  there  are  only  Aristotle,  Plutarch  in  a 
Latin  translation,  and  a  Greek  and  Latin  Testament — a 
curiously  small  collection  in  view  of  his  interest  in  Greek, 
and  in  view  of  the  fact  that  many  of  the  chief  Greek 
authors  had  been  printed  before  his  death.  It  seems  likely 
that  his  Greek  books  had  been  dispersed.  But  the  change 
is  apparent  in  the  excellent  series  of  Latin  classics,  which 
included  Tacitus  and  Lucretius,  and  in  the  number  of 
books  by  Italian  writers,  Petrarch,  Boccaccio,  Ficino,  Filelfo, 
Lorenzo  della  Valle,  ^Eneas  Sylvius,  and  Perotti. 

Still  more  significant  of  the  change  are  the  references 
to  the  course  of  study  in  the  statutes  of  Corpus  Christi 
College,  Oxford  (1517).  The  approved  prose  writers  are 
Cicero — an  apology  is  offered  for  the  use  of  barbarous 
words  not  known  to  Cicero — Sallust,  Valerius  Maximus, 
Suetonius,  Pliny,  Livy,  and  Quintilian.  Virgil,  Ovid 
Lucan,  Juvenal,  Terence  and  Plautus  are  approved  as  poets. 
Suitable  books  to  study  during  the  vacations  are  the 
works  of  Lorenzo  della  Valle,  Aulus  Gellius,  and  Poliziano. 
In  Greek  the  writings — most  of  them  quite  new  to  the 
age — of  Isocrates,  Lucian,  Philostratus,  Aristophanes, 
Theocritus,  Euripides,  Sophocles,  Pindar,  Hesiod, 
Demosthenes,  Thucydides,  Aristotle,  and  Plutarch  are 
recommended.  Such  a  list  bears  few  resemblances  to  the 
academic  library  we  have  attempted  to  describe.1 

§  iv 

In    the    fourteenth    and    fifteenth    centuries    romances 
began  to  creep    into  all    libraries,  save    the  academic,  in 

1  Oxford  Stat.,  c.  21. 


228  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

which  they  are  rarely  found.  As  soon  as  romance 
literature  took  a  firm  hold  upon  public  favour  the  monks 
added  some  of  it  to  their  collections.  Probably  romances 
were  first  bought  to  be  copied  and  sold  to  augment  the 
monastic  income ;  and  more  perhaps  were  sold  than 
preserved.  Ascham  avers  that  "  in  our  fathers  tyme 
nothing  was  red,  but  bookes  of  fayned  cheualrie,  wherein  a 
man  by  redinge,  shuld  be  led  to  none  other  ende,  but 
onely  to  manslaughter  and  baudrye.  .  .  .  These  bokes 
(as  I  haue  heard  say)  were  made  the  moste  parte  in  Abbayes 
and  Monasteries,  a  very  lickely  and  fit  fruite  of  suche  an 
ydle  and  blynde  kinde  of  lyuyne."  l  Thomas  Nashe,  in  his 
story  of  The  Unfortunate  Traveller^  describes  romances  as 
"  the  fantasticall  dreams  of  those  exiled  Abbie  lubbers," 
that  is,  the  monks.2  These  writers  were  but  echoing  such 
charges  as  that  in  Piers  Plowman^  which  declares  that  a 
friar  was  much  better  acquainted  with  the  Rimes  of  Robin 
Hood  and  Randal  Erie  of  Chester  than  with  his  Paternoster. 
A  number  of  romances  are  indeed  found  in  monastic 
catalogues.  The  library  at  Glastonbury  included  four 
romances  (1248);  that  at  Christ  Church,  Canterbury, 
contained  a  few  in  late  thirteenth  century.  Guy  de  Beau- 
champ  bequeathed  romances  to  Bordesley  Abbey  (i  3  i  5).  _ 
In  the  first  year  of  the  fifteenth  century  Peterborough  had 
some  romances.  At  the  end  of  the  same  century  St. 
Augustine's  Abbey,  Canterbury,  had  in  its  library  of  over 
eighteen  hundred  books  only  a  few  romances ;  while  in 
Leicester  Abbey,  among  a  library  of  about  three  hundred 
and  fifty  books,  we  find  only  the  Troy  book,  Drian 
and  Madok,  Beves  of  Hamtoun,  all  in  French,  Gesta 
Alexandri  Magni,  and  one  or  two  others.  Edward  III 
bought  a  book  of  romance  from  a  nun  of  Amesbury 
in  J33! — a  work  of  such  interest  that  he  kept  it  in  his 

1  Toxophilus,  Arber's  ed.,  p.  19.  2  Camb.  Eng.  Lit.,  iii.  364. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  229 

room.  There  are  plenty  of  other  instances.  But  in  no 
case  have  we  found  an  excessive  number  of  romances 
in  monastic  libraries,  and  the  charges — if  they  can 
worthily  be  called  charges — so  often  made  against  monks 
on  this  score  fall  to  the  ground.1 

The  romances  oftenest  appearing  in  monastic  catalogues 
and  other  records  are  the  following :  The  Story  of  Troy, 
especially  Joseph  of  Exeter's  Latin  version,  the  great 
Arthurian  cycle,  the  beautiful  story  of  Amis  and  Amiloun, 
renowned  all  over  Europe,  Joseph  of  Arimathea,  Charle- 
magne, Alexander,  which  was  of  the  best  of  romances, 
Guy  of  Warwick,  which  was  very  popular,  and  the  semi- 
historical  Richard  Cceur  de  Lion.  But  many  others  were 
in  circulation.  In  Cursor  mundi  a  number  of  the  popular 
stories  of  the  day  are  mentioned — 

"  Men  lykyn  jestis  for  to  here, 
And  romans  rede  in  divers  maneree, 
Of  Alexandre  the  conquerour, 
Of  Julius  C<zsar*  the  emperour, 
Of  Greece  and  Troy  the  strong  stryf, 
Ther  many  a  man  lost  his  lyfe  : 
Of  Brut?  that  baron  bold  of  hond, 
The  first  conquerour  of  Englond, 
Of  King  Artour  that  was  so  ryche  ; 
Was  non  in  hys  tyme  so  ilyche  [alike,  equal]  : 
Of  wonders  that  among  his  knyghts  felle, 
And  auntyrs  [adventures]  dedyn  as  men  her  telle 
As  Gaiveyn,  and  othir  full  abylle, 
Which  that  kept  the  round  tabyll, 
How  King  Charles  and  Rowland  fawght, 
With  Sarazins,  nold  thei  be  cawght ; 
Of  Tristram  and  Ysoude  the  swete, 
How  thei  with  love  first  gan  mete, 
Of  Kyng  John,  and  of  Iscnbras, 
Of  Ydoine  and  Amadas?* 


1  Cf.  Warton,  ii.  95.  2  By  Jehan  de  Tuim,  c.  1240. 

3  Wace  or  Layamon. 

4  Amadas  et  Idoine,    an  anonymous  Norman  French  poem  of  the  twelfth 
century. 


23o          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Again,  many  "  speak  of  men  who  read  romances — 

Of  Bevys?-  Gy,  and  Gwayane, 

Of  Kyng  Rychard,  and  Owayne, 

Of  Tristram  and  Percyvayle, 

Of  Rowland  Ris*  and  Aglavaule, 

Of  Archeroun,  and  of  Octavian, 

Of  Charles,  and  of  Cassibelan. 

Of  Keveloke?  Home,  and  of  Wade 

In  romances  that  ben  of  hem  bimade, 

That  gestours  dos  of  hem  gestes, 

At  maungeres,  and  at  great  festes, 

Her  dedis  ben  in  remembrance, 

In  many  fair  romance." 

Popular  romances  of  this  kind  had  a  great  influence 
upon  the  lives  of  the  people.  The  long  lists  of  medieval 
theology  and  sophistry  usually  laid  before  us,  and  the 
great  majority  of  the  writings  which  have  survived,  some- 
times lead  us  to  believe  the  culture  of  the  Middle  Ages 
to  have  been  of  a  more  serious  cast  than  it  really  was. 
The  oral  circulation  of  romance  literature  must  have  been 
enormous.  The  spun-out,  dreary  poems  which  now  make 
such  difficult  reading  are  infinitely  more  entertaining  when 
read  aloud  :  the  voice  gives  life  and  character  to  a  humdrum 
narrative,  and  the  gestour  would  know  how  to  make  the 
best  of  incidents  which  he  knew  from  experience  to  be 
specially  interesting  to  an  audience.  Such  yarns  would 
be  most  attractive  to  "  lewd  "  or  illiterate  men — 

"  For  lewde  men  y  undyrtoke 
On  Englyssh  tunge  to  make  thys  boke  : 
For  many  ben  of  swyche  manere 
That  talys  and  rymys  wyl  blethly 4  here, 
Ye  gamys  and  festys,  and  at  the  ale."6 

1  Sir  Beves  of  Hamtoun  (Fr.  13  cent.,  Eng.  14  cent.). 

2  Character  in  romance  of  Tristrem,  by  Thomas  the  Rymer. 

3  Haveloke.     For  other  metrical  catalogues  see  first  and  second  prologues  to 
Richard  Cceur  de  Lion. — Ritson,  Anc,  Eng.  Metr.  Romances  t  i.  55. 

4  Gladly,  blithely. 

5  From  beginning  of  Handlyng  Synne,  by  Robert  Mannying  of  Brunne. 


PL  A  TE  XXXV 


ANCIENT  VELLUM   BOOK-MARKER  WITH   REVOLVING    DISC 

FROM    A    DOUBLE-COLUMN   CANTERBURY   BIBLE  \    THE    DISC   CAN   BE   USED   TO   MARK    COLUMN 
AND    LINE.       MS.  49  C.C.  COLL.  CAMB. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  231 

The  need  of  multiplying  manuscripts  of  these  poems 
would  not  be  greatly  felt.  The  reciter  would  be  obliged 
to  learn  them  off  by  heart ;  he  need  not,  and  often  did 
not,  possess  written  versions  of  the  poems  he  recited.  And 
even  literate  men,  as  Bishop  Grosseteste,  preferred  to 
listen  to  these  gestours,  rather  than  to  read  the  narrative 
themselves.  Therefore,  any  estimate  we  may  form  of  the 
number  of  manuscripts  of  romances  in  existence  at  any 
time  in  the  fourteenth  century,  for  example,  would  give 
not  the  smallest  idea  of  the  extent  to  which  these  tales 
were  known. 

§v 

The  medieval  collector  of  books  sometimes,  and  the 
monastic  librarian  nearly  always,  took  care  that  his  library 
was  strong  in  hagiology  and  history.  He  felt  the  need  of 
books  which  would  tell  him  of  the  past  history  of  his  church 
and  of  the  lives  of  her  greatest  teachers.  When  collected 
these  books  were  an  incentive  to  the  more  cultivated  of  the 
monks  to  begin  the  history  of  his  country  or  his  house, 
or  to  write  or  re-write  the  lives  of  saints.  The  fruit  is 
preserved  for  us  in  a  long  line  of  monkish  historians  and 
hagiographers.  As  a  rule  the  histories  they  wrote  were  of 
little  value ;  but  when  they  had  brought  the  tale  down  to 
their  own  times  they  continued  it  with  the  help  of  records 
to  their  hand,  narrated  events  within  their  own  memory, 
and  maintained  the  narrative  in  the  form  of  annals.  The 
method  of  annalising  was  simple.  At  the  end  of  the  in- 
complete manuscript  a  loose  or  easily  detachable  sheet 
was  kept,  whereon  events  of  importance  to  the  nation  and 
the  monastery  and  locality  of  the  annalist  were  written  in 
pencil  from  time  to  time  during  the  year.  At  the  end  of 
the  year  the  historian  welded  these  jottings  into  a  narrative. 
When  this  was  done  another  leaf  for  notes  was  placed  after 


s32       OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

the  manuscript.  The  value  of  the  work  so  accomplished 
is  incalculable.  Without  these  records  it  would  now  be 
impossible  for  us  to  realise  what  the  Middle  Ages  were  like. 
This  service,  added  to  the  enormously  greater  service  which 
monachism  did  for  us  in  preserving  ancient  literature,  will 
always  breed  kind  thoughts  of  a  system  so  repugnant  to 
our  modern  view  of  human  endeavour. 

§  VI 

What  was  the  extent  of  circulation  of  books  during  the 
manuscript  age  ?  For  the  period  before  the  Conquest  we 
can  only  offer  the  merest  conjecture,  which  does  not  help 
us  materially.  The  rarity  of  the  extant  manuscripts  of 
this  age  is  no  guide  to  the  extent  of  their  production. 
During  the  raids  of  the  northmen  the  destruction  and  loss 
must  have  been  very  great  indeed.  After  the  Conquest 
the  indifference  and  contempt  with  which  the  conquerors 
regarded  everything  Saxon  must  have  been  responsible  for 
the  destruction  of  nearly  every  manuscript  written  in  the 
vernacular.  But,  on  the  other  hand,  we  find  suggestions  of 
a  greater  production  than  is  commonly  credited  to  this 
period.  Religious  fervour  to  make  books  was  not  wanting, 
as  some  of  our  most  beautiful  relics — works  exhibiting 
much  painstaking  and  skilful  and  even  loving  labour, 
calligraphy,  and  decoration  aflame  with  high  endeavour — 
belong  to  the  Hiberno-Saxon  period  and  the  days  of 
Ethel  wold.  Nor  after  Alfred's  day  was  regard  lacking 
for  vernacular  literature  itself  rather  than  for  the  glory  of 
a  faith :  how  else  are  we  to  explain  the  precious  fragments 
of  Anglo-Saxon  manuscript  which  have  been  preserved  for 
us,  especially  the  Exeter  book  and  the  Vercelli  book  ?  That 
the  production  was  considerable  is  suggested  by  the  records 
we  have.  Think  of  the  Irish  manuscripts  now  scattered 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  233 

on  the  continent ;  of  the  library  of  York  ;  of  Bede's  work- 
shop and  the  northern  libraries ;  and  of  those  in  the  south, 
at  Canterbury,  Malmesbury,  and  elsewhere.  But  the  use  of 
such  manuscripts  as  were  in  existence  was  restricted  to 
monks,  wealthy  ecclesiastics,  and  a  few  of  the  wealthy 
laity. 

After  the  Conquest  the  state  of  affairs  was  the  same. 
The  period  of  the  greatest  literary  activity  in  the  monasteries 
now  began,  and  large  claustral  libraries  were  soon  formed. 
The  monks  then  had  plenty  of  books ;  wealthy  clergy  also 
had  small  collections.  An  ecclesiastic  or  a  layman  who 
had  done  a  monastery  some  service,  or  whose  favour  it  was 
politic  to  cultivate,  could  borrow  books  from  the  monastic 
library,  under  certain  strict  conditions.  Some  people 
availed  themselves  of  this  privilege ;  but  not  at  any  time 
during  the  manuscript  period  to  a  great  extent.1 

Outside  this  small  circle  the  people  were  almost  book- 
less :  nearly  the  whole  of  the  literary  wealth  of  the  Middle 
Ages  belonged  to  the  monks  and  the  church.  Books  were 
extremely  costly.  The  medieval  book-buyer  paid  more  for 
his  book  on  an  average  than  does  the  modern  collector  of 
first  editions  and  editions  de  luxe,  who  pays  in  addition 
several  guineas  a  volume  for  handsome  bindings.  The  prices 
we  have  tabulated  will  fully  bear  out  this  statement.  But 
even  more  striking  evidence  of  the  high  value  set  upon 
books  is  the  care  taken  in  selling  or  bequeathing  them. 
To-day  a  line  or  two  in  a  wealthy  man's  will  disposes  of 
all  his  books.  He  commonly  throws  them  in  with  the 
"  residue,"  unmentioned.  In  the  manuscript  age  a  testator 
distributed  his  little  hoard  book  by  book.  Often  he  not 
only  bequeaths  a  volume  to  a  friend,  but  determines  its  fate 
after  his  friend's  death.  For  example,  a  daughter  is  to 
have  a  copy  of  the  Golden  Legend,  "  and  to  occupye  to  hir 

1  Bateson  x.  ;  Gasquet4,  30-31  ;  James  (M.R.),  148. 


234 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


owne  use  and  at  hir  owne  liberte  durynge  hur  lyfe,  and  after 

hur  decesse  to  remayne  to  the 
prioress  and  the  convent  of 
Halywelle  for  evermore,  they 
to  pray  for  the  said  John 
Burton  and  Johne  his  wife  and 
alle  crystene  soyles  (I46O)."1 
A  manuscript  now  in  Wor- 
cester Cathedral  Library  bears 
an  inscription  telling  us  that, 
likewise,  one  Thomas  Jolyffe 
left  it  to  Dr.  Isack,  a  monk  of 
Worcester,  for  his  lifetime,  and 
after  his  death  to  Worcester 
Priory.  A  manuscript  now 
in  the  British  Museum  was 
bought  in  1473  at  Oxford  by 
Clement  of  Canterbury,  monk 
and  scholar,  from  a  book- 
seller named  Hunt  for  twenty 
shillings,  in  the  presence  of 
Will.  Westgate,  monk?  In  a 
manuscript  of  the  Sentences  is 
a  note  telling  us  that  it  was 
the  property  of  Roger,  arch- 
deacon of  Lincoln  :  he  bought 
it  from  Geoffrey  the  chaplain, 
^ie  brother  of  Henry,  vicar  of 
North  Elkington,  the  witnesses 
being  master  Robert  de  Luda, 

clerk,  Richard  the  almoner,  the  said  Henry  the  vicar,  his 

1  Written  at  the  end  of  the  manuscript,  which  is  in  the  Douce  collection. — 
Warton,  i.  182-83. 

2  MS.  Burney,  11  ;  James  (M.R.),  515. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  235 

clerk,  and  others.1  An  instance  of  a  different  kind  will 
suffice.  When,  after  a  good  deal  of  rioting  at  Oxford, 
many  of  the  more  studious  masters  and  scholars  went  to 
Stamford,  the  king  threatened  that  if  they  did  not  return 
to  Oxford  they  would  lose  their  goods,  and  especially  their 
books.  The  warning  was  disregarded,  but  the  threatened 
forfeiture  of  their  books  was  evidently  thought  to  be  a  strong 
measure.2 

In  his  poems  Chaucer  endows  two  poor  clerks  with 
small  libraries.  His  first  portrait  of  an  Oxford  clerk  is 
delightful — 

"For  him  was  lever  have  at  his  beddes  heed  [rather] 
Twenty  bokes,  clad  in  blak  or  reed, 
Of  Aristotle  and  his  philosophye, 

Than  robes  riche,  or  fithele,  or  gay  sautrye  [fiddle,  psaltery]. 
But  al  be  that  he  was  a  philosophre, 
Yet  hadde  he  but  litel  gold  in  cofre  ; 
But  al  that  he  mighte  of  his  freendes  hente  [get], 
On  bokes  and  on  lerninge  he  it  spente, 
And  bisily  gan  for  the  soules  preye 
Of  hem  that  yaf  him  wher-with  to  scoleye  [gave,  study]. 
Of  studie  took  he  most  cure  and  most  hede. 
Noght  o  word  spak  he  more  than  was  nede, 
And  that  was  seyd  in  forme  and  reverence, 
And  short  and  quik,  and  ful  of  hy  sentence  [high]. 
Souninge  in  moral  vertu  was  his  speche  [conducing  to], 
And  gladly  wolde  he  lerne,  and  gladly  teche." 

Almost  equally  pleasing  is  his  picture  of  another  who 
lived  with  a  rich  churl — 

"A  chambre  hadde  he  in  that  hostelrye 
Allone,  with-outen  any  companye, 

His  Almageste  and  bokes  grete  and  smale, 

His  astrelabie,  longinge  for  his  art, 

His  augrim-stones  layen  faire  a-part 

On  shelves  couched  at  his  beddes  heed." 

Both  descriptions  have  been  used  as  evidence  that  books 

1  B.M.  MS.  Reg.,  9  B  ix.  I.  2  Lyte,  135. 


236          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

were  not  so  scarce  as  supposed  ;  that  poor  people  could 
get  books  if  they  specially  needed  them.  But  are  these 
pictures  quite  true  ?  Has  not  the  poet  taken  advantage  of 
the  licence  allowed  to  his  kind  ?  The  records  preserved  at 
Oxford  do  not  corroborate  him.  Some  of  the  students  were 
very  poor.  It  seems  likely  that  a  would-be  clerk  attached 
himself  to  a  master  or  scholar  as  a  servant  in  return  for 
teaching  in  the  "  kunnyng  of  writyng  "  and  perhaps  other 
knowledge  — 

"  This  endenture  bereth  witnesse  that  I,  John  Swanne,  Y  sone 
of  John  Swanne  of  Bridlington,  in  Y  counte  of  Yorke,  have  putte 
me  servante  unto  William  Osbarne,  forto  serve  him  undir  Y  foorme 
of  a  servante  for  Y  terme  of  iiii.  yere,  and  Y  seide  William  Osbarne 
forto  enfoorme  Y  seide  John  Swann  in  Y  kunnyng  of  writyng,  and 
Y  seide  John  Swann  forto  have  Y  fifst  yere  of  Y  seide  William 
Osbarne  iijs.  iiijd.  in  money,  and  ij.  peier  [pairs]  of  hosen,  and  ij. 
scherts  [shirts]  and  iiij.  peire  schoon  [pairs  of  shoes],  and  a  gowne, 
and  in  Y  secunde  yeere  xiijs.  iiijd.,  and  in  Y  u'j-  vere  xxs-  and  a 
gowne,  and  in  >e  iiij.  yeere  xls.  And  in  Y  witnesse  hereof,  etc." 


Mr.  Anstey  points  out  that  a  very  large  number, 
probably  the  majority  of  scholars,  were  not  well  provided 
for.  They  eked  out  their  precarious  allowances  by  begging, 
by  learning  handicrafts,  and  by  "  picking  up  the  various 
doles  at  funerals  and  commemoration  masses,  where  such 
needy  miserables  were  always  to  be  found."  2  Such  students 
would  not  be  likely  to  have  many  or  perhaps  any  books. 
"  The  stock  of  books  possessed  by  \kzyounger  scholars  seems 
to  have  been  almost  nil.  The  inventories  of  goods,  which  we 
possess,  in  the  case  of  non-graduates  contain  hardly  any 
books.  The  fact  is  that  they  mostly  could  not  afford  to 
buy  them.  .  .  .  The  chief  source  of  supplying  books  was  by 
purchase  from  the  University  sworn  stationers,  who  had  to 
a  great  extent  a  monopoly,  the  object  of  which  was  to 

1  Mun.  Acad.,  665.     Cf.  p.  66l.  2  Mun.  Acad.,  ci. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  237 

prevent  the  sale  and  removal  from  Oxford  of  valuable 
books.  Of  such  books  there  were  plainly  very  large 
numbers  constantly  changing  hands  ;  they  were  the  pledges 
so  continually  deposited  on  borrowing  from  chests,  and 
seem,  from  scattered  hints,  to  have  been  a  very  fruitful 
source  of  litigation  and  dispute."1  Most  of  these  books 
were  in  the  hands  of  seniors.  Truly  enough  many  a 
poor  clerk  would  as  lief  have  twenty  "  bokes  "  to  his  name 
as  anything  else  treble  the  value.  But  he  would  undergo 
much  sharp  self-denial  and  receive  much  "  wher-with  to 
scoleye  "  ere  he  got  together  so  considerable  a  collection  of 
"  bokes  grete  and  smale,"  to  say  nothing  of  instruments. 
As  such  a  large  proportion  of  the  scholars  were  poor,  and 
unable  to  acquire  books,  nearly  all  the  instruction  given 
was  oral.  Well-to-do  scholars  would  not  find,  therefore, 
books  of  very  great  service ;  and  indeed  they  were  as  ill- 
equipped  in  this  respect  as  their  poorer  brethren.  The 
accounts  of  the  La  Fytes,  two  scholars  whose  expenses 
were  paid  by  Edward  I  himself,  contain  records  of  the 
purchase  of  two  copies  of  only  the  Institutions  of  Quintilian 
(c.  I29O).2  Is  not  Chaucer  describing  his  own  room  in 
both  passages — the  room  he  loved  to  seek  after  his  day's 
work  at  the  desk?  Here  at  the  bedhead  are  his  books, 
including  the  astronomical  treatise  of  Ptolemy  called 
Almagest.  Beside  them  is  the  astrolabe,  an  instrument 
about  which  he  wrote ;  and  trimly  arranged  apart  his 
augrim-stones,  or  counters  for  making  calculations.  Such 
an  outfit  we  might  expect  him  to  have :  just  such  a  library, 
neither  smaller  nor  larger. 

This  supposition  calls  to  mind  another  argument  some- 
times used  to  prove  how  easy  it  was  to  make  a  small 
collection  of  books.  Chaucer's  poems  display  his  acquaint- 
ance, more  or  less  thoroughly,  with  many  authors.  Surely, 

1  Mun.  Acad.,  Ixxvii.  2  Lytc,  93. 


238          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

it  is  urged,  his  library  was  a  good  one  for  the  time :  then 
how  was  it  possible  for  a  man  of  his  means  to  own  such? 
He  was  not  wealthy.  As  a  courtier  and  a  public  officer 
the  calls  upon  his  purse  must  have  been  heavy  :  little  indeed 
could  be  left  for  books.  The  explanation  is  probably 
simple.  Books  were  freely  lent,  more  freely  than 
nowadays ;  and  Chaucer  would  be  able  to  eke  out  his 
library  in  this  way.  Another  point  is  important.  Pro- 
fessor Lounsbury,  who  has  spent  years  in  an  exhaustive 
study  of  Chaucer,  points  out  a  curious  circumstance.  "  It 
must  be  confessed,"  he  says — a  shade  of  disparagement 
lurks  in  the  phrase — "  it  must  be  confessed  that  Chaucer's 
quotations  from  writers  exhibit  a  familiarity  with  prologues 
and  first  books  and  early  chapters  which  contrasts  ominously 
with  the  comparative  infrequency  with  which  he  makes 
citations  from  the  middle  and  latter  parts  of  most  of  the 
works  he  mentions."1  Surely  the  implication  is  unjust. 
Stationers  used  to  let  out  on  hire  parts  of  books  or  quires. 
Manuscript  volumes  were  also  often  made  up  of  parts  of 
works  by  several  authors.  Books  being  scarce,  it  was 
preferable  to  make  some  volumes  select  miscellanies,  little 
libraries  in  themselves.  Hear  Chaucer  himself — 

"  And  eek  ther  was  som-tyme  a  clerk  at  Rome, 
A  cardinal,  that  highte  Seinte  Jerome, 
That  made  a  book  agayn  Jovinian  ; 
In  whiche  book  eek  ther  was  Tertulan, 
Crisippus,  Trotula,  and  Helowys, 
That  was  abbesse  nat  fer  fro  Parys ; 
And  eek  the  Parables  of  Salomon, 
Ovydes  Art,  and  bokes  many  on, 
And  alle  thise  were  bounden  in  o  volume."2 

In  composite  volumes  often  only  the  earlier  parts   of 
authors'   works  were   included.      If  Chaucer  owned  a  few 

1  Lounsbury,  Studies  in  Chaucer,  ii.  265. 

2  Wife  of  Bath's  Prologue,  11.  673-81. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  239 

books  of  this  kind,  his  familiarity  with  parts  of  authors — 
and  oftenest  with  the  earlier  parts — is  accounted  for 
satisfactorily ;  so  also  is  the  range  and  variety  of  his 
reading.  Examine  the  Christ  Church  Canterbury  catalogue 
in  Henry  Eastry's  time,  and  note  what  a  remarkable 
variety  of  subjects  is  comprised  in  what  we  nowadays 
consider  rather  a  paltry  number  of  books.  There  is 
another  point  worth  bearing  in  mind.  Speaking  of  Bishop 
Shirwood's  books,  a  writer  in  the  English  Historical  Review 
says  :  "  Many  of  the  books  bear  his  mark,  Nota,  scattered 
over  the  margins,  or  a  hand  with  a  long  pointing  finger. 
These  notes  occur  usually  at  the  beginnings.  In  the  days 
when  chapters  and  sections  were  unknown  and  division 
into  books  rare,  when  headlines  were  not  and  pages  some- 
times had  no  signatures  even,  not  to  speak  of  numbers,  a 
reader  had  to  go  solidly  through  a  book,  and  could  not 
lightly  turn  up  a  passage  he  wished  for,  by  the  aid  of  a 
reference.  But  except  in  Cicero  and  in  Plutarch — which  is 
read  almost  from  beginning  to  end — the  marks  do  not 
often  go  far.  Shirwood  was  doubtless  too  busy  to  find 
much  time  for  reading,  and  before  he  had  made  much  way 
with  a  book  a  new  purchase  had  come  to  arouse  his 
interest."  * 

But  to  the  general  rule  of  scarcity  of  books  some 
exceptions  are  known.  When  a  book  won  a  reputation, 
the  cost  of  producing  copies  was  not  wholly  restrictive  of 
circulation.  Copies  of  some  works  of  the  Fathers  were 
produced  in  great  numbers.  The  Bible,  whole  or  in  part, 
was  copied  with  such  industry  that  it  became  the  commonest 
of  manuscripts,  as  it  now  is  the  commonest  of  printed 
books.  Peter  Lombard's  Sentences  became  a  famous  book  : 
the  standard  of  the  schools ;  everywhere  to  be  found  side 
by  side  with  the  Bible,  everywhere  discussed  and  com- 

1  E.  H.  A\,  xxv.  453. 


24o          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

mented  upon.  A  twelfth  century  author  of  quite  different 
character  had  a  good  hold  upon  the  people ;  the  number 
of  copies  of  Geoffrey  of  Monmouth  must  have  been  con- 
siderable, for  the  British  Museum  now  has  thirty-five 
copies  and  Bodley's  Library  sixteen.  "  Possibly,  no  work 
before  the  age  of  printed  books  attained  such  immediate 
and  astonishing  popularity  .  .  .  translations,  adaptations, 
and  continuations  of  it  formed  one  of  the  staple  exercises 
of  a  host  of  medieval  scribes."  l  A  glance  at  the  monastic 
and  academic  library  catalogues  of  later  date  than  mid- 
thirteenth  century  will  prove  more  clearly  than  a  shelf  full 
of  books  how  enormous  was  the  influence  of  Aristotle.  If 
such  a  collocation  as  the  Bible  and  Shakspere  sums  up  the 
present-day  Englishman's  ideals  of  spiritual  sustenance  and 
literary  power,  a  similar  collocation  of  the  Bible  and 
Aristotle  would  sum  up,  with  a  greater  approach  to  truth, 
the  ideals  of  the  medieval  schoolman.  Popularity  fell  to 
Piers  Plowman.  Apart  from  the  large  currency  given  to  it 
by  ballad  singers,  many  manuscripts  were  in  existence,  for 
even  now  forty-five  of  them,  more  or  less  complete,  remain. 
As  M.  Jusserand  aptly  remarks :  "  This  figure  is  the  more 
remarkable  when  we  consider  that,  contrary  to  works  written 
in  Latin  or  in  French,  Langland's  book  was  not  copied 
and  preserved  outside  his  own  country." 2  Again,  but  a 
few  years  after  the  writing  of  the  Canterbury  Tales,  a  copy 
of  it  was  bequeathed,  among  other  books,  by  a  clerk  named 
Richard  Sotheworth  of  East  Hendred,  Berks  (I4I7).3 
The  impression  is  left  upon  one's  mind  that  this  work  had 
found  its  way  quickly  and  in  many  copies  into  country 
places. 

But   as   only  a  few    books  had  a  comparatively  large 
circulation,  these   few    had    a    disproportionately  powerful 

1  Camb.  Lit.,  i.  262.  "  Piers  Plowman,  186. 

3  "Quendam  libru'  meu'  de  Canfbury  Tales."— N.  &  Q.,  II  ser.  ii.  26. 


CHARACTER  OF  MEDIEVAL  LIBRARY  241 

influence.  The  Bible  was  paramount.  Aristotle  dominated 
the  whole  mental  horizon  of  the  schoolmen.  Alfred  of 
Beverley  tells  us  that  Geoffrey  of  Monmouth's  book  "  was  so 
universally  talked  of  that  to  confess  ignorance  of  its  stories 
was  the  mark  of  a  clown."  l  So  great  was  the  influence  of 
Piers  Plowman,  that  from  it  were  taken  watchwords  at  the 
great  rising  of  the  peasants.2  The  power  of  such  works 
could  not  be  wholly  hemmed  in  by  the  barrier  of  manu- 
script :  like  a  spring  torrent  it  would  burst  forth  and  carry 
all  before  it.  In  the  manuscript  period  a  book  of  great 
originality  and  power,  or  a  work  which  reproduced  the 
thought  of  the  time  accurately  and  with  spirit,  ran  no 
great  risk  of  being  passed  over  and  forgotten ;  too  little 
was  produced  for  much  that  was  good  to  be  lost.  It  was 
copied  once  and  again ;  became  very  slowly  but  very 
surely  known  to  a  few,  then  to  many ;  and  all  the  time 
waxed  more  and  more  influential  in  its  teaching.  The 
growth  was  slow,  but  then  the  lifetime  was  long.  Now 
the  chance  of  a  good  book  going  astray  is  much  greater. 
What  watcher  of  the  great  procession  of  modern  books 
does  not  fear  that  something  supremely  fine  and  great  has 
passed  unobserved  in  the  huge,  motley  crowd  ? 

1   Camb.  Lit.,  i.  262.  '2  Jusserand,  Piers,  13. 


16 


APPENDIX    A 


PRICES   OF   BOOKS  AND   MATERIALS   FOR   BOOKMAKING 


.  —  Following  is  a  selection  from  a  large  number  of  prices  recorded  in 
various  places.  In  making  the  selection  I  have  included  books  of  various  prices. 
An  asterisk  (*)  before  the  reference  signifies  that  additional  prices  will  be  found  in 
the  same  place. 

These  prices  must  be  multiplied  at  least  ten  times  before  the  value  set 
upon  books  in  the  Middle  Ages  can  be  compared  with  the  value  set  upon  them 
to-day. 


DATE 

DESCRIPTION 

PRICE 

BIBLES 

1344 

Bible  for  Merton  College  .... 
Rogers,  i.  646 

£3 

'1354-74 

For   redeeming  a  Bible   which  lay  in  Langeton 
chest  (1354)        ..... 
For  a  Bible  pledged  in  Chichester  chest  (1357)      . 
For  a  Bible  redeemed  from  Chichester  chest  (1358) 
For  Bible  pledged  in  Winton  chest  (1358) 
To  our  barber  for  a  Bible  pledged  to  him  in  time 
of  John  Dagenet              .... 
O.  H.  S.,  27,  Boase,  xlviii. 

£3 
£3 

£ 

4  marks. 

1376 

Bible,  small            ..... 
Robinson,  5 

12  fr. 

c.  1387 
15  c. 

Bible  for  New  College 
Another     ...... 
Another     ...... 
O.  H.  S.,  32,  Collect.,  220 
Bible,  13  cent.,  358  ff.,  double  cols,  of  53  lines, 
in  good  small  hand         .... 
James4,  19 

£2,  135.  4d. 
£i,  6s.  8d. 
£1,  os.  od. 

5  marks. 

1423 

Pro  j  Biblia,  cum  ij  signaculis  deauratis     . 
Surtees  Soc.  ,  xlv.  76 

£6,  I3s.  4d. 

1439 

Bible          
James10,  xxiv. 

£3,  6s.  8d. 

244          OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


DATE 

DESCRIPTION 

PRICE 

BIBLES—  (continued] 

1444 

Bible          
James10,  xxiv. 

£2,  135.  od. 

1449 

Bible  covered  with  red  leather,  and  having  gilded 
clasps     ...... 
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  no 

£6,  135.  4d. 

1452 

Bible          
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  132 

£6,  135.  4d. 

1471 

Bible,  in  5  vols.      .             .             .             .             .                £2 
James10,  xxiv.   [ 

H73 

Bible  bought  at  Oxford.     Now  Brit.  Mus.  MS. 
Burney  1  1                        .             . 
James,  515 

20S. 

MISSALS 

1358 

Missal  pledged  in  Burnel  chest 
O.  H.  S.,  27,  Boase,  xlviii. 

8s.  46. 

1383-4 

Abbot  Litlington's  missal  .... 
Robinson,  7-8 

£34,  145.  7d- 

1449 

Old  Missal,  de  usu  Ebor.                .• 
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  no 

26s.  8d. 

MS2 

Missal,  de  usu  Ebor.           .... 
Old  Missal              ..... 
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  132-33 

£4,  135.  4d. 

I  OS. 

1459 

A  fair  mass  book    ..... 
Rogers,  iv.  600 

£10 

1468 

Missal        
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  163 

£4 

1491 

Missal        ....... 
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  161  n. 

405. 

i5°9 

A  new  masboke  couered  with  white  lether  and  ij 
longe  claspes  of  latyn     . 
A  little  massebooke  after  the  ffrenche  use  . 
C.  A.  S.  (N.S.)  8vo  ser.,  iii.  361 

£4 

3s.  4d- 

BREVIARIES 

1370 

Portiforium             ..... 
Cam.  Soc.  ,  Bury  Wills,  I 

IOS. 

APPENDIX  A 


245 


DATE 

DESCRIPTION 

PRICE 

BREVIARIES—  (continued] 

1395 

Portiforium  notatum           .... 
Parvum  portiforium            .... 
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  6 

20S. 

335.  4d. 

1400 

Portiforium  de  usu  Sarum  .... 
Ibid.,  13 

66s.  8d. 

1449 

Great  portiforium  de  usu  Ebor. 
Great  portiforium  de  usu  Sarum    . 
Ibid.,  1  10 

£11,  35.  6d. 
535.  46. 

i45i 

Portiforium             ..... 
Mun.  Acad.,  609 

6s.  8d. 

H52 

Portiforium  de  usu  Sarum  .... 
Portiforium  de  usu  Ebor.   .... 
Portiforium             ..... 
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  132-33 

53s.  4<3. 
535.  46. 
133.  4d. 

1491 

Portiforium  de  usu  Ebor.  .... 
Ibid.,  i6in. 

43s-  4d. 

1518 

A  little  portuos  lyinge  to  plegge  in  teamce  street  . 
Reliquary,  vii.  18 

533.  4d. 

Before 
1300 

PSALTERS 

Psalter,  with  glosses           .... 
Warton,  i.  i88n. 

I  OS. 

1376 

Psalter,  glossed      ..... 
Robinson,  6 

12  fr. 

c.  1380 

Psalter,  glossed      ..... 
O.  H.  S.,  32,  Collect.,  226 

263.  8d. 

1395 

Psalter,  in  large  letters  ;  price  65-.  8d.,  sold  for 
Surtees  Soc.  ,  xlv.  6 

135.  4d. 

1447 

Psalter        ...... 
Rogers,  iv.  600 

33.  8d. 

1449 

Psalter,  glossed      ..... 
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  no 

IIS. 

1451 

Psalter,  glossed      ..... 
Mun.  Acad.,  609 

6s.  8d. 

246 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


PRICE 


PSALTERS— (continued] 


I452 

1468 
c.  1470 

c.  1420-40 

1459 
1491 

1509 


Psalter,  glossed 
Illuminated  Psalter 
Small  Psalter 


Psalter 
Psalter 


1449 
1509 


c.  690 


Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  132-33 
Ibid.,  163 

Paston  Letters,  ed.  Gairdner,  vi.  175-77 
ANTIPHONARIES 


Antiphonary  for  S.  Albans 

Another      ...... 

Ann.  mon.  S.  Alb.  aj.  Amund.,  ii.  256-71 


2  new  great  antiphons 


Rogers,  iv.  600 


Antiphonary  [with  musical  notation] 

Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  161  n. 

A  grete  antyphoner  in  parchement  with  legent 
couered  with  white  lether  with  ij  long  claspes  of 
latyn  ...... 

An    olde    litle   antyphoner   withoute    couer   and 
claspes    ...... 

C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  8vo  ser.,  iii.  361 


PROCESSIONALS 

20  new  Processionals  for  All  Souls  College 

Rogers,  iv.  600 

A  Processionall  noted  [with  musical  notation] 
couered  with  Tawny  lether  and  ij  long  claspes  . 

A  processionall  couered  with  Tawny  lether  with 

oon  claspe  ..... 

C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  iii.  361 


MISCELLANEOUS  BOOKS 

Land  sufficient  for  8  families  exchanged  for  a  book 
on  cosmography,  of  admirable  workmanship. 

Vita  Abb.  §  15 


135.  4d. 
135.  4d. 
6s.  8d. 


8s.  4d. 
6s.  8d. 

6s,  135.  4 

£13,  6s.  8d. 
335.  4d. 


26s.  8d. 


APPENDIX  A 


247 


DATE 


ii74 


Before 
1300 


1300 

1322 
1357 

c.  1360 


1376 


DESCRIPTION 


MISCELLANEOUS  BOOKS— (continued] 

Bede's  Homilies  and  S.  Austin's  Psalter  exchanged 
for  12  measures  of  barley  and  a  pall,  on  which 
was  embroidered  in  silver  the  history  of 
S.  Birinus  converting  a  Saxon  king. 

Warton,  i.  186 

Historia  Scholastica  [Peter  Comestor].    [Cf.  1452. ] 
Concordance  ..... 

Four  greater  prophets,  with  glosses 

*Warton,  i.  188  n. 


Book  of  Decretals  . 


A  school  book 


Liber  gardanarum  . 


*Stevenson,  Hist,  of  Ely 

Rogers,  i.  645-56 

Rogers,  i.  646 


For  book   on    Prophets    and    the   third   part   of 

Thomas  Aquinas  (tertia  pars  Summae),  pledged 

in  Tykeford  chest  .... 

O.  H,  S.,  27,  Boase,  xlviii. 

La  Bible  Hystoriaus,  ou  Les  Histories  escolastres. 
B.M.  Reg.  19  D  ii.  Taken  from  King  of 
France  at  Poitiers  ;  bought  by  Wm.  Montagu, 
for  .  . 

Ordered  to  be  sold  by  the  Last  will  of  his 
Countess  Elizabeth  for  . 

Warton,  i.  187 

Dictionary  in  3  volumes     .... 
Gospels  glossed  in  i  volume 

N.  de  Lyra  on  the  Gospels  and  the  Epistles  of  Paul 
Quodlibeta  of  Herveus  Natalis  Brito 
Milleloquium  Augustini  [anthology  of  S.  Augustine 

by  Bartholomew  of  Urbino] 
Augustine,     super    psalterium    abbreviatus     cum 

septem  quaternis  non  ligatis 

N.  de  Lyra,  third  part       .... 
Small  concordance  .... 

Speculum    Historiale,    first   part,    by   Vincent   of 

Beauvais  ..... 

Augustine,  de  Civitate  Dei 
Lombard's  Sentences.     [Cf.  1423,  1452.] 
Boethius,  de  Consolatione  philosophiae,  cum  aliis. 
Summa   Hostiensis   [one   of  the  chief  books  on 

canon  law].     [Cf.  1380.] 


PRICE 


I  OS. 

3s. 

2d. 

£3,  6s.  8d. 
135.  4d. 


loo  marks. 
40  livres. 

200  francs. 

15  francs. 
37^  francs. 

3  francs. 

80  francs. 

I  franc. 

37^  francs. 

I  franc. 

50  francs. 
12  francs. 
6  francs. 
10  francs. 

20  francs. 


248 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


PRICE 


1376 


1378 


1379 


c.  1380 


1389 


MISCELLANEOUS  BOOKS— (contmuea) 

ronica  Martiniana,  by  Martinus  Polonus ;  Bede, 
de  Gestis  Anglorum ;  Life  of  S.  Thomas,  in 
i  volume  ..... 

Anselm,  de  Similitudinibus 

*Robinson,  5-7 

Wylliott's  book  on  natural  philosophy 

Rogers,  i.  646 


1 1  quires  of  Bacon's  Mathematics 


Rogers,  i.  646 


Lectura  T.  Alquini  super  410  sententiarum 
Evangelium  Johannis  et  Apocalypsis  glosatum 
Concordantiae  Bibliae        .... 
Sermones  veteres  ..... 
Sermones  N.  Gorham  de  communi  sanctorum 
Liber  Genesis  glosatus       .... 
Legenda  Aurea      ..... 
Augustine,  de  Civitate  Dei 
Haymo  super  epistolas  Pauli 
Evangelium  Mathaei          .  . 

,,  Johannis  glos. 

Biblia  versificata    . 
Quaternus  sermonum          . 
Epistolae  Sidonii,  in  quaterno 
Albertus  Magnus,  de  vegetabilibus  et  plantis  cum 
multis  aliis          .  .  .  .  . 

Textus  Metha[physi]cae     . 
Commentator  super  libros  caeli  et  mundi  . 
Liber  de  Anima,  continens  3  libros  cum  aliis 
Textus  naturalis  philosophiae 


Tractatus  de  Animalibus    . 

Liber  Decretal ium  non  glosatus     . 

Liber  Decretalium  . 

Summa  Hostiensis.     [Cf.  1376.]   . 

Liber    Sextus    decretalium.       [Cf.     1423,     1445 

1451.]     ..... 
Codex.     [Cf.  1423.] 
Liber  inforciatus.     [Cf.  1423,  1445.] 
Digestum  vetus.     [Cf.  1423.] 

0.  H.  S.,  32,  Collect.,  224-41 

Problems  of  Aristotle  for  Exeter  College  . 
Boethius,    De    Disciplina    Scholarum,    and     De 
Consolatione  philosophiae 

O.  H.  S.,  27,  Boase,  xxxvi 


10  francs. 
2  francs. 


3.  6s.  8d. 

55.  6d. 


20S. 

8s. 

35.  4d. 
5s. 

20S. 
20S. 

535.  4d. 

IOCS. 
2S. 

35.  4d. 

5s. 
2s.  6d. 

I2d. 

53s-  4d. 
IDS. 

I 

1  6s. 

135.  4d. 
135.  4d. 

48. 

35.  4d. 
1  6s.  8d. 
4,  135.  4d. 

75s 
315.  4d. 

20S. 

5s. 


5  marks. 


APPENDIX  A 


249 


DATE 

1394 
c-  1394 

1395 


1397 


DESCRIPTION 


PRICE 


MISCELLANEOUS  BOOKS— (continued) 

Parchment  for  4  choir  books,  and  writing  them 

Surtees  Soc.,  xxxv.  130 

Writing,  illuminating  and  other  expenses  of  a 
primer,  given  to  the  Lady  Queen  of  Castile, 
i.e.  Constance,  2nd  wife  of  John  of  Gaunt 

C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  iii.  401 

Cronica  Martiniana,  cum  aliis.      Priced  3^.   4^., 

sold  for  [Cf.  price  in  1376] 
Libellus   cum   causa   T.    Cantuariensis,    et    aliis. 

Priced  2s.,  sold  for 
Repertorium  Willelmi  Durand.      Priced  65-.   8d., 

not  sold  ..... 

William  de  Mandagoto  de  Electionibus.     Priced  j 

55-.,  sold  for 
Constitutions   of  Ottobonus,    cum   aliis.      Priced  i 

i&d.,  not  sold     . 
Petrus   de   Forma   dictandi,    quire.       Priced   2s.,  \ 

not  sold  [Cf.  1443]  .... 
Bernard,  Meditationes,  cum  aliis  5^.,  sold  for 
Mandeville  on  paper,  in  French.  2s.,  not  sold 
Quire,  de  Arte  dictandi,  with  letters  of  Peter  of 

Blois.  2s.,  not  sold  .... 
Textus  Clementinarum  [Decretals  of  Clement]. 

\2.d. ,  not  sold  ..... 
Brut  in  French.  2s.,  not  sold 

Stirtees  Soc.,  xlv.  6 

Vellum  for  6  Processionals,  and  writing,  noting 

(notatio,    musical   notation),    illuminating    and 

binding  them      ..... 

Surtees  Soc.,  vii.  xxvi.-vii.  n. 


Liber  Scintillarum 
Augustine  on  John 


C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  iii.  403 


For  39  quires  parchment  at  \\d.  =  xxs.  v\d.  (sic) 
For  writing  same  at  xx^/.  quire 
For  illuminating    ..... 
For  binding  ..... 

Summa 
James3,  105 

27  quires  parchment  at  \\\d. 
For  writing  same  at  i6d.    . 
Illumination  ..... 

Binding      ...... 

Summa 
Ibid.,  128 


£11,  135.  3d. 

633.  6d. 

35.  46. 
35.  46. 
6s.  8d. 
6s.  8d. 
i8d. 

2S. 

6s. 

2S. 
25, 

i2d. 

2S. 

735.  46. 


2S. 
IO  marks. 


195.  6d. 

655. 

I2d. 
2s.  6d. 

4,  8s.  od. 


6s.  Qd. 
36s. 
8d. 

2S. 

455.  5d. 


250 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


DATE 

DESCRIPTION 

PRICE 

MISCELLANEOUS  BOOKS—  (continued] 

150. 

27  quires  and  6  fo.  parchment  at  iiiV. 

6s.  gd. 

For  writing  same  at  \6d,   .... 

36s. 

Illumination           ..... 

6d. 

Binding      ...... 

2S. 

Total 

453.  3d. 

Ibid.,  133 

15  c. 

33  quires  parchment           .... 

8s.  3d. 

For  writing  same  at  i6d.   . 

445. 

Illumination           ..... 

I2d. 

Binding      ...... 

2S. 

Total 

55s.  3d. 

Ibid.,  169 

15  c. 

29  quires  parchment  at  \\\d. 

7s.  3d. 

For  writing  same  at  i6d.   . 

385.  8d. 

Illumination           .             .                          . 

i2d. 

Binding     ...... 

2S. 

Total 

485.  lid. 

Ibid.,  226 

15  c. 

Antonius  Andreas,  super  Metaphysica,  etc.,  1536°., 

on  paper             ..... 

135.  4d. 

James3,  290 

1400 

John  of  Meun's  Roman  de  la  Rose,  sold  before 

the  palace  gate  at  Paris  .... 

;£33,  6s.  6d. 

War  ton,  i.  187 

1400 

Tabula  Martiniana             .... 

35.  4d. 

Gradual,  de  usu  Ebor.       .... 

4os. 

Catholicon.     [Cf.  1452.]  .... 

£4,  IDS.  od. 

*Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  13 

1414 

For  mending  one  old  mass  book  almost  worn  out  ; 

for  parchment  and  new  writing  in  divers  parts 

and  for  the  binding  and  new  clasps,  and  a  skin 

to  cover  the  book            .... 

IIS.  2d. 

Archceologia,  Ivii.  208-9 

1420-40 

Three  books  given   to   the   Duke  of  Gloucester, 

Cato  glossed,  and  two  books  of  Abbot  Whet- 

hamstede's  own  composition 

£10 

Book  of  astronomy,  given  to  the  Duke  of  Bedford 

£3,  6s.  8d. 

Boethius,  de  Consolatione  philosophiae,  glossed   . 
Holkot,  super  Sapientiam  Salomonis 

^5, 
135.  4d. 

Holkot,  Sermons  ..... 

£3,  6s.  8d. 

Thos.    Netter  of    Walden    and  Wm.    Wodeford 

against  Wyclif.     2  vols. 

£6,  135.  4d. 

*  Ann.  man  S.  Alb.  a  J.  Amnnd.  ii.  256,  259, 

268-71. 

APPENDIX  A 


251 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


PRICE 


1420-40 


1423 


1432 


1441 

1442 
1443 
1443 
1443 
1445 
H45 


MISCELLANEOUS  BOOKS—  (continued) 

Alan  de  Lisle's  Anticlaudianus,  cum  quaestionibus 
in  eodem  ..... 

Unus  parvus  libellulus,  cum  metris  et  tabulis 
diversis  ...... 

*  Ann.  man  S.  Alb.  a  J.  Amund.  ii.  256,  259, 
268-71. 

Magister  Sententiarum.     [Cf.  1376,  1452.] 
Concordance          ..... 
Gregory's  Pastoral  care      .... 
Anselm,  Cur  Deus  homo.     [Cf.  1451.]      . 
Archdeacon  Guido  de  Baysio's  Rosarium  . 
Liber  Sextus  Decretalium.   [Cf.  1380,  1445,  1451.] 
Digestum  Inforciatum.     [Cf.  1380,  1445.] 
Digestum  vetus.     [Cf.  1380.] 
Codex.     [Cf.  1380.]  . 

Surtees  Soc.^  xlv.  76 

Dr.  Thomas  Gascoigne  gave  6  books  to  Lincoln 

College,  value    ..... 

Clark,  Line.  Coll.  (Coll.  Hist.) 

Thomas  Aquinas  super  primum  Sententiarum 
Thomas  Aquinas  in  secundum  Sententiarum 

James10,  xxiv. 

Tabula  super  Senecam  et  Boetium  de  Consolat.  et 
de  disciplina  scholarium 

James10,  xxiv. 


One  part  of  Lyra 


James10,  xxiv. 


27  volumes  bought  from  John  Paston's  Exors.  for 
King's  Hall,  Cambridge. 

For  an  old  book,  Postillae  super  Lucam   . 

James10,  xxiv. 

Petrus  de  forma  dictandi.     [Cf.  1395.]      . 

Mun.  Acad.,  532 

Book  of  philosophy,  cum  tractatibus  Alberti 

James10,  xxiv. 

Liber  Sextus  Decretalium,  pledged  for.    [Cf.  1380, 

1423,  1451.]       . 
Digestum  Inforciatum,  pledged   for.     [Cf.   1380, 

1423.]    ...... 

*  Mun.  Acad.,  543 


135. 
135. 


1  6s, 

2OS. 
48. 

IOS. 

405. 
403. 

135.  46. 

I3J.  4d. 

£i,6s.  8aT. 


£17,   IDS. 

£i,  6s.  8d. 

is.  8d. 
£3,  6s.  8d. 

j£8,  175.  4d. 

23. 

is.  8d. 
133.  4d. 

j£i,  et  ob. 
33.  4d. 


252 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 

DESCRIPTION 

PRICE 

MISCELLANEOUS  BOOKS—  (continued) 

1449 

Cicero,  Rhetoric    ..... 

35.  4<1. 

James10,  xxiv. 

H5i 

Petrus  de  Palude  [  ?  in  Sententiis] 

2S. 

Epistles  of  Seneca  ad  Lucilium 

2S. 

Gregory's  Sermons             .... 

6s.  8d. 

Plato,  Timaeus      ..... 

6d. 

Digestum  vetus.     [Cf.  1380,  1423] 

45. 

Liber  Sextus  Decretalium,  cum  glossa  cardinali. 

[Cf.  1380,  1445,  1423.]. 

5s- 

Codex.     [Cf.  1423.] 

45. 

Bernardus  Parmensis  de  Botone,  Casus  longus 

5s. 

Martial       ...... 

IS. 

Anselm,  Cur  Deus  homo.     [Cf.  1423.] 

2s.  4d. 

Decretals  of  Clement         .... 

35.  4d. 

Vetus  liber  Decretalium     .... 

is.  4d. 

*  Mun.  A  cad.,  609 

MS2 

Isidore,    Etymologies  ;    Bede,    Historia    Ecclesi- 

astica     ...... 

305. 

Augustine,  de  spiritu  et  anima,  with  the  Meditations 

of  S.  Bernard,  and  many  other  contents 

405. 

Guillelmus  Parisiensis  de  virtutibus 

20S. 

Bartholomeus  Anglicus  [Bartholomew  de  Glanville] 

de  proprietatibus  rerum 
Pupilla  oculi.     [There  were  several  books  of  this 

6s.  8d. 

title.]     ...... 

20S. 

Catholicon.     [Cf.  1400.]   .... 

£4 

Polichronica           ..... 

20S. 

Historia  Scholastica.     [Cf.  bef.  1300.]      . 

5S. 

Lombard's  Sentences.     ^£1376,1423.]. 

1  6s. 

*  Stirtees  Soc.,  xlv,  132-3 

H53 

Book  by  Wyclif     ..... 

75.  6d. 

Book  against  Wyclif          .... 

3s.  6d. 

More's  book  on  Wyclif  and  other  books    . 

£2,  2s.  od. 

Rogers,  iv.  600 

H55 

Nicolaus  de  Gorham  super  Psalterium,  pledged 

for          ...... 

/i,  6s.  8d. 

James10,  xxiv. 

1455 

Gregory  the  Great's  Works,  157  leaves     . 

£3,  6s.  8d. 

Library  (N.  S.),  viii.  172 

1456 

Avicenna,  redeemed  for     . 

£i,  6s.  4d. 

James10,  xxiv. 

M57 

Aegidius  super  Physica      .... 

i6s.  8d. 

James10,  xxiv. 

APPENDIX  A 


253 


DATE 

DESCRIPTION 

PRICE 

MISCELLANEOUS  BOOKS—  (continued) 

1457 

Aristotle  de  animalibus      .... 
James10,  xxiv. 

55.  6d. 

1459 

A  Holy  Legend    ..... 
Rogers,  iv.  600 

£10 

1462 

Aristotle,  Rhetor.  Polit.,  etc. 
James10,  xxiv. 

8s.  sd. 

1462 

Map  of  the  world,  bought  for  New  College 
Rogers,  iv.  600 

£5 

1467 

Cicero,  de  Officiis  and  Ambrosius  super  eodem     . 
James10,  xxiv. 

6s. 

c.  1468 

S.  Augustine's  Epistles      .... 
Library  (N.S.),  viii.  172 

£1,  135.  4d. 

1468 

Richard  Rolle's  Meditatio  de  passione  domini 
*S^lrtees  Soc.  ,  xlv.  163 

4d. 

1469 

Jerome's  Epistles  ..... 
James10,  xxiv. 

£l 

1469 

Vellum,    writing,     correcting,    illuminating,    and 
binding  a  Lectionary  in   redskin,  and   cleaning 
the  book  ...... 
Library,  ii.  (1890),  243 

645.  3d. 

c.  1470 

iij  bokes  of  soffistre             .... 
A  red  boke  with  Hugucio  and  Papie 
A  boke  of  Seynt  Thomas  de  Veritatibus    . 
I  boke  of  xij  chapetyrs  of  Lyncoln,  and  a  boke  of 
Safistre  ...... 
I  premere  (primer?  )          .... 
*  Gairdner,  Paston  Letters,  vi.  175,  177 

is.  8d. 
£l 

I  OS. 

I  OS. 
2S. 

1472 

Thomas  Aquinas,  Tabula  on  works 
James10,  xxv. 

55.  4d. 

1481 

Alexander  Aphrodisaeus,  super  libros  de  Anima  . 
Rogers,  iv.  600-  1 

£*,  i3s.  4d. 

1502 

Hugo  de  Vienna's  works  in  7  volumes  [printed]    . 
Rogers,  iv.  600-  1 

£2,  6s.  4d. 

1509 

A  printed  legende  in  paper  de  usu  Saris  coueryd 
with  white  lether  with  ij  short  claspes  of  latyn  . 
C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  Svoser.,  iii.  361 

35.  4d. 

254 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


PRICE 


1509 


1525 


1538 

1539 
1540 

1542 


1346 


1383-4 


MISCELLANEOUS  BOOKS— (continued) 

A  graile  couered  with  white  lether  with  ij  long 
claspes    ...... 

A  graile  couered  with  white  lether  having  ij  longe 
claspes    ...... 

A  prikesong  boke  in  parchement   . 

C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  8vo  ser.,  iii.  361 

Cicero,  de  Officiis,  bought  by  Thos.  Linacre  ;  now 
B.  M.  Reg.     15  A  vi.    . 

James,  519 


4  hymnaria  for  the  quire  at  1/3 


i  Statutes  of  the  Kingdom 
Polydore  Vergil's  history  . 


Rogers,  i.  600-1 


Rogers,  i.  600- 1 


Giorgio  della  Valle  [  ?  Aristotle's  Poetics] 

Rogers,  iv.  600- 1 

Map  of  the  World ..... 
Suidas  in  Greek  [?  printed  ed.  1499] 
Erasmus  on  New  Testament 

Rogers,  iv.  600- 1 

Theophylact  and  Eustathius  [?  printed  ed.  1542]  . 
Epiphanius  ..... 

Rogers,  iv.  600- 1 

Parchment  for,  writing,  rubrishing  and  binding  a 
book  called  "  Domyltone,"  also  rubrishing 
Heytesbury's  Sophismata.  ["Domyltone"  was 
perhaps  one  of  John  of  Dumbleton's  books] 

Hist.  MSS.,  2nd  Rept.,  App.  129; 
Bibliographical  iii.  148 

Note. — Many  prices  of  books  at  Winchester 
College,  temp.  Henry  VI  will  be  found  in 
Arcfuzol.  Jour.  xv.  (1858)  62-74. 


WRITING 

For  writing  a  Psalter  with  Kalendar 
And    a    "placebo    et    dirige    cum    ympnario    et 
collectario"         ,  ,  .  .  . 

Surtees  Soc.,  xxxv.  165 

For   writing  Abbot    Litlington's    Missal    during 
two  years  .... 

Robinson,  7-8 


6s.8d. 


53s. 
135. 


8d. 

5s. 


143. 
6s.  8d. 


I  OS. 


45.  od. 
i,  I2s.  od. 
95. 


£2,  25.  Od. 

8s. 


155. 


55.  6d. 
43.  3d. 


APPENDIX  A 


255 


DATE 

DESCRIPTION 

PRICE 

WRITING—  (continued) 

1383-4 

Livery  for  the  scribe          .... 
For  writing   notes   (musical   notation)   in    Abbot 
Litlington's  Missal          .... 
Robinson,  7-8 

20S. 

33.  4d. 

1393 

Writing  2  Graduals            ,            .             , 
Surtees  See.,  xxxv.  130 

£4,  6s.  8d. 

1397 

For  writing  a  Legenda  of  34  "quires  " 
Surfees  Soc.  ,  vii.  xxvi-xxvii  n. 

72S. 

15  c. 

Writing  25  quires  at  i6d.  . 
James3,  234 

335.  4d. 

?i5  c. 

Writing  per  quire  ..... 
C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  iii.  398 

i6d. 

143° 

N.  de  Lyra  transcribed                  *. 
Warton,  i.  187  n. 

100  marks 

1467 

Item,  for  wrytynge  of  a  quare  and  demi  .  .  .  prise 
the  quayr,  xxd.  ..... 
Item,  for  wrytenge  of  a  calendar   . 
Item,  for  notynge  (musical  notation)  of  v.  quayres 
and  ij  leves,  prise  of  the  quayr,  viij|W.]  . 
Gairdner,  Paston  Letters,  v.  4 

2s.  6d. 
I2d. 

3s.  7d. 

1469 

For  writing  a  "  litill  booke  of  Pheesyk  "   . 
For  writing  '  '  the  tretys  of  Werre  in  iiij  books, 
which  conteyneth  Ix  levis  aftir  \]d,  a  leaff  " 
For    writing    "De    Regimine    Principum,    which 
conteyneth  xlvli  leves,  aftir  a  peny  a  leef,  which 
is  right  wele  worth  " 
*  Gairdner,  Paston  Letters,  v.  2-4 

2d. 
I  OS. 

35.  gd. 

1469 

For  writing  a  Lectionary  of  18  quires  and  9  skins  . 
Library,  ii.  (1890)  243 

285.  4d. 

ILLUMINATING 

1374 

Church    of    Norwich     paid    for    illuminating     a 
Graduale  and  Consuetudinary    . 
Merry  weather,  36  n. 

£22,  95. 

1383-4 

For  illumination   of  the   large   letters   in   Abbot 
Litlington's  Missal         .... 
Robinson,  7-8 

£22,  os.  3d. 

256 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 

DESCRIPTION 

PRICE 

ILLUMINATING—  (continued) 

1393 

Illuminating  2  graduals      .... 
Surtees  Soc.,  xxxv.  130 

£2 

1395 

Illuminating  3  graduals      .... 
Surtees  Soc.,  xxxv.  130 

£2 

1397 

Illuminating  and  binding  Legenda  of  34  "  quires  " 
Surtees  Soc.  ,  vii.  xxvi-xxvii  n. 

305. 

1445 

Yearly  wages  of  an  illuminator  at  Oxford,  four 
marks,  ten  shillings        .... 
Mun.  A  cad.,  551 

1467 

Sir    John   Howard   paid   Thomas   Lympnour    of 
Bury  St.  Edmunds  for  illuminating,  and  other 
work       ...... 
For  viij.   hole   vynets  [or   small  miniatures]  .  .  . 
prise  the  vynett,  xijd.      .... 
Item,   for   xxj.    demi-vynets  .  .  .  prise   the   demi- 
vynett,  \\\]d.        ..... 
Item,  for  Psalmes  lettres  xvc  and  di'  .  .  .  the  prise 
of  C.  \\\]d.     [I.e.,  1550  at  4^.  a  hundred] 
Item,  for  p'ms  letters  lxiijc  .  .  .  prise  of  a  C.,  ]d. 
Item,  for  floryshynge  of  capy  tails,  vc 
Gairdner,  Paston  Letters,  v.  4 

8s. 
7s. 

55.  2d. 
5s-  3d- 
5d- 

1469 

For  rubrishing  a  book        .... 
Gairdner,  Paston  Letters,  v.  4 

35.  4d. 

1469 

Illuminating  a  Lectionary  .... 
Library,  ii.  (1890)  243 

133.  6d. 

BINDING 

1383-4 

Binding  Abbot  Litlington's  Missal 
Robinson,  7-8 

2IS. 

1384-5 

Covering  a  great  Portiforium 
Covering  a  book  and  making  three  silver  clasps    . 
Robinson,  8 

35.  2d. 
5s.  8d. 

1392 

Binding  seven  books          .... 
O.  H.  S.,  27,  Boase,  xlviii. 

45.  od. 

1395 

Binding  large  gradual  (York  Cathedral)     . 
Surtees  Soc.,  xxxv.  130 

IDS. 

?I5C. 

Binding  (in  white  skin  over  wooden  boards) 
C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  iii.  398 

2S. 

APPENDIX  A 


257 


DATE 


1412-13 

1428 
1467 

1469 


DESCRIPTION 


BINDING—  (continued] 

Stitching  67  books  at  \\d.   a  book,  with 
addition  .... 

Stitching  covers  of  52  books  at  id. 

C.  A.  S.  (N.S.),  i 


300-3 


Binding  Bible  in  2  vols. 


Rogers,  iv.  600 


Item,    for  byndynge   of  the   boke  [a  Psalter   or 

other  liturgical  book]     .... 

Gairdner,  Paston  Letters,  v.  4 

Binding  a  Lectionary  in  redskin,  and  correcting 

the  book  ..... 

Library ,  ii.  (1890)  243 

Note. — For  many  prices  for  binding,  repairing, 
and  chaining  books,  see  Bibliographical  Society's 
Monograph  13,  p.  18-19. 


PRICE 


93. 

45. 


5s.  3d- 


5s- 


MATERIALS 

A  very  large  number  of  prices  of  vellum  and  parchment  might  be  quoted. 
These  will  suffice  :  (1301)  vellum  per  skin,  ijd.  ;  (1312-13)  6  doz.  parchment, 
8s.  8d.  ;  (1358-59)  2  doz.  parchment,  6s.  ;  (1359-60)  2^  doz.  parchment,  7s.  6d.  ; 
(1383-84)  13  doz.  vellum,  ^4,  6s.  8d.  ;  (1395)  12  parchment  skins,  55.  od.  ; 
(1397)  vellum  per  dozen  skins,  45.  6d.  ;  (1412-13)  vellum  cost  a  dozen  skins 
2s.  lod.  ;  (1412-13)  9  skins  of  parchment  I3^d.,  and  6  skins  of  parchment,  i6d.  ; 
(1467)  3  quires  of  vellum,  55.  ;  17  quires  for  a  Lectionary,  los.  6d. 

Skins  for  binding  were  sold  in  (1395)  I  deerskin,  35.  2d.  ;  (1397)  6  deerskins 
for  processionals,  133.  4d.  ;  (1412-13)  97  calfskins  @  4d.  a  skin,  82  sheepskins 
@  3d.,  3  sheepskins  for  5d.,  12  redskins  @  6d.  ;  (1469)  I  redskin,  5d. 


tf     11  I 


APPENDIX  B 

LIST  OF  CERTAIN  CLASSIC  AUTHORS  FOUND  IN 
MEDIEVAL  CATALOGUES 

THIS  list  is  brief,  but  it  should  be  long  enough  to  show  clearly  what  Greek 
and  Latin  authors  were  read  in  the  Middle  Ages,  and  to  indicate  roughly  their 
comparative  popularity.  A  note  has  been  made  of  only  one  copy  of  a  work 
found  at  a  particular  place  at  a  certain  time  ;  often  there  were  duplicates,  some- 
times many  copies  :  for  example,  consult  Appendix  C,  under  date  c.  1170. 

The  following  abbreviations  are  used  :  August.  Fr.  York  =  Augustinian  Friary, 
York  ;  C.  U.  L.  =  Cambridge  University  Library ;  Cant.  Coll.  =  Canterbury 
College,  Oxford;  Ch.  Ch.  C.  =  Christ  Church,  Canterbury;  Durh.  =  Durham 
Priory  ;  Lanthony  =  Lanthony  Priory,  nr.  Gloucester  ;  Ox.  U.  L.  —  Oxford 
University  Library;  S.  Cath.  H.  =S.  Catharine's  College;  Rochester  = 
S.  Andrew's  Priory,  Rochester ;  S.  Aug.  C.  =  S.  Augustine's  Monastery, 
Canterbury ;  S.  Mart.  Dov.  =  S.  Martin's  Priory,  Dover.  Other  abbreviations 
are  self-explanatory. 

AESCHINES. — Orations  (1443,  Ox.  U.  L.). 

ARISTOTLE.— (8  cent.,  York;  1248,  Glastonbury;  1315,  Durh.;  c.  1387,  New 
Coll.  ;  1418,  Peterhouse).  Organon(c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1202,  Rochester; 
c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  c.  1385,  Pembr.  Coll.; 
1389,  S.  Mart.  Dov.  ;  1391  and  1395,  Durh.  ;  1435  and  J473>  C.  U.  L.  ; 
1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1524,  Cant.  Coll.  ;  c.  1526, 
Syon).  Topica  (bef.  13  cent.,  Reading;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1387, 
Exeter  Coll.  ;  1448,  Hospital  of  S.  Mary  within  Cripplegate,  London). 
De  Sophisticis  elenchis  (bef.  13  cent.,  Reading).  Natiiral  sciences  (1274, 
Peterborough;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  14  cent.,  Ramsey;  1435  and  1473, 
C.  U.  L.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.,  de  nova  translations;  1524,  Cant.  Coll.  ; 
c.  1526,  Syon).  Physica  (c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  14  cent,  Ramsey;  1372, 
August.  Fr.  York  ;  1391  and  1395,  Durh.  ;  1435,  C.  U.  L.  ;  1452,  King's 
Coll.  Camb.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1508,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1524,  Cant.  Coll.). 
Meteorologica  (1435  and  1473,  C.  U.  L.).  Historia  animalium  (c.  1300, 
Ch.  Ch.  C.,  de  animalibus ;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York,  de  animalibus ; 
1389,  S.  Mart.  Dov.,  de  natura  animalium  \  1473,  C.  U.  L.  ;  1520, 
Wm.  Grocyn,  de  animalibus).  De  generatione  animalitim  (c.  1300, 
Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1443,  Ox.  U.  L.).  De  anima  (c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1372, 
August.  Fr.  York;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C. ;  1524,  Cant. 
Coll.  ;  c.  1526,  Syon).  Metaphysica  (c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1372,  August. 

258 


APPENDIX  B  259 

Fr.  York  ;  1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb.  ;  1473,  C.  U.  L.  ;  1487,  Pembr.  Coll.  ; 
c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1524,  Cant.  Coll.  ;  c.  1526,  Syon).  Ethica  (c.  1300, 
Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1387,  Exeter  Coll.  ;  1391,  Durh.  ; 
1428,  Pembr.  Coll.  ;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb.  ;  1473, 
C.  U.  L.  ;  1475,  S.  Cath.  H.  ;  1487,  Pembr.  Coll.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ; 
1508,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1524,  Cant.  Coll.,  noviter  translatus ;  c.  1526,  Syon). 
Magna  Moralia  (1487,  Pembr.  Coll.  ;  c.  1526,  Syon).  Politico,  (c.  1428, 
Pembr.  Coll.  ;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb.  ;  1487,  Pembr. 
Coll. ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1508,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1524,  Cant.  Coll.  ;  c.  1526, 
Syon).  Rhetorica  (c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York  ;  1475, 
S.  Cath.  H.  ;  1487,  Pembr.  Coll.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1508,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ; 
1524,  Cant.  Coll.  ;  c.  1526,  Syon).  Problemata  (1435  and  *473>  C.  U.  L.  ; 
1520,  Wm.  Grocyn  ;  c.  1526,  Syon).  Oeconomica  (1372,  August.  Fr.  York). 

CAESAR.— Commentaries  (1443,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb.  ;  1520, 
Wm.  Grocyn). 

CICERO. — (8  cent.,  York;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L.,  Opera  viginti  duo  in  magno 
volumine;  1520,  Wm.  Grocyn,  Opera  omnia).  Epistolae  (1480,  Bp.  Shir- 
wood  ;  1498,  Coll.  of  Bishop  Auckland  ;  1524,  Cant.  Coll. ;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L., 
1520,  Wm.  Grocyn,  and  c.  1526,  Syon,  ad  familiares  ;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L., 
ad  Quintum).  Orationes  (beg.  14  cent.,  Lanthony,  in  Catilinam  ;  1439, 
Ox.  U.  L.  ;  1474,  Bp.  Shirwood  ;  1478,  Balliol  Coll.  ;  1500,  Jesus  Coll., 
Rotherham  ;  1520,  Wm.  Grocyn  ;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York,  Tullii  invectiv- 
arum  ;  1391,  Durh.  ;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  and  1520,  Wm.  Grocyn,  Philippics  ; 
1439,  Ox.  U.  L.,  in  Verreni).  De  Senecttite  (c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1180, 
Whitby ;  12  cent.,  Durh.  ;  1217-18,  Evesham  ;  1248,  Glastonbury ;  c.  1300, 
Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  c.  1400,  Meaux  ;  1418,  Peterhouse ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ; 
c.  1526,  Syon.  Frequently  found).  De  Legibus  (12  cent.,  Durh.).  De 
Officiis  (1202,  Rochester;  beg.  14  cent.,  Lanthony;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ; 
1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1418,  Peterhouse;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  1475, 
S.  Cath.  H.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  c.  1526,  Syon).  De  Republica  (Somnium 
Scipionis  (c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  14  cent.,  Ramsey;  1418,  Peterhouse; 
?  1482,  Leicester;  c.  1526,  Syon).  De  Amicitia  (c,  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ; 
1180,  Whitby;  1195,  Durh.  ;  1217-18,  Evesham  ;  1248,  Glastonbury  ;  beg. 
14  cent.,  Lanthony;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1391, 
Durh.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  c.  1526,  Syon — one  of  the  commonest  of 
classic  works  in  the  M.A.).  Paradoxa  (1217-18,  Evesham;  c.  1300, 
Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1391,  Durh.  ;  c,  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  c.  1526,  Syon).  7\isc*tlanae 
disputationes  (beg.  14  cent.,  Lanthony;  1418,  Peterhouse;  c.  1497, 
S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1524,  Cant.  Coll.  ;  1526,  Syon).  De  Inventione  (Rhetorica) 
(c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C. ;  12  or  13  cent.,  Bury;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York  ;  1391, 
Durh. ;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L. ;  1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb.  ;  1458,  S.  Paul's ;  1473, 
C.  U.  L.  ;  ?  1482,  Leicester  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1524,  Cant.  Coll.  ; 
c.  1526,  Syon,  nova  rhetorica}.  De  Oratore  (1477,  Bp.  Shirwood).  Topica 
(c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.).  De  Natura  Deorum  (c.  1526, 
Syon).  De  Finibus  (1472,  Bp.  Shirwood). 

GELLIUS.—  Nodes  Atticae  (c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1391,  Durh.  ;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L.  ; 
1476,  Bp.  Shirwood;  1520,  Wm.  Grocyn;  c.  1526,  Syon). 

"  HOMER. "—(12  cent,  Durh.  ;  1180,  Whitby).     Iliad  (c.  1526,  Syon). 

HORACE. — (c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  12  or  13  cent.,  Bury;  bef.  13  cent.,  Reading; 


26o  OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

1202,  Rochester;  1248,  Glastonbury ;  beg.  14  cent. ,  Lanthony ;  14  cent., 
Ramsey ;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York ;  1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb.  ;  c.  1480, 
Bp.  Shirwood;  ?  1482,  Leicester;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1500,  Jesus  Coll., 
Rotherham ;  c.  1526,  Syon).  Epistles  (bef.  13  cent.,  Reading;  1372, 
August.  Fr.  York  ;  1389,  S.  Mart.  Dov.). 

JUVENAL.—  c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1180,  Whitby ;  12  cent,  Durh.  ;  12  or  13 
cent.,  Bury;  bef.  13  cent.,  Reading;  1217-18,  Evesbam  ;  1248,  Glaston- 
bury; 1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1389,  S.  Mart.  Dov.  ;  1391,  Durh.  ;  1487, 
Bp.  Shirwood;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1520,  Wm.  Grocyn ;  c.  1526,  Syon). 

LIVY. — (1248,  Glastonbury;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1443,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  1475, 
Bp.  Shirwood;  1508,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1520,  Wm.  Grocyn;  c.  1526,  Syon, 
epitome  by  Florus). 

LUCAN.— (8  cent,  York;  c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  12  cent.,  Durh.;  1202, 
Rochester;  1217-18,  Evesham ;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  beg.  14  cent, 
Lanthony;  14  cent,  Ramsey;  1389,  S.  Mart.  Dov.;  1418,  Peterhouse ; 
1473,  C.  U.  L.  ;  ?  1482,  Leicester;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1524,  Cant.  Coll.  ; 
c.  1526,  Syon). 

LUCRETIUS. — De  Rerum  natura  (1520,  Wm.  Grocyn). 

MARTIAL — (12  cent.,  Peterboro' ;  14  cent.,  Ramsey;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ; 
1372,  August.  Fr.  York,  Epigrammata  marcii  valerii,  libri  15  ;  c.  1400, 
Meaux  ;  1418,  Peterhouse;  1451,  Henry  Calder,  vicar  of  Cookfield;  1476, 
Bp.  Shirwood). 

OviD. — (c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  12  cent.,  Durh.  ;  beg.  14  cent.,  Lanthony;  1202, 
Rochester,  Ovidius  magmis ;  14  cent,  Ramsey;  c.  130x3,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ; 
?  1482,  Lejpster).  Ars  amatoria  (12  cent.,  Durh.  ;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York  ; 
1500,  Jesus  Coll.,  Rotherham).  Remedia  Amoris  (12  cent.,  Durh.  ;  1372, 
August.  Fr.  York  ;  1438,  T.  Cooper,  a  scholar  of  Oxford  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ; 
1500,  Jesus  Coll.,  Rotherham).  Mendicamina  faciei  (c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C. ). 
Metamorphoses  (1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1389,  S.  Mart.  Dov.  ;  1443,  Ox. 
U.  L.  ;  1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb.  ;  1470,  Pembr.  Coll.  ;  1473,  C.  U.  L.  ; 
?  1482,  Leicester,  de  mirabilibus  tmmdi ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1500, 
Jesus  Coll.,  Rotherham;  c.  1526,  Syon).  Fasti  (12  cent.,  Durh.  ;  1202, 
Rochester;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1389,  S.  Mart.  Durh.  ;  1418,  Peter- 
house;  1443,  Ox.  U.  L.).  Tristia  (c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  12  cent.  Durh.  ; 
1372,  August.  Fr.  York  ;  1389,  S.  Mart.  Dov.  ;  1418,  Peterhouse;  c.  1497, 
S.  Aug.  C.).  Ibis  (c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  12  cent.,  Durh.  ;  1372,  August  Fr. 
York;  c.  1400,  Meaux;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.).  Heroides  (1372,  August.  Fr. 
York).  Ex  Ponto(c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C. ;  12  cent.  Durh.  ;  1372,  August.  Fr. 
York;  1391,  Durh.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.). 

PERSIUS — (c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1180,  Whitby;  12  cent.,  Durh.;  1202, 
Rochester;  1248,  Glastonbury;  beg.  14  cent.,  Lanthony;  1520,  Wm.  Grocyn). 

PLATO— (1180,  Whitby;  bef.  13  cent.,  Reading;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1389, 
S.  Mart.  Dov.;  1439,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  ?  1482,  Leicester;  c.  1526,  Syon). 
Timaeus  (c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  12  cent.,  Durh.  ;  1248,  Glastonbury;  beg. 
14  cent,  Lanthony;  c.  130x3,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1418, 
Peterhouse;  1451,  Hy.  Caldey,  vicar  of  Cookfield;  1478,  Balliol  Coll., 
new  translation  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.).  Republic  (1443,  Ox.  U.  L.,  new 
translation;  1452,  King's  Coll.,  Camb.;  1475,  S.  Cath.  H.).  Euthyphro 
(1478,  Balliol  Coll.,  new  translation). 


APPENDIX  B  261 

PLAUTUS — 12  or  13  cent.,  Bury  [fames1,  27];  beg.  14  cent.,  Lanthony,  Attlu- 

laria;  1481,  Bp.  Shirwood  ;  1520,  Wm.  Grocyn. 
PLINY    THE    ELDER — (8    cent.,    York;    1126-71,    Glastonbury,   de    naturali 

historia;   12  or  13  cent.,   Bury;  c.  1300,  Ch.   Ch.  C.,  Prima  pars  Plinii, 

et  sectmda  par s  \  1418,  Peterhouse,  Hist.  nat.  ;  1439,  Ox.   U.   L.,  Plinius 

de   naturis   rerum;     1443,   Ox.    U.    L.,    Physica;    1464,    Bp.    Shirwood; 

1520,  Wm.  Grocyn;  c.   1526,  Syon).     Extracts,  Medicina  Plinii  (c.   1300, 

Ch.  Ch.  C.,  Liber  Plinii junioris  [sic]  de  diversis  medicinis}. 
PLINY  THE  YOUNGER. — Letters  (144$*  QX«  U.  L.). 

PLUTARCH.—  Vitae  (1480,  Bp.  Shirwood,  printed,  Latin;  1520,  Wm.  Grocyn). 
QUINTILIAN. — Institutio  oratorio,  (12  cent.,    Durh.  ;    c.    1290,   the   La  Fytes, 

scholars   at  Oxford;    c.    1300,   Ch.    Ch.  C.  ;    1326-35,   S.   Albans ;    1389, 

S.  Mart.  Dov.  ;  1391,   Durh.  ;  1418,   Peterhouse  ;   1439,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  1475, 

S.  Cath.  H.  ;   1478,  Balliol  Coll.  ;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.) 
SALLUST— (c.    1170,  Ch.   Ch.   C.  ;    12  cent.   Durh.;    1202,   Rochester;   1248, 

Glastonbury;  beg.  14  cent.,  Lanthony;  c.  1400,  Meaux  ;  1418,  Peterhouse). 

Bella  (12  cent.,   Bury;    1452,    King's  Coll.  Camb.,   de  hello   Cat.;   1500, 

Jesus  Coll.,  Rotherham;  c.  1526,  Syon). 
SENECA  THE  YOUNGER — c.    1170,  Peterboro' ;    1260-9,  S.  Albans;    12  cent., 

Durh.;    14   cent.,    Ramsey;    1478,    Balliol   Coll.;    1520,   Wm.    Grocyn). 

Opera   (c.    1497,    S.    Aug.    C.).      De    Beneficiis  (c.    1300,    Ch.    Ch.    C.  ; 

1395,  Durh.  ;  c.  1400,  Meaux;'  1418,  Peterhouse).     De  dementia  (c.  1300, 

Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1395,  Durh.  ;  1418,  Peterhouse;   1458,  S.  Paul's).     Epistolae 

morales     (12   cent.,    Peterboro';    12    or    13   cent.,    Bury;    bef.    13  cent., 

Reading;   13  cent.,   Rievaulx ;  c.    1300,   Ch.    Ch.   C.  ;  1372,   August.    Fr. 

York;  1395,  Durh.  ;  c.  1400,  Meaux;  1418,  Peterhouse;  1451,  Hy.  Caldey, 

vicar  of  Cookfield ;    1452,   King's  Coll.,    Camb.;   c.    1497,    S.  Aug.   C.). 

Naturales  quaestiones  (1418,    Peterhouse;    1458,    S.    Paul's).      Tragcediae 

(1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1439,  Ox.   U.  L.  ;  1452,  King's  Coll.,  Camb.  ; 

c.  1480,  Bp.  Shirwood).     Innumerable. 
STATIUS— (8  cent.,  York  ;  1180,  Whitby ;  12  or  13  cent.,  Bury  ;  1389,  S.  Mart. 

Dov.  ;  c.   1526,  Syon).      Thebais  (c.   1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  12  cent.,  Durh.  ; 

1418,  Peterhouse;  1479,  Bp.  Shirwood).     Achilleis  (c.   1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ; 

12  cent.,   Durh.;   1372,   August.   Fr.   York;   1452,    King's  Coll.   Camb.; 

c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C).     Silvae  (1478  Bp.  Shirwood). 
SUETONIUS. — De  Vita  Caesarum  (12  or  13  cent.,  Bury;   1126-71,  Glastonbury; 

c.    1300,   Ch.    Ch.   C.  ;    1372,  August.    Fr.  York ;  c.   1400,  Meaux  ;  1443, 

Ox.    U.    L.  ;    1458,   S.   Paul's;    1476,   Bp.    Shirwood;    1508,   New  Coll.; 

1520,  Wm.  Grocyn;  c.  1526,  Syon). 

TACITUS. — De  Oratoribus  (1520,  Wm.  Grocyn  ;  1526,  Syon). 
TERENCE — (12   cent.,  Durh.;    12   cent.,   Peterboro';    12  or    13   cent.,   Bury; 

c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1202,  Rochester;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  beg.  14  cent., 

Lanthony;    14   cent.,    Ramsey;    1326-35,  S.   Albans;    1372,  August.  Fr. 

York;  1389,  S.  Mart.   Dov.  ;  1391,  Durh.  ;  1443,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  1471,  Bp. 

Shirwood;  c.   1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ;  1500,  Jesus  Coll.,  Rotherham;  c.   1530, 

Wells  Cath.). 
TROGUS,   POMPEIUS — (8  cent,   York;   1095,    Durh.;  12  cent.,   Durh.;   1391, 

Durh,  ;  1443,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  1465,  Bp.  Shirwood). 
VALERIUS    MAXIMUS. — Facta   et  dicta   memorabilia   (13    cent.,    Bury;    1391, 


262  OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 

Durh. ;  1418,  Peterhouse  ;  1420-40,  S.  Albans ;  1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb. ; 
1520,  Wm.  Grocyn  ;  c.  1526,  Syon). 

VARRO. — De  Lingua  Latina  (1443,  Ox.  U.  L.  ;  c.  1526,  Syon). 

VIRGIL — (8  cent.,  York;  12  or  13  cent.,  Bury;  12  cent.,  Durh.;  c.  1150, 
Lincoln  Cath.  ;  c.  1170,  Ch.  Ch.  C.,  Virgilius  totus;  14  cent,  Ramsey; 
1326-35,  S.  Albans;  ?  1482,  Leicester;^.  1526,  Syon,  Opera).  Biuolics 
(12  cent.,  Durh.  ;  1180,  Whitby ;  bef.  13  cent,  Reading;  1202,  Rochester; 
1248,  Glastonbury  ;  1372,  August  Fr.  York;  1389,  S.  Mart.  Dov.  ;  1391, 
Durh.;  1418,  Peterhouse;  1452,  King's  Coll.  Camb.,  Virgilius  in  buco- 
licis  cum  ceteris ;  1458,  S.  Paul's;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.).  Georgics 
(12  cent.,  Durh.  ;  bef.  13  cent.,  Reading;  1202,  Rochester;  1248,  Glaston- 
bury; 1372,  August.  Fr.  York;  1391,  Durh.;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.). 
Aeneid  (1202,  Rochester;  1248,  Glastonbury;  c.  1300,  Ch.  Ch.  C.  ;  1372, 
August  Fr.  York;  1391,  Durh.  ;  1418,  Peterhouse;  c.  1497,  S.  Aug.  C.  ; 
1524,  Cant.  Coll.). 

NOTE. 

In  compiling  the  above  list  use  has  been  made  of  Bateson ;  Becker ;  Brad- 
shaw;  C.A.S.  ;  Chron.  Mon.  de  Melsa,  iii.  ;  Dugdale,  Hist,  of  S.  Paul's ; 
E.H.R.  iii.;  James;  James1;  James2;  James9;  James10;  Mun.  A  cad.;  Robin- 
son ;  Sur.  Soc.  vii.  ;  Archaeologia  Cantiana ;  Fasciculus  loanni  Willis  Clark 
dicatus  (art.  by  Dr.  M.  R.  James),  and  other  works. 


APPENDIX    C 

LIST    OF    MEDIEVAL   COLLECTIONS    OF    BOOKS 

Note. — This  list  aims  (i)  to  bring  together  in  brief  form  a  number  of  records 
which  are  better  removed  from  the  main  text  of  this  book,  and  (ii)  to  present  in 
chronological  order  facts  carefully  selected  to  show  the  variety  of  medieval 
libraries,  in  size  and  character. 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


778  ;  Alcuin's  library  at  York.  Aristotle,  Virgil, 
Lucan,  Statins,  Cicero,  Aldhelm, 
Bede,  etc. 

10  c.  Books  given  to  Peterborough  by  Ethel- 
wold.  Bede  in  Marcum,  Liber 
Miraculoruin,  Expositio  Hebraeorum 
nominum,  De  Literis  Graecorwn,  etc. 
About  20. 

10  c.  King  Athelstan  gave  some  nine  books  to 
S.  Augustine's  Abbey,  Canterbury : 
Persius,  Isidore,  Bede(?),  etc. 

c.  1034  "  Many  "  books  on  theology  and  grammar 
given  to  Evesham  Abbey  by  Bp. 
Aelfward. 

1045  Two  books  bequeathed  to  Glastonbury 
by  Bp.  Brithwold. 


c.  1060  At  St.  Peter's  Exeter  books  given  by 
Bp.  Leofric  ;  Exeter  Book,  Leofric 
Missal,  etc. 

1077-93  Church  books  given  to  S.  Albans  by 
Abbot  Paul. 

1078-99  Bp.  Osmund  collected  and  wrote  books 
for  Old  Sarum  Church. 


263 


Alcuin,  De  Pont.  Eccle. 
Ebor.,  1535-61  ; 
Becker,  2. 

Dugdale,  i.  382. 


B.  M.   Cott.,  A  I.  viii. 
fo.   56b  ;  James,  Ixix. 


Chron.     Abb.     de     E. 
( Rolls  S.),  83. 


Wm.  of  Malm. ,  De  Ant. 
Glaston.,  Wharton, 
AngL  Sacra  (1691), 
i.  578-83. 

Dngdale,  ii.  527. 


Gesta...S.  Album,  i.  58. 


W.    of    Malm.,     Gesta 
Pont.,  183. 


264 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


c.  1080 


1095 


12  C. 


12  C. 


1104 


1119-46 


1126-71 


1130 


II5O 


Abbot    Walter    made    many    books    for 
Evesham. 


Bp.  William  de  Carilef  gave  about  52 
books  to  Durham  [not  Lindisfarne,  as 
in  Becker]. 

Nearly  370  pieces  at  Durham  Priory : 
Quintilian,  Plato's  Timaeus,  Sallust, 
Cicero  (de  Legibus,  de  Amic.,  de 
Senectute],  Terence,  Virgil,  Ovid  (Epp., 
Tristia,  Ars  amandi,  Remedia  amoris 
de  Fastis],  Lucan,  Juvenal  ;  grammar, 
rhetoric,  arithmetic,  geometry,  medicine; 
some  English  books. 

At  Burton-on-Trent  Abbey,  after  1175, 
there  were  78  vols.  Incl.  Augustine, 
Gregory,  Bede,  Anselm,  etc. 

Catalogue  of  68  pieces  belonging  probably 
to  one  of  the  great  Southern  abbeys. 

Abbot  Peter  gave  many  books  to 
Gloucester  Abbey. 


Abbot  Geoffrey  gave  church  books  to  S. 
Albans. 


At  Glastonbury  Abbot  Henry  had  54 
books  transcribed,  incl.  Pliny's  Nat. 
Hist.,  Suetonius  De  Vita  Caesarum, 
Gesta  Britonum,  Gesta  Anglomm. 


Abbot   Reginald  acquired   for  church  of 
Evesham  Ab.  books  and  ornaments. 


Hugh  of  Leicester  gave  books  to  Lincoln 
Cath.  42  vols.  and  map  of  world  in 
library  now ;  31  added  soon  after.  Some 
parts  of  Bible  given  by  Bp.  Alexander  ; 
9  books  given  by  Bp.  Chesney.  Library 
included  Augustine,  Gregory,  Bede, 
Ambrose,  Jerome,  Virgil,  Vegetius  (de 
re  Militari). 


Chron.     Abb.     de     E. 
(Rolls  S.),  97. 

Surtees  Soc. ,  vii.  1 1 7-8  ; 
Becker,  172. 


Surtees  Soc.,  vii.  i-io. 


B.  M.  Add.  MS.  23944, 
fo.  157;  Zentralblatt, 
ix.  201-3. 

MS.  Bodley,i63,f.  261; 
Becker,  216. 

Hist,  et  cart.  nion. 
Glouc.,  i.  xx  iv. 

Gesta... S.  Alb.,  i.  94. 


Adam  de  Domerham, 
Hist. ,  ed.  Hearne 
(1727),  ii.  317-18; 
Hearne,  Hist,  and 
Ant.  of  G.  (1722), 
I4I-3- 


Chron.  Abb.  de  E.  99. 


Girald.          Cambrensis 
(Rolls  Ser.),  vii.  165. 


APPENDIX  C 


265 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


c.  1170 


c.  1177 
c.  1180 

1184 
12  or  13  c. 

13  c. 

13  c. 

13  c. 
13  c. 

13  c. 


Over  223  volumes  in  Christ  Church, 
Canterbury  :  catalogue,  which  is  but  a 
fragment,  contains  books  of  grammar, 
rhetoric,  music,  arithmetic,  poetry, 
logic,  astronomy,  geometry — Donatus 
in  Greek,  Donatus  in  English,  Cicero's 
Rhetoric,  de  Senectute,  de  Amicitia  (2), 
Plato's  TimaeuSy  Terence  (5  volumes), 
Sallust  (8  volumes),  Virgil  (8  volumes), 
Horace  (8),  Lucan  (5),  Statius  (6), 
Juvenal  (4),  Persius  (9),  Cato  (2), 
Ovid  (5). 

Nearly  80  books  in  Peterboro'  Abbey — 
Seneca,  Terence,  Martial. 


74  pieces  in  Whitby  Abbey — 42  theology, 
15  history:  Cicero  (de  Amicitia,  de 
Senectute\  Homer,  Juvenal,  Plato, 
Sedulius,  Statius,  Virgil?  (Bucolica), 
Persius,  etc. 

Bp.  Bartholomew  left  books  to  church  at 
Crediton  and  to  another  church. 

At  Bury  S.  Edmunds  Abbey  there  was 
a  fair  library  at  this  period  ;  including 
average  number  of  classics. 

Before  this  Reading  Abbey  had  228 
volumes  —  Seneca,  Aristotle,  Virgil, 
Juvenal ;  Gesta  R.  Henrici  sectmdi, 
Ystoria  JRading,  Hist.  Anglorum. 

At  Lanthony  there  were  486  volumes, 
including  Plato,  Plautus,  Cicero,  Sallust, 
Persius,  Ovid,  Lucan,  Horace,  Terence. 

Prior  John  de  Marcle  gave  6  treatises  on 
law  to  Evesham  Abbey. 

At  Leominster  church,  a  dependency  of 
Reading  Abbey,  130  books:  Rotula 
cum  vita  sancti  Guthlaci  anglice  scripta, 
Medidnalis  unus  anglicis  litteris 
scriptuS)  Liber  qui  appellatiir  landboc. 

At  Rievaulx  there  was  a  large  library  of 
the  usual  medieval  character :  inch 
Seneca,  Justinian. 


James,  7. 


Hist.  Angl.  Script. 
Varii  [Sparke],  98- 
9;  Merryweather,  96- 
97  ;  Becker,  238. 

Becker,  226. 


B.M.  Cotton  Roll.  II., 
II  (at  end). 

James1,  23. 


E.  H.  R.  (1888),  117- 
23- 


B.  M.  Harl.  MS.  460, 
ff.3-ii;  Zentralblatt, 
ix.  207-22. 

Chron.  Abb.  de  E. 
(Rolls  Ser.),  xxiin. 

£.#.tf.(  1888),  123-5. 


James9,  45-56. 


266 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


13  c.  Flexley  or  Dene  Abbey  owned  79 
volumes  :  incl.  three  English  books. 

About  46  writers  used  as  authorities  by 
Ralph  of  Diss  for  his  Abbreviationes 
Chronicoriim . 

1 202  At  S.  Andrew's  Priory,  Rochester,  there 
were  about  280  volumes,  many  includ- 
ing several  distinct  treatises.  Scrip- 
tures, liturgical  and  devotional  books, 
Fathers,  schoolmen,  philosophical  and 
medical  treatises,  grammatical  works : 
Horace,  Virgil,  Sallust,  Terence, 
Persius,  Lucan,  Ovid,  Aristotle's  Or- 
ganon,  Cicero. 

1208  Eight  books  presented  to  King  John  by 
the  sacristan  of  Reading,  all  scriptural 
and  theological. 

1222  Peterborough  receives  7  books,  incl. 
2  Psalters,  from  Abbot  R.  de 
Lyndesheye. 

1215  At  Glastonbury,  14  or  15  books  were 
written  for  Prior  Thomas  :  books  of 
the  Bible,  missals. 

1217-18  Prior  Thos.  de  Marleberge  gave  a  "large 
collection" — including  law,  medicine, 
philosophy,  poetry,  theology,  gram- 
mar ;  Cicero  (de  Amicitia,  de  Seiuctute, 
Paradoxa),  Lucan,  Juvenal — to  Eve- 
sham  Abbey. 

1226  At  Peterborough  a  dozen  books  were 
left  by  Abbot  Alex,  de  Holdernesse. 

1245  At  Peterborough  about  2O  books,  ordinary 
in  character,  were  left  by  Abbot  Walter 
de  St.  Edmund. 

1240  Bp.  Ralph  of  Maidstone  gave  service 
books  and  a  Legend  to  Hereford 
Cathedral. 

1245  35  vols.  at  St.  Paul's  Cathedral ;  ordinary 
medieval  character. 

1247—48  At  Glastonbury  there  were  nearly  5°° 
books.  Incl.  much  theology,  chronicles, 
classics.  Aristotle,  Livy,  Sallust,  Virgil, 
Cicero,  Plato,  Persius,  Horace,  Juvenal. 


Zentralblatt,  ix.  205-07. 


R.  de  Diceto,  Op.  Hist. 
i.  20. 


Arch&ologia,    Cantiana, 
iii.  47-64  (1860). 


Sussex  Archaol.  Collec- 
tions, ii.  (1849), 
134-5. 

Dugdale,  i.  354. 


Adam  de  Domerham, 
Hist.  ed.  Hearne 
(1727),  ii.  441. 

Chron.  Abb.  de  E. 
(Rolls  Ser.),  267. 


Dugdale,  i.  354. 
Ibid.,  i.  355. 


Archceologia,  \.  496. 

Joh.  Glaston,  Chron. , 
ed.  Hearne  (1726), 
II.  423-44' 


APPENDIX  C 


267 


DATE 


1249 
1253 

'•  1255 
1258-59 

1259 

1260-90 
1262 

1266 
1274 

1295 

1280-1303 
1285-1331 


DESCRIPTION 


Peterborough  receives  5  books  from 
Abbot  Wm.  de  Hotot. 

Richard  de  Wyche,  Bp.  of  Chichester,  left 
a  number  of  books  to  the  friars  :  chiefly 
glossed  books  of  the  Bible,  a  glossed 
psalter,  the  Sentences,  etc. 

John  of  Basingstoke  imports  Greek  MSS. 
from  Athens. 

Prior  Jno.  of  Worcester  gave  a  number  of 
books  to  Evesham  Abbey.  Grammar, 
logic,  physics,  theology,  canon  and 
civil  law. 

Master  of  Sherborne  Hospital  left  church 
books,  and  a  liber  phisica  to  the 
Hospital. 

Many  books,  including  Seneca,  given  to 
S.  Albans  by  Abbot  Roger. 

Peterborough  receives  5  books  from  Abbot 
J.  de  Kaleto.  Incl.  Testamenttim  xii. 
Patriarcharum 


SOURCE 


Roger    de   Thoris   gave   books 
Friars'  Convent,  Exeter. 


to   Grey 


Abbot  R.  de  Sutton  left  some  17  books  to 
Peterborough.  Incl.  psalters,  canon 
law,  liber  Naturalium  Aristotelis. 

Abbot  R.  de  London  leaves  10  books  to 
Peterborough.  Boethius  de  Consola- 
tione  philosophiae,  Nova  logica,  psalters, 
etc. 


Bp.  Richard   of  Gravesend. 
volumes,  worth  about  ^IO 


Over    100 


Library  of  about  1850  volumes  now  at 
Christ  Ch.,  Canterbury.  A  fine  collec- 
tion. Many  classics.  English  books  : 
Genesis  Anglice  depicta,  Boethius  de 
Consolatione,  Herbarius  Anglice  de- 
pictus,  Chronica  vetustissima,  Chronica 
Latine  et  Anglice,  etc. 


1287-1345  I  Richard  of  Bury  owned  a  large  library. 


Dugdale,  i.  356. 


Sussex  Archceol.    Coll., 
i.  (1848)  168-187. 


Gasquet3,  158-59;  Ste- 
venson, 224,  227. 

Chron.     Abb.     de     E. 
(Rolls  Ser.),  xxiin. 


Surtees  Soc. ,  ii.  6. 

Gesta...S.  Alb.,  i.  483. 
Dugdale,  i.  356. 


Oliver,  Mon.  D.  Exon. 
(1846),  322-33. 

Dugdale,  i.  357. 


Dugdale,  i.  357. 


Misc.  of  Philobiblon  S. 
1856  ;  Edwards,  i. 
373- 

James,  13-142. 


R.  de  B.,  passim. 


268 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1290 


1295 


1299 


1299-1300 


Late  13  c. 


14  c. 


14  c. 
14  c. 

140. 

14  c. 
14  c. 


John   of    Taunton    added    40   works    to 
Glastonbury  Library.     Ordinary. 


13  Gospels  and  other  parts  of  the  Scrip- 
tures, and  a  commentary  of  Aquinas  at 
S.  Paul's  Cathedral. 

Abbot  W.  de  Wodeforde  left  18  books  to 
Peterborough.  Liturgical,  theological, 
and  law. 


Joh.  Glast.  Hist.,  ed. 
Hearne  (1726),  ii. 
251  -  52;  A.  de 
Domerham,  Hist.t'\\. 
574-75- 


Dugdale,  i.  358. 


Edward  i.  owned  a  few  books;  including      Edwards,  i.  391. 
book  of  romance. 

Galfridus  de  LawaS,  rector  of  the  church  i  James10,  158. 
S.    Magnus,    London,   had  49   books.   | 
Canon  law,  grammar,  logic,  medicine, 
theology. 


Chron.      Abb.     Ram. 
356  ( Rolls  Sen). 


More  than  600  books  and  170  service 
books  in  Ramsey  Abbey.  Aristotle, 
Plato  (Timaeus),  Greek  Psalters,  Ars 
Loquendi  Linguam  Graecam,  Greek  and 
Latin  Psalter ;  Virgil,  Ovid,  Martial, 
Terence,  Lucan,  Prudentius,  Seneca ; 
French  Bible,  three  Hebrew  books, 
Hebrew  Psalter,  two  parts  of  Hebrew 
Bible,  Liber  expositionum  dictionum 
Hebraicum,  glossary  of  Hebrew  Bible, 
Expositio  nominum  Hebraeorum^  Inter  - 
pret at  tones  Hebraicorum,  Ars  loquendi 
et  intelligendi  in  Lingua  Hebraica. 

Small  and  unimportant  collection  at  St.   ,  Oliver,  Mon.  D.  Exon., 
Andrews  Priory,  Tywardreath.  36. 


Richard  of  Stowe  gave  to  St.  Peter's, 
Gloucester,  7  vols.,  including  Boethius 
de  Consolatione  P. 

John  de  Bruges  wrote  33  books,  ordinary 
in  character,  for  Coventry  Priory. 
Incl.  Palladius,  de  Agricultura. 


B.  M.  Harl.  MS.,  627, 
fo.  8  a. 


Hearne,  Hist,  and  Ant. 
Glast.,  App.  291-93 
(1722) ;  Dugdale,  iii. 
186. 


23  books  at  Deeping  Priory,  Lincolnshire  :      Dugdale,  iv.  167. 
including  Gesta  Britonum. 


About  350  vols.  at  Peterboro'  :  including 
Aristotle,  Cicero,  Virgil,  Ovid,  Seneca, 
Sallust  ;  a  good  deal  in  French. 


Gunton,  Hist,  of  Ch. 
of  Peterboro"  (1686), 
173-224. 


APPENDIX  C 


269 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1300 

1313 
1315 

1315 

1315 
1321 

1322 

1325 
1327 

1327 
1327 


1335 
1335 


Bp.  Bek  had  a  number  of  books  which  he  i  SurteesSoc.,\\\.  121-22. 
refused    to     return     to     the     Prior    of 
Durham;  included  Historia Anglorum, 
and  Liber  qui  vocatur  Liber  S.    Cuth- 
berti,  in  quo  seer  eta  Do /nits  scribuntur, 

15    works,    chiefly   theological,    beq.    by 
Bp.  Baldock  to  St.  Paul's  Cathedral. 

Church     books     and    Bibles     in    Christ 
Church,  Canterbury  (list). 


Guy  de  Beauchamp,  earl  of  Warwick,  left 
books  to  Bordesley  Abbey :  French 
romances,  etc. 


Some  40  volumes  at  Durham  College, 
Oxford ;  sent  from  Durham.  Chiefly 
theology  ;  Aristotle. 

Abbot  Godfrey  de  Croyland  left  about 
a  dozen  books  to  Peterborough. 
Theology,  law,  etc. 

Abbot  Walter  of  Taunton  gave  7  volumes 
to  Glastonbury. 

A  small  collection  of  church  books  at  St. 
Edmund's  Hospital,  Gateshead. 

Abingdon  Abbey  had  100  Psalters,  100 
Graduals,  40  Missals ;  22  codices, 
probaby  not  church  books. 

About  230  volumes  at  Exeter.  Civil  and 
canon  law,  theology. 

Bp.  Cobham  bequeathed  his  books  and 
350  marks  to  found  common  library  at 
Oxford. 

Prior  Henry  Eastry  bequeathed  80  books 
to  Christ  Church,  Canterbury  —  26 
theology,  29  canon  law,  14  civil  law, 
1 1  church  books. 

Abbot  Adam  de  Sodbury  gave  7  vols.  to 
Glastonbury. 

4  books  given  and  32  sold  to  Richard  of 
Bury  from  S.  Albans  Abbey. 


/-fist.   MSS.,   9th   Rep., 
Pt.  i.  46  a. 

Dart,    Cath.    of    Cant. 
(1726),      App.      vi., 


Todd,  ///.  of  Lives  of 
Gower  and  Chaucer 
(1810),  161,  162; 
Merry  weather,  193- 
4  ;  Edwards,  i.  375-6. 

0.  H.  S.,  32,  Collect. 
36. 


Dugdale,  i.  358-59. 

Williams,  81. 
Surtees  Soc.,  ii.  22. 
Ibid.,  vii.  xxxiii. 


Oliver,  Lives  of  Bps.  of 
E.,  301-10. 

Mun.  Acad.,  i.  227. 


James,  143. 


Joh.  Glaston.  Hist.,  ed. 
Hearne  (1726),  265. 

Gesta...S.  Alb.>  ii.  200. 


270 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1335-49 
1336 

1337 

1338 

1343 

1345  (6) 

1349-96 
1350 

1353 

1355 
1353 
1358 
1360 


Books  given  to  S.  Albans  by  Abbot 
Michael. 

Bp.  Stephen  Gravesend  bequeathed  books 
to  four  colleges,  Merton,  University, 
Balliol,  Oriel. 

93  books  missing  at  Christ  Church, 
Canterbury.  Many  books  of  offices ; 
includes  Brutus  in  French. 

Abbot  Adam  de  Botheby  left  about  a 
dozen  books  on  canon  law,  theology, 
and  liturgical  books  to  Peterborough. 

Hinton  Priory  lent  about  23  books  to 
another  house — Gospels,  homilies,  lives 
of  saints,  etc. 


Ibid.,  ii.  363. 


Lyte,  181, 


James,  146. 


Dugdale,  i.  360. 


Hunter,     17  ;     Surtees 
Soc.,  vii.  xxxviii. 


Over  50  volumes  in  Lichfield  Cathedral—  W.  Salt  Arch.  S.  vi., 

all    church    books,    except    2    martyr-  !  pt.    2,  Sacrist's   roll, 

ologies,  4  quires  of  lives  of  saints,  and  211. 
Degestis  Angloriim.  St.  Chad's  Gospels. 

Abbot  Thomas'  study  or  library  at  St. 
Albans  enlarged  ;  many  books  added. 

Trinity  Hall,  Cambridge,  receives  84 
vols.  from  founder,  Dr.  Bateman  : 
Canon  law  (32),  civil  law  (10),  theology 
(28),  chapel  books  (14). 

Abbot  de  Morcote  left  some  1 1  books  to 
Peterborough  :  Canon  law,  a  Catholicon. 

Elizabeth  de  Clare  bequeathed  to  Clare 
Hall,  a  few  books  :  including  Hugutio. 


John  Trevaur,  Bp.  of  St.  Asaph. 
ecclesiastical  books. 


Chiefly 


Gesta...S. 
389  ;  cf.  ii.  399. 

C.  A.  S.  (1864),  ii.  73- 
78;  Clark,  138. 


Dugdale,  i.  360^ 


Edwards,  i.  374. 


B.      M. 
25459, 


Add. 
fo.  291. 


MS. 


Thomas  de  la  Mare,  wealthy  canon  of 
York,  owned  some  six  law  books. 

Bp.  Grandisson  of  Exeter  appears  to  have 
owned  a  good  library.  He  gave  4 
books  to  Exeter ;  Aquinas'  works  to 
Black  Friars  of  Exeter  ;  I  to  Windsor 
Chapel ;  remainder  to  his  Chapter,  to 
the  collegiate  churches  of  Ottery, 
Crediton,  and  Boseham,  and  Exeter 
College,  Oxford.  His  copy  of  Anselm's 
Letters  is  now  in  Brit.  Mus. 


Surtees  Soc.^  iv.  69. 


APPENDIX  C 


27 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1361  Peterborough    received     7     books    from 

Abbot  Robt.  Ramsey.     Canon  law. 

1362  A    small    collection,    nearly    all    church 

books,  at  Coldingham  Priory. 

1368  Simon  of  Bredon  bequeathed  books  to  six 
Oxford  Colleges. 

1370  A  Chaplain  (Adam  de  Stanton)  left  4 
books,  including  one  of  romance. 

1372  i  At  York  the  Friars  Eremites  of  S. 
Augustine  owned  646  books.  Bibles 
and  glossed  books  of  Bible,  Greek 
Psalter,  patristic  and  later  church 
writers  (91),  logic  and  philosophy  (100), 
astronomy  and  astrology  (36),  civil  law 
(14),  canon  law  (35),  grammar  and 
Latin  poets  (50),  medicine  (22), 
sermons  (42),  arithmetic,  music,  geo- 
metry, perspective. 

1374  Archbp.  W.    Whittlesey  bequeathed   his 

library  to  Peterhouse. 

1375  Nearly    100    volumes    at    Oriel    College, 

Oxford ;  half  the  collection  theology  and 
philosophy  ;  translations  of  Aristotle. 

1376  116    books    bequeathed    to    Westminster 

Abbey  by  Simon  Langham,  Archbp. 
of  Canterbury.  Valued  at  1 12 1  francs 
and  14  shillings.  Chiefly  theology. 

1377-1400  In  the  Royal  Chapel  of  Windsor  Castle 
34  books  were  chained  up,  incl.  Catho- 
licon,  Hugutio,  Legenda  Aurea,  two 
French  romances,  one  "  Romaunce  de 
la  Rose,  et  alius  difficilis  materiae." 
Also  liturgical  and  Scriptural  books. 

1378  Sir  John  de  Foxle  left  a  large  missal  and 
a  few  service  books. 


1378  Thos.  de  Farnylaw,  Chancellor  of  York, 
left  Bible  and  concordances  to  St. 
Nicholas'  Church,  Newcastle  ;  a  book 
of  sermons  to  Embleton  Church  ;  other 
books  to  Vicar  of  Waghen  ;  others  to 
Merton  and  Balliol. 


Dugdale,  i.  361. 


Surtees  Soc,,  xii.,  App. 
xl. 

Hist.  MSS.,  9th  Rept., 
pt.  i.,  46. 

Cam.    Soc.,  Bury  wills 
(1850),  i. 

Fasciculus  J.  W.  Clark 
dicatus,  2-96. 


Hook,     Archbps.,     iv. 
242-43. 

O.    H.    S.    5,    Collect., 
i.  66. 


Robinson,  5-7. 


Dugdale,     vi.,     pt.     3, 
1362. 


Archaol.  Cantiana,  iii. 
267  ;  Archaol.  Jour., 
xv.  (1858),  267. 

Surtees  Soc. ,  iv.  102-03. 


272 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


1379 


c.  1380 


1387 


1387 


1387 


1387 


1387 


1389 


1389-1435 


1390 


c.  1390 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


Wm.  de  Feriby,  canon  of  York,  archd.  Ibid.,  iv.  103-04. 
of  Cleveland.  "  Item  lego  ad  novam 
fabricam  Ecclesiae  Ebor.  xx  marcas  et 
omnes  libros,  qui  fuerint  domini  mei 
domini  Willielmi  de  Melton."  Several 
law  books  specifically  mentioned. 

Bp.     Reed     left     many    manuscripts    to      O.   H.  S.,   32,    Collect. 
Merton  College.  214. 

William    of    Wykeham    furnished    New      lbid.t  223. 
College    with    over    240    books — 135 
(138)  theology,  28  philosophy,  41  canon 
law,  36  civil  law. 

52  books  added  to  New  College  by  some-      Ibid.,  223. 
body  unnamed  :  37  medicine. 

63  books  given  to  New  College  by  Bp.   |  Ibid.,  223. 
Reed :    58   theology,    2   philosophy,   3 
canon  law. 


Sir  Simon  Burley  owned  a  few  romances. 


Hy.  Whitefield  left  books  and  money  to 
buy  books  for  Exeter  College,  and 
Burley  on  logic  and  Aristotle's  Ethica 
and  Topica  were  bought  and  chained 
up  in  library. 

450  volumes  at  S.  Martin's  Priory,  Dover 
— Bibles,  theology,  civil  and  canon  law, 
logic,  philosophy,  rhetoric,  medicine, 
chronicles,  romances  (le  Romonse  du 
roy  Charles,  le  Romonse  de  Athys,  le 
Romonse  de  la  Rose,  etc.),  poetry, 
grammar,  dictionaries.  Plato,  Aris- 
totle, Horace,  Statius,  Ovid,  Virgil, 
Juvenal,  Terence,  Lucan. 

John,  Duke  of  Bedford,  bought  portion  of 
French  Royal  Library. 

14  books  given  to  Evesham  Abbey  by 
John  de  Brymesgrave,  sacrist. 


96  books  given  to  Evesham  Abbey  by 
Prior  Nich.  Herford ;  not  the  Lollard 
of  this  name. 


B.  M.  Add.  MS.  25459, 
fo.  206. 


O.  H.  S.,  27,  Boase,  7. 


James,  xc.  407. 


Delisle,  Le  Cabinet  des 
manuscrits. 

Chron.  Abb.  de  E. 
(Rolls  Ser.),  xxii  n.  ; 
Dugdale,  ii.  7  n. 

Chron.  Abb.  de  E. 
(Rolls  Ser.),  xxiin. 


APPENDIX  C 


273 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


Peterborough  received  8  books,  incl. 
Catholicon,  from  Abbot  Henry  de 
Overton. 

508  volumes  in  common  case  within 
spendiment  and  in  inner  room  of 
spendiment  at  Durham  Priory — Bibles, 
theology,  logic,  philosophy,  medicine, 
grammar,  law.  Seneca,  Cicero,  Quin- 
tilian,  Valerius  Maximus,  Palladius 
(de  Agricultura),  A.  Gellius,  Juvenal, 
Terence,  Virgil,  Ovid,  Aristotle. 

The  Rector  of  Adell  Church,  Thos.  de 
.Halton,  left  5  books  of  canon  law. 

John  Percyhay  of  Swynton  left  small  col- 
lection of  books,  incl.  Brut  in  French. 

Robert  de  Roos,  a  soldier,  left  church 
books,  and  several  volumes  in  French  : 
incl.  Roumans  de  Sydrach  (a  curious 
medley  of  medieval  mystery  and  science, 
in  prose). 

King's  Hall,  Cambridge,  had  a  library  of 
87  volumes. 

John  Hopton,  a  chaplain,  left  a  few  books, 
four  mentioned :  incl.  Gospels  in  English. 
(?  Wyclh's). 

John  de  Pykering,  rector  of  S.  Mary's, 
Castlegate,  York,  left  small  collection 
of  church  books. 

Thomas  of  England,  an  Augustinian, 
bought  MSS.  in  Italy. 


4H  volumes  in  common  library,  for  re- 
fectory, and  in  case  of  novices  at  Durham 
Priory.  Theology,  law,  history  ;  Seneca, 
Aristotle,  Galen,  Hippocrates. 

Johnde  Scardeburgh,  rector  of  Tichmarsh, 
left  over  26  books  :  incl.  Brut  in  French, 
Mannedevile  "in  paupiro"  in  French. 

i  79  volumes  at  Hulne.     Theology,  history, 
grammar,  logic,  law,  church  books. 


Dugdale,  i.  361. 


Surtees  Soc.,  vii.  10-39. 


Ibid.,  iv.  156. 
Ibid.,  iv.  164. 
2 bid.,  iv.  178. 


Willis,  Arch.   Hist,   of 
Camb,,  ii.  442. 

Stir  tees  Soc.,  iv.  196. 


Ibid.,  iv.  194. 


Gherardi,  Statuti  della 
Univ.  e  Studio  Fior- 
entino,  364  ;  Ein- 
stein, 15 ;  Sandys, 
ii.  220. 

Surtees  Soc.,  vii.  46-84. 


Ibid.,  xlv.  6. 


Ibid* i  vii.  131-35. 


18 


274 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1396 

1396 
1397 

1399 


15  c. 


1400 


c.  1400 


1400 


1403 


1404 


1409 


c.  1410 


Walter  de  Bragge,  canon  of  York,  left  small 
collection  of  theology  and  service  books  : 
incl.  Piers  Plowman  and  Catholicon. 

Abbot  Nich.  Elmstow  left  liturgical  and 
law  books  to  Peterborough. 

Thomas  of  Woodstock,  Duke  of  Gloucester, 
left  a  collection  of  books,  theological  and 
French. 

Eleanor  of  Gloucester,  left  about  15  books, 
mostly  in  French  ;  richly  bound. 


1 58  titles  given  to  Pembroke  College,  Cam- 
bridge, by  various  donors.  Aristotle, 
Seneca,  Aulus  Gellius,  Ovid. 

Robert  de  Wycliff,  rector  of  Hutton 
Rudby  in  Cleveland,  left  5  books  :  incl. 
Catholicon. 

326  volumes  at  Titchfield  Abbey.  102 
liturgical  volumes.  Theology,  canon 
and  civil  law,  English  law,  medicine, 
grammar,  logic  and  philosophy.  18 
French  books. 

Meaux  Abbey  had  nearly  350  books,  not 
counting  church  books  :  incl.  Historia 
Anglorum,  Martial,  Seneca,  Ovid, 
Plato,  Suetonius,  Cicero. 

Thos.  de  Dalby,  archdeacon  of  Richmond, 
left  a  few  church  books ;  Decretals, 
Catholicon. 

John  de  Scarle,  Lord  Chancellor,  left  a 
few  books :  Bible,  missal,  psalter, 
breviary,  Speculum  Sacerdotum. 

Bp.  Skirlaw  of  Durham  gave  6  books  to 
University  College,  Oxford,  where  he 
had  endowed  Fellowships.  Left  13 
church  books  when  he  died. 

Wessington  sent  20  books — Bible,  com- 
mentaries, etc. — to  Durham  College, 
Oxford  ;  19  books  bought  in  their  stead. 

Robert  Rygge,  Chancellor  of  the  University 
of  Oxford,  left  books  to  Exeter  College, 
Oxford 


Stir  lees  Soc.,  iv.  207. 


Dugdale,  i.  361. 


B.   M.  Add.  25459,  fo. 
212-16. 


Nicolas,  Testamenta 
vettista,  i.  146 ;  Ed- 
wards, i.  385. 

C.  A.  S.,  ii.  (Svo  ser.) 
13-21;  James10,  xiii.- 
xvii. 

Surtees  Soc.,  ii.  66  ;  iv. 
405- 


Madan,  78-79. 


Chron.  man.  de  Melsa 
(Rolls  Ser.)  iii. 
Ixxxiii. 


Surtees  Soc. ,  xlv.  1 3. 


Ibid.)  xlv.  22. 


vii.  127  ;  iv.  319. 


Ibid.,  vii.  39-41  ;  cp. 
O.  H.  S.,  32, 
Collect.  39-40. 

O.  H.  £.,27,  Boase,  n. 


APPENDIX  C 


275 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1411 
1412 

1413 
1414 

1416 

1416 

1416 
1418 

1418 
1418 


1419 


34  books  added  to  Christ  Church,  Canter- 
bury, during  time  of  Prior  Chillenden  : 
all  canon  and  civil  law. 


Lit.  Cant.  (Rolls  Ser.), 
iii.  121  ;  James,  150- 


Roger  de  Kyrkby,  vicar  of  Gainford,  left  !  Siirtees  Soc. ,  ii.  54. 
a  few  books  :  Legenda  Aurea,   Gemma  | 
Ecclesiae,  and  others  not  named. 


N.  de  Lyra  chained  in  chancel  of  St.  Mary's 
Church,  Oxford. 

Archbp.  Arundel  left  many  books : 
' '  ornamenta  oratorii "  and  books  valued 
at  over  ^352. 

Catalogue  of  Durham  library  bears  this 
date,  but  it  is  either  the  foundation  of 
the  catalogue  of  1391  or  a  copy  of  it. 
This  inventory  has  been  used  to  take 
stock. 

William  de  Waltham,  canon  of  York,  left 
a  collection  of  books,  only  a  few  of 
which  are  mentioned.  Chiefly  law- 
books. 

St.  Mary  Redclyffe  Church,  Bristol,  had 
2  books  of  canon  law. 

Stephen  Scrope,  Archdeaconof  Richmond, 
Chancellor  of  Cambridge  University, 
left  a  few  books  of  canon  law ;  also 
Catholicon. 

John  de  Newton  left  books  to  Church  of 
York,  and  to  Peterhouse,  Cambridge. 
Bibles,  commentaries,  theology  :  incl. 
Richd.  Hampole,  Petrarch's  de 
Remediis  utritisque  fortunae,  Seneca, 
Valerius  Maximus. 

380  volumes  now  at  Peterhouse.  Theo- 
logy (124),  natural  and  moral  philosophy 
and  metaphysics  (53)>  canon  and  civil 
law  (66),  grammar  and  poetry  (23),  logic 
(20),  medicine  (18),  astronomy  (13), 
alchemy,  arithmetic,  music,  geometry, 
rhetoric.  Aristotle,  Plato,  Cicero, 
Ovid,  Lucan,  Statins,  Sallust,  Quin- 
tilian,  Seneca,  Virgil,  Petrarch's  Epistles. 

Wm.  Cawod,  canon  of  York,  left  13 
books,  uninteresting  in  character. 


Mtm.  A  cad.,  270. 

Hook,   Lives  of  Abps., 
iv.  527. 


Surtees    Soc.,    vii.    85- 
116. 


Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  57-59. 


Cox  and  Harvey,  Eng. 
Ch.  Furnitiire,  331. 

Surtees  Soc.,  iv.  385. 


Hunter,  Notes  of  Wills 
in  Registers  of  York, 
15  ;  Edwards,  i.  386. 


James3,  3-26;  Mullin- 
ger,  324;  Clark,  139- 
41 ;  cf.  Camb.  Lit.,  ii. 
362-67. 


Stirtees  Soc. ,  iv.  395-96. 


276 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1420-40 
1420-60 

1421 

1422 

1422 
1423 

c.  1424 
1424-40 

1425 
H30 

1432 
1432 

1432 


49  volumes  added  to  S.  Albans  in  Abbot 
Whethamstede's  time :  incl.  some  books 
for  the  choir,  and  other  books  of  the 
Abbot's  own  compilation. 

The  library  of  Winchester  College  was  a 
large  collection  of  liturgical  books ; 
philosophy,  chronicles,  canon  and  civil 
law,  grammar. 

Thos.  Greenwood,  canon  of  York,  left 
books  valued  at  ^31,  45.  Canon  and 
civil  law. 

Roger  Whelpdale,  Bp.  of  Carlisle,  left  a 
small  number  of  books  to  Balliol 
College,  Oxford. 

9  books  sent  from  Durham  to  cell  of  Stam- 
ford, which  was  in  control  of  Durham. 

Henry  Bowet,  Archbp.  of  York,  left  33 
books,  worth  ^33.  Bible,  theology, 
law. 

10  volumes  given  to  Wells  Cathedral  by 
Bp.  Stafford.     Canon  law,  etc. 


122  volumes  in  Cambridge  University 
Library.  Theology  (69),  natural  and 
moral  philosophy  (17),  canon  law  (23), 
medicine,  logic,  poetry,  grammar, 
history. 

Sheriff  Wm.  Chichele  bequeathed  £10  for 
books  to  Guildhall  Library. 

Robert  Ragenhill,  advocate  of  court  of 
York,  left  5  law  books  and  N.  de  Lyra 
to  Church  of  York. 

George  Darell  de  Seszay  left  5  books  : 
incl.  Mandeville.  . 


j  John  Raventhorpe,  a  chaplain,  left  service 
books  and  grammatical  books ;  also 
Liber  Angliae  de  Fabulis  et  Narra- 
cionibus. 

Robert  Wolveden,  treasurer  of  Church  of 
York,  left  theological  books  to  Church 
of  York.  Cato  glossed  and  Golden 
Legend  also  left. 


Ann.  mon.  S.  Alb.  a  J. 
Amund.,  ii.  268-71. 


Archesol.     Jour.,      xv. 
(1858),  62-74. 


Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  64. 


Ibid.,  xlv.  67. 


Ibid.,  vii.  1 1 6. 


Ibid.,  xlv.  76;  Histo- 
rians of^  York  (Rolls 
Ser.),  hi.  314. 

Hist.  MSS.,  3rd  Rep., 
App.  363 ;  Archceo- 
logia,  Ivii.  208. 

C.  A.  S.  Comm.,  ii. 
242-57 ;  Bradshaw, 
19-34- 


L.  A.  R.,  x.  382. 
Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  89. 

Ibid.,  xxx.  27,  28. 
Ibid.,  xxx.  28-29. 

Ibid.,  xlv.  91. 


APPENDIX  C 


277 


DATE 

1432 
i432 
1434 
1435 
M35 

1435-36 
1436 
1438 
M39 

1439 

1440 
1440 

1441 
M43 


DESCRIPTION 


Dr.   Thos.   Gascoigne   gave   6   books   to 
Lincoln  College,  valued  £17,  IDS. 

Robert  Semer,  sub-treasurer  of  Church  of 
York,  left  5  books,  unimportant. 


SOURCE 


Clark,  Lincoln  College, 


Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  91  n. 


J.  de  Manthorp,  vicar  of  Hayton,  left  a     Ibid.,  xxx.  36. 
few  church  books. 


Sylvius  saw  Latin  translation  of 
Thucydides  in  S.  Paul's  Cathedral. 

T.  Hebbeden,  dean  of  Collegiate  Church 
of  Auckland,  left  a  few  books ;  6 
mentioned,  incl.  Guido  delle  Colonne, 
Lancelot  in  French. 


Creighton,   Papacy,  iii. 
53  n- 

Sitrtees  Soc. ,  ii.  82. 


Robert  Fitzhugh,  Bp.  of  London,  left  13      Simpson,  W.S.,  Regis- 
books,  incl.  Textus  moralis  philosophiae  I       trum  .  .  .  Eccl.  Cath. 

S.  Pauli(i%K\  399. 


Thomas   Langley,   Bp.   of  Durham,   left   j  Surtees  Soc.,  vii.  119. 
over  40  books.      Theology,  civil   and 
canon  law,  N.  de  Lyra. 

Thomas  Cooper  of  Brasenose  Hall  left  6  j  Mun.  Acad.,  515. 
books  :    incl.    Boethius,  book  on  geo- 
metry, Ovid's  Remedia  Amoris. 


Thomas  Markaunt,  presented  to  Corpus 
Christi  College,  Cambridge,  76  books, 
worth  about  ^104. 


Humfrey,  Duke  of  Gloucester,  gave  129 
books  to  Oxford  University  Library. 
See  p.  140. 

23  books  given  to  All  Souls'  College  by 
Henry  VI.  Civil  and  canon  law, 
theology,  philosophy. 

Robert  Alne,  an  officer  in  the  ecclesiastical 
court  of  York,  left  about  a  dozen  books. 
Canon  law,  etc.  ;  Petrarch,  de  Remediis 
utriusque  fortitnae. 

Andrew  Holes,  political  agent  of  Henry     Sandys,  ii.  222. 
vi,  bought  many  manuscripts  in  Italy. 


C.  C.  C.  MS.,  232 ; 
C.  A.  S.  Misc. 
comm.,  4to  ser.,  No. 
14,  pt.  I,  16-20. 

Mun.  Acad.,  758-65. 


B.  M.  Add.  MS.,  4608; 
Vickers,  H.  Duke  of 
Gloucester,  404. 

Surtees  Soc.,  xxx.  78- 
79- 


Humfrey,  Duke  of  Gloucester,  gave  135 
volumes  to  Oxford  University  Library. 
See  p.  142. 


Mun.  A  fad.,  765-72. 


278 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1443 
1443 

1445 

M47 
1448 

1448 


1449 
145° 
145° 
MS1 

I451 

H52 

MS2 


John  Carpenter  bequeathed  books  to 
Guildhall  Library,  London. 

John  Brette,  student  at  Oxford,  owned 
i  book,  de  Forma  dictandi,  and  a 
pamphlet,  worth  together  is.  lid. 

as.  Hedyan,  Bachelor  of  canon  and  civil 
law,  principal  of  Eagle  Hall,  Oxford, 
owned  8  books  of  law. 

Reginald  Mertherderwa,  a  rector,  owned 
6  books:  grammar,  book  of  civil  law,  etc. 

Ralph  Dreff,  of  Broadgates  Hall,  Oxford, 
owned  23  books.  Bible,  law. 

At  the  Hospital  of  S.  Mary  within 
Cripplegate,  called  Elsingspitel,  Lon- 
don, there  were  63  volumes.  Bible, 
theology,  canon  law ;  Hippocrates, 
Galen. 


Thomas  Morton,  canon  of  York,  left  a 
small  number  of  church  books. 

107  volumes  at  Lincoln  Cathedral  at  this 
time. 

Robert  Hoskyn,  rector,  left  a  small 
collection.  Church  books,  canon  law. 

Henry  Caldey,  vicar  of  Cookfield,  left  25 
books.  Theology,  law.  Seneca,  ad 
Lucilium,  Martial,  Plato.  Value 
£5,  os.  6d. 

John  Moreton,  chaplain,  left  6  physical 
books. 

Richard  Browne  or  Cordone,  Archdeacon 
of  Rochester,  left  more  than  30  books. 
Theology  and  law. 

Wm.  Duffield,  canon  of  York,  left  40 
volumes,  worth  £46,  i6s.  Theology, 
law ;  Catholicon. 


L.  A.  R.,  x.  382. 
Mun.  Acad.,  531. 

Ibid.,  544- 

Ibid.,  559-6i. 
Ibid.,  582. 


B.  M.  Cott.  Roll.,  xiii. 
10 ;  Malcolm,  Lon- 
dinium  Redivivwn 
(1807),  i.  27;  Viet. 
Hist,  of  London,  i. 
536. 

Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  no. 


Clark,  in. 

Mun.  Acad.,  605-06. 

Ibid.,  609. 

Ibid.,  613. 
Ibid.,  639-53. 

Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  132-33. 


APPENDIX  C 


279 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


H53 


H54 

1454 

1454 

H5S 
H55 

1457 
1457 

1457 
1457 

1457 
c.  1458 


King's  College,  Cambridge,  had  a 
library  of  174  volumes:  philosophy, 
theology,  medicine,  astrology,  mathe- 
matics, canon  law,  grammar,  classical 
and  general  literature,  inclu.  Aristotle, 
Plato,  Cicero,  Seneca,  Sallust,  Caesar, 
Ovid,  Virgil,  etc. 


Richard  Plane,  rector,  left  a  few  church 
books. 

Cardinal  John  Kempe  left  books  worth 
^263,  Ss.  lod.  Theology,  canon  and 
civil  law,  etc. 

Wm.  Brownyng,  canon  of  Exeter,  left 
books  to  be  chained  in  library  of 
Exeter  College. 

John  Lassehowe,  a  scholar,  left  six  books  : 
grammar,  sermons,  breviary. 

Thomas  Spray,  chaplain,  left  2  books  : 
Liber  Sermonum  Magdalenae,  Mani- 
pulus  curatorum. 

Thomas  Aleby,  rector  of  Kirkby  in 
Cleveland,  left  6  church  books. 

John  Edlyngton,  rector  of  Kirkby 
Ravensworth,  left  small  collection. 
Bible,  liturgical  books,  Legenda  Aurea, 
Polichronicon,  etc. 

John  Seggefyld,  M.A.,  Fellow  of  Lincoln 
College,  left  two  books,  Boethius  de 
Consol.  philos.  in  English,  one  of 
Richard  Rolle's  works. 

Doctor  Thos.  Gascoigne,  Chancellor  of 
Oxford,  left  books  and  "quires" 
written  on  paper  to  Syon  Monastery, 
Isleworth. 

John  Baringham,  treasurer  of  York,  left  a 
small  number  of  liturgical  books. 

John  Tiptoft,  Earl  of  Worcester,  bought 
many  manuscripts  in  Italy. 


James2,  72-83. 


Surtees  Soc.,  xxx.  180. 


Hook,  Lives  of  Abps., 
v.  267. 


0.  H.  S.,    27,    Boase, 
xxxviin. 


Mim.  A  cad.,  663. 
Ibid.,  660. 

Surtees  Soc.,  xxx.  210. 
Ibid.,  xxvi.  2,  3. 

Mun.  Acad.,  666. 


Mun.       Acad.,      671  ; 
Bateson,  xxv. 


Stir  tees  Soc.,  xxx.  203. 


0.  H.  S.  36,  Anstey,  ii. 
354,  390. 


280 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 
H58 

DESCRIPTION 

SOURCE 

171  books  at  S.  Paul's  Cathedral. 
Grammar  (6),  philosophy  (5),  classics 
(7)»  medicine  (6),  history  (8),  canon 
law  (21),  remainder  Bible  commen- 
taries, theology.  Cicero,  Virgil,  Seneca, 
Suetonius,  Hippocrates,  Galen. 

Dugdale,    Hist,    of   8. 
JPaufs(iSiS),  392-98. 

1458 

Nicholas  Holme,  canon  of  the  collegiate 
Church  of  Ripon,  left  15  books.  Litur- 
gical, Richard  Rolle  of  Hampole,  I 
book  of  medicine. 

Surtees  Soc.,  xxx.  219. 

H58 

Wm.  Port  gave  books  to  New  College, 
Oxford. 

0.   H.   S.    32,   Collect. 
232-33- 

1463 

John  Baret,  lay  officer  in  Bury  Abbey,  left 
3  books,  Disce  mori,  '  f  book  of  ynglych 
and  latyn  with  diuerse  maters  of  good 
exortacons,  wretyn  in  papir,"  Lyd- 
gate's  Story  of  Thebes. 

Cam.  Soc.,  Bury  Wills, 
35,  41,  246. 

1464 

Wm.  Downham,  chaplain  of  York,  left  a 
few  books. 

Surtees  Soc.  ,  xxx.  268. 

1464 

St.  Mary's  Church,  Warwick,  had  5 
books.  Bible  versified,  Pharetra  de 
Auctoritatibus,  etc. 

Notices  of  Churches  of 
Warwickshire  ',  i.  15- 
16. 

1464 

Books  bequeathed  by  John  Rowe  to  Exeter 
College,  Oxford  ;  also  Ralph  Morewell. 

0.  H.  S.  27,  Boase. 

1464-67 

William  Selling,  Benedictine  monk,  col- 
lected Greek  and  Latin  books  in  Italy. 

James,  li.  ;  Sandys,  ii. 
225. 

1466 

John  Fernell,  chaplain,  left  a  few  gram- 
matical and  other  books. 

Surtees  Soc.,  xxx.  275. 

1466          At  Ewelme  Almshouse,  Oxford,  were  de- 

Hist.  ^SS.,  8th  Kept., 

livered  some  liturgical  books,  4  French 
books,  a  ' '  boke  of  English,  in  paper,  of 
ye  pilgrymage,  translated  by  dom  John 
Lydgate  out  of  frensh,"  and  other 
books. 


1468  I  Elizabeth  Sywardby  left  8  books,  several 

in  English. 

1469  Sir  Richard    Willoughby    of  Woollaton, 

left    to    parish    church   of    Woollaton 
liturgical  books  and  Crede  mihi. 

1469       |  Sir  Edward  Bethum  gave  books  for  chain- 
ing in  church  of  Lytham  Cell,  Lanes. 


pt.  i.  629  a. 

Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  163. 
Ibid.,  xlv.  171. 

/bid.,  vii.  126. 


APPENDIX  C 


281 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1471-72  j  Wm.  Hawk,  rector  of  Berwick  in  Elmet, 
left  i  psalter. 

1472-73  J  Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  had  224 
volumes  in  the  library.  Theology,  law. 
Aristotle.  Catholicon. 


Siirtees  Soc.,  xlv.  22on. 


C.    A.    S.    Coinin.,    ii. 
(1864)  165-81. 


1472       |  John   Hamundson,    master    of    grammar      Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.   198- 
school  attached  to  York   Minster,  left         99. 
book  of  Chronicles  in  English,  Papias, 
a  book  called  Horsehede. 

*473       i  Cambridge  University  Library  comprised  |  C.    A.    S.    Comm.,    ii. 
330  volumes.     Lucan,  Ovid,  Aristotle,          (1864)  258-76. 
Seneca,  Cicero.    Petrarch,  de  Remediis. 


1473  j  68  books,  mostly  Scriptural  commentaries, 
given  to  University  College,  Oxford,  by 
an  old  Fellow,  Wm.  Aspylon. 


Carr,        Univ.       Coll. 
(1902),  68. 


1470-75    j  Thomas  Rotherham  gave  many  books  to  i  Willis,  Camb.,  iii.  25. 
the  University  Library,  Cambridge. 


1474-75  Robert  Est,  possibly  chantry-priest  in  Surtees  Sac.,  xlv.  159. 
York  Minster,  left  to  parish  church  of 
Brigsley,  Lines.,  a  small  collection : 
incl.  Legenda  Sanctomm,  liber  de  Gestis 
Romanorum  cum  aliis  fabulis  Jsopi  et 
mult  is  narrationibus. 

I475~76      Thos.  Worthington,  vicar  of  Sherburn  in      Ibid.,  xlv.  220  n. 
Elmet,  left  3  volumes  to  Balliol  College, 
Oxford ;  unimportant. 


H75-76       Robt.  Echard,  rector  of  East  Bridgeford,      Ibid.,  xlv.  219. 
left  10  books,  several  liturgical,  the  rest  j 
unimportant. 


1475  104  volumes  in  library  at  S.  Catharine's 

College,  Cambridge.  Plato,  Aristotle 
(Ethica  and  Politico),  Cicero,  Petrarch, 
de  Remediis  (2  copies),  Boccaccio,  de 
Cast's  viroritin  illustrium,  in  English. 

1476  :  John  Hurte,  vicar  of  S.  Mary's,  Notting- 

ham, left  21  books.  Liturgical  books, 
theology,  astronomy,  Guido  delle 
Colonne's  Troy  book. 


C.  A.  S.,'\.  (1840)  i-ii, 


Surtees       Soc. , 

220-22. 


xlv. 


282 


OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 


DATE 


1478 


1479 
1479-80 

c.  1480 

1481 

1481 

1481 
1482 


DESCRIPTION 


1483 
1483 
1486 


Bp.  William  Grey  gave  200  books  to 
Balliol  College,  Oxford.  Nearly  all 
were  collected  in  Italy.  Plato  ( Timaeus 
and  EutkyphrO)  new  translations),  the 
Golden  Verses  of  Pythagoras,  Cicero, 
incl.  some  hitherto  unknown  speeches, 
Quintilian,  Seneca.  Petrarch's  Letters, 
orations  of  Poggio  Bracciolini,  Leonardo 
Bruni,  and  Guarino  da  Verona. 

Thomas  Pynchebek  of  York  left  4  books  : 
incl.  Richard  Rolle  of  Hampole. 

Robt.  Lythe,  chaplain,  left  6  books,  and 
John  Burn,  another  chaplain,  5 — unim- 
portant. 

Bishop  John  Shirwood  of  Durham  owned 
a  good  library,  including  a  fair  collec- 
tion of  the  classics,  and  Theodore 
Gaza's  Greek  grammar. 

William  of  Waynflete  gave  800  books  to 
Magdalen  College,  Oxford. 

Sir  Thos.  Lyttleton  left  a  Catholicon, 
Constitution.es  Provinciales,  and  Gesta 
Romanorum  to  Halesowen  Church, 
Worcester. 

Dr.  John  Warkworth  gave  55  books  to 
Peterhouse.  Terence,  Statins  :  Liber 
Cronic'  in  Anglicis,  Liber  in  Gallicis  ; 
much  theology. 

At  Leicester  Abbey  there  were  over  350 
books  in  the  library.  Bibles  and  com- 
mentaries, medieval  schoolmen,  gram- 
mar, sermons,  Lucan,  Ovid,  Horace, 
Virgil,  Cicero,  Plato,  French  books, 
Mandevile,  Gower ;  logic,  astronomy, 
physics. 

Robert  Flemming  left  books,  which  he 
had  collected  in  Italy,  to  Lincoln 
College,  Oxford. 

Church  of  S.  Christopher  le  Stocks, 
London,  had  a  collection  of  church 
books  only. 

At  this  time  only  52  volumes  were  in  St. 
Paul's  Cathedral ;  chiefly  liturgical. 


SOURCE 


Coxe,  Cat.  Cod.  Oxon.- 
Balliol ;      Mullinger, 
Hist,     of     Univ.     of 
Camb.,  397- 


Sttr tees  Soc.,  xlv.  iggn. 
Ibid.,  xlv.  199  and  n. 

E.  H.  R.,  xxv.  455. 


Warren,    Magd.    Coll., 
18. 

Library,  i.  411. 


James3,  23-26. 


Nichols,  Hist,  of  Leice- 
ster (1815),  i.  pt.  2, 
App.  102-08. 


Einstein,  23. 


Archaologia,  xlv.  (1880) 
118. 


Dugdale,    Hist,    of  S. 
Paul's,  399. 


APPENDIX  C 


283 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1486 
1488 
1489 

1489-94 

1491 
1491 
1491 

1493 
c.  1497 


1498 


John  Lese  of  Pontefract  left  5  theological 
books. 


31  books  presented  to  Oxford  University 
Library  by  an  old  scholar. 


1 28  volumes  presented  to  Oxford  University 
Library  by  Dr.  Litchfield,  archdeacon  of 
Middlesex. 


John  Auckland,  Prior,  presented  to 
Durham  Priory,  some  33  books;  ordinary 
medieval  character. 


Richard  Lovet,  vicar  of  Ruddington,  left 
a  few  theological  books. 


Thomas  Symson  of  York  left  7  theological 
books. 


Over  40  books  given  to  All  Souls  College, 
Oxford,  by  John  Stokys,  Warden. 

Roger  Drury  left  "ij  Ingyshe  bocks,  called 
Bochas,  of  Lydgat's  makyng." 

St.  Augustine's  Abbey,  Canterbury,  con- 
tained 1837  books.  Scriptures,  theol- 
ogy, natural  history,  history,  philosophy, 
music,  geometry,  astronomy,  medicine, 
logic,  grammar,  poetry,  alchemy,  canon 
law.  Plato  ( Timaetts),  Aristotle  (a  great 
deal:  Metaphysica,  Physica,  Rhetorica, 
Ethica,  Politico,,  new  trans,  of  Historia 
naturalium),  Terence,  Cicero,  Horace, 
Virgil  (Aeneid,  Georgics,  Bucolics], 
Ovid,  Lucan,  Seneca  (incl.  Tragedies), 
Juvenal,  Quintilian,  Statius ;  French 
books  —  Charlemagne,  Historia  Brit- 
onum,  Guy  of  Warwick,  Lancelot,  Per- 
ceval of  Galles,  Holy  Graal,  Guillaume 
le  Marshal,  etc. 

Collegiate  Church  of  Auckland  possessed 
some  40  volumes.  Bible,  theological 
and  liturgical  books,  canon  law ; 
Cicero's  Letters. 


S^lrtees  Soc,,  xlv.   220- 
21  n. 


Mun.  Acad.,  357. 


Rudd,  Codd.  MSS. 
Eccles.  Cath.  Dun. 
CataL,  1825,  passim. 

Surtees  Soc.,  xlv.  221  n. 


Ibid.,  xlv.  i6on. 


Robertson,    All    Souls 
(Coll.  Hist.),  33. 

Cam.  Soc.,  Bury  Wills, 
246. 

James,  Ivii.  173. 


Surtees  Soc.,  ii.  101-03. 


284 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


DATE 

1498 

1499 
1500 


1506 
1508 

1508 
1509 

1519-20 


1519 


DESCRIPTION 


John  Gunthorpe,  Dean  of  Wells,  be- 
queathed to  Jesus  College,  Cambridge, 
some  manuscripts  collected  in  Italy. 

William  Holcombe  left  books  to  Exeter 
College  and  to  friends :  including 
Hugutio,  Gesta  Alexandri. 


Archbp.  Rotherham  left  to  Jesus  College, 
Rotherham,  some  hundred  volumes. 
Chiefly  theology.  Terence,  Cicero's 
Orations,  ad  Familiares,  Horace, 
Sallust's  Catilina  and  Jugurtha,  Ovid's 
Metamorphoses,  Ars  amandi,  Remedia 
Amoris,  etc.,  Petrarch  (de  Vita  soli- 
taria,  de  Reuiediis  iitriusque  fortunae\ 


363  volumes  in  Exeter  Cathedral. 


306  books  repaired  at  Christ  Church, 
Canterbury.  Theological,  homiletic 
and  law  books.  Livy,  Liber  grecorttm. 


Abp.  Warham  gave  books  to  New  College. 


Christ's  College,  Cambridge,  received  57 
liturgical  books  bequeathed  by  the 
Lady  Margaret. 


William  Grocyn's  Library  comprised  105 
printed  books  and  17  manuscripts. 
Much  theology  ;  leading  Latin  classics. 
Greek  and  Latin  New  Testament. 
Petrarch,  Boccaccio,  Ficino,  Filelfo, 
Lorenzo  della  Valle,  Aeneas  Sylvius, 
Perotti.  Adagia  of  Erasmus. 


Robert  Same,  chaplain,  bequeathed  i 
book  to  Wetheringsett  Church. 

292  books  at  Canterbury  College,  Oxford, 
theology,  law,  philosophy.  Aristotle 
(incl.  Ethica  newly  translated) ;  Cicero, 
Horace,  Virgil,  Lucan  ;  Boccaccio, 
Lorenzo  della  Valle. 


SOURCE 


James16,  13, 


Oliver,  Man.  D.  Exon., 
278. 


James13,  5-8. 


Oliver,  366-75. 


James,  152. 


O.   H.    S.    32,    Collect 
232-33- 


C.    A.    S.,   iii. 
8vo),  361. 


(N.S., 


Leland,  ii.  3 1 7 ;  O.H.S. 
1 6,  Collect  319-23. 


Cam.  S0c.,  Bury  Wills, 
253- 

James,  165. 


APPENDIX  C 


285 


DATE 


DESCRIPTION 


SOURCE 


1504-26 


At  least  1421  volumes  in  Syon  Monastery, 
Isleworth.  Of  the  rough  classification 
Miss  Bateson  wrote  :  ' '  Generally  speak- 
ing A  includes  grammar  and  classics  (77 
volumes) ;  B,  medicine,  astrology,  a  few 
classics  (55) ;  C,  philosophy  (46) ;  D, 
commentaries  on  the  Sentences  (128) ; 
E,  Bibles  and  concordances  (75) ;  F-I, 
commentaries  on  the  Old  and  New 
Testament  (232)  ;  K,  History  (65)  ;  L, 
dictionaries  (58) ;  M,  Lives  of  the  Saints 
(121) ;  N,  Fathers  (88) ;  O,  devotional 
tracts  (98) ;  P  to  S,  chiefly  sermons, 
over  70  books  in  each  class  ;  T,  canon 
law  (104);  V,  civil  law  (21)," — p.  vii. 
Of  Latin  Renascence  literature  there 
are  worksby  Coluccio  Salutati,  Leonardo 
Bruni,  Poggio,  Bessarion,  Platina, 
Poliziano,  Pico  della  Mirandola ;  and 
translations  from  the  Greek  by  Her- 
molaus  Barbarus,  Gaza,  Erasmus,  and 
others.  Also  Petrarch  (Psalmi  poeni- 
tentiales],  Boccaccio  (de  geneal.  deor. 
gent.),  Savonarola  (de  virtute  jidei}^ 
Reuchlin.  This  catalogue  is  of  the 
men's  library  only  :  there  was  another 
library  for  women.  Many  of  the  books 
were  printed  ;  nearly  400  editions  have 
been  identified. 


Bateson,  passim. 


APPENDIX  D 

LIST  OF  THE  PRINCIPAL  WORKS  REFERRED  TO  FOR 
THIS  BOOK 


ADAMNAN  .         .         .     Adamnan.     Vita  S.  Columbae.     Ed.,  Reeves.     1874. 

ALLEN         .         .         .     Allen,  J.  R.     Celtic  Art.     1904.     Antiquary's  books. 

ARCH/EOLOGIA  .  .  Archseologia,  various  volumes ;  especially  vol.  xliii. 
and  vol.  Ivii.  (Church,  Rev.  C.  M.,  Library  of  Wells 
Cathedral). 

ARCHDALL  .         .         .     Archdall,  M.    Monasticon  Hibernicum.    2  vols.    1786. 

*BATESON  .  .  .  Bateson,  Mary,  ed.  Catalogue  of  the  Library  of  Syon 
Monastery,  Isleworth.  1898. 

*BECKER  .  .  .  Becker,  G.  Catalogi  Bibliothecarum  antiqui.  Bonn, 
1885. 

*BiBLiO.  Soc.  .  .  Bibliographical  Society's  Transactions  and  Mono- 
graphs. Especially  Monogr.  10  and  13,  Strickland 
Gibson,  early  Oxford  bindings ;  and  G.  J.  Gray, 
earlier  Cambridge  stationers. 

BOTFIELD  .  .  .  Botfield,  B.  Notes  on  the  Cathedral  Libraries  of 
England.  1849. 

BRADLEY  .  .  .  Bradley,  J.  W.  Dictionary  of  Miniaturists,  Calli- 
graphers,  and  Copyists.  3  vols.  1887-9. 

BRADSHAW.         .         .     Bradshaw,  H.     Collected  papers.     1889. 

BRADSHAW  Soc. .  .  Henry  Bradshaw  Society.  Customary  of  the  Bene- 
dictine Monasteries,  Canterbury.  2  vols.  1902. 

B.  M.  COTT.  CLAUD.,  E.  iv. 

B.  M.  COTT.  DOMIT.,  A.  viii. 

B.  M.  COTT.  GALBA,  C.  iv. 

B.  M.  COTT.  NERO,  D.  vii. 

B.  M.  REG.  2,  E.  ix. 

B.  M.  REG.  13,  D.  iv. 

BRYCE 

BURY  . 

CAMBRIDGE  STAT. 


C.  A.  S. 


CAM.  Soc. 


Bryce,  W.  M.     Scottish  Grey  Friars.     2  vols.      1909. 
Bury,  J.  B.     Life  of  Saint  Patrick.     1905. 
Documents  relating  to  the   University  and  Colleges. 

3  vols.     1852. 
Cambridge   Antiquarian    Society.      Publications    and 

communications.    Various  volumes. 
Camden  Society  Publications.     Various  volumes. 
286 


APPENDIX  D 


287 


CAMB.  LIT.  . 


*CLARK       . 
COOPER 
DAVENPORT 
DELISLE 

D.  C.  B.      . 

D.  N.  B.      . 

*DUGDALE  . 

EDWARDS    . 

EDWARDS2  . 
EDWARDS3  . 

EINSTEIN    . 

E.  H.  R.      . 

FLOYER 

FLOYER 
GASQUET     . 

GASQUET2  . 
GASQUET3  . 
GASQUET4  . 

*GOTTLIEB  . 

GRACE  B. 


HADDAN 
HARDY 


HEALY 

HIST.  MSS. 
HUNTER 


Cambridge  History  of  English  Literature,  vols.  i.— iv. 
1907-9.  Especially  vol.  i.  ch.  ii.,  Runes  and  MSS., 
and  ch.  x. ,  English  Scholars  of  Paris  and  Franciscans 
of  Oxford;  vol.  ii.  ch.  xv.,  English  and  Scottish 
Education;  vol.  iii.  ch.  i.,  Englishmen  and  the 
Classical  Renascence  ;  vol.  iv.  ch.  xix.,  Foundation 
of  Libraries.  [And  bibliographies  to  these  chapters.] 

Clark,  J.  W.  Care  of  Books  :  Essay  on  the  Develop- 
ment of  Libraries  and  their  Fittings.  1909.  2nd  ed. 

Cooper,  C.  H.  Annals  of  Cambridge.  5  vols.  1842- 
[531,  1908. 

Davenport,  C.  The  Book  :  Its  History  and  Develop- 
ment. 1907. 

Delisle,  L.  Le  Cabinet  des  manuscrits  de  la  Biblio- 
theque  Imperiale.  1868-74. 

Dictionary  of  Christian  Biography. 

Dictionary  of  National  Biography. 

Dugdale,  Sir  W.  Monasticon  Anglicanum.  Ed., 
Caley,  Ellis,  and  Bandinel.  9  vols.  1817-30. 

Edwards,  E.     Memoirs  of  Libraries.     2  vols.     1859. 
Free  Town  Libraries.     1869. 
Libraries  and  Founders   of  Libraries. 


Edwards,  E. 
Edwards,    E. 

1864. 
Einstein,  L. 


New 


Italian  Renaissance  in  England. 

York,  1892. 

English  Historical  Review. 
Floyer,  Rev.  J.  K.     Catalogue  of  MSS.  preserved  in 

the  Chapter  House  of  Worcester  Cathedral.     1906. 
Floyer,  Rev.  J.  K.     Thousand  Years  of  a  Cathedral 

Library.     Reliqtiary,  Jan.  1901. 
Gasquet,    F.    A.      English     Monastic    Life.       1905. 

Antiquary's  Books. 

Gasquet,  F.  A.     Eve  of  the  Reformation.      1909. 
Gasquet,  F.  A.    Last  Abbot  of  Glastonbury,  etc.    1908. 
Gasquet,  F.  A.     Old  English  Bible  and  other  Essays. 

1897. 
Gottlieb,    T.      Ueber    Mittelalterliche    Bibliotheken. 

Leipzig,  1890. 
Grace  Books  A  and  I.     Proctor's  Accounts  and  Other 

Records   of    the    University   of    Cambridge.     Ed., 

Leathes  and  Bateson.     1897. 
Haddan,  A.  W.     Remains.     1876. 
Hardy,   Sir  T.    D.      Descriptive  Catalogue  of  MSS. 

relating  to  the  History  of  Great  Britain  and  Ireland. 

4  vols.     Rolls  Series. 
Healy,  J.     Ireland's   Ancient  Schools  and  Scholars. 

4th  ed.     1902. 

Historical  MSS.  Commission  Reports. 
Hunter,  J.     English  Monastic  Libraries.      1831. 


288 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


HYDE  . 
*JAMES 


JAMES2 

*JAMES3          . 

JAMES4 

JAMES5 

JAMES6  . 

JAMES7 

JAMES8 

JAMES9 
JAMES10 
JAMES11 

JAMES12 

JAMES13 
JAMES14 
JAMES13 

JAMES16 
JAMES17 

JAMES18 

JOYCE. 

LECOY  DE  LA  MARCHE 


LELAND 

LELAND2 


Hyde,  D.     Literary  History  of  Ireland.    1899.    Library 

of  Literary  History. 
James,  M.  R.     Ancient  Libraries  of  Canterbury  and 

Dover.     1903. 

James,  M.  R.     Abbey  of  St.  Edmund  at  Bury.     1895. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

the  Library  of  King's  College.     1895. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

the  Library  of  Peterhouse.     1899. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  Western 

MSS.  in  the  Library  of  Emmanuel  College. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  Western 

MSS.  in  the  Library  of  Christ's  College.     1905. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

the  Library  of  Trinity  Hall.     1907. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  Western 

MSS.  in  the  Library  of  Clare  College.     1905. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

the  Library  of  Gonville  and  Caius  College.     2.  vols. 

1907-8. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

the  Library  of  Jesus  College.     1895. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

the  Library  of  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge.     1905. 
James,  M.  R.     The  Western  MSS.  in  the  Library  of 

Trinity   College :    Descriptive   Catalogue.      4  vols. 

1900-04. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  Western 

MSS.  in  the  Library  of  Queens'  College,  Cambridge. 

1905. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

the  Library  of  Sidney  Sussex  College.     1895. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

the  Library  of  Eton  College.     1895. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

the  Fitzwilliam  Museum.     1895. 
James,  M.  R.     Archbishop  Parker's  MSS.     1899. 
James,  M.  R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  MSS.  in 

Corpus  Christi  College,  Cambridge.     Part  I.     1909. 
James,  M.   R.     Descriptive  Catalogue  of  the  Manu- 
scripts in  the  College  Library  of  Magdalene  College, 

Cambridge.      1909. 
Joyce,    P.    W.     Social    History   of   Ancient    Ireland. 

2.  vols. 

Lecoy  de  la  Marche,  A.     Les  Manuscrits  et  la  Minia- 
ture.    [1884.]     Bibliotheque  de  1'Enseignement  des 

Beaux-Arts. 

Leland,  J.     Collectanea.     6  vols.     1715. 
Leland,  J.     Itinerary.     Ed.,  Smith.     1907-8. 


APPENDIX  D 


289 


LELAND3       . 

LIBRARY  . 
L.  A.  R.  . 
LYTE  .... 

MACLEAN    . 
MAC  RAY 
MADAN 

*MAITLAND 
MERRYWEATHER 

*MON.  FR.  . 
*MUN.  ACAD.     . 
MULLINGER 

OXFORD  STAT.    . 

O.  H.  S.,  27,  BOASE   . 

O.     H.     S.,    35,     36, 

ANSTEY 
O.  H.  S.,  5,  i6and  32, 

COLLECT. 
O.  H.  S.,  20,  LITTLE. 

PlETAS 

PUTNAM 
RASHDALL  . 

R.  DE  B.  . 
ROBINSON  . 

ROGERS 
ROUVEYRE . 

R.  H.  S.      . 

*SANDYS     . 

S.  H.  R.      . 

STEVENSON 
STOKES  (G.  T.)  . 
STOKES  (M.) 
STOKES  (M)2 
STOKES  (M.)3   . 


Leland,  J.     De  Scriptoribus  Britannicis.     1709. 
The  Library,     vols.  i.-x.     New  series,  vols.  i.-x. 
Library  Association  Record,     vol.  i.  to  date. 
Lyte,  H.  C.  Maxwell.     History  of  the   University  of 

Oxford  to  1530.     1886. 

Maclean,  M.     Literature  of  the  Celts.     1902. 
Macray,  W.  D.    Annals  of  the  Bodleian  Library.    1890. 
Madan,    F.     Books    in    Manuscript.      1893.      Books 

about  Books. 

Maitland,  S.  R.     The  Dark  Ages.     1844. 
Merryweather,  F.  S.    Bibliomania  in  the  Middle  Ages. 

1849. 
Monumenta  Franciscana.    Ed.,  Brewer.     1858.     Rolls 

series. 
Munimenta  academica.     Ed.,  Anstey.     2  vols.     1858. 

Rolls  series. 
Mullinger,  J.  B.     University  of  Cambridge  to   1535. 

1873- 

Statutes  of  the  Colleges  of  Oxford.     3  vols.     1853. 
Oxford  Historical  Society,  vol.  xxvii.     Boase,  C.  W. 

Registrum  Collegii  Exoniensis. 
O.  H.  S.    Anstey,  H.    Epistolae  academicae.    2  vols. 

1898. 
O.    H.    S.     Collectanea.     Series   1-3.     1885,    1890, 

1896. 

O.  H.  S.    Little,  A.  G.    Grey  Friars  in  Oxford.     1892. 
Pietas  Oxoniensis  in  Memory  of  Sir  Thomas  Bodley. 

1902. 
Putnam,  G.     Books  and  their  Makers  in  the  Middle 

Ages.     2  vols.     1896-7. 
Rashdall,  H.     Universities  of  Europe  in  the  Middle 

Ages.     2  vols.     1895. 

Richard  of  Bury.     Philobiblon.     Ed.,  Thomas.     1888. 
Robinson,  J.  A.,  and  James,  M.  R.     The  MSS.  of 

Westminster  Abbey.     1909. 
Rogers,  J.  E.  T.     History  of  Agriculture  and  Prices. 

6  vols.     1866-87. 
Rouveyre,  Edouard.     Connaissances  necessaires  a  un 

bibliophile.     10  vols.      1899. 
Royal  Historical  Society.     Transactions. 
Sandys,    J.     E.      History    of    Classical    Scholarship. 

Vols.  i.  (2nd  ed.,  1906)  and  ii. 
Scottish  Historical  Review. 
Stevenson,  F.  S.     Robert  Grosseteste.     1899. 
Stokes,  G.  T.     Ireland  and  the  Celtic  Church.     1886. 
Stokes,  Margt.     Early  Christian  Art  in  Ireland.     1887. 
Stokes,  M.     Six  Months  in  the  Apennines.     1892. 
Stokes,  M.     Three  Months  in  the  Forests  of  France. 

1895. 


29o          OLD  ENGLISH   LIBRARIES 

STOKES  (W.)       .        .     Stokes,    W.,    ed.     Tripartite    Life.    2    vols.      1887. 

Rolls  series. 
STOW  ....     Stow,  J.     Survey  of  London.     Ed.,  C.  L.  Kingsford. 

2  vols.     1908. 
*SuRTEES  Soc.    .         .     Surtees     Society     Publications.       Various     volumes ; 

especially    vol.     vii.,     Catalogi     veteres    librorum. 

1840. 
TAYLOR       .         .         .     Taylor,  H.  O.     Classical  Heritage  of  the  Middle  Ages. 

New  York,  1901. 
THOMPSON  .         .         .     Thompson,  Sir  E.  M.     Greek  and  Latin  Palaeography. 

3rd  ed.     1906. 

WARTON     .         .         .     Warton,  T.    History  of  English  Poetry.    4  vols.     1871. 
WATTENBACH     .         .     Wattenbach,   W.     Das  Schriftwesen  im   Mittelalter. 

3rd  ed.     Leipzig,  1896. 

WILLIAMS  .         .         .     Williams,  J.  W.     Somerset  Medieval  Libraries. 
WORDSWORTH     .         .     Wordsworth,   C.,   and   Littlehales,   H.     Old   Service 

Books  of  the  English  Church.     Antiquary's  Books. 
ZENTRALBLATT  .         ,     Centralblatt  fiir  Bibliothekswesen.     Various  volumes. 


NOTE. — Books  marked  with  an  asterisk  *  are  important. 


INDEX 


Abdy  Robert,  150-151  Augustine,  St.,  14,  24 

Abingdon  Abbey,  33,  39,  41,  78,  87,     Augustine,  Irish  Monk,  8 


,  97,  98,  269 

Abyssinian  libraries,  18 

Academic  libraries,  133  seqq.  ;  Cam- 
bridge, 155  seqq.  ;  Character  of 
books  in,  222  seqq.  ;  economy, 
165  seqq.  ;  Oxford,  133  seqq. 

Acca,  Bp.,  34 

Adam  de  Brome,  135 

Aelfric,  44,  85 

Aelfric,  Abp.,  44 

Aelfward,  Abbot,  44,  263 

Aeneas  Silvius,  120,  277 

Aethelwold,  40-41,  263 

Aidan,  St.,  30 

Aileran,  8 

Albinus,  25,  28 

Alcuin,  9,  10,  35-36,  78,  80,  263 

Aldfrith  of  Northumbria,  9,  31 

Aldhelm,  8,  28-29,  31 

Aleby,  Thomas,  279 

Alfred  the  Great,  37-39 

All  Souls  College,  147,  149,  151,  153, 
165,  166,  167,  168,  170,  186,  277, 
283 

Alne,  Robert,  156,  277 

Annalists,  monastic,  231-232 

Anselm,  83,  214 

Antiphonaries,  value  of,  246 

Antiphonary  of  Bangor,  1 1 

Arabian  works  imported,  217-218 

Aristotle,  works  introduced,  53,  217- 
222  ;  influence,  240 

Armagh,  Book  of,  14,  15,  16,  19,  20 

Armagh  monastery,  4,  9,  12 

Armaria,  91 

Armaritts,  96-97 

Arnoul  of  Metz,  Gospels  of,  20 

Arundel,  Abp.,  139,  190,  275 

Asser,  38 

Assicus,  Bp.,  20,  21 

Astronomical  text-books,  225 

Athelney  monastery,  39 

Athelstan,  King,  263 

Audit  of  books  in  monasteries,  102-103 


Aumbries,  91,  92 

Austin  Friars'  libraries,  55,  56,  67-68, 
103,  271 

Bacon,  Friar,  178,  216,  218-219,  220- 

221 

Baldock,  Ralph,  119-120,  269 

Bale,  John,  66-67 

Balliol  College,  54,  146,  148,  150,  153, 
186,  192,  193,  281,  282 

Balsham,  Hugh  of,  158 

Bangor  monastery,  7 

Baret,  John,  280 

Baringham,  John,  279 

Barking  nunnery,  33 

Basil  the  Great,  2 

Basingstoke,  John  of,  219-220,  267 

Bateman,  Bp.  William,  158-159,  270 

Battle  Abbey,  62 

Beauchamp,  Guy  de,  177,  269 

Beaufort,  Card.,  188,  190 

Beaufort,  Sir  Thomas,  162 

Beaulieu  Abbey,  93 

Becket,  Thomas  a,  89 

Beckford  Cell,  47 

Bede,  26  n.,  27,  32-33;  his  library, 
33  n.  ;  Ecclesiastical  History, 
MSS.,  15,  no;  Apocalypse  MS., 

IIO-III 

Bedford,     Duke     of.       See    John    of 

Lancaster 

Bedyll,  Thomas^  68 
Bek,  Bp.,  269 
Bekynton,  Bp.,  123;?.,  190 
Benedict  Biscop,  31-32,  33,  86 
Benedictines,  use  of  books  among,  23- 

24,  49,  63 

Benedictional  of  Abp.  Robert,  42 
Benedictional  of  Ethelwold,  42,  43 
Bethum,  Sir  Edward,  280 
Beverley  Minster,  128 
Bible,     Latin,     correcting     text,     58  ; 

circulation,    239;  prices   of,   243- 

244 
291 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


Biblical  literature  in  monasteries,  210- 

212 

Bicchieri,  Guala,  Card.,  86-87 

Bicester  Priory,  175 

Binding,  107-108  ;  prices,  256-257 

Birkenhead  Priory,  73,  74 

Bishop   Auckland   Church,    194,    277 

283 

Black  Death,  138,  138;*.,  159 
Black  Friars'  books,  55 
Bobio,  8,  10,  87 
Bodleian  Library,  113 
Bohun,  Eleanor,  of  Gloucester,  177 
Bolton,  S.  Mary's  Church,  129 
Boniface,  34 

Book-boxes,  113-114,  123 
Bookrooms,  in  colleges,  149-151,  164, 
1 86  ;  in  churches,   1 12,   115,   117, 
118,  119,  120,  121,  122-123,  J24, 
126,    128,    130,    186;    in   monas- 
teries, 12,  63,  93-96 
Books,    care     of,    97-98;     extent     of 
circulation,  232-241  ;    destruction 
and   dispersal,  59  seqq.t   152-154, 
157-158  ;  prices  of,  243  seqq. 
Booksellers,  199  seqq 
Book-trade  in   Oxford,   133   seqq.    199 
seqq.  ;  Cambridge,  155,  205  seqq.  ; 
London,  207 

Bordesley  Abbey,  67,  67  n. 
Boston  Church,  129 
Boston,  John,  59 

Bowet,  Abp.,  123«.,  178,  189,  276 
Bragge,  Canon,  177,  274 
Brantingham,  Bp.,  149,  150*. 
Brasenose  College,  168 
Bredon,  Simon  de,  146,  271 
Brensall-in-Craven,  S.  Wilfrid's,  129 
Breviaries,  prices  of,  244-245 
Brigsley  Church,  129 
Bristol,  S.  Mary  RedclifTe,  128,  275 
Browne   (Cordone),  Archdeacon,    123, 

129,  139,  189,  278 
Brownyng,  William,  279 
Bubwith,  Nicholas  of,  123 
Buckfast  Abbey,  90 
Burley,  Sir  S.,  272 
Burton-on-Trent  Abbey,  264 
Bury,  R.  de,  50,  58,  60-6 1,   170-172, 

11%  seqq.,  267,  269 

Bury  St.  Edmunds  Abbey,  44,  49,  59, 
61,  63,  68».,  69,  71,  84,  86,  88, 
90,  96,  162,  265 

Caedmon,  30 
Calami,  85 
Caldey,  Henry,  278 
Calligraphy.     See  Writing 


Cambridge,  book-trade,  155,  205  seqq.  ; 
college  libraries,  158  seqq.  ;  Uni- 
versity Library,  70,  i^seqq.,  164, 
276,  281.  See  also  names  of 
Colleges 

Cambuskenneth  monastery,  57 
Candida  Casa,  7 

Canterbury  (Christ  Church),  46,  46  n. , 
49,  63,  64,  65,  70,  71,  76,  80,  89, 
95,  100,  101,  102,  150,  177,  190, 
196-197,  220,  239,  265,  267,  269, 
270,  275,  284 

Canterbury  (S.  Augustine's),  9,  14,  24, 

25,  26,  28,  29,  31,  33,  40,  47,  49, 

69,  70,  71,  83,  88,  89,  95,  96«., 

103,  104,  175,  178,  263,  283 

Canterbury    College,    Oxford,    itfn., 

150,  195,  284 
Capsae,  ign. 

Carilef,  William  de,  90,  264 
Carmelite  Friars'  libraries,  54,  55 
Carpenter,  Bp.  John,  115 
Carpenter,  John,  187,  278 
Carrells,  75-77,  92 
Cathach       Psalter.       See      Columba's 

Psalter 

Catalogues  of  monastic  books,  103-107 
Cathedral  libraries,  109  seqq. 
Catholtcon,  132,  224 
Cawod,  William,  275 
Ceadda  (Chad)  30 
Cedd,  30 

Chace,  Thomas,  150 
Chad,  St.,  30  ;  Gospels  of,  14 
Chained  books,  109,  112,  117 
Charles  the  Great,  35,  107 
Charleton,  Bp.,  116 
~haucer,  Geoffrey,  85,  174,    182-184, 

240 

haundler,  Thomas,  190 
Chertsey  Abbey,  33 
Chester,  Richard,  160 
Chester,  S.  Werburgh's,  61,  76,  92 
Chesterton  Church,  87,  87  n. 
"hests  for  books,  91 
Chichele,  Abp.  Henry,  95 
Chichele,  William,  187,  276 
hrist  Church,  Oxford,  151  n. 
hrist's  College,  Cambridge,  164,  284 
Church,  Canon  C.  M.,  no,  121,  124;;. 
Church  libraries,  109  seqq. 
Ciaran,  St.,  13,  22 
Circulation  of  books,  extent,  232-241 
Clare  College,  138;*.,  158,  164 
Clare,  Elizabeth,  158,  177,  270 
Clark,  Dr.  J.  W.,  92,95,  113 
Classical  literature  in  monasteries,  212- 
215,  258  seqq. 


INDEX 


293 


Clement,  10,  II 

Clergy  and  books,  177-178 

Clifford,  J.  de,  177 

Clonard,  5 

Cluni  Abbey,  103 

Cobham,  Bp. ,  134-136,  269 

Cockersand  Abbey,  73 

Codex  Exoniensts,  87,  no,  113 

Codex  Vercellensis,  87,  87  ;/. 

Coldingham,  34,  271 

College  libraries,  145  seqq.,  \<J$>  seqq. 

Columba,  St.,  5,  6,  17  ;  Psalter,  6,  16, 

17,21 

Columban,  St.,  7 
Coopertoria  librorwn,  19  w. 
Corbie,  78,  89 
Corpus   Christi    College,    Camb.,    70, 

1 10,   113,   138 «.,    159,   163,    164, 

277 
Corpus   Christi    College,    Oxford,    70, 

151 «.,  154,  170,  227 
Correctoria,  58,  85 
Corvey,  89 
Coventry  Priory,  268 
Cronan,  St.,  21,  22 
Croucher,  John,  156 
Crowland,  33,  37 
Culross,  56 

Cumdachs,  4,  12,  19,  19  n, 
Cummian,  St.,  8 
Cupboards  for  books,  91 
Cuthbert,  Abbot,  80 
Cuthbert,  St.,  31 


Dalby,  T.  de,  274 

Daniel,  Bp.  of  Winchester,  34 

Darell,  G.,  276 

Deeping  Priory,  268 

Derby,  All  Saints,  130 

Despenser,  Hugh  le,  elder,  177 

Dicuil,  ii 

Dimma's  Book,  21,  22 

Domnach  Airgrid  (S.  Patrick's  Gospels), 

17,  20 
Donatus,  II 
Dover,  S.  Martin's  Priory,  70,  71,  90, 

105,  106,  272 
Downham,  W.,  280 
Dreff,  Ralph,  189,  278 
Drury,  Roger,  283 
Duffield,  Canon  W.,  189,  278 
Dungal,  10,  n 
Dunstan,  40,  41,  41  «. 
Durham,  Book  of  (Lindisfarne  Gospels), 

15,  17 
Durham    Hall,  Oxford,    54,   148,   150, 

170,  179,  269,  274 


Durham  Priory,  63,  73,  75,  80,  91, 
103,  107,  162,  211,  217,  264,  269, 
273,  275,  276,  283 

Durrow,  Book  of,  16,  20 

Eastern  monachism,  1-3 

Easton  Card..  90 

Eastry  Prior,  70,  89,  95,  216,  269 

Ebesham,  W.,  207-208 

Ecgberht,  9 

Echard,  R.,  281 

Edlyngton,  J.,  279 

Edward  II.,  176 

Eleanor  of  Gloucester,  274 

Electio  librorum>  i66«.,  167 

Eltisle,  T.  de,  159 

Ely  Priory  (cathedral),  33,  86,  88,  IOI 

Embleton  Church,  128,  271 

Emmanuel  of  Constantinople,  194-195 

English  monastic  libraries,  23  seqq. 

English  scholars  in  Ireland,  8,  9 

Erghome,  John,  56 

Erigena,  or  Scotus,  John,  n,  39 

Ernulf  of  Rochester,  47 

Est,  R.,  129,  281 

Ethelwold,  40,  41,  263 

Eton  College,  144,  159-160,  161 

Evesham  Abbey,  33,    44,  47,   76,  88, 

90,  263,  264,  265,  266,  267,  272 
Exeter  Book,  87,  no,  113 
Exeter   Cathedral,  44,    110-114,    r86, 

263,  269,  284 
Exeter  College,  Oxford,  87,  111-112, 

113  n.,    146,    148,    149-150,    I5i> 

166,    i66»..  168,  1 86,  272,   274, 

279,  280,  284 

Exeter,  Grey  Friars,  54,  267 
Explicitus,  81-82 

Fairs,  selling  books  at,  200,  206-207 

Farnylaw,  T.  de,  128,  271 

Fastolf,  Sir  J.,  188 

Felton,  Sir  W.  de,  146 

Feriby,  W.  de,  124 w.,  177,  272 

Fernell,  J.,  280 

Fiacc,  4,  I3«. 

Finnian  of  Moville,  5,  6,  17 

Fitzhugh,  Bp.  R.,  156,  277 

Fitzralph,  Abp.,  57 

Flemrning,  Robert,  147,  153,  193,  282 

Fleury  Abbey,  88 

Flexley  Abbey,  266 

Floyer,  Rev.  J.  K.,  115 

Foxe,  Bp.,  194 

Foxle,  Sir  J.  de,  271 

Francis,  St.,  52-53 

Franciscan  libraries,  52  seqq. 

Free,  John,  $*    192,  193 


294 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


Friars,  bibliographical  work,  58-59  ; 
as  book-collecters,  57-58  ;  correc- 
tion of  texts,  58  ;  libraries,  %z'_seqq. 

Furness  Abbey,  94 

Gascoigne,  Dr.  T.,  54,  147,  148,   153, 

277,  279 

Gateshead,  S.  Edmund's  Hospital,  269 
Gaul,  Irish  missionaries  in,  7~8,  10 
Gaul,  monachism  in,  2,  3,  4,  7,  8 
Geoffrey  of  Monmouth,  240 
Gerbert  of  Bobio,  78,  87 
Germanus  of  Auxerre,  3 
Gildas,  9 
Glastonbury  Abbey,  34,  39,  41,  45  w., 

48,   63,  64,   263,   264,    266,    268, 

269 
Gloucester  Abbey,  34,  48,  63,  76,  96, 

264,  268 
Gloucester,   Duke  of.      See    Humfrey 

of  Gloucester 

Golden  Book  of  Edgar,  42 
Gonville  and  Caius  College,  158,  159, 

164 

Gower,  John,  182 
Grammatical  text-books,  223-224 
Grandisson,  Bp.,  in,  inn.,  112,  113, 

150,  270 

Gravesend,  Bp.  R.  de,  146,  178,  267 
Gravesend,  Bp.  S.  de,  270 
Greek  books  imported,  194-198,  217- 

222  ;  in  monasteries,  26,  64 
Greek,  knowledge  of,  in  monasteries,  7, 

10,  II,  195-198,  217-222 
Greeks  in  England,  194-195,  219-220 
Greenwood,  T.,  178,  276 
Gregory  the  Great's  books,  24 
Grey  Friars'  libraries,  52  seqq. 
Grey,  Bp.  William,  150,  153,  192-193, 

282 

Grimbald,  38 

Grocyn,  William,  198,  226-227,  284 
Grosseteste,  Robert,  53,  54,  57,  86,  220 
Gunthorpe,    Dean,     123  «.,     192-193, 

284 

Hadley,  Wm.,  195 
Hadrian,  26,  28,  29 
Halesowen  Church,  129 
Halton,  T.  de,  273 
Hamo,  Chancellor,  118 
Hamundson,  John,  281 
Harris,  J.,  156 
Hawk,  W.,  281 
Healy,  Dr.  John,  5 
Hebbeden,  T.,  277 

Hebrew  books  in  Friars'  libraries,  54, 
56  ;  in  Ramsey  Abbey,  268 


Hedyan,  J.,  278 

Henry  II.,  176 

Henry  vi.,  148,  159-160 

Hereford     Cathedral,     116-117,     162, 

1 86,  266 

Herrys,  John,  156 
Hiberno-Saxon  writing,  15,  46 
Hild,  30,  31 
Hinton  Priory,  ioij  270 
Holcombe,  W.,  284 
Holes,  Andrew,  192  «.,  277 
Holme,  Canon  N.,  129,  280 
Holme,  Richard,  156 
Hopton,  J.,  273 
Hoskyn,  Robert,  278 
Hugh  of  Balsham,  158 
Hugh  of  Leicester,  118,  264 
Hulne,  273 
Humfrey  of  Gloucester,   139-143,  144, 

154,    160,    181,    190-191,    191 «., 

192,  277 

Hurte,  John,  164,  281 
Hyde   Abbey.     See  Winchester    (New 

Minster) 

Iceland,  Irish  in,  7 
Illuminating,  prices  for,  255-256 
Illumination,    Irish,    15 ;    Winchester, 

42 

Illuminators,  79,  199  seqq. 
lona,  5,  7,  9,  30,  31 
Ireland,  English  scholars  in,  8,  9 
Irish  illumination,  15 
Irish  manuscripts  on  the  Continent,  8  »., 

n,  ii  n. 

Irish  missal,  satchel  of,  19 
Irish  missionaries,  5,  6,  7,  8,  10 
Irish  monasteries,  use  of  books  in,  I  seqq. 
Irish  satchels,  17,  18,  19 
Irish  scribes,  12,  I2n 
Irish  writing,  13-15 
Italian  influence  in  England,  189  seqq. 
Italian  scholars,  191 

James,  Dr.  M.  R.,  46,  47,  49,  67,  70, 
71,  89,  95,  102,  163,  195,  196 

Jarrow,  31,  33,  37 

Jerome,  St.,  2 

Jesus  College,  164,  284 

John,  King,  176,  266 

John  of  Beverley,  30 

John  of  Corvey,  38 

John  of  Lancaster,  Duke  of  Bedford, 
139,  181,  188,  272 

John  of  London,  89,  178,  221-222 

John  Scotus  Erigena,  1 1 ,  39 

Kells,  Book  of,  14,  15,  16,  20 


INDEX 


295 


Kelso  Abbey,  99 

Kempe,  John,    Card.,    103,    145,   188, 

279 
King's  College,  Camb.,  144,  156,  159- 

161,  279 
King's     Hall,      Camb.      See     Trinity 

College 

King's  Norton  Church,  129 
Kirkstall  Abbey,  94 
Kyrkby,  R.  de,  275 

Lacy,  Bp.,  150 

Lane,  Dr.  T.,  162 

Lanfranc,  45,  46,  47,  85,  101,  213 

Langham,  Simon,  90,  178,  271 

Langley,  Bp.  T.,  277 

Lanthony  Priory,  68,  265 

Lassehowe,  J.,  279 

Lastingham,  30,  37 

Laudian  Acts,  26  n.,  27 

Law  books  in  Middle  Ages,  215-217, 
226-227 

Layton,  Dr.,  152 

Leather,  107,  cost  of,  257 

Leicester  Abbey,  282 

Leicester  Codex,  195 

Leland,  John,  69,  131 

Lending  monastic  books,  98,  101 

Leofric,  Bp.,  44,  no-Ill,  113,  263 

Leofric  Missal,  in 

Leominster  church,  265 

Lerins,  3,  31 

Lese,J.,283 

Librarian,  University,  136,  137 

Librarians,  monastic,  12,  96-97 

Librarii,  199 

Libri  distribuendi,  1 66,  169 

Lichfield  Cathedral,  126,  186,  270 

Linacre,  Thomas,  197-198 

Lincoln  Cathedral,  118-119,   186,  264, 
278 

Lincoln   College,    54,    147,    148,    149, 
151,  153,  165,  1 66,  1 86,  193,  277 

Lindau,  Gospels  of,  21,  108 

Lindisfarne,  30,  31,  33,  37 

Lindisfarne    Gospels    (Book    of    Dur- 
ham), 15,  17 

Litchfield,  Dr.,  145,  283 

Logical  text-books,  225 

Lombard's  Sentences,  215,  239-240 

London  book-trade,  207 

London,  Friars'  libraries,  55-56 

London,   Guildhall    Library,    186-187, 
276,  278 

London,  S.  Christopher-le-Stocks,  131, 

282 

London,  S.  Mary's  Hospital,  Cripple- 
gate,  278 


London,  St.  Michael's,  Cornhill,  131 
London,    S.     Peter's,     Cornhill,     131, 

131  n. 
London,  S.  Paul's,  119-120,  186,  266, 

268,  269,  280,  282 
London,  S.  Stephen  Magnus,  268 
Longarad  legend,  6,  7  «.,  12,  18 
"Losinga,"  Herbert,  86,  213 
Lovet,  Richard,  283 
Lowe,  Prior,  55 
Lytham  Cell,  280 
Lythe,  R.,  282 
Lyttleton,  Sir  T.,  129,  282 

MacRegol,  Gospels  of,  14,  15 
Magdalen   College,  Oxford,    147,   149, 

151,  154,  166,  168,  170,  175,  186, 

282 

Magdalene  College,  Cambridge,  164 
Malmesbury  Abbey,  29,  33,  66,  108 
Manthorp,  J.  de,  277 
Mare,  Thomas  de  la,  270 
Mare,  William  de  la,  58 
Marisco,  Adam  de,  53,  57,  85,  86 
Markaunt,  Thomas,  163,  163  n  ,  277 
Marleberge,  T.  de,  90,  266 
Marmoutier,  2,  3 
Marshall,  Dr.  R.,  162 
Meaux  Abbey,  63,  94,  274 
Medulla  grammatice,  132 
Melrose  Abbey,  31,  34,  37 
Mendicants'  libraries,  52  seqq. 
Mertherderwa,  R.,  278 
Merton  College,    138,    146,    148,   149, 

153,  166,  168,  170,  272 
Michelham  Priory,  62 
Millyng,  Thomas,  197 
Minstrels,  173  seqq. 
Missals,  prices  of,  244 
Molaise's  Gospels,  21 
Moling,  Book  of  St. ,  21 
Molyneux,  Adam  de,  139,  190 
Monachism,  Eastern,  I 
Monachism  in  England,  progress,  48  ; 

decline,     59-60;     dissolution,     65 

seqq. 

Monachism  in  Ireland,  I  seqq. 
Monastic   libraries,  English,  45  seqq.  ; 

economy,    73   seqq.  ;   decline    and 

dispersal,    59   seqq.,    100 ;    saving 

books,  69  seqq.  ;  catalogues,  102- 

107 

Monastic  libraries,  Irish,  5  seqq. 
Monte  Cassino,  97,  217 
Montford,  Simon  of,  176-177 
Moreton,  J.,  278 
Morley,  Daniel  of,  218 
Morton,  T.,  278 


296 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


Neville,  Abp.,  195 

Newcastle,  S.  Nicholas'  Church,  128, 
271 

New  College,  69,  138,  138  «.,  147, 
148,  149,  151.  !52,  165,  166,  169, 
175,  186,  197,  272,  280,  284 

Newstead  Priory  (Notts),  100 

Newton,  J.  de,  125,  162,  178,  275 

Nicholas  of  Bubwith,  Bp.,  123 

Nicholas  the  Greek,  219-220 

Northumbria,     learning     in,     30,     31, 

37 

Norwich  Priory,  62,  90 
Notarii,  199 
Nottingham,  S.  Mary's  Church,  129 

Ordericus  Vitalis,  80 

Oriel  College,  54,  135,  138,  146,  148, 

151,  154,  166,  168,  169,  271 
Osmund,  Bp.,  117,  263 
Oswald  of  Northumbria,  9,  30,  31 
Oxford,  academic  libraries,  133  seqq. 
Oxford,  book-trade,  133,  199  seqq. 
Oxford,  decrease  of  students  at,  152 
Oxford,  Ewelme  Almshouse,  280 
Oxford,  Friars'   libraries,    53,    54,   58, 

75 

Oxford,  monastic  libraries,  51 
Oxford,  St.  Mary's  Church,  129,  133, 

134,  IS3»  275 
Oxford   scholars'   libraries,    189,    236- 

237 
Oxford  University  library,    133  seqq.  ; 

151-154,  186,  269,  283 
Oxford.     See    also    under    Names     of 

Colleges 

Pachomius,  St.,  2 

Palladius,  3 

Parchment,  84  ;  cost  of,  257 

Parker  Abp.,  26,  70,  113 

Paternoster  Row,  207 

Patrick,  St.,  3,  4,  5,    17;  Gospels  of 

(Domnach  Airgrid),  17,  20 
Pembroke     College,    Cambridge,    69, 

103,  107,  158,  163,  164,  167,  168, 

170,  1 86,  274 
Pennae,  85 

Percyhay,  John,  177,  273 
Peter  of  Gloucester,  Abbot,  48,  264 
Peterborough  Abbey,  33,  37,  48,  216, 

263,  265,  266,  267,  268,  269,  270, 

271,  273 
Peterhouse    College,     100,    158,    162, 

164,  165,  166,  167-168,  169,  186, 

271,  275 
Philobiblon,  179 
Piers  Plowman,  182,  240 


Pius  II.  (^Eneas  Sylvius),  120,  277 
Plane,  Richard,  279 
Plegmund,  Abp.,  38,  38  n. 
Poggio  Bracciolini,  190,  191 
Polatres,  9,  13,  13^. 
Precentor's  duties,  80,  96,  97,  98 
Prices  of  books,  243  seqq. 
Processionals,  value  of,  246 
Psalters,  value  of,  245-246 
Pudsey,  Hugh,  90,  107 
Pynchebek,  Thomas,  282 

Queen's    College,    Oxford,    146,    148, 

149.  I51*  J53»  J66 
Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  162,  164. 

1 86,  281 

Ragenhill,  R.,  125,  276 
Ralph  de  Diceto,  119,  266 
Ralph  of  Maidstone,  116,  266 
Ramsey  Abbey,  54,  63,    68,  89,  220, 

Raventhorpe,  J.,  276 

Rayleigh,  131 

Reading  Abbey,  64,  176,  265,  266 

Reading  aloud,  173  seqq. 

Redmarshall  Church,  129 

Reed,  Bp.,  148,  149,  272 

Registrum  librorum  Angliae,  58-59 

Reichenau,  monastery  of,  8  n. 

Repyngton,  Bp.,  139 

Rhetoric,  books  of,  224-225 

Richard  de  Bury,  50,  58,  60-61,  170- 

172,  ijSseyy.,  267,  269 
Richard  de  Wyche,  bequests  to  friars, 

54-55 

Richard  of  Stowe,  268 
Rievaulx,  265 

Rochester  Priory,  47,  99,  130,  266 
Romance  literature,  227-231 
Roos,  Sir  R,  de,  177,  273 
Rotherham,  Jesus  College,  284 
Rotherham,    Thomas,    130,    157,    163, 

281,  284 

Rous,  John,  127,  128  n. 
Ruddington  Church,  130 
Runes,  13 
Rygge,  R.,274 

St.  Albans  Abbey  and  library,  44,  49 
seqq.,  63,  73,  78,  88,  91,  96,  98, 
105,  108,  179,  219,  263,  264,  267, 
269,  270,  276 
St.  Albans'  chroniclers,  50 
St.  Catherine's  Hall,  161,  164,  281 
St.  Gall,  8,  8n.,  10,  21,  73,  94,  97 
St.  John's  College,  Cambridge,  I5i«., 
164,  1 86 


INDEX 


297 


Salisbury  Cathedral,  117-118,  186,  263 

Same,  Robert,  284 

Satchels,  book,  6,  17,  18,  19 

Scardeburgh,  J.  de,  273 

Scarle,  J.  de,  274 

Scot,  Michael,  53,  218 

Scotland,  monachism  in,  5,  7 

Scotland,  Friars'  libraries,  56-57 

Scotus  Erigena,  John,  n,  39 

Scribes,  199  seqq.  ;  monkish,  73  seqq.  ; 

Irish,  12,  12  n.  ;  tools,  85 
Scriptorium,  50,  51,  73-77,  80,  82,  88 
Scrope,  Archd.  S.,  125,  159,  275 
Sedulius,  II 
Seggefyld,  J.,  279 
Selling,  William  of,  26,  64,  66,  66 n., 

76,  95>  195-197,  280 
Semer,  R.,  277 
Servatus  Lupus,  85,  87 
Sherborne  Hospital,  267 
Skirwood,  Bp.,  194,  282 
Shrines  for  books,  4,  12,  19,  ign. 
Signs  used  for  books,  82-83 
Simon,  Abbot,  50,  91 
Skirlaw,  Bp.,  123  «.,  148,  274 
Smart,  William,  69 
Somersett,  John,  139,  143 
Spray,  T.,  279 
Stafford,  Bp.  E.  de,  150 
Stafford,  Bp.  J.  de,  123,  123 «.,  276 
Stamford  Cell,  276 
Stationers,  199  seqq. 
Stationers  Co.,  207 
Stirling,  Friars'  library,  56 
Stokys,  J.,  283 
Stow,  John,  70 
Stowe  Missal,  20 
Stratford,  Abp.  J.,  177 
Symson,  Thomas,  283 
Syon   monastic  library,  63,  83,  90 «., 

104,  105,  106,  285 
Sywardby,  Elizabeth,  280 

Talbot,  R.,  69 
Textus  Roffensis,  47 
Theodore,  8,  26,  26  ».,  28,  31 
Theological  books  in  monasteries,  210- 

212 

Thomas,  Abbot,  178 

Thomas  of  England,  191,  273 

Thomas  of  Woodstock,  Duke  of  Glou- 
cester, 274 

Thompson,  Mr.  Yates,  107 

Thoris,  R.  de,  54,  267 

Tiptoft,  John,  Earl  of  Worcester,  139, 
192,  279 

Titchfield  Abbey,  95,  105,  274 

Tobias,  Bp.,  28 


Trevaur,  Bp.,  270 

Trinity  College   (King's   Hall),   Cam- 

bridge,  159,  164,  273 
Trinity  College,  Oxford,  i$on. 
Trinity  Hall,  Cambridge,  138 «.,  158, 

164,  169,  216,  270 
Twyne,  Brian,  70 
Twyne,  John,  69 
Tynemouth,  37 
Tywardreath  Priory,  268 

University  College,  Oxford,  138,  145- 

146,  148,  149,  165,  167,  168,  170, 

186,  274,  281 
University  Hall,  Cambridge.  See 

Clare  College 
University  libraries.  See  Oxford  and 

Cambridge 

Vellum,  84  ;  cost  of,  257 
Vercelli  Book,  87,  87  n. 
Vicario,  216 
Vitelli,  Cornelius,  197 

Wallets,  book,  17,  18,  19 

Walter  of  Evesham,  47,  264 

Waltham,  William  de,  275 

Warham,  Abp.,  284 

Warkworth,  J.,  162,  282 

Warwick,  S.  Mary's  Church,  127,  280 

Wax  tablets,  9,  13,  I3«.,  18,  83,  84 

Wearmouth,  31,  33,  37 

Wells  Cathedral,  no,  121-124,  186, 
276 

Werfrith,  Bp.,  37,  38,  114 

Westminster  Abbey,  64,  71,  88,  90, 
99,  112,  271 

Wetheringsett  Church,  130,  284 

Whalley  Abbey,  94 

Whelpdale,  Roger,  148,  276 

Whethamstede,  Abbot,  49,  51-52,  139, 
153,  181 

Whitby  Abbey,  30,  37,  48,  88,  265 

White  Friars'  libraries,  54,  55 

Whitherne  (Candida  Casa),  7 

Whittington,  Richard,  55,  186-187 

Whittlesey,  Abp.,  271 

Wigmore  Abbey,  62 

Wilfrid,  St.,  31 

William  of  Waynflete,  143,  147,  282 

William  of  Wykeham,  147,  272 

Willibrord,  St.,  9 

Willoughby,  Sir  R.,  129,  280 

Wimborne  nunnery,  33 

Winchelsey,  Dr.  T.,  56 

Winchester  College,  175,  276 

Winchester  (Hyde  Abbey,  New  Min- 
ster), 38,  42,  86,  174 


298 


OLD  ENGLISH  LIBRARIES 


Winchester  (S.  Swithin's,  Old  Minster), 

42,  88,  96,  175 
Winchester  illumination,  42 
Windsor  Collegiate  Church,  126,  271 
Wodelarke,  Dr.  R.,  162 
Wolveden,  R.,  125,  276 
Woollaton  Church,  129 
Worcester  College,  51 
Worcester  Priory  (Cathedral),  76,  92, 

96,  114-116,  162,  234 
Worthington,  T.,  281 
Writing:    Irish,    13;    Hiberno-Saxon, 

15,  46  ;  payments  for,  254-255 


Writing-rooms,  50,  51,  73-77,  80,  82, 

88 

Wyche,  R.  de,  54-55,  267 
Wymondham  Abbey,  62 

York  Abbey  and  Cathedral,  33,  35,  36, 

124-125,  186,  263 
York,  All  Saints,  Peseholme,  129 
York,   Austin   Friars'   library,  56,  67, 

68,  103,  271 

York,  Holy  Trinity,  Goodramgate,  128 
York,     S.     Mary's,    Castlegate,     128. 

273 


^rinted  by  MORRISON  &  GIBB  LIMITED,  Edinburgh 


A   SELECTION    OF  BOOKS 

PUBLISHED  BY  METHUEN 

AND    COMPANY    LIMITED 

36  ESSEX  STREET 

LONDON  W.C. 


CONTENTS 


General  Literature  .  ^  .  I 

Ancient  Cities.  ...  15 

Antiquary's  Books.  .  .  15 

Arden  Shakespeare  .  .  15 

Classics  of  Art  ...  16 

"Complete"  Series  .  .  16 

Connoisseur's  Library  .  .  16 
Handbooks  of  English  Church 

History 17 

Illustrated  Pocket  Library  of 

Plain  and  Coloured  Books  17 

Leaders  of  Religion  .  .  18 

Library  of  Devotion  .  .  18 

Little  Books  on  Art  .  .  19 

Little  Galleries  ...  iy 

Little  Guides  ....  19 


FAGB 

Little  Library  .       .       .       .  20 

Little  Quarto  Shakespeare  .  31 

Miniature  Library         .        .  21 

New  Library  of  Medicine  .  21 

New  Library  of  Music         .  22 

Oxford  Biographies        .       .  22 

Romantic  History          .       .  22 

Handbooks  of  Theology       .  22 

Westminster  Commentaries  23 


Fiction          i       .       .       .       i  23 

Books  for  Boys  and  Girls    .  28 

Novels  of  Alexandre  Dumas  29 

Methuen's  Sixpenny  Books .  29 


MAY     1911 


A    SELECTION    OF 


MESSRS.      METHUEN'S 


PUBLICATIONS 


In  this  Catalogue  the  order  is  according  to  authors.    An  asterisk  denotes 


*H  Messrs.  METHU-'S  Novels  issued 
at  a  price  above  2*.  f>d.,  and  similar  editions  are  published  of  some  works  of 
General  Literature.  Colonial  editions  are  only  for  circulation  in  the  British 

^AH^books  Dirked  net  are  not  subject  to  discount,  and  cannot  be  bought 
at  less  than  the  published  price.  Books  not  marked  net  are  subject  to  the 
discount  which  the  bookseller  allows. 

Messrs.  METHUEN'S  books  are  kept  in  stock  by  all  good  booksellers  If 
there  is  any  difficulty  in  seeing  copies,  Messrs.  Methuen  will  be  very  glad  to 
have  early  information,  and  specimen  copies  of  any  books  will  be  sent  on 
receipt  of  the  published  price  plus  postage  for  net  books,  and  of  the  published 

P"  Thisr  CatTk)rgue0contains  only  a  selection  of  the  more  important  books 
published  by  Messrs.  Methuen.  A  complete  and  illustrated  catalogue  of  their 
publications  may  be  obtained  on  application. 


Addleshaw    (Percy).      SIR 

SIDNEY.      Illustrated.      Second  Edition. 
Demy  Zvo.  IQJ.  6d.  net. 

Adeney  (W.  F.),  M.A.  See  Bennett 
(W.H.). 

Ady  (Cecilia  M.).  A  HISTORY  OF 
MILAN  UNDER  THE  SFORZA.  Illus- 
trated. Demy  Zvo.  ior.  6d,  net. 

Aldis  (Janet).  THE  QUEEN  OF 
LETTER  WRITERS,  MARQUISE  DE 
S&VIGNE,  DAME  DE  BOURBILLY,  1626-96. 
Illustrated.  Second  Edition,  Demy  Zvo. 
12*.  6d.  net. 

Allen  (M.).  A  HISTORY  OF  VERONA. 
Illustrated.  Demy  Zvo.  I2J.  6d.  net. 

Amherst  (Lady).  A  SKETCH  OF 
EGYPTIAN  HISTORY  FROM  THE 
EARLIEST  TIMES  TO  THE  PRE- 
SENT DAY.  Illustrated.  A  New  and 
Cheaper  Issue.  Demy  Zvo.  7*.  6d.  net. 

Andrewes  (Amy  G.)  THE  STORY  OF 
BAYARD.  Edited  by  A.  G.  ANDREWES, 
Cr.  Zvff.  »f.  6d. 

Andrewes  (Bishop).  PRECES  PRI- 
VATAE.  Translated  and  edited,  with 
Notes,  by  F.  E.  BRIGHTMAN,  M.A.,  of 
Pusey  House,  Oxford.  Cr.  &vo.  6s. 


Anon.  THE  WESTMINSTER  PRO- 
BLEMS  BOOK.  Prose  and  Verse.  Cora- 
piled  from  The  Saturday  Westminster 
Gazette  Competitions,  1904-1907.  Cr.  %vo. 
3-r.  6d.  net. 

VENICE  AND  HER  TREASURES.  Illus- 
trated. Round  corners.  Fcap.  8vo.  5* .  net. 

Aristotle.  THE  ETHICS  OF.  Edited, 
with  an  Introduction  and  Notes,  by  JOHN 
BURNET,  M.A.  Cheaper  issue.  Demy  &vo. 
ioj.  6d.  net. 

Atkinson  (C.  T.),  M.A.,  Fellow  of  Exeter 
College,  Oxford,  sometime  Demy  of  Mag. 
dalen  College.  A  HISTORY  OF  GER- 
MANY, from  1715-1815.  Illustrated.  Demy 
&V0.  12$.  6d.  net. 

Atkinson  (T.  D.).  ENGLISH  ARCHI- 
TECTURE. Illustrated.  Fcap.Zvo.  y.6d 
net. 

A  GLOSSARY  OF  TERMS  USED  IN 
ENGLISH  ARCHITECTURE.  Illus- 
trated. Second  Edition.  Fcap.  Svo.  3*.  6d. 
net. 

Atteridge  (A.  H.).  NAPOLEON'S 
BROTHERS.  Illustrated.  Demy  Bvo. 
18$.  net. 

Aves  (Ernest).  CO-OPERATIVE  IN- 
DUSTRY. Cr.Zvo.  ss.ttet. 

Bagot  (Richard).  THE  LAKES  OF 
NORTHERN  ITALY.  Illustrated.  Fcap. 
Bvo.  «.  net. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 


Bain  (R.  Nisbet),  THE  LAST  KING 
OF  POLAND  AND  HIS  CONTEM- 
PORARIES. Illustrated.  Demy  8vo. 
IOT.  6d.  net. 

Balfour  (Graham).  THE  LIFE  OF 
ROBERT  LOUIS  STEVENSON.  Illus- 
trated. Fifth.  Edition  in  one  Volume. 
Cr.  8vo,  Buckram^  6s. 

Baring  (The  Hon.  Maurice).  RUSSIAN 
ESSAYS  AND  STORIES.  Second  Ed. 
Cr.  8vo.  $s.  net. 

LANDMARKS  IN  RUSSIAN  LITE- 
RATURE. Second  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 
net. 

Baring-Gould   (S.).      THE    LIFE    OF 

NAPOLEON  BONAPARTE.   Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.    Wide  Royal  8vo.     icxr.  6d. 

THE  TRAGEDY  OF  THE  CJESARS : 
A  STUDY  OF  THE  CHARACTERS  OF  THE 
OESARS  OF  THE  JULIAN  AND  CLAUDIAN 
HOUSES.  Illustrated.  Seventh  Edition. 
Royal  8vo.  iof .  6ef.  net. 

A  BOOK  OF  FAIRY  TALES.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  Buckram.  6t. 
Also  Medium  8vo.  6d. 

OLD  ENGLISH  FAIRY  TALES.  Illus- 
trated. Third  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  Buck- 
ram. 6s. 

THE  VICAR  OF  MORWENSTQW.  Re- 
vised Edition.  With  a  Portrait.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  35.  6d. 

OLD  COUNTRY  LIFE.  Illustrated.  Fifth 
Edition.  Large  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

A  GARLAND  OF  COUNTRY  SONG: 
English  Folk  Songs  with  their  Traditional 
Melodies.  Collected  and  arranged  by  S. 
BARING-GOULD  and  H.  F.  SHEPPARD. 
Demy  Ato.  6s. 

SONGS  OF  THE  WEST:  Folk  Songs  of 
Devon  and  Cornwall.  Collected  from  the 
Mouths  of  the  People.  ByS.  BARING-GOULD, 
M.A.,  and  H.  FLEETWOOD  SHEPPARD,  M.A. 
New  and  Revised  Edition,  under  the  musical 
editorship  of  CECIL  J.  SHARP.  Large  Im- 
perial 8v0.  $s.  net. 

STRANGE  SURVIVALS  :  SOME  CHAPTERS 
IN  THE  HISTORY  OF  MAN.  Illustrated. 
Third  Edition.  Cr.  Bv0.  aj.  6d.  net. 

YORKSHIRE  ODDITIES :  INCIDENTS 
AND  STRANGE  EVENTS.  Fifth  Edition. 
Cr.  %vo.  zs.  6d.  net. 

A  BOOK  OF  CORNWALL.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

A  BOOK  OF  DARTMOOR.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

A  BOOK  OF  DEVON.  Illustrated.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

A  BOOK  OF  NORTH  WALES.  Illus- 
trated. Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

A  BOOK  OF  SOUTH  WALES.  Illus- 
trated. Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

A  BOOK  OF  BRITTANY.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  8vf.  6f. 


A  BOOK  OF  THE  RHINE  :   From  Cleve 

to  Mainz.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

A  BOOK  OF  THE  RIVIERA.  Illus- 
trated. Second  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

A  BOOK  OF  THE  PYRENEES.  Illus- 
trated. Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Barker  (E.),  M.A.,  (Late)  Fellow  of  Merton 
College,  Oxford.  THE  POLITICAL 
THOUGHT  OF  PLATO  AND  ARIS- 
TOTLE. Demy  8v0.  xof.  6d.  net. 

Baron  (R.  R.  N.),  M.A.  FRENCH  PROSE 
COMPOSITION.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr. 
8vo.  zs.  6d.  Keyt  3*-.  net. 

Bartholomew  (J.  G.).  F.R.S.E.  See 
Robertson  (C.  G.). 

Bastable  (C.  P.),  LL.D.  THE  COM- 
MERCE OF  NATIONS.  Fifth  Edition. 
Cr.  8v0.  zs.  6d. 

BastianCH.  Charlton),  M.A.,  M.D..F.R.S. 

THE  EVOLUTION  OF  LIFE.  Illus- 
trated. Demy  8vo.  js.  6d.  net. 

Batson  (Mrs.  Stephen).     A   CONCISE 

HANDBOOK  OF  GARDEN  FLOWERS. 

Fcap.  8vo.     3J.  6d.  net. 
THE      SUMMER      GARDEN      OF 

PLEASURE.      Illustrated.      Wide  Demy 

8v0.     xsr.  net. 

Beckett  (Arthur).     THE   SPIRIT  OF 

THE  DOWNS:  Impressions  and  Remi- 
niscences of  the  Sussex  Downs.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Demy  8v0.  los.  6d.  net. 

Beekford  (Peter).  THOUGHTS  ON 
HUNTING.  Edited  by  J.  OTHO  PAGET. 
Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Demy  Zvo.  6s. 

Begbie  (Harold).   MASTER  WORKERS. 

Illustrated.     Demy  8vo.     js.  6d.  net. 

Behmen  (Jacob).  DIALOGUES  ON  THE 
SUPERSENSUAL  LIFE.  Edited  by 
BERNARD  HOLLAND.  Fcap.  8v0.  3.$-.  6d. 

Bell  (Mrs.  Arthur  G.).  THE  SKIRTS 
OF  THE  GREAT  CITY.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

BellOC  (H.),  M.P.  PARIS.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition,  Revised.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

HILLS  AND  THE  SEA.  Third  Edition. 
Fcap.  8vo.  55. 

ON  NOTHING  AND  KINDRED  SUB- 
JECTS. Third  Edition.  Fcap.  8vo.  $s. 

ON  EVERYTHING.  Second  Edition.  Fcap. 

MARIE     ANTOINETTE.        Illustrated. 

Third  Edition.     Demy  8vo.     155.  net. 
THE     PYRENEES.      Illustrated.      Second 

Edition.    Demy  8vo.    ^s.  6d.  net. 

Bellot  (H.  H.  L.),  M.A.  See  Jones  (L.  A.  A). 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


Bennett  (Joseph).  FORTY  YEARS  OF 
MUSIC,  1865-1905.  Illustrated.  Demy  Bvo. 
*6s.  net. 

Bennett  (W.  H.),  M.A.  A  PRIMER  OF 
THE  BIBLE.  -Fifth  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo. 

2S.  6d. 

Bennett  (W.  H.)  and  Adeney,  (W.  P.).  A 
BIBLICAL  INTRODUCTION.  With  a 
concise  Bibliography.  Sixth  Edition.  Cr. 
Bvo.  js.  6d. 

Benson  (Archbishop).    GOD'S  BOARD. 

Communion    Addresses.      Second   Edition. 
Fcap.  Bvo.    y  ^d.  net. 

Benson  (R.  M.).  THE  WAY  OF  HOLI- 
WESS.  An  Exposition  of  Psalra  cxix. 
Analytical  and  Devotional.  Cr.  Bvo.  $s. 

•Beasusan  (Samuel  L.).  HOME  LIFE 
IN  SPAIN.  Illustrated.  Demy  too. 
lor.  6d.  net. 

Berry  (W.  Grinton),  M.A.  FRANCE 
SINCE  WATERLOO.  Illustrated.  Cr. 
Bvo.  6s. 

Betham-Edwards  (Miss).  HOME  LIFE 
IN  FRANCE.  Illustrated.  Fifth  Edition. 
Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Bindley  (T.  Herbert),  B.D.  THE  OECU- 
MENICAL DOCUMENTS  OF  THE 
FAITH.  With  Introductions  and  Notes. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s.  net. 

Binyon  (Laurence).    See  Blake  (William). 

Blake  (William).  ILLUSTRATIONS  OF 
THE  BOOK  OF  JOB.  With  General  In- 
troduction by  LAURENCE  BINYON.  Illus- 
trated. Quarto,  zis.  net. 

Body  (George).  D.D.  THE  SOUL'S 
PILGRIMAGE  :  Devotional  Readings  from 
the  Published  and  Unpublished  writings  of 
George  Body,  D.D.  Selected  and  arranged 
by  J.  H.  BURN,  D.D.,  F.R.S.E.  Demy 
i6>no.  zs.  6d. 

Boultlng  (W.).  TASSO  AND  HIS  TIMES. 
Illustrated.  Demy  Bvo.  IDJ.  6d.  net. 

Bovill  (W.  B.  Forster).  HUNGARY 
AND  THE  HUNGARIANS.  Illustrated. 
Demy  Bvo.  7*.  6d.  net. 

Bowden  (E.  M.).  THE  IMITATION  OF 
BUDDHA:  Being  Quotations  from 
Buddhist  Literature  for  each  Day  in  the 
Year.  Sixth  Edition.  Cr.  i6mo.  zs.  6d. 

Brabant  (F.  G.),  M.A.  RAMBLES  IN 
SUSSEX.  Illustrated.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Bradley  (A.  G.).  ROUND  ABOUT  WILT- 
SHIRE. Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Cr. 
Bvo.  6s. 

THE  ROMANCE  OF  NORTHUMBER- 
LAND.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Demy 
Bvo.  js.  6d.  net. 


Braid  (James),  Open  Champion,  1901,  1905 
and  1906.  ADVANCED  GOLF.  Illustrated. 
Sixth  Edition.  Demy  Bvo.  ioj.  6d.  net. 

Braid  (James)  and  Others.  GREAT 
GOLFERS  IN  THE  MAKING.  Edited 
by  HENRY  LEACH.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  Bvo.  7*.  6d.  net. 

Brailsford  (H.  N.>  MACEDONIA :  ITS 
RACES  AND  THEIR  FUTURE.  Illustrated. 
Demy  Bvo.  xas.  6d.  net. 

Brodriek  (Mary)  and  Morton  (A.  Ander- 
son). A  CONCISE  DICTIONARY  OF 
EGYPTIAN  ARCHAEOLOGY.  A  Hand- 
book for  Students  and  Travellers.  Illus- 
trated. Cr.  Bvo.  sj.  6d. 

Brown  (J.  Wood),  M.A.  THE  BUILDERS 
OF  FLORENCE.  Illustrated.  Demy  4*0. 
i&r.  net. 

Browning  (Robert).  PARACELSUS. 
Edited  with  Introduction,  Notes,  and  Biblio- 
graphy by  MARGARET  L.  LEE  and  KATHA- 
RINE B.  LOCOCK.  Fcap.  Bvo.  3*.  6d.  net. 

Buekton  (A.  M.).  EAGER  HEART:  A 
Mystery  Play.  Ninth  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo. 
is.  net. 

Budge  (E.  A.  Wallls).  THE  GODS  OF 
THE  EGYPTIANS.  Illustrated.  Two 
Volumes.  Royal  Bvo.  £3  $s.  net. 

Bull  (Paul),  Army  Chaplain.  GOD  AND 
OUR  SOLDIERS.  Second  Edition.  Cr. 
Bvo.  6s. 

Bulley  (Miss).    See  Dilke  (Lady). 

Burns  (Robert),  THE  POEMS.  Edited  by 
ANDREW  LANG  and  W.  A.  CRAIGIE.  With 
Portrait.  Third  Edition.  Wide  Demy  Bvo, 
gilt  top.  6s. 

Bussell  (F.  W.)/  D.D.  CHRISTIAN 
THEOLOGY  AND  SOCIAL  PROGRESS 
(The  Bampton  Lectures  of  1905).  Demy 
Bvo.  zoj.  6d.  net. 

Butler  (Sir  William),  Lieut.-General, 
G.C.B.  THE  LIGHT  OF  THE  WEST. 
With  some  other  Wayside  Thoughts,  1865- 
1908.  Cr.  Bvo.  $s.  net. 

Butlln  (F.  M.).  AMONG  THE  DANES. 
Illustrated.  Demy  Bvo.  -js.  6d.  net. 

Cain  (Georges),  Curator  of  the  Carnavalet 
Museum,  Paris.  WALKS  IN  PARIS. 
Translated  by  A.  R.  ALLINSON,  M.A. 
Illustrated.  Demy  Bvo.  js.  6d.  net. 

Cameron  (Mary  Lovett).  OLDETRURIA 

AND  MODERN  TUSCANY.    Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.     Cr.  Bvo.    6s.  net. 

Garden  (Robert  W.).  THE  CITY  OF 
GENOA.  Illustrated.  Demy  Bvo.  xo*.  6d. 
net. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 


Carlyle  (Thomas).  THE  FRENCH 
REVOLUTION.  Edited  by  C.  R.  L. 
FLETCHER,  Fellow  of  Magdalen  College, 
Oxford.  Three  Volumes.  Cr.  Bvo.  iBs. 

THE  LETTERS  AND  SPEECHES  OF 
OLIVER  CROMWELL.  With  an  In- 
troduction by  C.  H.  FIRTH,  M.A.,  and 
Notes  and  Appendices  by  Mrs.  S.  C.  LOMAS. 
Three  Volumes.  Demy  Zvo.  iBs.  net. 

Celano  (Brother  Thomas  of).  THE 
LIVES  OF  FRANCIS  OF  ASSISI. 
Translated  by  A.  G.  FERRERS  HOWELL. 
Illustrated.  Cr.  Bv0.  $5.  tut. 

Chambers  (Mrs.  Lambert).   Lawn  Tennis 

for  Ladies.  Illustrated.  Crown  Bv0.  as.  6d. 
net. 

Chandler  (Arthur),  Bishop  of  Bloemfontein. 
ARA  CCELI:  AN  ESSAY  IN  MYSTICAL 
THEOLOGY.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo. 
$s.  6d.  net. 

Chesterfield  (Lord),  THE  LETTERS  OF 

THE  EARL  OF  CHESTERFIELD  TO 
HIS  SON.  Edited,  with  an  Introduction  by 
C.  STKACHEY,  with  Notes  by  A.  CALTHROP. 
Two  Volumes.  Cr.  8v0.  izs. 

Chesterton  (G.K.).  CHARLES  DICKENS. 

With  two  Portraits  in  Photogravure.  Seventh 

Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
ALL    THINGS     CONSIDERED.      Sixth 

Edition.     Fcap.  Bvo.     55-. 
TREMENDOUS     TRIFLES.       Fourth 

Edition.     Fcap.  8v0.     5$. 

Clausen  (George),  A.R.A.,  R.W.S.  SIX 
LECTURES  ON  PAINTING.  Illustrated. 
Third  Edition.  Large  Post.  &vo.  y. 6d.net. 

AIMS  AND  IDEALS  IN  ART.  Eight 
Lectures  delivered  to  the  Students  of  the 
Royal  Academy  of  Arts.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Large  Post  8vo.  $s.  net. 

Clutton-Broek  (A.)  SHELLEY:  THE 
MAN  AND  THE  POET.  Illustrated. 
Demy  Bv0.  js.  6d.  net. 

Cobb  (W.  F.),  M.A.  THE  BOOK  OF 
PSALMS  :  with  an  Introduction  and  Notes. 
Demy  Bv0.  los.  6d.  net. 

Cockshott  (  Winifred),  St.  Hilda's  Hall, 
Oxford.  THE  PILGRIM  FATHERS, 
THEIR  CHURCH  AND  COLONY.  Illustrated. 
Demy  Bv0.  js.  6d.  net. 

Collingwood  (W.  G.),  M.A.  THE  LIFE 
OF  JOHN  RUSKIN.  With  Portrait. 
Sixth  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  as.  6d.  net. 

Colvill  (Helen  H.).  ST.  TERESA  OF 
SPAIN.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Demy  8v0.  -js.  6d.  net. 

*Condamine  (Robert  de  la).  THE 
UPPER  GARDEN.  Fcap.  Bvo.  5*.  net. 

Conrad '(Joseph).  THE  MIRROR  OF 
THE  SEA :  Memories  and  Impressions. 
Third  Edition.  Cr.  Bvf.  6s. 


Coolidge  (W.  A.  B.),  M.A.  THE  ALPS 
Illustrated.  Demy  Bv0.  js.  6d.  net. 

Cooper  (C.  S.),F.R.H.S.  See  Westell  (W. P.) 

Coulton  (G.  G.).    CHAUCER  AND  HIS 

ENGLAND.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Demy  Bvff.  ior.  6d.  net. 

Cowper    /William).      THE      POEMS. 

Edited  with  an  Introduction  and  Notes  by 
J.  C.  BAILEY,  M.A.  Illustrated.  Demy 
\vo.  los.  6d.  net. 

Crane  (Walter),  R.W.S.  AN  ARTIST'S 
REMINISCENCES.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  Bvff.  iSs.  net. 

INDIA  IMPRESSIONS.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Demy  Bvo,  ys.6d.net. 

CHspe  (T.  E.).  REMINISCENCES  OF  A 
K.C.  With  2  Portraits.  Second  Edition. 
Demy  Bv0.  IQS.  6d.  net. 

Crowley  (Ralph  H.).  THE  HYGIENE 
OF  SCHOOL  LIFE.  Illustrated.  Cr. 
%vo.  3-r.  6d.  net. 

Dante  (Alighieri).  LA  COMMEDIA  DI 
DANTE.  The  Italian  Text  edited  by 
PAGETTOYNBEE,  M.A.,  D.Litt.  Cr.Bvo.  6s. 

Davey  (Richard).  THE  PAGEANT  OF 
LONDON.  Illustrated.  /«  Two  Volumes. 
Demy  8v0.  i$s.  net. 

Davis  (H.  W.  C.),  M.A.,  Fellow  and  Tutor 
of  Balliol  College.  ENGLAND  UNDER 
THE  NORMANS  AND  ANGEVINS: 
1066-1272.  Illustrated.  DemyBvo.  ios.6d. 
net. 

Deans  (R.  Storry).  THE  TRIALS  OF 
FIVE  QUEENS:  KATHARINE  OF  ARAGON, 
ANNE  BOLEYN,  MARY  QUEEN  OF  SCOTS, 
MARIE  ANTOINETTE  and  CAROLINE  OF 
BRUNSWICK.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Demy  Svo.  ios.  6d.  net. 

Dearmer  (Mabel).     A  CHILD'S  LIFE 

OF  CHRIST.  Illustrated.  Large  Cr. 
Bv0.  6s. 

D'Este  (Margaret).  IN  THE  CANARIES 
WITH  A  CAMERA.  Illustrated.  Cr.  Bvo. 
js.  6d.  net. 

Dickinson  (G.  L.),  M.A.,  Fellow  of  King's 

College,  Cambridge.  THE  GREEK 
VIEW  OF  LIFE.  Seventh  and  Revised 
Edition.  Crown  Sv0.  zs.  6d.  net. 

Ditchfield  (P.  H.),  M.A.,  F.S.A.  THE 
PARISH  CLERK.  Illustrated.  Third 
Edition.  Demy  Bvo.  7s.  6d.  net. 

THE  OLD-TIME  PARSON.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Demy  Svo.  -js.  6d.  net. 

Douglas  (Hugh  A.).  VENICE  ON  FOOT. 
With  the  Itinerary  of  the  Grand  Canal. 
Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Fcap.  %vo. 
5*.  net. 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


Douglas  (James).    THE  MAN  IN  THE 
PULPIT.    Cr.  toff.     zs.  6d.  net. 


Dowden   (J.).  D.D.,  Late  Lord   Bishop  of 
Edinburgh.     FURTHER    ~ 
THE  PRAYER  BOOK. 


STUDIES    IN 
Cr.  8vj.    6s. 


Driver  (S.  R.),  D.D.,  D.C.L.,  Regius  Pro- 
fessor of  Hebrew  in  the  University  of 
Oxford.  SERMONS  ON  SUBJECTS 
CONNECTED  WITH  THE  OLD 
TESTAMENT.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

Duff  (Nora).  MATILDA  OF  TUSCANY. 
Illustrated.  Demy  6v0.  los.  6d.  net. 

Dumas  (Alexandre).  THE  CRIMES  OF 
THE  BORGIAS  AND  OTHERS.  With 
an  Introduction  by  R.  S.  GARNKTT. 
Illustrated.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

THE  CRIMES  OF  URBAIN  GRAN- 
DIERAND  OTHERS.  Illustrated.  Cr. 

THV  CRIMES    OF    THE    MARQUISE 

DE  BRINVILLIERS    AND    OTHERS. 

Illustrated.     Cr.  8vo.     6s. 
THE   CRIMES    OF    ALI    PACHA    AND 

OTHERS.     Illustrated.     Cr.  %vo.     6s. 
MY    MEMOIRS.      Translated     by    E.     M. 

WALLER.  With  an  Introduction  by  ANDREW 

LANG.     With  Frontispieces  in  Photogravure. 

In  six  Volumes.     Cr.  &vo.     6s.  each  volume. 

VOL.  I.  1802-1821.     VOL.  IV.  1830-1831. 

VOL.  II.  1822-1825.     VOL.    V.  1831-1832 

VOL.  III.  1826-1830.     VOL.  VI.  1832-1833. 
MY    PETS.     Newly    translated    by    A.   R. 

ALLINSON,  M.A.    Illustrated.    Cr.  8vo.   6s. 

Duncan  (David),  D.Sc.,  LL.D.  THE  LIFE 
AND  LETTERS  OF  HERBERT 
SPENCER.  Illustrated.  Demylvo.  15*. 

Dunn-Pattison  (R.  P.).  NAPOLEON'S 
MARSHALS.  Illustrated.  Demy  8vo. 
Second  Edition,  izs.  6d.  net. 

THE  BLACK  PRINCE.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Demy  8v0.  -js.  6d.  net. 

Durham  (The  Earl  of).  A  REPORT  ON 
CANADA.  With  an  Introductory  Note. 
Demy  8v0.  4*.  6d.  net. 

Dutt(W.A.).  THE  NORFOLK  BROADS. 
Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

WILD  LIFE  IN  EAST  ANGLIA.  Illus- 
trated. Second  Edition.  Demy  8v0.  js.  6d. 
net. 

Edmonds  (Major  J.  E.),  R.E. ;  D.  A. 
Q.-M,  G.  See  Wood  (W.  Birkbeck). 

Edwardes  (Tickner).  THE  LORE  OF 
THE  HONEY  BEE.  Illustrated.  Cr. 

LIFT-LUCK  ON  SOUTHERN  ROADS. 
Illustrated.  Cr.  toff.  6t. 


Egerton  (H.  E.),  M.A.  A  HISTORY  OF 
BRITISH  COLONIAL  POLICY.  Third 
Edition.  Demy  8vo.  7$.  6d.  net. 

Everett-Green  (Mary  Anne).  ELIZA- 
BETH ;  ELECTRESS  PALATINE  AND 
QUEEM  OF  BOHEMIA.  Revised  by 
her  Niece  S.  C.  LOMAS.  With  a  Prefatory 
Note  by  A.  W.  WARD,  Litt.D.  Demy  8v0. 
IQJ.  6d.  net. 

Fairbrother  (W.  H.),  M.A.  THE  PHILO- 
SOPHY; OF  T.  H.  GREEN.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  3*.  6d. 

Fea  (Allan).  THE  FLIGHT  OF  THE 
KING.  Illustrated.  New  and  Revised 
Edition.  Demy  8z>o.  is.  6d.  net. 

SECRET  CHAMBERS  AND  HIDING- 
PLACES.  Illustrated.  New  and  Revised 
Edition.  Demy  8va.  "js.  6d.  net. 

JAMES  II.  AND  HIS  WIVES.  Illustrated. 
Demy  8v0.  IQS.  6d.  net. 

Fell  (E.  F.  B.).  THE  FOUNDATIONS 
OF  LIBERTY.  Cr.  8vo.  5s .  net. 

Firth  (C.  H.),  M.A.,  Regius  Professor  of 
Modern  History  at  Oxford.  CROM- 
WELL'S ARMY  :  A  History  of  the  English 
Soldier  during  the  Civil  Wars,  the  Common- 
wealth, and  the  Protectorate.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

FitzGerald  (Edward).  THE  RUBAIYAT 
OF  OMAR  KHAYYAM.  Printed  from 
the  Fifth  and  last  Edition.  With  a  Com- 
mentary by  Mrs.  STEPHEN  BATSON,  and  a 
Biography  of  Omar  by  E.  D.  Ross.  Cr. 
Zvo.  6s. 

•Fletcher  (B.  F.  and  H.  P.).  THE 
ENGLISH  HOME.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  8vo.  izs.  6d.  net. 

Fletcher  (J.  S.).  A  BOOK  OF  YORK- 
SHIRE. Illustrated.  Demy  8vo.  7*.  6d. 
net. 

Flux  (A.  W.),  M.A.,  William  Dow  Professor 
of  Political  Economy  in  M'Gill  University. 
Montreal.  ECONOMIC  PRINCIPLES. 
Demy  8v0.  js.  6d.  net. 

Foot  (Constance  M.).  INSECT  WON- 
DERLAND. Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  8vo.  3^.  6d.  net. 

Forel  (A.).  THE  SENSES  OF  INSECTS. 
Translated  by  MACLEOD  YEARSLEY.  Illus- 
trated. Demy  8v0.  ioj.  6d.  net. 

Fouque"  (La  Motte).  SINTRAM  AND 
HIS  COMPANIONS.  Translated  by  A. 
C.  FARQUHARSON.  Illustrated.  DemySvo. 
7s.  6d.  net.  H*lf  White  Vellum,  10*.  6d. 
net. 

Fraser  (J.  F.).  ROUND  THE  WORLD 
ON  A  WHEEL.  Illustrated.  Fifth 
Edition.  Cr.toff.  6t. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 


Galton  (Sir  Francis),  F.R.S. ;  D.C.L., 
Oxf.  ;  Hon.  Sc.D.,  Camb. ;  Hon.  Fellow 
Trinity  College,  Cambridge.  MEMORIES 
OF  MY  LIFE.  Illustrated.  Third  Edition. 
Demy  8v0.  IQJ.  6d.  net. 

Garnett  (Lucy  M.  J.).     THE  TURKISH 

PEOPLE  :  THEIR  SOCIAL  LIFE,  RELIGIOUS 
BELIEFS  AND  INSTITUTIONS,  AND  DOMESTIC 
LIFE.  Illustrated.  Demy  8v0.  10$.  6d. 
net. 

Gibbins  (H.  de  B-),  Litt.D.,  M.A.  IN- 
DUSTRY IN  ENGLAND  :  HISTORI- 
CAL OUTLINES.  With  5  Maps.  Fifth 
Edition-  Demy  8v0.  10$.  6d. 

THE  INDUSTRIAL  HISTORY  OF 
ENGLAND.  Illustrated .  Sixteenth 
Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  35. 

ENGLISH   SOCIAL  REFORMERS. 
Second  Edition.     Cr.  $vo.     zs.  6d. 
See  also  Hadfield,  R.A. 

Gibbon  (Edward).  MEMOIRS  OF  THE 
LIFE  OF  EDWARD  GIBBON.  Edited 
by  G.  BIRKBECK  HILL,  LL.D.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

*THE  DECLINE  AND  FALL  OF  THE 
ROMAN  EMPIRE.  Edited,  with  Notes, 
Appendices,  and  Maps,  by  J.  B.  BURY, 
M.A.,  Litt.D.,  Regius  Professor  of  Modern 
History  at  Cambridge.  Illustrated.  In 
Seven  Volumes.  Demy  8v0.  Gilt  Top. 
Each  ioj.  6d.  net. 

Gibbs  (Philip.)  THE  ROMANCE  OF 
GEORGE  VILLIERS:  FIRST  DUKE 
OF  BUCKINGHAM,  AND  SOME  MEN 
AND  WOMEN  OF  THE  STUART 
COURT.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Demy  8vo.  15*.  net. 

Gloag  (M.  R.)  and  Wyatt  (Kate  M.).  A 
BOOK  OF  ENGLISH  GARDENS. 
Illustrated.  Demy  %vo.  IQJ.  6d.  net. 

Glover  (T.  R.),  M.A.,  Fellow  and  Classical 
Lecturer  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge. 
THE  CONFLICT  OF  RELIGIONS  IN 
THE  EARLY  ROMAN  EMPIRE. 
Fourth  Edition.  Demy  8v0.  ys.  6d.  net. 

Godfrey  (Elizabeth).  A  BOOK  OF  RE- 
MEMBRANCE. Being  Lyrical  Selections 
for  every  day  in  the  Year.  Arranged  by 
E.  Godfrey.  Second  Edition.  Fcap.  8vo. 

ENGLISH  CHILDREN  IN  THE  OLDEN 
TIME.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Demy 
Bvff.  js.  6d.  net. 

Godley  (A.  DJ,  M.A.,  Fellow  of  Magdalen 
College,  Oxford.  OXFORD  IN  THE 
EIGHTEENTH  CENTURY.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Demy  8v0.  js.  6d.  net. 

LYRA  FRIVOLA.  Fourth  Edition.  Fca^. 
8vo.  zs.  6d. 

VERSES  TO  ORDER.  Second  Edition. 
Fcap.  8vo.  zs.  6d. 

SECOND  STRINGS.    Fcaf.  too.    *s.  6d. 


Goll  (August).  CRIMINAL  TYPES  IN 
SHAKESPEARE.  Authorised  Transla- 
tion from  the  Danish  by  Mrs.  CHARLES 
WEEKES.  Cr.  Svo.  5*.  net. 

Gordon  (Lina  Duff)  (Mrs.  Aubrey  Water- 
field).  HOME  LIFE  IN  ITALY  :  LETTERS 
FROM  THE  APENNINES.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  8v0.  los.  6d.  net. 

Gostling  (Frances  M.).  THE  BRETONS 
AT  HOME.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Demy  8vo.  ioj.  6d.  net. 

Graham  (Harry).  A  GROUP  OF  SCOT- 
TISH WOMEN.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  8v0.  ios.  fid.  net. 

Grahame  (Kenneth).  THE  WIND  IN 
THE  WILLOWS.  Illustrated.  Fifth 
Edition.  Cr.  %vo.  6s. 

Gwynn  (Stephen),  M.P.  A  HOLIDAY 
IN  CONNEMARA.  Illustrated.  Demy 
8z/0.  ioj  6d.  net. 

Hall  (Cyril).  THE  YOUNG  CARPEN- 
TER. Illustrated.  Cr.  8vo.  55. 

Hall  (Hammond).  THE  YOUNG  EN- 
GINEER: or  MODERN  ENGINES  AND  THEIR 
MODELS.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  8v0.  $s. 

Hall  (Mary).  A  WOMAN'S  TREK  FROM 
THE  CAPE  TO  CAIRO.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Demy  8vo.  i6j.  net. 

Hannay  (D.).  A  SHORT  HISTORY  OF 
THE  ROYAL  NAVY.  Vol.  I.,  1217-1688. 
Vol.  II.,  1689-1815.  Demy  8v0.  Each 
•js.  6d.  net. 

Hannay  (James  0.),  M.A.  THE  SPIRIT 
AND  ORIGIN  OF  CHRISTIAN 
MONASTICISM.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

THE  WISDOM  OF  THE  DESERT.  Fcap. 
8v0.  3-r.  6d.  net. 

Harper  (Charles  G.).    THE  AUTOCAR 
ROAD-BOOK.     Four  Volumes  with  Maps. 
Cr.  8vo.     Each  js.  6d.  net. 
Vol.  I. — SOUTH  OF  THE  THAMES. 
Vol.  II.— NORTH    AND    SOUTH    WALES 
AND  WEST  MIDLANDS. 

Headley  (F.  W.).  DARWINISM  AND 
MODERN  SOCIALISM.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  8vo.  5f.  net. 

Henderson  (B.  W.),  Fellow  of  Exeter, 
College,  Oxford.  THE  LIFE  AND 
PRINCIPATE  OF  THE  EMPEROR 
NERO.  Illustrated.  New  and  cheaper 
issue.  Demy  8v0.  js.  6d.  net. 


Henderson     (M. 
MEREDITH  ; 

REFORMER.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  too.    6t. 


Sturge).      GEORGE 
NOVELIST,       POET, 


8 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


Henderson  (T.  F.)  and  Watt  (Francis). 
SCOTLAND  OF  TO-DAY.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Cr,  8vo.  6s. 

Henley  (W.  E.).  ENGLISH  LYRICS. 
CHAUCER  TO  POE,  1340-1849.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  zs.  6d.  net. 

Heywood  (W.).  A  HISTORY  OF  PE- 
RUGIA.  Illustrated.  Demy  8v0.  12*.  6d. 
net. 

Hill  (George  Francis).  ONE  HUNDRED 
MASTERPIECES  OF  SCULPTURE. 
Illustrated.  Demy  8v0.  ioj.  6d.  net. 

Hind  (C.  Lewis).  DAYS  IN  CORNWALL. 
Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Hobhouse  (L.  T.),  late  Fellow  of  C.C.C., 
Oxford.  THE  THEORY  OF  KNOW- 
LEDGE. Demy  8v0.  IQS.  6d.  net. 

Hodgetts  (E.  A.  Brayley).  THE  COURT 
OF  RUSSIA  IN  THE  NINETEENTH 


CENTURY.     Illustrated. 
Demy  8z>0.     24^.  net. 


Two  volumes. 


Hodgson  (Mrs.  W-).  HOW  TO  IDENTIFY 
OLD  CHINESE  PORCELAIN.  Illus- 
trated. Second  Edition.  Post  8vo.  6s. 

Holdieh  (SirT.  H.),  K.C.I.E.,  C.B.,  F.S.A. 
THE  INDIAN  BORDERLAND,  1880- 
1900.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Demy 
8v0.  ioj.  6d.  net. 

Holdsworth  (W.  S.),  D.C.L.  A  HISTORY 
OF  ENGLISH  LAW.  In  Four  Volumes. 
Vols.  /.,  77.,  777.  Demy  8v0.  Each  los.  6d, 
net. 

Holland    (Clive).     TYROL    AND    ITS 

PEOPLE.    Illustrated.  Demy  8vo.   los.  6d. 
net. 

Horsburgh  (E.  L.  S.),  M.A.  LORENZO 
THE  MAGNIFICENT:  AND  FLORENCE 
IN  HER  GOLDEN  AGE.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  8v0.  15$.  net. 

WATERLOO  :  with  Plans.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  8v0.  $s. 

Hosie  (Alexander).  MANCHURIA.  Illus- 
trated. Second  Edition.  Demy  8v0.  ys.  6d. 
net. 

Hulton  (Samuel  F.).  THE  CLERK  OF 
OXFORD  IN  FICTION.  Illustrated. 
Demy  8v0.  IQJ.  6d.  net. 

•Humphreys  (John  H.).  PROPOR- 
TIONAL REPRESENTATION.  Cr.  8v0. 
3-r.  6d.  net. 

Hutchinson  (Horace  G.).  THE  NEW 
FOREST.  Illustrated.  Fourth  Edition. 
Cr.  8vff.  6s. 


Button    (Edward).     THE  CITIES   OF 

UMBRIA.      Illustrated.      Feurth  Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
THE     CITIES    OF     SPAIN.      Illustrated. 

Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.    6s. 
FLORENCE     AND     THE     CITIES    OF 

NORTHERN  TUSCANY.WITH 

GENOA.      Illustrated.      Second   Edition. 

Crown  8vo.    6s. 
ENGLISH    LOVE    POEMS.    Edited    with 

an  Introduction.     Fcap.  8v0.     3$.  6d.  net. 
COUNTRY  WALKS  ABOUT  FLORENCE. 

Illustrated.     Fcap.  8v0.     5$.  net. 
IN    UNKNOWN    TUSCANY      With     an 

Appendix  by  WILLIAM   HEYWOOD.     Illus- 

trated.  Second  Edition.    Demy  8v0.   js.  6d. 

net. 
ROME.    Illustrated.    Second   Edition.     Cr. 

8v0.     6s. 

Hyett  (F.  A.)    FLORENCE  :  HER  HISTORY 

AND  ART   TO   THE  FALL  OF   THE  REPUBLIC. 

Demy  8v0.     js.  6d.  net. 

Ibsen      (Henrik).     BRAND.     A    Drama. 

Translated  by  WILLIAM  WILSON.     Fourth 
Edition.     Cr.  8vo.   3*.  6d. 


Inge  (  W.  R.),  M.A.,  Fellow  and  Tutor  of 
Hertford  College,  Oxford.  CHRISTIAN 
MVSTICISM.  (The  Bampton  Lectures  of 
1899.)  Demy  8v0.  izs.  €>d.  net. 

Innes  (A.  D.)f  M.A.  A  HISTORY  OF  THE 

BRITISH   IN   INDIA.     With   Maps  and 

Plans.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
ENGLAND    UNDER     THE     TUDORS. 

With  Maps.      Third  Edition.     Demy  8v0. 

ioj.  6d.  net. 

Innes  (Mary).  SCHOOLS  OF  PAINT- 
ING. Illustrated.  Cr.  8v0.  5*.  net. 

James  (Norman  G.  B.).  THE  CHARM 
OF  SWITZERLAND.  Cr.  8vo.  5*.  net. 


Jeffery    (Reginald 
HISTORY 


W.),  M.A.  THE 
OF  THE  THIRTEEN 
COLONIES  OF  NORTH  AMERICA, 
1497-1763.  Illustrated.  Demy  8v0.  ^s.  6d. 
net. 


Jenks  (E.),  M.A.,  B.C.L.  AN  OUTLINE 
OF  ENGLISH  LOCAL  GOVERNMENT. 
Second  Edition.  Revised  by  R.  C.  K. 
ENSOR,  M.A.  Cr.  8v0.  as.  6d. 

Jernlngham  (Charles  Edward).  THE 
MAXIMS-  OF  MARMADUKE.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  $s. 

Johnston  (Sir  H.  H.),  K.C.B.  BRITISH 
CENTRAL  AFRICA.  Illustrated.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  4*0.  iSs.  net. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 


*THE  NEGRO  IN  THE  NEW  WORLD. 

Illustrated.    Demy  too.    i6s.  net. 

Jones  (R.  Crompton),  M.A.  POEMS  OF 
THE  INNER  LIFE.  Selected  by  R.  C. 
JONES.  Thirteenth  Edition.  Fcnp  too, 
zs.  6d.  net. 

Julian  (Lady)  of  Norwich.  REVELA- 
TIONS OF  DIVINE  LOVE.  Edited  by 
GRACE  WARRACK.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr. 
too.  3-r.  6d. 

'Kappa.'    LET  YOUTH   BUT    KNOW: 

A  Plea  for  Reason  in  Education.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  too.  3*.  6d.  net. 

Keats  (John).  THE  POEMS.  Edited 
with  Introduction  and  Notes  by  E.  de 
SELINCOURT,  M.A.  With  a  Frontispiece  in 
Photogravure.  Second  Edition  Revised. 
Demy  too.  js.  6d.  net. 

Keble  (John).    THE  CHRISTIAN  YEAR. 

With  an  Introduction  and  Notes  by  W. 
LOCK,  D.D.,  Warden  of  Keble  College. 
Illustrated.  Third  Edition.  Fcap.  too. 
$s.  6d. ;  padded  morocco,  $s. 

Kempis  (Thomas  a).  THE  IMITATION 
OF  CHRIST.  With  an  Introduction  by 
DEAN  FARRAR.  Illustrated.  Third 
Edition.  Fcap.  toff.  3s.  6d. ;  padded 
morocco,  $s. 

Also  translated  by  C.    BIGG,  D.D.     Cr. 
too.     3-r.  6d. 

KCPP  (S.  Parnell).  GEORGE  SELWYN 
AND  THE  WITS.  Illustrated.  Demy 
too.  I2J.  6d.  net. 

Kipling   (Rudyapd).    BARRACK-ROOM 

BALLADS.  ioo//z  Thousand.  Twenty- 
ninth  Edition.  Cr.  too.  6s.  Also  Fcap. 
too,  Leather.  5*.  net. 

THE  SEVEN  SEAS.  84^  Thousand. 
Seventeenth  Edition.  Cr.  too.  6s.  Also 
Fcap.  too,  Leather.  $s.  net. 

THE  FIVE  NATIONS.  7oM  Thousand. 
Seventh  Edition.  Cr.  too.  6s.  Also  Fcap. 
too.  Leather.  5*.  net. 

DEPARTMENTAL  DITTIES.  Nineteenth 
Edition.  Cr.  too.  6s.  Also  Fcap.  too, 
Leather.  $s.  net. 

Knox  (Winifred  P.).  THE  COURT  OF 
A  SAINT.  Illustrated.  Demy  too. 
los.  6d.  net. 

Lamb  (Chaples  and  Mapy),  THE  WORKS. 
Edited  by  E.  V.  LUCAS.  Illustrated.  In 
Seven  Volumes.  Demy  too.  js.  6d.  each. 

Lane-Poole  (Stanley).  A  HISTORY  OF 
EGYPT  IN  THE  MIDDLE  AGES. 
Illustrated.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

Lankester  (Sip  Ray),  K.C.B.,  F.R.S. 
SCIENCE  FROM  AN  EASY  CHAIR. 
Illustrated.  Fifth  Edition.  Cr.  too.  6f. 


Leach  (Henpy).  THE  SPIRIT  OF  THE 
LINKS.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

Le  Braz  (Anatole).  THE  LAND  OF 
PARDONS.  Translated  by  FRANCES  M. 
GOSTLING.  Illustrated.  Third  Edition. 
Cr.  too.  6s. 

Lees  (Frederick).  A  SUMMER  IN 
TOURAINE.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Demy  too.  IOT.  6d.  net. 

Lindsay  (Lady  Mabel).  ANNI  DOMINI : 
A  GOSPEL  STUDY.  With  Maps.  Two 
Volumes.  Super  Royal  too.  los.  net. 

Llewellyn  (Owen)  and  Raven-Hill  (L.). 
THE  SOUTH-BOUND  CAR.  Illustrated. 
Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Lock  (Walter),  D.D.,  Warden  of  Keble 
College.  ST.  PAUL,  THE  MASTER- 
BUILDER.  Third  Edition.  Cr.  too 
3-r.  6d. 

THE  BIBLE  AND  CHRISTIAN  LIFE. 
Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

Lodge  (Sip  Oliver),  F.R.S.  THE  SUB- 
STANCE OF  FAITH,  ALLIED  WITH 
SCIENCE :  A  Catechism  for  Parents  and 
Teachers.  Tenth  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  2s  net 

MAN  AND  THE  UNIVERSE  :  A  STUDY 
OF  THE  INFLUENCE  OF  THE  ADVANCE  IN 
SCIENTIFIC  KNOWLEDGE  UPON  OUR  UNDER- 
STANDING OF  CHRISTIANITY.  Ninth 
Edition.  Crown  8z>0.  $s.  net. 

THE  SURVIVAL  OF  MAN.  A  STUDY  IN 
UNRECOGNISED  HUMAN  FACULTY.  Fifth 
Edition.  Crown  8z>0.  $s.  net. 


Lofthouse  (W.  P.),  M.A. 
ATONEMENT.      With    a 
Demy  too.     $s.  net. 


ETHICS  AND 
Frontispiece. 


Lopimep  (George  Hopace). 
FROM    A    SELF-MADE 


LETTERS 
MERCHANT 
TO   HIS  SON.     Illustrated.     Eighteenth 
Edition.    Cr.  8w.     T,S.  6d. 
OLD     GORGON    GRAHAM.      Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.    6s. 

Loplmer  (Norma).  BY  THE  WATERS 
OF  EGYPT.  Illustrated.  Demy  too.  i6s. 
net. 

Lucas  (E,  V.).  THE  LIFE  OF  CHARLES 
LAMB.  Illustrated.  Fifth  and  Revised 
Edition  in  One  Volume.  Demy  too.  js.  6d. 

A  "WANDERER  IN  HOLLAND,   uius. 

trated.     Twelfth  Edition.     Cr.  too.     6s. 

A  WANDERER  IN  LONDON.  Illus- 
trated. Tenth  Edition.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

A  WANDERER  IN  PARIS.  Illustrated. 
Sixth  Edition.  Cr.  too.  6s. 


A  2 


IO 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


5*. 
FIR 


THE    OPEN    ROAD:    A  Little    Book  for 

Wayfarers.      Seventeenth    Edition.      Fcp. 

8z>0.     5.y.  ;  India.  Paper^  js.  6d. 
THE  FRIENDLY  TOWN  :    a  Little  Book 

for  the  Urbane.    Sixth  Edition.    Fcap.  too. 
.  ;     India  Pater,  js.  6d. 
ESIDE     AND      SUNSHINE.      Sixth 

Edition.     Fcap.  8v0.     5$. 
CHARACTER    AND     COMEDY.      Sixth 

Edition.     Fcap.  8z>0.     $s. 
THE    GENTLEST    ART.      A    Choice   of 

Letters    by    Entertaining    Hands.      Sixth 

Edition.     Fcap  %vo.     5$. 
A   SWAN   AND    HER    FRIENDS.    Illus- 

trated.   Demy  too.     i2J.  6d.  net. 
HER  INFINITE  VARIETY:  A  FEMININB 

PORTRAIT     GALLERY.       Fifth      Edition. 

Fcap.  8vo.     w. 
LISTENER'S  LURE  :    AN  OBLIQUE   NAR- 

RATION.    Eighth  Edition.     Fcap.  too.     $s. 
GOOD    COMPANY:   A    RALLY    OF   MEN. 

Second  Edition.     Fcap.  Zvo.     5$. 
ONE    DAY    AND    ANOTHER.     Fourth 

Edition.     Fcap.  8vo.     $s. 
OVER    BEMERTON'S:    AN    EASY-GOING 

CHRONICLE.      Ninth  Edition.     Fcap.  %vo. 

5J- 
M.  (R.).     THE  THOUGHTS  OF  LUCIA 

HALLIDAY.     With  some  of  her  Letters. 

Edited  by  R.  M.     Fcap.  too.     zs.  6d.  net. 

Maeaulay  (Lord).  CRITICAL  AND 
HISTORICAL  ESSAYS.  Edited  by  F. 
C.  MONTAGUE.  M.A.  Three  Volumes. 
Cr.  too.  1  8s. 

McCabe  (Joseph)  (formerly  Very  Rev.  F. 
ANTONY,  O.S.F.).  THE  DECAY  OF 
THE  CHURCH  OF  ROME.  Third 
Edition.  Demy  too.  js.  6d.  net. 

MeCullagh  (Francis).  The  Fall  of  Abd-ul- 
Hamid.  Illustrated.  Demy  8vo.  IQJ.  6d. 
net. 

MaeCunn  (Florence  A.)-  MARY 
STUART.  Illustrated.  Neiv  and  Cheaper 
Edition.  Large  Cr.  too.  6s. 

McDougall  (William),  M.A.  (Oxon.,  M.B. 

(Cantab.).      AN     INTRODUCTION    TO 

SOCIAL  PSYCHOLOGY.    Third  Edition. 

Cr.  too.     ss-  ngt. 
'  Mdlle.  Mori  '  (Author  of).  ST.  CATHER- 

INE   OF    SIENA    AND    HER  TIMES. 

Illustrated.     Second  Edition.      Demy  %vo. 

^s.  6d.  net. 

Maeterlinck  (Maurice).  THE  BLUE 
BIRD  :  A  FAIRY  PLAY  IN  Six  ACTS. 
Translated  by  ALEXANDER  TEIXEIRA  DE 
MATTOS.  Tiventieth  Edition.  Fcap.  too. 
Deckle  Edges.  3^.  6d.  net.  Also  Fcap.  8w. 
Paper  covers,  is.  net. 

Mahaffy  (J.  P.),  Litt.D.  A  HISTORY  OF 
THE  EGYPT  OF  THE  PTOLEMIES. 
Illustrated.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

Maitland  (F.  W.)t  M.A.,  LL.D.  ROMAN 
CANON  LAW  IN  THE  CHURCH  OF 
ENGLAND.  Royal  too.  js.  6d. 


Marett  (R.  R.),  M.A.,  Fellow  and  Tutor  of 
Exeter  College,  Oxford.  THE  THRES- 
HOLD OF  RELIGION.  Cr.  too.  y.  6d. 
net. 

Marriott  (Charles).  A  SPANISH  HOLT- 
DAY.  Illustrated.  Demy  8vo.  js.  6d.  net. 

Marriott  (J.  A.  R.),  M.A.  THE  LIFE 
AND  TIMES  OF  LORD  FALKLAND. 
Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Demy  &vo. 
•JS.  6d.  net. 

Masefleld  (John).  SEA  LIFE  IN  NEL- 
SON'S TIME.  Illustrated.  Cr.  too. 
3^.  6d.  net. 

A  SAILOR'S  GARLAND.  Selected  and 
Edited.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  too.  35.  6d. 

AN-  ENGLISH  PROSE  MISCELLANY. 
Selected  and  Edited.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

Masterman  (C.  F.  G.),  M.A..  M.P., 
TENNYSON  AS  A  RELIGIOUS 
TEACHER.  Second  Edition.  Cr.Zvo.  6s. 

THE  CONDITION  OF  ENGLAND. 
Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

Mayne  (Ethel  Colburn).  ENCHANTERS 

OF  MEN.   Illustrated.   Demy  too.    los.  6d. 
net. 

Meakin  (Annette  M.  B.),  Fellow  of  the 
Anthropological  Institute.  WOMAN  IN 
TRANSITION.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

GALICIA:  THE  SWITZERLAND  OF  SPAIN. 
Illustrated.  Demy  too.  izs.  6d.  net. 

Medley  (D.  J.),  M.A.,  Professor  of  History 
in  the  University  of  Glasgow.  ORIGINAL 
ILLUSTRATIONS  OF  ENGLISH  CON- 
STITUTIONAL HISTORY,  COMPRISING 
A  SELECTED  NUMBER  OF  THE  CHIEF 
CHARTERS  AND  STATUTES.  Cr.  too.  ^s.  6d. 
net. 

Methuen.(A.  M.  SO,  M.A.  THE  TRAGEDY 
OF  SOUTH  AFRICA.  Cr.  too.  as.  net. 

ENGLAND'S  RUIN:  DISCUSSED  IN  FOUR- 
TEEN LETTERS  TO  A  PROTECTIONIST. 
Ninth  Edition.  Cr.  too.  3^.  net. 

Meynell  (Everard).  COROT  AND  HIS 
FRIENDS.  Illustrated.  Demy  too.  ios.6d. 
net. 

Miles  (Eustace),  M.A.  LIFE  AFTER 
LIFE:  OR,  THE  THEORY  OF  REINCARNA- 
TION. Cr.  8v0.  2S.  6d.  net. 

THE  POWER  OF  CONCENTRATION  : 
How  TO  ACQUIRE  IT.  Third  Edition. 
Cr.  too.  3-r.  6d.  net. 

Millais  (J.  G.).  THE  LIFE  AND  LET- 
TERS OF  SIR  JOHN  EVERETT 
MILLAIS,  President  of  the  Royal  Academy. 
Illustrated.  New  Edition.  Demy  too. 
js.  6d.  net. 

Milne  (J.  G.),  M.A.  A  HISTORY  OF 
EGYPT  UNDER  ROMAN  RULE. 
Illustrated.  Cr.  too.  6s. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 


ii 


Mitton  (0.  EO,  JANE  AUSTEN  AND 
HER  TIMES.  Illustrated.  Second  and 
Cheaper  Edition.  Large  Cr.  too.  6s. 

Moffat  (Mary  M.).  QUEEN  LOUISA  OF 
PRUSSIA.  Illustrated.  Fourth  Edition. 
Cr.  too.  6s. 

Money  (L.  G.  Chiozza\  M.P.  RICHES 
AND  POVERTY  (1910).  Tenth  Edition. 
Demy  too.  $s.  net. 

MONEY'S  FISCAL  DICTIONARY,  1910. 
Demy  too.  Second  Edition.  $s.  net. 

Moore  (T.  Sturge).  ART  AND  LIFE. 
Illustrated.  Cr.  too.  55.  net. 

Moorhouse  (E.  Hallam).  NELSON'S 
LADY  HAMILTON.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  too.  js .  6d.  net. 

Morgan  (J.  HO,  M.A.  THE  HOUSE 
OF  LORDS  AND  THE  CONSTITU- 
TION. With  an  Introduction  by  the  LORD 
CHANCELLOR.  Cr.  too.  is.  net. 

Morton  (A.  Anderson).  See  Brodrick  (MO. 

Norway  (A.  HO-  NAPLES.  PAST  AND 
PRESENT.  Illustrated.  Third  Edition. 
Cr.  too.  6s. 

Oman  (C.  W.  CO,  M.A.,  Fellow  of  All 
Souls',  Oxford.  A  HISTORY  OF  THE 
ART  OF  WAR  IN  THE  MIDDLE 
AGES.  Illustrated.  Demy  too.  IQJ.  6d. 
net. 

ENGLAND  BEFORE  THE  NORMAN 
CONQUEST.  With  Maps.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  too.  IQJ.  6d.  net. 

Oxford  (M.  N.),  of  Guy's  Hospital.  A 
HANDBOOK  OF  NURSING.  Fifth 
Edition.  Cr.  too.  $s.  6d. 

Pakes  (W.  C.  CO-  THE  SCIENCE  OF 
HYGIENE.  Illustrated.  Demy  too.  15*. 

Parker  (Eric).  THE  BOOK  OF  THE 
ZOO ;  BY  DAY  AND  NIGHT.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

Parsons  (Mrs.  C.).  THE  INCOMPAR- 
ABLE SID  DONS.  Illustrated.  Demy 
too.  I2J.  6d.  net. 

Patmore  (K.  A.).  THE  COURT  OF 
LOUIS  XIII.  Illustrated.  Third  Edition, 
Demy  too.  ioj.  6d.  net. 

Patterson  (A.  HO-  MAN  AND  NATURE 
ON  TIDAL  WATERS.  Illustrated.  Cr. 
too.  6s. 

Petrie  (W.  M.  Flinders),  D.C.L.,  LL.D., 

Professor  of  Egyptology  at  University  Col- 
lege.    A   HISTORY   OF   EGYPT.     Illus- 


trated. 

tack. 


In  Six   Volumes.      Cr.   too.    6s. 


VOL.   I.    FROM    THE   EARLIEST    KINGS   TO 

XVlTH  DYNASTY.    Sixth  Edition. 
VOL.    II.       THE    XVIlTH    AND    XVIIlTH 

DYNASTIES.    Fourth  Edition. 
VOL.  III.    XIXTH  TO  XXXTH  DYNASTIES. 
VOL.  IV.      EGYPT    UNDER  THK  PTOLEMAIC 

DYNASTY.    J.  P.  MAHAFFY,  Litt.D. 
VOL.  V.    EGYPT  UNDER  ROMAN  RULE.    J.  G. 

MILNB,  M.A. 
VOL.   VI.    EGYPT    IN  THB    MIDDLE  AGES. 

STANLEY  LANE-POOLE,  M.A. 
RELIGION     AND      CONSCIENCE     IN 

ANCIENT    EGYPT.     Lectures    delivered 

at  University  College,  London.     Illustrated. 

Cr.  too.    is.  6d. 
SYRIA  AND  EGYPT,  FROM  THE  TELL 

EL   AMARNA      LETTERS.      Cr.    too. 

2J.  6d. 

EGYPTIAN  TALES.  Translated  from  the 
Papyri.  First  Series,  ivth  to  xnth  Dynasty. 
Edited  by  W.  M.  FLINDERS  PETRIE.  Illus- 
trated. Second  Edition.  Cr.  too.  3*.  6</. 

EGYPTIAN  TALES.  Translated  from  the 
Papyri.  Second  Series,  xvmth  to  xixth 
Dynasty.  Illustrated.  Cr.  too.  3*.  6d. 

EGYPTIAN  DECORATIVE  ART.  A 
Course  of  Lectures  delivered  at  the  Royal 
Institution.  Illustrated.  Cr.  too.  3$.  6d. 

Phelps  (Ruth  SO-  SKIES  ITALIAN  :  A 
LITTLB  BREVIARY  FOR  TRAVELLERS  IN 
ITALY.  Fcap.  too.  5* .  net. 

Phythian  (J.  Ernest).  TREES  IN  NA- 
TURE, MYTH,  AND  ART.  Illustrated. 
Cr.  too.  6s. 

Podmore  (Frank).  MODERN  SPIRIT- 
UALISM. 7w0  Volumes.  Demy  too. 
2U.  net. 

MESMERISM  AND  CHRISTIAN 
SCIENCE :  A  Short  History  of  Mental 
Healing.  Second  Edition.  Demy  too. 
IQS.  6d.  net. 

Pollard  (Alfred  W.).  SHAKESPEARE 
FOLIOS  AND  QUARTOS.  A  Study  in 
the  Bibliography  of  Shakespeare's  Plays, 
1594-1685.  Illustrated.  Folio,  zis.  net. 

Powell  (Arthur  E.).  FOOD  AND 
HEALTH.  Cr.  too.  3*.  6d.  net. 

Power  (J.  O'Connor).  THE  MAKING  OF 
AN  ORATOR.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

Price  (L.  L.),  M.A.,  Fellow  of  Oriel  College, 
Oxon.  A  HISTORY  OF  ENGLISH 
POLITICAL  ECONOMY  FRO. VI  ADAM 
SMITH  TO  ARNOLD  TOYNBEE. 
Seventh  Edition.  Cr.  too.  as.  6d. 

Pullen-Burry  (B.).  IN  A  GERMAN 
COLONY;  or,  FOUR  WEEKS  IN  NEW 
BRITAIN.  Illustrated.  Cr.  too.  5*.  net. 

Pyeraft  (W.  P.).  BIRD  LIFE.  Illustrated. 
Demy  too.  ioj.  6d.  net. 


12 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


Ragg  (Lonsdale),  B.D.  Oxon.  DANTE 
AND  HIS  ITALY.  Illustrated.  Demy 
8v0.  izs.  6d.  net. 

*Rappoport  (Angelo  SO-  HOME  LIFE  IN 
RUSSIA.  Illustrated.  Demylvo.  ior.  6d. 
net. 

Raven-Hill  (L.)-    See  Llewellyn  (Owen). 

Rawlings  (Gertrude).  COINS  AND 
HOW  TO  KNOW  THEM.  Illustrated. 
Third  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  5*.  net. 

Rea  (Lilian).  THE  LIFE  AND  TIMES 
OF  MARIE  MADELEINE  COUNTESS 
OF  LA  FAYETTE.  Illustrated.  Demy 
8vo.  i  Of.  6d.  net. 

Read  (C.  Stanford),  M.B.  (Lend.), 
M.R.C.S.,  L.R.C.P.  FADS  AND  FEED- 
ING. Cr.  Bv0.  zs.  6d.  net. 

Rees  (J.  D.),  C.I.E.,  M.P.  THE  REAL 
INDIA.  Second  Edition.  Demy  &v0. 
ictf.  (>d.  net. 

Reich  (Emil),  Doctor  Juris.  WOMAN 
THROUGH  THE  AGES.  Illustrated. 
Two  Volumes.  Demy  Zvo.  zis.  net. 

Reid  (Archdall),  M.B.  THE  LAWS  OF 
HEREDITY.  Second  Edition.  Demy 
8v0.  zis.  net. 

Richmond  (Wilfrid),  Chaplain  of  Lincoln's 
Inn.  THE  CREED  IN  THE 
EPISTLES.  Cr.  Bvo.  as.  6d.  net. 

Roberts  (M.  E.).    See  Channer  (C.C.). 

Robertson  (A.),  D.D.,  Lord  Bishop  of 
Exeter.  REGNUM  DEI.  (The  Bampton 
Lectures  of  IQOI.)  A  New  and  Cheaper 
Edition.  Demy  Bv0.  js.  6d.  net. 

Robertson  (C.  Grant),  M.A.,  Fellow  of 
All  Souls'  College,  Oxford.  SELECT 
STATUTES,  CASES,  AND  CONSTI- 
TUTIONAL DOCUMENTS,  1660-1832. 
Demy  Bvo.  IOT.  6d.  net. 

Robertson  (Sir  G.  S.),K.C.S.I.  CHITRAL : 
THE  STORY  OF  A  MINOR  SIEGB.  Illustrated. 
Third  Edition.  Demy  Bvo.  iof.  6d.  net. 

Roe  (Fred).      OLD  OAK  FURNITURE. 

Illustrated.     Second  Edition.     Demy  Bvo. 

ioJ.  6d.  net. 
Royde-Smith  (N.  G.).  THE  PILLOW 

BOOK :    A    GARNER    OF    MANY    MOODS. 

Collected.       Second     Edition.      Cr.     Bvo. 

AS.  6d.  net. 
POETS  OF  OUR  DAY.  Selected,  with  an 

Introduction.    Fcap.  Bv0.    5.1. 

Rumbold  (The  Right  Hon.  Sir  Horace), 

Bart.,  G.  C.  B.,  G.  C.  M.  G.  THE 
AUSTRIAN  COURT  IN  THE  NINE- 
TEENTH CENTURY.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Demy  Bvo.  iBs.  net. 

Russell  (W.  Clark).  THE  LIFE  OF 
ADMIRAL  LORD  COLLINGWOOD. 
Illustrated.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 


St.  Francis  of  Assisl.  THE  LITTLE 
FLOWERS  OF  THE  GLORIOUS 
MESSER,  AND  OF  HIS  FRIARS. 
Done  into  English,  with  Notes  by  WILLIAM 
HEYWOOD.  Illustrated.  Demy  Bvo.  5*.  net. 

'Saki'(H.  Munro).  REGINALD.  Second 
Edition.  Fcap.  Bv0.  zs.  6d.  net. 

REGINALD  IN  RUSSIA.  Fcap.  Bvo. 
zs.  6d.  net. 

Sanders  (Lloyd).  THE  HOLLAND 
HOUSE  CIRCLE.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  Bvo.  izs.  6d.  net. 

*Seott  (Ernest).  TERRE  NAPOLEON, 
AND  THE  EXPEDITION  OF  DIS- 
COVERY DESPATCHED  TO  AUS- 
TRALIA BY  ORDER  OF  BONAPARTE, 
1800-1804.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Demy  Bva.  los.  6d.  net. 

S6lineourt(Hughde).  GREAT  RALEGH. 

Illustrated.    Demy  Bvo.     los.  6d.  net. 

Selous    (Edmund).     TOMMY   SMITH'S 

ANIMALS.    Illustrated.   Eleventh  Edition 

Fcap.  8v0.     zs.  6d. 
TOMMY  SMITH'S    OTHER    ANIMALS. 

Illustrated.      Fifth    Edition.      Fcap.    &va. 

zs.  6d. 

•Shafer  (Sara  A.).  A.  WHITE  PAPER 
GARDEN.  Illustrated.  Demy  Zvo.  ^s.  6d. 
net. 

Shakespeare  (William). 

THE  FOUR  FOLIOS,  1623;  1632;  1664; 
1685.  Each  £4  4f.  net,  or  a  complete  set, 
j£ia  i2 s.  net. 

Folios  2,  3  and  4  are  ready. 

THE  POEMS  OF  WILLIAM  SHAKE- 
SPEARE. With  an  Introduction  and  Notes 
by  GEORGE  WYNDHAM.  Demy  %vo.  Buck- 
ram, gilt  top.  loj.  6d. 

Sharp  (A.).  VICTORIAN  POETS.  Cr. 
&v0.  zs.  6d. 

HOME    LIFE 
Illustrated.      Second 
Edition.    Demy  &vo.     IQJ.  6d.  net. 

Sime  (John).     See  Little  Books  on  Art. 

Sladen  (Douglas).     SICILY:    The   New 

Winter  Resort.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  Zvo.     $s.  net. 

Smith  (Adam).  THE  WEALTH  OF 
NATIONS.  Edited  with  an  Introduction 
and  numerous  Notes  by  EDWIN  CANNAN, 
M.A.  Two  Volumes.  Demy  %vo.  zis.  net. 

Smith  (Sophia  S.).  DEAN  SWIFT.  Illus- 
trated. Demy  8v0.  IQJ.  6d.  net. 

Snell  (F.  J.).  A  BOOK  OF  EXMOOR. 
Illustrated.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

'  Staneliffe  '  GOLF  DO'S  AND  DONT'S. 
Second  Edition.  Fcap.  &va.  it. 


Sidgwick  (Mrs.  Alfred). 
IN      GERMANY. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 


Stead  (Francis  H.),  M.A.  HOW  OLD 
AGE  PENSIONS  BEGAN  TO  BE. 
Illustrated.  Demy  81/0.  as.  6d.  net. 

Stevenson  (R.  L.).  THE  LETTERS  OF 
ROBERT  LOUIS  STEVENSON  TO 
HIS  FAMILY  AND  FRIENDS.  Selected 
and  Edited  by  Sir  SIDNEY  COLVIN.  Ninth 
Edition.  Two  Volumes.  Cr.  8v0.  \as. 

VAILIMA  LETTERS.  With  an  Etched 
Portrait  by  WILLIAM  STRANG.  Eighth 
Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  Buckram.  6s. 

THE  LIFE  OF  R.  L.  STEVENSON.  See 
Balfour  (G.). 

Stevenson   (M.  I.).     FROM    SARANAC 

TO  THE  MARQUESAS.  Being  Letters 
written  by  Mrs.  M.  I.  STEVENSON  during 
1887-88.  Cr.  8vo.  6s.  net. 
LETTERS  FROM  SAMOA/i89i-95.  Edited 
and  arranged  by  M.  C.  BALFOUR.  Illus- 
trated. Second  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s.  net. 

StOPP  (Vernon  F.),  M.A.,  Canon  of  Win- 
Chester.  DEVELOPMENT  AND 
DIVINE  PURPOSE.  Cr.  8v0.  5*.  net. 

Streatfeild  (R.  A.).  MODERN  MUSIC 
AND  MUSICIANS.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  8vo.  js.  6d.  net. 

Swanton  (E.  W.).  FUNGI  AND  HOW 
TO  KNOW  THEM.  Illustrated.  Cr.  8vo. 
6s.  net. 

•Sykes  (Ella  C.).  PERSIA  AND  ITS 
PEOPLE.  Illustrated.  Demy  8v0.  IQJ.  6d. 
net. 

Symes  (J  E.).  M.A.  THE  FRENCH 
REVOLUTION.  Second  Edition.  Cr. 
Bvo.  as.  6d. 

Tabor  (Margaret  E.).  THE  SAINTS  IN 
ART.  Illustrated.  Fcap.  8v0.  y.  6d.  net. 

Taylor  (A.  E.)-  THE  ELEMENTS  OF 
METAPHYSICS.  Second  Edition.  Demy 
8v0.  ictf.  6d.  net. 

Taylor  (John  W.).  THE  COMING  OF 
THE  SAINTS.  Illustrated.  Demy  8vo. 
js.  6d.  net. 

Thibaudeau  (A.  C.).  BONAPARTE  AND 
THE  CONSULATE.  Translated  and 
Edited  by  G.  K.  FORTESCUE,  LL,D.  Illus- 
trated. Demy  8v0.  los.  6d.  net. 

Thompson  (Francis).  SELECTED 
POEMS  OF  FRANCIS  THOMPSON. 
With  a  Biographical  Note  by  WILFRID 
MEYNELL.  "\Vith  a  Portrait  in  Photogravure. 
Seventh  Edition.  Fcap.  8z>0.  5s-  *&*• 

Tileston  (Mary  WO-  DAILY  STRENGTH 
FOR  DAILY  NEEDS.  Eighteenth  Edi- 
tion. Medium  r6mo.  as.  6d.  net.  Also  an 
edition  in  superior  binding,  6s. 

Toynbee  (Paget),  M.A.,  D.  Litt.  DANTE 
IN  ENGLISH  LITERATURE :  FROM 


CHAUCER   TO  CARY.      Two  Volumes. 
Demy  8vo.     ais.  net. 
See  also  Oxford  Biographies. 

Tozep  (Basil).  THE  HORSE  IN  HIS- 
TORY. Illustrated.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Tpench  (Herbert).  DEIRD RE  WEDDED, 

AND  OTHER   POEMS.    Second  and  Revised 

Edition.     Large  Post  8v0.     6s. 
NEW    POEMS.      Second  Edition.     Large 

Post  8v0.     6s. 
APOLLO    AND    THE    SEAMAN.    Large 

Post  8v0.    Papert  \s.  6d.  net;  clot  A,  as.  6d. 

net. 

Tpevelyan  (G.  M.),  Fellow  of  Trinity  College, 
Cambridge.  ENGLAND  UNDER  THE 
STUARTS.  With  Maps  and  Plans.  Fourth 
Edition.  Demy  8vff.  IQJ.  6d.  net. 

Triggs  (Inigo  H.),  A.R.I.B.A.  TOWN 
PLANNING:  PAST,  PRESENT,  AND 
POSSIBLE.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Wide  Royal  8z>0.  15$.  net. 

Vaughan  (Herbert M.),  B.A.(Oxon),  F.S.A. 
THE  LAST  OF  THE  ROYAL  STUARTS, 
HENRY  STUART,  CARDINAL,  DUKE 
OF  YORK.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Demy  8v0.  los.  6d.  net. 

THE  MEDICI  POPES  (LEO  X.  AND  CLE- 
MENT VII.).  Illustrated.  Demy  8v0.  15*. 

THE'    NAPLES     RIVIERA.      Illustrated. 

Second  Edition.    Cr.  8z>0.     6s. 
*FLORENCE  AND  HER  TREASURES. 

Illustrated.     Fca£.  8v0.    $s.  net. 

Vernon  (Hon.  W.  Warren),  M.A.  READ- 

INGS  ON  THE  INFERNO  OF  DANTE. 

With    an    Introduction    by  the    REV.   DR. 

MOORE.     Two    Volumes.  Second  Edition. 

Cr.  8vo.     iss.  net. 
READINGS    ON    THE    PURGATORIO 

OF    DANTE.     With  an   Introduction   by 

the    late  DEAN  CHURCH.     Two    Volumes. 

Third  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     i$s.  net. 
READINGS   ON    THE    PARADISO    OF 

DANTE.      With  an   Introduction   by   the 

BISHOP  OF  RIPON.     Two  Volumes.    Second 

Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     i$s.  net. 

Vincent  (J.  E.).  THROUGH  EAST 
ANGLIA  IN  A  MOTOR  CAR.  Illus- 
trated. Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

Waddell  (Col.  L.  A.),  LL.D.,  C.B.  LHASA 
AND  ITS  MYSTERIES.  With  a  Record 
of  the  Expedition  of  1903-1904.  Illustrated. 
Third  and  Cheaper  Edition.  Medium  8v0, 
•js.  6d.  net. 

Wagnep  (Richard).  RICHARD  WAG- 
NER'S  MUSIC  DRAMAS:  Interpreta- 
tions,  embodying  Wagner's  own  explana- 
tions. By  ALICE  LEIGHTON  CLEATHER 
and  BASIL  CRUMP.  In  Three  Volumes. 
Fcap.  8v0.  as.  6d.  each. 
VOL.  i.— THE  RING  OF  THK  NIBELUNG. 

Third  Edition. 
VOL.  in.— TRISTAN  AND  ISOLDE. 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


Waineman  (Paul).  A  SUMMER  TOUR 
IN  FINLAND.  Illustrated.  Demy  8v0. 
i  of.  (>d.  net. 

Walkley  (A.  BO-  DRAMA  AND  LIFE. 
Cr.  Sv0.  6s. 

Waterhouse  (Elizabeth).    WITH  THE 

SIMPLE-HEARTED  :  Little  Homilies  to 
Women  in  Country  Places.  Third  Edition. 
Small  Pott  8vo.  2S.  net. 

COMPANIONS  OF  THE  WAY.  Being 
Selections  for  Morning  and  Evening  Read- 
ing. Chosen  and  arranged  by  ELIZABETH 
WATERHOUSE.  Large  Cr.  8v0.  55.  net. 

THOUGHTS  OF  A  TERTIARY.  Second 
Edition.  Small  Pott  8v0.  is.  net. 


Watt  (Francis).    See  Henderson  (T.  F.). 

Weigall  (Arthur  E.  P.).  A  GUIDE  TO 
THE  ANTIQUITIES  OF  UPPER 
EGYPT :  From  Abydos  to  the  Sudan 
Frontier.  Illustrated.  Cr.  &V0.  js.  6dt.  net. 

Welch  (Catharine).  THE  LITTLE 
DAUPHIN.  Illustrated.  Cr.  too.  6s. 

WellS  (J-),  M.A.,  Fellow  and  Tutor  of  Wad- 
ham  College.  OXFORD  AND  OXFORD 
LIFE.  Third  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  3*.  6d. 

A  SHORT  HISTORY  OF  ROME.  Tenth 
Edition.  With  3  Maps.  Cr.  8v0.  3*.  6d. 

Westell  (W.  Percival).  THE  YOUNG 
NATURALIST.  Illustrated.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 


Westell  (W.  Percival),  F.L.S.,  M.B.O.U., 
aad  Cooper  (C.  SO.  F.R.H.S.  THE 
YOUNG  BOTANIST.  Illustrated.  Cr. 
8vff.  3*.  6d.  net. 

*Wheeler  (Ethel  R-).  FAMOUS  BLUE 
STOCKINGS.  Illustrated.  Demy  8ve. 


Whibley  (C.  ).     See  Henley  (W.  E.). 

White  (George  F.),  Lieut.-Col.  A  CEN- 
TURY OF  SPAIN  AND  PORTUGAL, 
1788-1898.  Demy  8v0.  i2S.  6d.  net. 

Whitley  (Miss).    See  Dilke  (Lady). 

Wilde  (Oscar).  DE  PROFUNDIS. 
Twelfth  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  5*.  net. 

THE  WORKS  OF  OSCAR  WILDE.  In 
Twelve  Volumes.  Fc&p.  8vo.  5$.  net  each 
volume. 

i.  LORD  ARTHUR  SAVILE'S  CRIME  AND 
THE  PORTRAIT  OF  MR.  W.  H.     n.  THB 


DUCHESS  OF  PADUA,  in.  POEMS,  iv. 
LADY  WINDERMERE'S  FAN.  v.  A  WOMAN 
OF  No  IMPORTANCE,  vi.  AN  IDEAL  HUS- 
BAND, vn.  THE  IMPORTANCE  OF  BEING 
EARNEST.  vm.  A  HOUSE  OF  POME- 
GRANATES, ix.  INTENTIONS,  x.  DE  PRO- 
FUNDIS AND  PRISON  LETTERS,  xi.  ESSAYS. 
xn.  SALOME,  A  FLORENTINE  TRAGEDY, 
and  LA  SAINTE  COURTISANE. 


Williams  (H.  Noel).  THE  WOMEN 
BONAPARTES.  The  Mother  and  three 
Sisters  of  Napoleon.  Illustrated.  In  Two 
Volumes.  Demy  8v0.  245.  net. 

A  ROSE  OF  SAVOY  :  MARIE  ADELEIDE  OF 
SAVOY,  DUCHESSE  DE  BOURGOGNE,  MOTHF.R 
OF  Louis  xv.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Demy  8v0.  15.1.  net. 

*THE  FASCINATING  DUG  DE  RICHE- 
LIEU :  Louis  FRANfois  ARMAND  DU 
PLESSIS,  MARECHAL  Due  DE  RICHELIEU. 
Illustrated.  Demy  8v0.  i$s.  net. 


Wood  (Sir  Evelyn),  P.M.,  V.C.,  G.C.B., 
G.C.M.G.  FROM  MIDSHIPMAN  TO 
FIELD-MARSHAL.  Illustrated.  Fifth 
and  Cheaper  Edition.  Demy  8v0.  ^s.  6d. 
net. 

THE  REVOLT  IN  HINDUSTAN.  1857- 
59.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 


Wood  (W.  Birkbeck),  M.A.,  late  Scholar  of 
Worcester  College,  Oxford,  and  Edmonds 
(Major  J.  EO,  R-E.,  D.A.Q.-M.G.  A 
HISTORY  OF  THE  CIVIL  WAR  IN 
THE  UNITED  STATES.  With  an 
Introduction  by  H.  SPENSER  WILKINSON. 
With  24  Maps  and  Plans.  Third  Edition. 
Demy  8v0.  i2s.  6d.  net. 

Wordsworth  (WO-  THE  POEMS.  With 
an  Introduction  and  Notes  by  NOWELL 
C.  SMITH,  late  Fellow  of  New  College, 
Oxford.  In  Three  Volumes.  Demy  8v0. 

POEMS  BY  WILLIAM  WORDSWORTH. 
Selected  with  an  Introduction  by  STOPFORD 
A.  BROOKE.  Illustrated.  Cr.  8v0.  js.  6d. 
net. 


Wyatt  (Kate  M.).    See  Gloag  (M.  R.). 

Wyllie  (M.  A.).  NORWAY  AND  ITS 
FJORDS.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Yeats  (W.  B.).  A  BOOK  OF  IRISH 
VERSE.  Revised  and  Enlarged  Edition. 
Cr.  8v0.  3*.  6d. 

Young  (Filson).    See  The  Complete  Series. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 
PART   II. — A  SELECTION  OF  SERIES. 

Ancient  Cities. 

General  Editor,  B.  C.  A.  WINDLE,  D.Sc.,  F.R.S. 

Cr.  Svo.    4J.  6d.  net. 
With  Illustrations  by  E.  H.  NEW,  and  other  Artists. 


BRISTOL.     By  Alfred  Harvey,  M.B. 
CANTERBURY.     By  J.  C.  Cox,  LL.D.,  F.S.A. 
CHESTER.    By  B.  C.  A.  Windle.  D.Sc.,  F.R.S. 
DUBLIN.     By  S.  A.  O.  Fitzpatnck. 


EDINBURGH,    .by 

LINCOLN.    By  E.  Mansel  Symj 


By  M.  G.  Williamson,  M.A. 

/mpson,  1 
SHREWSBURY.     By  T.  Auden,  M.A.,  F.S.A. 


M.A. 


WELLS  and  GLASTONBURV.    By  T.  S.  Holmes. 


The  Antiquary's  Books. 

General  Editor,  J.  CHARLES  COX,  LL.D.,  F.S.A 

Demy  8v0.     ?s.  6d.  net. 
With  Numerous  Illustrations. 


ARCHEOLOGY     AND     FALSE     ANTIQUITIES. 

By  R.  Munro. 
BELLS  OF  ENGLAND,  THE.     By  Canon  J.  J. 

Raven.     Second  Edition. 
BRASSES   OF  ENGLAND,   THE.      By  Herbert 

W.  Macklin.    Second  Edition. 
CELTIC    ART    IN    PAGAN   AND    CHRISTIAN 

TIMES.     By  J.  Romilly  Allen. 
DOMESDAY   INQUEST,    THE.      By  Adolphus 

Ballard. 
ENGLISH  CHURCH  FURNITURE.    By  J.  C.  Cox 

and  A.  Harvey.     Second  Edition. 
ENGLISH  COSTUME.     From  Prehistoric  Times 

to  the  End  of  the  Eighteenth  Century.     By 

George  Clinch. 
ENGLISH  MONASTIC  LIFE.  By  the  Right  Rev. 

Abbot  Gasquet.     Fourth  Edition. 
ENGLISH  SEALS.     By  J.  Harvey  Bloom. 
FOLK-LORE  AS  AN  HISTORICAL  SCIENCE.    By 

Sir  G.  L.  Gomme. 


GILDS  AND  COMPANIES    OF   LONDON,    THE- 

By  George  Unwin. 
MANOR    AND     MANORIAL    RECORDS,    THE. 

By  Nathaniel  J.  Hone. 
MEDIAEVAL    HOSPITALS  OF  ENGLAND,   THE. 

By  Rotha  Mary  Clay. 
OLD     SERVICE     BOOKS    OF    THE   ENGLISH 

CHURCH.       By    Christopher    Wordsworth, 

M.A.,    and    Henry    Littlehales.        Second 

Edition. 
PARISH  LIFE  IN  MEDLSVAL  ENGLAND.    By 

the   Right  Rev.   Abbot   Gasquet.      Second 

Edition. 
•PARISH  REGISTERS  OF  ENGLAND,  THE.     By 

J.  C.  Cox. 
REMAINS    OF     THE   PREHISTORIC    AGB    IN 

ENGLAND.    By  B.  C.  A.  Windle.    Second 

Edition. 
ROYAL   FORESTS    OF   ENGLAND,   THE.      By 

J.  C.  Cox,  LL.D. 
SHRINES  OF  BRITISH  SAINTS.    By  J.  C  Wall. 


The  Arden  Shakespeare. 

Demy  8vo.     2s.  6d.  net  each  volume. 

An  edition  of  Shakespeare  in  single  Plays.     Edited  with  a  full  Introduction, 
Textual  Notes,  and  a  Commentary  at  the  foot  of  the  page. 


ALL'S  WELL  THAT  ENDS  WELL. 

ANTONY  AND  CLEOPATRA. 

CYMBELINE. 

COMEDY  OF  ERRORS,  THE. 

HAMLET.    Second  Edition. 

JULIUS  CAESAR. 

KING  HENRY  v. 

KING  HENRY  vi.    PT.  i. 

KING  HENRY  vi.    PT.  n. 

KING  HENRY  vi.    PT.  in. 

KING  LEAR. 

KING  RICHARD  m. 

LIFE  AND  DEATH  OF  KING  JOHN,  THE. 

LOVE'S  LABOUR'S  LOST. 

MACBETH. 


MEASURE  FOR  MEASURE. 

MERCHANT  OF  VENICE,  THE. 

MERRY  WIVES  OF  WINDSOR,  THE. 

MIDSUMMER  NIGHT'S  DRBAM,  A. 

OTHELLO. 

PERICLES. 

ROMEO  AND  JULIBT. 

TAMING  OF  THE  SHREW,  THE. 

TEMPEST,  THE. 

TIMON  OF  ATHENS. 

TITUS  ANDRONICUS. 

TROILUS  AND  CRESSIDA. 

Two  GENTLEMEN  OF  VERONA,  THB. 

TWELFTH  NIGHT. 


i6 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


Classics  of  Art. 

Edited  by  DR.  J.  H.  W.  LAING. 

With  numerous  Illustrations,      Wide  Royal  &vo.     Gilt  top. 


THE  ART  OF  THK  GREEKS.  By  H.  B.  Walters. 
i2f.  6d.  net. 

FLORENTINE  SCULPTORS  OK  THE  RENAIS- 
SANCE. Wilhelm  Bode,  Ph.D.  Translated 
by  Jessie  Haynes.  i2j.  6d.  net. 

•GEORGE  ROMNEY.  By  Arthur  B.  Chamber- 
lain. i2J.  dd.  net. 

GHIRLANDAIO.  Gerald  S.  Davies.  Second 
Edition.  iot.f>d. 


MICHELANGELO.      By     Gerald     S.    Daviei. 

i2j.  6«£  net. 

RUBENS.     By  Edward  Dillon,  M.A.    asj.  net. 
RAPHAEL.    By  A.  P.  Oppe*.    iaj.  6J.  net. 
TITIAN.    By  Charles  Ricketts.     12*.  6d.  net. 
TURNER'S   SKETCHES  AND   DRAWINGS.      By 

A.    J.    FINBERG.       T.2S.   6d.   net.       Second 

Edition. 
VELAZQUEZ.    By  A.  de  Beruete.    ioj.  6d.  net. 


The  "Complete"  Series. 

Fully  Illustrated.    Demy  %vo. 


THE  COMPLETE  COOK.  By  Lilian  Whitling. 
7*.  6d.  net. 

THE  COMPLETE  CRICKETER.  By  Albert  E. 
KNIGHT,  ^s.  6d.  net. 

THE  COMPLETE  FOXHUNTER.  By  Charles 
Richardson.  ias.  6d.  net.  Second  Edition. 

THE  COMPLETE  GOLFER.  By  Harry  Vardon. 
i  of.  6d.  net.  Eleventh  Edition. 

THE  COMPLETE  HOCKEY-PLAYER.  By  Eustace 
E.  White.  5*.  net.  Second  Edition. 

THE  COMPLETE  LAWN  TENNIS  PLAYER.  By 
A.  Wallis  Myers.  IDJ.  6d.  net.  Second 
Edition. 


THE  COMPLETE  MOTORIST.  By  Filson 
Young.  i2S.  6d.  net.  New  Edition 
(Seventh). 

THE  COMPLETE  MOUNTAINEER.  By  G.  D. 
Abraham.  i5J.  net.  Second  Edition. 

THE  COMPLETE  OARSMAN.  By  R.  C.  Leh- 
mann,  M.P.  IDJ.  6d.  net. 

THE  COMPLETE  PHOTOGRAPHER.  By  R. 
Child  Bayley.  xof.  dd.  net.  Fourth 
Edition. 

THE  COMPLETE  RUGBY  FOOTBALLER,  ON  THB 
NEW  ZEALAND  SYSTEM.  By  D.  Gallaher 
and  W.  J.  Stead,  iw.  f>d.  net.  Second 
Edition. 

THE  COMPLETE   SHOT.    By  G.  T.  Teasdale 


Buckell.     i2S.  6d.  net.     Third  Edition. 


.     By 

.     TAi 


The  Connoisseur's  Library. 

With  numerous  Illustrations.     Wide  Royal  %vo.     Gilt  top.     2$s,  net. 


ENGLISH    FURNITURE.    By  F.  S.  Robinson. 

ENGLISH    COLOURED    BOOKS.      By    Martin 
Hardie. 

EUROPEAN  ENAMELS.    By  Henry  H.  Cunyng- 
hame,  C.B. 

GLASS.    By  Edward  Dillon. 

GOLDSMITHS'  AND  SILVERSMITHS'  WORK.    By 
Nelson  Dawson.    Second  Edition. 


•ILLUMINATED     MANUSCRIPTS.      By   J.    A. 

Herbert. 

IVORIES.    By  Alfred  Maskell. 
JEWELLERY.    By  H.  Clifford  Smith.    Second 

Edition. 

MEZZOTINTS.     By  Cyril  Davenport. 
MINIATURES.     By  Dudley  Heath. 
PORCELAIN.     By  Edward  Dillon. 
SEALS.     By  Walter  de  Gray  Birch. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 


Handbooks  of  English  Church  History. 

Edited  by  J.  H.  BURN,  B.D.     Crown  Svo.     2s.  6d.  net. 


THE  FOUNDATIONS  or  THE  ENGLISH  CHURCH. 
By  J.  H.  Maude. 

THE  SAXON  CHURCH  AND  THE  NORMAN  CON- 
QUEST. By  C.  T.  Cruttwell. 

THE  MEDIEVAL  CHURCH  AND  THE  PAPACY. 
By  A.  C.  Jennings. 


THE  REFORMATION  PERIOD.    By  Henry  Gee. 

THE  STRUGGLE  WITH  PURITANISM.  By  Bruce 
Blaxland. 

THE  CHURCH  OF  ENGLAND  IN  THE  EIGH- 
TEENTH CENTURY.  By  Alfred  Plummer. 


The  Illustrated  Pocket  Library  of  Plain  and  Coloured  Books. 

Fcap.  Sw.     3-r.  6d.  net  each  volume. 
WITH    COLOURED     ILLUSTRATIONS. 


OLD  COLOURED  BOOKS.     By  George  Paston. 

2S.  net. 
THE  LIFE  AND  DEATH  OF  JOHN  MYTTON, 

ESQ.     By  Nimrod.     Fifth  Edition. 
THE  LIFE  OF  A  SPQRTSMAN.     By  Nimrod. 
HANDLEY  CROSS.     By  R.  S.  Surtees.     Third 

Rdition. 
MR.   SPONGE'S   SPORTING    TOUR.    By  R.  S. 

Surtees. 
JORROCKS'   JAUNTS  AND   JOLLITIES.    By  R. 

S.  Surtees.     Third  Edition. 
ASK  MAMMA.     By  R.  S.  Surtees. 

THE  ANALYSIS  OF  THE  HUNTING  FIELD.     By 

R.  S.  Surtees. 
THE  TOUR  OF  DR.   SYNTAX   IN   SEARCH  OF 

THE  PICTURESQUE.     By  William  Combe. 

THE  TOUR  OF  DR.  SYNTAX  IN  SEARCH  OF 
CONSOLATION.  By  William  Combe. 

THE  THIRD  TOUR  OF  DR.  SYNTAX  IN  SEARCH 
OF  A  WIFE.  By  William  Combe. 

THE  HISTORY  OF  JOHNNY  QUAE  GENUS.  By 
the  Author  of '  The  Three  Tours.' 

THE  ENGLISH  DANCE  OF  DEATH,  from  the 
Designs  of  T.  Rowlandson,  with  Metrical 
Illustrations  by  the  Author  of  '  Doctor 
Syntax.'  Two  Volumes. 


THB  DANCE  OF  LIFE:    A   Poem.     By   th« 

Author  of  '  Dr.  Syntax.' 
LIFE  IN  LONDON.     By  Pierce  Egan. 
REAL  LIFE    IN    LONDON.      By  an  Amateur 

(Pierce  Egan).     Two  Volumes. 
THE  LIFE  OF  AN  ACTOR.     By  Pierce  Egan. 
THE   VICAR    OF    WAKEFIELD.      By   Oliver 

Goldsmith. 
THE   MILITARY    ADVENTURES    or    JOHNNY 

NEWCOMBE.     By  an  Officer. 
THE  NATIONAL  SPORTS  OF  GREAT  BRITAIN. 

With  Descriptions  and  50  Coloured  Plates  by 

Henry  Alken. 
THE  ADVENTURES  OF  A  POST  CAPTAIN.    By 

a  Naval  Officer. 

GAMONIA.     By  Lawrence  Rawstone,  Esq. 
AN  ACADEMY  FOR  GROWN  HORSEMEN.     By 

Geoffrey  Gambado,  Esq. 
REAL  LIFE  IN  IRELAND.    By  a  Real  Paddy. 
THE  ADVENTURES  OF  JOHNNY  NEWCOMBE  IN 

THE  NAVY.     By  Alfred  Burton. 
THE  OLD  ENGLISH  SQUIRE.     By  John  Care- 
less, Esq. 
THE  ENGLISH  SPY.    By  Bernard  Blackmantle, 

Two  Volumes,      ^s.  net. 


WITH    PLAIN    ILLUSTRATIONS. 


THE  GRAVE  :  A  Poem.     By  Robert  Blair. 

ILLUSTRATIONS  OF  THE  EOOK  OF  JOB.  In- 
vented and  engraved  by  William  Blake. 

WINDSOR  CASTLE.  By  W.  Harrison  Ains- 
worth. 


THE  TOWER  OF  LONDON. 
Ainsworth. 


By  W.  Harrison 


FRANK  FAIRLEGH.    By  F.  E.  Smedley. 

HANDY  ANDY.     By  Samuel  Lover. 

THE  COMPLEAT  ANGLER.  By  Izaak  Walton 
and  Charles  Cotton. 

THE  PICKWICK  PAPERS.  By  Charles  Dick- 
ens. 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


Leaders  of  Religion. 

Edited  by  H.  C.  BEECHING,  M.  A.,  Canon  of  Westminster.     With  Portraits. 
Crown  Svo.     2s.  net. 


CARDINAL  NEWMAN.  By  R.  H.  Hutton. 
JOHN  WESLEY.  By  J.  H.  Overton,  M.A. 
BISHOP  WILBERFORCE.  By  G.  W.  Daniell, 

M.A. 
CARDINAL    MANNING.      By  A.  W.   Hutton, 

M.A. 

CHARLES  SIMEON.    By  H.  C.  G.  Moule,  D.D. 
JOHN    KNOX.      By    F.    MacCunn.      Second 

Edition. 

JOHN  HOWE.  By  R.  F.  Horton,  D.D. 
THOMAS  KEN.  By  F.  A.  Clarke,  M.A. 
GEORGE  Fox,  THE  QUAKER.  By  T.  Hodg- 

kin,  D.C.L.     Third  Edition. 


JOHN  KEBLE.    By  Walter  Lock,  D.D. 
THOMAS  CHALMERS.     By  Mrs.  Oliphant. 
LANCELOT    ANDREWES.      By  R.   L.   Ottley, 

D.D.    Second  Edition. 
AUGUSTINE   OF   CANTERBURY.      By    E.    L. 

Cutts,  D.D. 
WILLIAM    LAUD.    By  W.  H.  Hutton,  M.A. 

Third  Edition. 

JOHN  DONNE.    By  Augustus  Jessop,  D.D. 
THOMAS  CRANMER.    By  A.  J.  Mason,  D.D. 
BISHOP    LATIMER.      By  R.  M.  Carlyle    and 

A.  J.  Carlyle,  M.A. 
BISHOP  BUTLER.    By  W.  A.  Spooner,  M.A. 


The  Library  of  Devotion. 

With  Introductions  and  (where  necessary)  Notes. 
Small  Pott  Svo,  gilt  top,  cloth,  2s.  ;  leather,  2s.  6</.  net. 

TH«     CONFESSIONS     OF     ST.     AUGUSTINE.       GRACE  ABOUNDING  TO  THE  CHIEF  OF  SIN 

NERS. 


Seventh  Edition. 
THE  IMITATION  OF  CHRIST.     Sixth  Edition. 
THE  CHRISTIAN  YEAR.    Fourth  Edition. 
LYRA  INNOCENTIUM.    Second  Edition. 
THE  TEMPLE.    Second  Edition. 
A  BOOK  OF  DEVOTIONS.    Second  Edition. 

A  SERIOUS  CALL  TO  A  DEVOUT  AND  HOLY 
LIFE.     Fourth  Edition. 

A  GUIDE  TO  ETERNITY. 

THE  INNER  WAY.    Second  Edition. 

ON  THE  LOVE  OF  GOD. 

THE  PSALMS  OF  DAVID. 

LYRA  APOSTOLICA. 

THE  SONG  OF  SONGS. 

THE  THOUGHTS  OF  PASCAL.    Second  Edition. 

A    MANUAL   OF    CONSOLATION    FROM    THE 
SAINTS  AND  FATHERS. 

DEVOTIONS  FROM  THE  APOCRYPHA. 
THE  SPIRITUAL  COMBAT. 
THE  DEVOTIONS  OF  ST.  ANSKLM. 
Bisnof  WILSON'S  SACRA  PRIVATA. 


LYRA    SACRA  :    A    Book   of   Sacred   Verse. 
Second  Edition. 

A    DAY    BOOK    FROM    THE     SAINTS   AND 
FATHERS. 

A  LITTLE  BOOK  OF  HEAVENLY  WISDOM.    A 
Selection  from  the  English  Mystics. 

LIGHT,  LIFE,  and  LOVE.    A   Selection  from 
the  German  Mystics. 

AN  INTRODUCTION  TO  THE   DEVOUT   LIFE. 

THE  LITTLE   FLOWERS    OF   THE   GLORIOUS 
MESSER  ST.  FRANCIS  AND  OF  HIS  FRIARS. 

DEATH  AND  IMMORTALITY. 

THE  SPIRITUAL  GUIDE.      Second  Edition. 

DEVOTIONS  FOR  EVERY  DAY  IN  THE  WEEK 
AND  THE  GREAT  FESTIVALS. 

PRECES  PRIVATE. 

HORJE  MYSTIC.*  :    A  Day    Book    from    the 
Writings  of  Mystics  of  Many  Nations. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 


Little  Books  on  Art. 

With  many  Illustrations.     Demy  i6mo.     Gilt  top.     2s.  6J.  net. 

Each  volume  consists  of  about  200  pages,  and  contains  from  30  to  40  Illustrations, 
including  a  Frontispiece  in  Photogravure. 


ALBRECHT  DURER.    J.  Allen. 
ARTS  OF  JAPAN,  THE.    E.  Dillon. 
BOOKPLATES.    E.  Almack. 
BOTTICELLI.     Mary  L.  Bloomer. 
BURNE-JONES.    F.  de  Lisle. 
"CHRISTIAN  SYMBOLISM.    Mrs.  H.  Jenner. 
CHRIST  IN  ART.    Mrs.  H.  Jenner. 
CLAUDE.    E.  Dillon. 
CONSTABLE.     H.  W.  Tompkins. 
COROT.    A.  Pollard  and  E.  Birnstingl. 
ENAMELS.    Mrs.  N.  Dawson. 
FREDERIC  LEIGHTON.    A.  Corkran. 
GEORGE  ROMNEY.    G.  Paston. 
GREEK  ART.    H.  B.  Walters. 
GREUZE  AND  BOUCHER.    E.  F.  Pollard. 


HOLBEIN.     Mrs.  G.  Fortescue. 

ILLUMINATED  MANUSCRIPTS.    J.  W.  Bradley. 

JEWELLERY.     C.  Davenport. 

JOHN  HOPPNER.    H.  P.  K .  Skipton. 

SIR  JOSHUA  REYNOLDS.     J.  Sime. 

MILLET.    N.  Peacock. 

MINIATURES.     C.  Davenport. 

OUR  LADY  IN  ART.     Mrs.  H.  Jenner. 

RAPHAEL.    A.  R.  Dryhurst.    Second  Edition. 

REMBRANDT.    Mrs.  E.  A.  Sharp. 

TURNER.    F.  Tyrrell-Gill. 

VANDYCK.    M.  G.  Smallwood. 

VELASQUEZ.      W.    Wilberforce    and    A.    R. 

Gilbert. 
WATTS.    R.  E.  D.  Sketchlcy. 


The  Little  Galleries. 

Demy  i6mo.     2s.  6d.  net. 

Each  volume  contains  20  plates  in  Photogravure,  together  with  a  short  outline  of 
the  life  and  work  of  the  master  to  whom  the  book  is  devoted. 


A  LITTLE  GALLERY  OF  REYNOLDS. 
A  LITTLE  GALLERY  OF  ROMNEY. 
A  LITTLE  GALLERY  OF  HOPPNER. 


A  LITTLE  GALLERY  OF  MILLAIS. 

A  LITTLE  GALLERY  or  ENGLISH  POETS. 


The  Little  Guides. 

With  many  Illustrations  by  E.  H.  NEW  and  other  artists,  and  from  photographs. 
Small  Pott  Svo,  gilt  top,  cloth,  2s.  6d.  net;  leather,  3^.  6d.  net. 

The  main  features  of  these  Guides  are  (i)  a  handy  and  charming  form  ;  (2)  illus- 
trations from  photographs  and  by  well-known  artists  ;  (3)  good  plans  and  maps  ;  (4) 
an  adequate  but  compact  presentation  of  everything  that  is  interesting  in  the 
natural  features,  history,  archaeology,  and  architecture  of  the  town  or  district  treated. 


CAMBRIDGE    AND    ITS    COLLEGES.      A.    H. 

Thompson.     Third  Edition,  Revised, 
ENGLISH  LAKES,  THE.     F.  G.  Brabant. 
ISLE  OF  WIGHT,  THE.    G.  Clinch. 
MALVERN  COUNTRY,  THE.    B.  C.  A.  Windle. 
NORTH  WALES.    A.  T.  Story. 
OXFORD    AND    ITS     COLLEGES.      J.    Wells. 

Ninth  Edition. 


SHAKESPEARE'S  COUNTRY.    B.  C.  A.  Windle. 

Third  Edition. 

ST.  PAUL'S  CATHEDRAL.    G.  Clinch. 
WESTMINSTER    ABBEY.     G.    E.   Troutbeck. 

Second  Edition. 

BUCKINGHAMSHIRE.    E.  S.  Roscoe. 
CHESHIRE.    W.  M.  Gallichan. 


20 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


THE  LITTLB  GUIDES— corttinuttt. 

CORNWALL.    A.  L.  Salmon. 

DERBYSHIRE.    J.  C.  Cox. 

DEVON.    S.  Baring-Gould.    Second  Edition. 

DORSET.     F.  R.  Heath.    Second  Edition. 

ESSEX.    J.  C.  Cox. 

HAMPSHIRE.    J.  C.  Cox. 

HERTFORDSHIRE.    H.  W.  Tompkins. 

KENT.    G.  Clinch. 

KERRY.    C.  P.  Crane. 

MIDDLESEX.    J.  B.  Firth. 

MONMOUTHSHIRE.    G.  W.  Wade  and  J.   H. 
Wade. 

NORFOLK.     W.  A.   Dutt.     Second  Edition. 
Revised. 

NORTHAMPTONSHIRE.    W.  Dry. 
•NORTHUMBERLAND.    J.  E.  Morris. 
NOTTINGHAMSHIRE.    L.  Guilford. 


OXFORDSHIRE.    F.  G.  Brabant. 

SOMERSET.    G.  W.  and  J.  H.  Wade. 

•STAFFORDSHIRE.    C.  E.  Masefield. 

SUFFOLK.    W.  A.  Dutt. 

SURREY.    F.  A.  H.  Lambert. 

SUSSEX.     F.G.Brabant.     Third  Edition, 

•WILTSHIRE.    F.  R.  Heath. 

YORKSHIRE,    THE    EAST    RIDING.      J.     E, 
Morris. 

YORKSHIRE,    THE   NORTH   RIDING.     J.  E. 
Morris. 


BRITTANY.     S.  Baring-Gould. 
NORMANDY.    C.  Scudamor*. 
ROME.    C.  G.  Ellaby. 
SICILY.    F.  H.  Jackson. 


The  Little  Library. 

With  Introductions,  Notes,  an ch Photogravure  Frontispieces. 
Small  Pott  Svo.     Gilt  top.     Each  Volume,  cloth,  is.  6d.  net;  leather,  2s.  6d.  net. 


Anon.    A  LITTLE  BOOK  OF  ENGLISH 
LYRICS.     Second  Edition. 

Austen   (Jane).    PRIDE  AND  PREJU- 
DICE.    Two  Volumes. 
NORTH  ANGER  ABBEY. 

Bacon    (Francis).     THE    ESSAYS    OF 
LORD  BACON. 


Barham  (R. 

LEGENDS. 


H.).      THE    INGOLDSBY 
Two  Volumes. 


Barnet  (Mrs.  P.  A.).  A  LITTLE  BOOK 
OF  ENGLISH  PROSE. 

Beckford  (Williajn).  THE  HISTORY 
OF  THE  CALIPH  VATHEK. 

Blake  (William).  SELECTIONS  FROM 
WILLIAM  BLAKE. 

Borrow   (George).    LAVENGRO.     Two 

Volumes. 

THE  ROMANY  RYE. 

Browning  (Robert).  SELECTIONS 
FROM  THE  EARLY  POEMS  OF 
ROBERT  BROWNING. 

Canning  (George).  SELECTIONS  FROM 
THE  ANTI- JACOB  IN  :  with  GEORGE 
CANNING'S  additional  Poems. 

Cowley  (Abraham).  THE  ESSAYS  OF 
ABRAHAM  COWLEY. 

Crabbe  (George).  SELECTIONS  FROM 
GEORGE  CRABBE. 

Craik    (Mrs.).     JOHN 
GENTLEMAN. 


HALIFAX, 

Two  Volumes. 


Crashaw  (Richard).  THE  ENGLISH 
POEMS  OF  RICHARD  CRASHAW. 

Dante  (Alighieri).    THE  INFERNO  OF 

DANTE.     Translated  by  H.  F.  CARY. 

THE  PURGATORIO  OF  DANTE.  Trans- 
lated by  H.  F.  GARY. 

THE  PARADISO  OF  DANTE,  Trans- 
lated  by  H.  F.  CARY. 

Darley  (George).  SELECTIONS  FROM 
THE  POEMS  OF  GEORGE  DARLEY. 


Deane  (A.  C.).     A 
LIGHT  VERSE. 


LITTLE   BOOK   OF 


Diekens(Charles).  CHRISTMAS  BOOKS. 
Two  Volumes. 

Ferrier  (Susan).      MARRIAGE.     Tw» 

Volumes. 
THE  INHERITANCE.     Two  Volumes. 

Gaskell  (Mrs.).    CRANFORD. 

Hawthorne  (Nathaniel).  THE  SCARLET 
LETTER. 

Henderson  (T.  F.).    A   LITTLE  BOOK 
OF  SCOTTISH  VERSE. 

Keats  (John).    POEMS. 

Kinglake  (A.  W.).     EOTHEN.     Second 
Edition. 

Lamb  (Charles).   ELIA,  AND  THE  LAST 
ESSAYS  OF  ELIA. 

Locker  (F.).    LONDON  LYRICS. 

Longfellow     (H.    W.).      SELECTIONS 
FROM  LONGFELLOW. 


GENERAL  LITERATURE 


21 


THB  LITTLE  LIBRARY— continued. 

Marvell  (Andrew).  THE  POEMS  OF 
ANDREW  MARVELL. 

Milton  (John).  THE  MINOR  POEMS  OF 
JOHN  MILTON. 

MolP  (D.  M.).    MANSIE  WAUCH. 

Nichols  (J.  B.  B.).  A  LITTLE  BOOK 
OF  ENGLISH  SONNETS. 

Rochefoucauld  (La).  THE  MAXIMS  OF 
LA  ROCHEFOUCAULD. 

Smith  (Horace  and  James).  REJECTED 
ADDRESSES. 

Sterne  (Laurence).     A  SENTIMENTAL 

JOURNEY. 

Tennyson  (Alfred,  Lord).  THE  EARLY 
POEMS  OF  ALFRED,  LORD  TENNY- 
SON. 

IN  MEMORIAM. 

THE  PRINCESS. 


MAUD. 

Thackeray   (W.  M.).     VANITY    FAIR. 

Three  Volumes. 

PENDENNIS.     Three  Volumet. 
ESMOND. 
CHRISTMAS  BOOKS. 

Vaughan  (Henry).     THE   POEMS    OF 
HENRY  VAUGHJ 


Walton    (Izaak). 
ANGLER. 


[AN. 
THE 


COMPLEAT 


Waterhouse  (Elizabeth).  A  LITTLE 
BOOK  OF  LIFE  AND  DEATH. 
Thirteenth  Edition. 

Wordsworth  (W.).  SELECTIONS  FROM 
WORDSWORTH. 

Wordsworth  (W.)  and  Coleridge  (S.  T.) 
LYRICAL  BALL  \.DS. 


The  Little  Quarto  Shakespeare. 

Edited  by  W.  J.  CRAIG.     With  Introductions  and  Notes. 

Pott  \6rno.     In  40  Volumes.     Gilt  top.     Leather ;  price  is.  net  each  volume, 

Mahogany  Revolving  Book  Case.     ioj.  net. 


Miniature  Library. 

Gilt  top. 


EUPHRANOR  :  A  Dialogue  on  Youth.  By 
Edward  FitzGerald.  Demy  yzmo.  Leather^ 
2s.  net. 

THE  LIFE  OF  EDWARD,  LORD  HERBERT  OF 
CHER  BURY.  Written  by  himself.  Demy 
Leather,  zs.  net. 


POLONIUS  :  or  Wise  Saws  and  Modern  In- 
stances. By  Edward  FitzGerald.  Demy 
yzmo.  Leather,  2s.  net. 

THE  RuBAivAr  OF  OMAR  KHAYY/M.  By 
Edward  FitzGerald.  Fourth  Edition. 
Leather^  it.  net. 


The  New  Library  of  Medicine. 

Edited  by  C.  W.  SALEEBY,  M.D.,  F.R.S.Edin.    Demy  Sz>o. 


CARE  OF  THE  BODY,  THE.    By  F.  Cavanagh. 

Second  Edition,     js.  (>d.  net. 
CHILDREN  OF  THE    NATION,  THE.     By  the 

Right  Hon.  Sir  John  Gorst.   Second  Edition. 

•js.  6d.  net. 
CONTROL    OF  A    SCOURGE,  THE  ;   or,   How 

Cancer   is   Curable.      By  Chas.   P.  Childe. 

•js.  (>d.  net. 
DISEASES  OF  OCCUPATION.     By  Sir  Thomas 

Oliver,     joj.  dd.  net. 

DRINK  PROBLEM,  THE,  in  its  Medico-Socio- 
logical Aspects.    Edited  by  T.  N.  Kelynack. 

•js.  6d.  net. 
DRUGS  AND  THE  DRUG  HABIT.   By  H. 

Sainsbury. 


FUNCTIONAL  NERVE  DISEASES.  By  A.  T. 
Schofield.  7*.  6d.  net. 

•HEREDITY,  THE    LAWS  OF.      By  Archdall 

Reid.    ziJ.  net. 
HYGIENE  OF  MIND,  THE.    By  T.  S.  Clouston. 

Fifth  Edition,     ^s.  (>d.  net. 

INFANT  MORTALITY.  By  Sir  George  New- 
man, js.  6d.  net. 

PREVENTION  OF  TUBERCULOSIS  (CONSUMP- 
TION), THE.  By  Arthur  Newsholme. 
lor.  6d.  net. 

Am  AND  HEALTH.  By  Ronald  C.  Macfie. 
js.  <xi.  net.  Second  Edition. 


22 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


The  New  Library  of  Music. 

Edited  by  ERNEST  NEWMAN.     Illustrated.     Demy  %vo.     \s.  6d.  net. 

HUGO  WOLF.     By  Ernest    Newman.    Illus-    I    HANDEL.     By  R.  A.  Streatfeild.    Illustrated, 
trated.  Second  Edition. 


Oxford  Biographies. 

Illustrated.    Fcap.  Sv0.     Gilt  top.     Each  volume,  cloth,  2s.  6J.  net;  leather, 

3^.  6d.  net. 


DANTB    ALIGHIBRI.      By    Paget     Tonybee, 

M.A.,   D.  Litt.     Third  Edition. 
GIROLAMO  SAVONAROLA    By  E.  L.  S.  Hors- 

burgh,  M.A.     Second  Edition. 
JOHN  HOWARD.     By  E.  C.  S.  Gibson,  D.D., 

Bishop  of  Gloucester. 
ALFRED  TENNYSON.    By  A.  C.  Benson,  M.A. 

Second  Edition. 

SIR  WALTER  RALEIGH.     By  I.  A  Taylor. 
ERASMUS.    By  E.  F.  H.  Capey. 


THE  YOUNG  PRETENDER.    By  C.  S.  Terry. 
ROBERT  BURNS.     By  T.  F.  Henderson. 
CHATHAM.     By  A.  S.  M'Dowall. 
FRANCIS  OF  ASSISI.     By  Anna  M.  Stoddart. 
CANNING.    By  W.  Alison  Phillips. 
BKACONSFIELD.     By  Walter  Sichel. 
JOHANN   WOLFGANG    GOETHE.      By  H.     G. 

Atkins. 
FRANCOIS  FENELON.     By  Viscount  St.  Gyres. 


Romantic  History. 

Edited  by  MARTIN   HUME,  M.A.     Illustrated.    Demy  Bvo. 

A  series  of  attractive  volumes  in  which  the  periods  and  personalities  selected  are 
such  as  afford  romantic  human  interest,  in  addition  to  their  historical 
importance. 


THB  FIRST  GOVERNESS  OF  THE  NETHER- 
LANDS, MARGARET  OF  AUSTRIA.  Eleanor 
E.  Tremayne.  TOJ.  f>d.  net. 

Two  ENGLISH  QUEENS  AND  PHILIP.     Martin 


Hume,  M.A.     15$.  net. 

THE  NINE  DAYS'  QUEEN.  Richard  Davey. 
With  a  Preface  by  Martin  Hume,  M.A. 
Second  Edition,  xw .  6d.  net. 


Handbooks  of  Theology. 


THE  DOCTRINE  OF  THE  INCARNATION.  By  R. 

L.  Ottley,  D.D.      Fifth  Edition,  Revised. 

Demy  &vt>.     i2S.  6d. 
A  HISTORY  OK  EARLY  CHRISTIAN  DOCTRINE. 

By  J.  F.  Bethune-Baker,  M.A.     Demy  Svo. 

10*.  6d. 
AN    INTRODUCTION   TO   THE    HISTORY    OF 

RELIGION.         By    F.     B.    Jevons,     M.A. 

Litt.  D.    Fifth  Edition.   Demy  too.  xof.  6d. 


AN  INTRODUCTION  TO  THE  HISTORY  OF  THE 
CREEDS.     By  A.   E.   Burn,    D.D.     Demy 


y 
j.  6d. 


THE  PHILOSOPHY  OF  RELIGION  IN  ENGLAND 
AND  AMERICA.  By  Alfred  Caldecott,  D.D. 
Demy  8vo.  iof.  6d, 

THE  XXXIX.  ARTICLES  OF  THB  CHURCH  OF 
ENGLAND.  Edited  by  E.  C.  S.  Gibson, 
D.D.  -Seventh  Edition.  Demy  8ve.  12*.  &/. 


FICTION 

The  Westminster  Commentaries. 

General  Editor,  WALTER  LOCK,  D.D.,  Warden  of  Keble  College. 
Dean  Ireland's  Professor  of  Exegesis  in  the  University  of  Oxford. 


THE  ACTS  OF  THE  APOSTLES.    Edited  by  R. 

B.   Rackham,   M.A.       Demy  8vo.       Fifth 

Edition.     ior.  6d. 
THE  FIRST  EPISTLE  OF  PAUL  THE  APOSTLE 

TO  THE  CORINTHIANS.     Edited  by  H.  L» 

Goudge,  M.A.     Third  Ed.    Demy  8vo.    6s. 
THE  BOOK  OF  EXODUS.    Edited  by  A.   H. 

M'Neile,  B.D.     With  a  Map  and  3  Plans. 

Demy  8vo.     IDS.  6d. 
THE  BOOK  OF  EZEKIEL.     Edited  by  H.  A. 

Redpath,  M.A.,  D.Litt.    Demy  8vo.   los.  6d. 


THE  BOOK  OF  GENESIS.  Edited  with  Intro- 
duction and  Notes  by  S.  R.  Driver,  D.D. 
Eighth  Edition.  Demy  8vo.  ior.  6d. 

ADDITIONS  AND  CORRECTIONS  IN  THE  SEVENTH 
EDITION  OF  THE  BOOK  OF  GENESIS.  By 
S.  R.  Driver,  D.D.  Demy  8vo.  is. 

THE  BOOK  OF  JOB.  Edited  by  E.  C.  S.  Gibson, 
D.D.  Second  Edition.  Demy  8vo.  6s. 

THE  EPISTLE  OF  ST.  JAMES.  Edited  with  In- 
troduction and  Notes  by  R.  J.  Knowling, 
D.D.  Second  Edition.  Demy  too.  6j. 


PART  III. — A  SELECTION  OF  WORKS  OF  FICTION 


Albanesi  (B.  Maria).    SUSANNAH  AND 
ONE    OTHER.      Fourth    Edition.      Cr. 

LOVE    AND    LOUISA.     Second   Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
THE  BROWN  EYES  OF  MARY.     Third 

Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
I    KNOW    A    MAIDEN.     Third  Edition. 

Cr.  %vo.     6s. 
THE  INVINCIBLE  AMELIA:    OR,    THE 

POLITE    ADVENTURESS.       Third    Edition. 

Cr.  %vo.     3*.  6d. 
THE    GLAD     HEART.       Fifth    Edition. 

Cr.  8vt>.    6s. 

Allerton    (Mark).    SUCH   AND    SUCH 
THINGS.     Cr.  8vo.    6s. 

Annesley  (Maude).    THIS  DAY'S  MAD- 
NESS.     Second  Edition.    Cr.  8vo.     6s. 

Bagot  (Richard).  A  ROMAN  MYSTERY. 

Third  Edition.     Cr.  8vo.     6s. 
THE  PASSPORT.     Fourth  Edition.     Cr. 

8w0.     6s. 
ANTHONY  CUTHBERT.   Fourth  Edition. 

Cr.  8vo.     6s. 

LOVE'S  PROXY.    Cr.Bvo.    6s. 
DONNA    DIANA.      Second  Edition.     Cr. 

CASTING    OF    NETS.     Twelfth    Edition. 
Cr.  %vo.    6s. 

Bailey  (H.  C.).  STORM  AND  TREASURE. 
Second  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 

Ball  tOona  H.)  (Barbara  Burke).     THEIR 
OXFORD  YEAR.   Illustrated.   Cr.  8vo.  6s. 


BARBARA  GOES  TO  OXFORD.  Illus- 
trated. Third  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

Baring-Gould  (S.).  ARMINELL.  Fifth 
Edition.  Cr.  8va.  6s. 

IN  THE  ROAR  OF  THE  SEA.  Seventh 
Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

MARGERY  OF  QUETHER.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

THE  QUEEN  OF  LOVE.  Fifth  Edition. 
Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

JACQUETTA.    Third  Edition.   Cr.  8vo.   6s. 

KITTY  ALONE.  Fifth  Edition.  Cr.Zvo.  6s. 

NOEMI.     Illustrated.    Fourth  Edition.    Cr. 

THE'     B^ROOM  -  SQUIRE.          Illustrated. 

Fifth  Edition.     Cr.  8vo.    6s. 
DARTMOOR    IDYLLS.    Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
GUAVAS     THE     TINNER.       Illustrated. 

Second  Edition.     Cr.  8vo.     6s. 
BLADYS  OF  THE  STEWPONEY.     Illus- 

trated.     Second  Edition.     Cr.  8vo.     6s. 
PABO   THE    PRIEST.     Cr.  8vo.     6s. 
WINEFRED.    Illustrated.    Second  Edition. 

Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 

ROYAL  GEORGIE.    Illustrated.   Cr.  8vo.  6s. 
CHRIS  OF  ALL  SORTS.    Cr.  too.    6s. 
IN   DEWISLAND.     Second  Edition.     Cr. 

8vo.     6s. 

THE  FROBISHERS.     Cr.  8vo.    6s. 
DOMITIA.      Illustrated.      Second  Edition. 

Cr.  8vff.     6f. 
MRS.  CURGENVEN  OF  CURGENVEN. 

Cr.  8vo.    6s. 
Barr   (Robert).     IN   THE   MIDST   OF 

ALARMS.     Third  Edition.     Cr.  8vo.     6r. 
THE       COUNTESS      TEKLA.         Fifth 

Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


THE  MUTABLE  MANY. 
Cr.  Bv0.    6*. 


Third  Edition. 


Begbie  (Harold). 
Dl 


THE  CURIOUS  AND 
IVERTING  ADVENTURES  OF  SIR 
JOHN  SPARROW  ;  OR,  THE  PROGRESS 
OF  AN  OPBN  MIND.    Second  Edition.    Cr. 
8v0.    6s. 

Belloe  (H.).  EMMANUEL  BURDEN, 
MERCHANT.  Illustrated.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

A  CHANGE  IN  THE  CABINET.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

Benson  (E.  P.).  DODO :  A  DETAIL  OF  THE 
DAY.  Sixteenth  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Birmingham  (George  A.).  THE  BAD 
TIMES.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  Ivo.  6s. 

SPANISH  GOLD.  Sixth  Edition.  Cr. 
8vo.  6s. 

THE  SEARCH  PARTY.  Fourth  Edition. 
Cr.  Bv0.  6s. 

Bowen  (Marjorie).  I  WILL  MAIN- 
TAIN.  Fifth  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Bretherton(Ralph  Harold).  AN  HONEST 

MAN.     Second  Edition.     Cr.  8vo.    6s. 

Capes  (Bernard).     WHY  DID  HE  DO 

IT  T     Third  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 

Castle  (Agnes  and  Egerton).  FLOWER 
O'  THE  ORANGE,  and  Other  Tales. 
Third  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

Clifford  (Mrs.  W.  K.).  THE  GETTING 
WELL  OF  DOROTHY.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  8w.  $s.  6d. 

Conrad  (Joseph).  THE  SECRET  AGENT : 

A  Simple  Tale.    Fourth  Ed.    Cr.  8v0.     6s. 

A  SET  OF  SIX.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

Corelll  (Marie).    A  ROMANCE  OF  TWO 

WORLDS.     Thirtieth  Ed.      Cr.  &vo.     6s. 
VENDETTA.     Twenty-eighth  Edition.     Cr. 

Bv0.    6s. 

THELMA.    Forty-first  Ed.    Cr.  8v0.    6s. 
ARDATH:    THE  STORY   OF  A    DEAD 

SELF.     Nineteenth  Edition.    Cr.  8vo.     6s. 
THE  SOUL  OF  LILITH.     Sixteenth  Edi- 
tion.    Cr.  8wo.     6s. 

WORMWOOD.  Seventeenth  Ed.  Cr.8v0.  6s. 
BARABBAS:      A      DREAM      OF     THE 

WORLD'S      TRAGEDY.          Forty-fifth 

Edition.     Cr.  8vo.    6s. 
THE  SORROWS  OF  SATAN.      Fifty-sixth 

Edition.     Cr.  8v0.    6s. 
THE    MASTER    CHRISTIAN.     Twelfth 

Edition.     177^  Thousand.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
TEMPORAL    POWER:    A    STUDY    IN 

SUPREMACY.     Second  Edition,      tyoth 

Thousand.     Cr.  %vo.     6s. 
GOD'S  GOOD  MAN ;  A  SIMPLE  LOVE 

STORY.  Fourteenth  Edition,    i^nd 'Thou- 
sand.   Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
HOLY    ORDERS:    THB   TRAGEDY    OF   A 

QUIET    LIFE.       Second    Edition,       t2oth 

Thousand.     Crown  8v0.     6s. 
THE    MIGHTY    ATOM.      Twenty-ninth 

Edition.    Cr.  Zvo.    6*. 


BOY :  a  Sketch.     Twelfth  Edition.    Cr.  Ivo. 

6s. 
CAMEOS.  Fourteenth  Edition.   Cr.lvo.   6*. 

Cotes  (Mrs.  Everard).  See  Duncan  (Sara 
Jeannette). 

Crockett  (S.  R.).  LOCHINVAR.  Illus- 
trated. Third  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

THE  STANDARD  BEARER.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.&vo.  6s. 

Croker  (Mrs.  B.  M.).     THE  OLD  CAN- 

TONMENT.     Cr.8vo.     6s. 
JOHANNA.     Second  Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
THE  HAPPY  VALLEY.    Fourth  Edition. 

Cr.  %vo.    6s. 
A     NINE     DAYS'     WONDER.      Fourth 

Edition.    Cr.  8vo.    6s. 
PEGGY    OF    THE    BARTONS.     Seventh 

Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
ANGEL.     Fifth  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.    6s. 
KATHERINE  THE  ARROGANT.    Sixth 

Edition.    Cr.  Zvo.     6s. 

Cuthell  (Edith  E.).  ONLY  A  GUARD- 
ROOM DOG.  Illustrated.  Cr.  8vo.  y.6d. 

Dawson    (Warrington).     THE    SCAR. 

Second  Edition.     Cr.  8ro.    6s. 
THE  SCOURGE.    Cr.  8v0.    6s. 

Douglas  (Theo.).  COUSIN  HUGH. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  Bv0.  6s. 

Doyle  (A.  Conan).  ROUND  THE  RED 
LAMP.  Eleventh  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Duncan  (Sara  Jeannette)  (Mrs.  Everard 

Cotes). 

A  VOYAGE  OF  CONSOLATION.  Illus- 
trated. Third  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

COUSIN  CINDERELLA.    Second  Edition. 

THE  BURNT  OFFERING.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  Bv0.  6s. 

Elliot  (Robert).  THE  IMMORTAL 
CHARLATAN.  Second  Edition.  Crown 
Bvo.  6s. 

Fenn  (G.  Manville).    SYD  BELTON  •  or, 

The  Boy  who  would  not  go  to  Sea.     Illus- 
trated.    Second  Ed.     Cr.  8v0.     3*.  6d. 

Findlater  (J.  H.).  THE  GREEN  GRAVES 
OF  BALGOWRIE.  Fifth  Edition.  Cr. 
8v0.  6s. 

THE  LADDER  TO  THE  STARS.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

Findlater  (Mary).     A  NARROW  WAY. 

Third  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.    6s. 
OVER  THE  HILLS.    Second  Edition.     Cr. 

8vo.    6s. 
THE    ROSE    OF    JOY.      Third    Edition. 

Cr.  8vo.    6s. 
A    BLIND     BIRD'S    NEST.      Illustrated. 

Second  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.    6t. 


FICTION 


Francis  (M.  E.).     (Mrs.  Francis  Blundell). 

MARGERY  O'  THE  MILL.  Third  Edi- 
tion. Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

HARDY-ON-THE-HILL.  Third  Edition. 
Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

GALATEA  OF  THE  WHEATFIELD. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 


Fpaser  (Mrs.  Hugh). 
OF    THE    SWORD. 


THE    SLAKING 
Second    Edition. 
Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
GIANNELLA.   Second  Edition.  Cr.Zvo.  6s. 
IN    THE    SHADOW   OF    THE    LORD. 
Third  Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 

Fry  (B.  and  C.  B-)-  A  MOTHER'S  SON. 
Fifth  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

Gerard  (Louise).  THE  GOLDEN  CEN- 
TIPEDE. Third  Edition.  Cr.Zvo.  6s. 

Gibbs  (Philip).  THE  SPIRIT  OF  RE- 
VOLT.  Second  Edition.  Cr.Zvo.  6s. 

Gissing  (George).  THE  CROWN  OF 
LIFE.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

Glendon  (George).  THE  EMPEROR  OF 
THE  AIR.  Illustrated.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

Hamilton  (Cosmo).  MRS.  SKEFFING- 
TON.  Second  Edition.  Cr.Zvo.  6s. 

Harraden  (Beatrice).    IN  VARYING 

MOODS.  Fourteenth  Edition.   Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

THE  SCHOLAR'S  DAUGHTER.  Fourth 
Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

HILDA  STRAFFORD  and  THE  REMIT- 
TANCE MAN.  Twelfth  Ed.  Cr.Zvo.  6s. 

INTERPLAY.    Fifth  Edition.    Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 

Hichens  (Robert).    THE  PROPHET  OF 

BERKELEY  SQUARE.     Second  Edition. 

Cr.  Zvo.     6s. 
TONGUES    OF    CONSCIENCE.       Third 

Edition.    Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
FELIX.     Seventh  Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
THE  WOMAN  WITH  THE  FAN.    Eighth 

Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.     6s. 
BYEWAYS.    Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
THE  GARDEN  OF  ALLAH.  -Nineteenth 

Edition.    Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
THE  BLACK  SPANIEL.    Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
THE   CALL  OF  THE  BLOOD.    Seventh 

Edition.    Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
BARBARY  SHEEP.    Second  Edition.    Cr. 

Zvo.    6s. 
Hilliers  (Ashton).    THE  MASTER-GIRL. 

Illustrated.     Second  Edition.     Cr.Zvo.    6s. 
Hope  (Anthony).     THE  GOD  IN  THE 

CAR.     Eleventh  Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.     6s. 
A  CHANGE  OF  AIR.    Sixth  Edition.    Cr. 

8v0.    6s. 

A  MAN  OF  MARK.  Seventh  Ed.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 
THE    CHRONICLES    OF    COUNT    AN- 

TONIO.    Sixth  Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
PHROSO.      Illustrated.      Eighth   Edition. 

SIMONDALE.  Illustrated.  Eighth  Edition. 

Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
THE  KING'S   MIRROR.     Fifth  Edition. 

Cr.lve.    6t. 


QUISANTE.     Fourth  Edition.    Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 

THE  DOLLY  DIALOGUES.     Cr.  Zvo.     6s. 

A  SERVANT  OF  THE  PUBLIC.  Illus- 
trated. Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

TALES  OF  TWO  PEOPLE.  Third  Edi- 
tion.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

THE  GREAT  MISS  DRIVER.  Fourth 
Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

Hueffer  (Ford  Maddox).  AN  ENGLISH 
GIRL:  A  ROMANCE.  Second  Edition.  Cr. 
Zvo.  6s. 

MR.  APOLLO:  A  JUST  POSSIBLE  STORY. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

Hutten    (Baroness  von).    THE   HALO. 

Fifth  Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.     6s. 

Hyne  (C.  J.  Cutcliffe).  MR.  HOR- 
ROCKS,  PURSER.  Fifth  Edition.  Cr. 

PRINCE'RUPERT,  THE  BUCCANEER. 

Illustrated.        Third   Edition.      Cr.     Zvo. 
6s. 

Jacobs    (W.    W.)-       MANY    CARGOES. 

Thirty-second  Edition.    Cr.  Zvo.     is.  6d. 
SEA  URCHINS.     Sixteenth  Edition.      Cr. 

Zvo.     y.  6d. 
A    MASTER    OF    CRAFT.        Illustrated. 

Ninth  Edition.     Cr.  8vo.     y.  6d. 
LIGHT  FREIGHTS.     Illustrated.    Eighth 

Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.     y.  6d. 
THE  SKIPPER'S.WOOING.  Ninth  Edition. 

Cr.  %vo.     3-r.  6d. 
AT  SUNWICH  PORT.     Illustrated.    Tenth 

Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     y.  6d. 
DIALSTONE  LANE.    Illustrated.    Seventh 

Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.      y.  6d. 
ODD  CRAFT.    Illustrated.    Fourth  Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.      y.  6d. 
THE  LADY  OF  THE  BARGE.     Illustrated. 

Eighth  Edition.    Cr.  Zvo.     3*.  6d. 
SALTHAVEN.  Illustrated.    Second  Edition. 

Cr.  Zvo.     y.  6d. 
SAILORS'    KNOTS.      Illustrated.      Fifth 

Edition.    Cr.   Zvo.     y.  6d. 

James    (Henry).      THE    SOFT    SIDE. 

Second  Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
THE  BETTER  SORT.     Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
THE    GOLDEN    BOWL.     Third  Edition. 

Cr.  Zvo.     6s. 

Le  Queux  (William).  THE  HUNCHBACK 
OF  WESTMINSTER.  Third  Edition. 

THE   CLOSED    BOOK.      Third  Edition. 

Cr.  Zvo.     6s. 
THE    VALLEY     OF     THE     SHADOW. 

Illustrated.     Third  Edition.     Cr.  Zvo.     6s. 
BEHIND  THE  THRONE.    Third  Edition. 

Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 
THE  CROOKED  WAY.     Second  Edition. 

Cr.  Zvo.    6s. 

Llndsey  (William).  THE  SEVERED 
MANTLE.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 

London  (Jack).  WHITE  FANG.  Seventh 
Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6t. 


26 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


Lubboek  (Basil).  DEEP  SEA  WAR- 
RIORS. Illustrated.  Third  Edition.  Cr. 
Bvo.  6s. 


THE  FIRST  ROUND. 


Lucas  (St  John). 

Cr.  Bvo.     6s. 

Lyall  (Edna).  DERRICK  VAUGHAN, 
NOVELIST.  44th  Thousand.  Cr.  Bvo. 
3*.  6d. 

Maartens  (Maarten).  THE  NEW  RELI- 
GION: A  MODERN  NOVEL.  Third  Edition. 
Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

BROTHERS  ALL;  MORE  STORIES  OF 
DUTCH  PEASANT  LIFE.  Third  Edition. 
Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

THE  PRICE  OF  LIS  DORIS.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

M'Carthy  (Justin  H.).  THE  DUKE'S 
MOTTO.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Maenaughtan  (S-).  THE  FORTUNE  OF 
CHRISTINA  M'NAB.  Fifth  Edition. 
Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Malet  (Lucas).  COLONEL  ENDERBY'S 
WIFE.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

A  COUNSEL  OF  PERFECTION.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

THE  WAGES  OF  SIN.     Sixteenth  Edition- 

THE  CARISSIMA.     Fifth  Ed.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

THE  GATELESS  BARRIER.  Fifth  Edi- 
tion. Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

THE  HISTORY  OF  SIR  RICHARD 

CALMADY.  Seventh  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Mann    (Mrs.    M.    E.).      THE     PARISH 

NURSE.     Fourth  Edition.    Cr.  Bi>o.     6s. 
A  SHEAF    OF    CORN.      Second   Edition. 

Cr.  Bvo.     6s. 
THE  HEART-SMITER.    Second  Edition. 

Cr.  Bvo.    6s. 
AVENGING  CHILDREN.  Second  Edition. 

Cr.  Bvo.     6s. 

Marsh  (Richard).  THE  COWARD  BE- 
HIND  THE  CURTAIN.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

THE  SURPRISING  HUSBAND.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

A  ROYAL  INDISCRETION.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

LIVE  MEN'S  SHOES.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

Marshall  (Archibald).    MANY  JUNES. 

Second  Edition.     Cr.  Bvo.    6s. 
THE    SQUIRE'S     DAUGHTER.       Third 

Edition.    Cr.  8vo.     6s. 

Mason  (A.  E.  W.).  CLEMENTINA. 
Illustrated.  Seventh  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  zs. 
net. 

Maud  (Constance).    A  DAUGHTER  OF 

FRANCE.     Third  Edition.     Cr.  Bvo.    6s. 
Maxwell  (W.  B.).    VIVIEN.    Ninth  Edi- 

tion.     Cr.  Bvo.     6s. 
THE    RAGGED    MESSENGER.      Third 

Edition.     Cr.  Bvo.     6s. 
FABULOUS  FANCIES.    Cr.  Bvo.    6s. 


THE  GUARDED  FLAME.  Seventh  Edi- 
tion. Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

ODD  LENGTHS.    Second  Ed.    Cr.  Bvo.    6s. 

HILL  RISE.    Fourth  Edition.    Cr.  Bvo.    6s. 

THE  COUNTESS  OF  MAYBURY:  BE- 
TWEEN You  AND  I.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr. 
Bvo.  6s. 

Meade  (L.  T.).    DRIFT.    Second  Edition. 

Cr.  Bvo.      6s. 

RESURGAM.    Second  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.   6s. 
VICTORY.     Cr.  Bvo.   6s. 
A   GIRL  OF   THE  PEOPLE.     Illustrated. 

Fourth  Edition.     Cr.  Bvo.    y.  6d. 
HEPSY    GIPSY.       Illustrated.        Cr.    Bvo. 

as.  6d. 
THE    HONOURABLE    MISS:    A    STORY 

OF  AN  OLD-FASHIONED  TOWN.     Illustrated. 

Second  Edition.     Cr.  Bvo.     35.  6d. 

Mitford  (Bertram).  THE  SIGN  OF  THE 
SPIDER.  Illustrated.  Seventh  Edition. 
Cr.  Bvo.  y.  6d. 

Molesworth  (Mrs.).  THE  RED  GRANGE. 
Illustrated.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo 
y.  6d. 

Montague  (C.  E.).  A  HIND  LET 
LOOSE.  Third  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Montgomery  (K.  L.).  COLONEL  KATE. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Morrison  (Arthur).      TALES  OF  MEAN 

STREETS.    Seventh  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.   6s. 

A  CHILD  OF  THE  JAGO.  Sixth  Edition. 
Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

THE  HOLE  IN  THE  WALL.  Fourth  Edi- 
tion. Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

DIVERS  VANITIES.     Cr.  Bvo.    6s. 

Nesbit  (E.),  (Mrs.  H.  Bland).  THE  RED 
HOUSE.  Illustrated.  Fifth  Edition. 
Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Noble  (Edward).  LORDS  OF  THE  SEA. 
Third  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Ollivant  (Alfred).  OWD  BOB,  THE 
GREY  DOG  OF  KENMUIR.  With  a 
Frontispiece.  Eleventh  Ed.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Oppenheim  (E.  Phillips).  MASTER  OF 
MEN.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Oxenham    (JohnX       A   WEAVER    OF 

WEBS.    Illustrated.  Fifth  Ed.  Cr,  Bvo.  6s. 
THE  GATE  OF  THE  DESERT.     Sixth 

and  Cheaper  Edition.     Cr.  Bvo.     as.  net. 
PROFIT    AND    LOSS.       Fourth  Edition. 

Cr.  Bvo.     6s. 
THE  LONG  ROAD,    fourth  Edition.    Cr. 

Bvo.     6s. 
THE     SONG     OF     HYACINTH,     AND 

OTHER    STORIES.        Second    Edition. 

Cr.  Bvo.     6s. 

MY  LADY  OF  SHADOWS.     Fourth  Edi- 
tion.    Cr.  Bvo.    6s. 
Pain  (Barry).  THE  EXILES  OF  FALOO. 

Second  Edition.    Crown  Bvo.    6s. 
Parker  (Gilbert).    PIERRE  AND  HIS 

PEOPLE.     Sixth  Edition.     Cr.  Bvo.     6s. 


FICTION 


MRS.  FALCHION.  Fifth  Edition.   Cr.Bvo. 

THE    TRANSLATION    OF  A  SAVAGE. 

Fourth  Edition.     Cr.  8v0     6s. 
THE  TRAIL   OF   THE    SWORD.      Illus- 
trated.    Tenth  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
WHEN  VALMOND  CAME  TO  PONTIAC  : 

The   Story  of  a   Lost    Napoleon.       Sixth 
Edition.     Cr.  %vo.    6s. 
AN  ADVENTURER   OF  THE  NORTH. 

The    Last  Adventures  of  'Pretty  Pierre.' 

Fourth  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
THE  SEATS  OF  THE  MIGHTY.     Illus- 

trated.     Seventeenth  Edition.    Cr.  8v0.    6s, 
THE    BATTLE    OF  THE    STRONG:    a 

Romance  of  Two   Kingdoms.     Illustrated. 
Seventh  Edition.  Cr.  Sv0.     6s. 
THE    POMP    OF    THE    LAVILETTES. 

Third  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     y.  6d. 
NORTHERN   LIGHTS.     Fourth  Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.    6s. 

Pasture  (Mrs.  Henry  de  la).  THE 
TYRANT.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Patterson  (J.  E.)-  WATCHERS  BY  THE 
SHORE  Third  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

Pemberton  (Max).    THE   FOOTSTEPS 

OF    A    THRONE.      Illustrated.     Fourth 

Edition.     Cr.  8v0.    6s. 
I  CROWN  THEE  KING.     Illustrated.     Cr. 

8v0.    6s. 
LOVE  THE  HARVESTER:    A  STORY  OF 

THE  SHIRES.     Illustrated.     Third  Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.     3J.  6d. 
THE      MYSTERY     OF     THE     GREEN 

HEART.     Third  Edition.     Cr.  8vt>.    6s. 

Phillpotts  (Eden).    LYING  PROPHETS. 

Third  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
CHILDREN  OF  THE  MIST.    Fifth  Edi- 
tion.    Cr.  8ve>.    6s. 
THE  HUMAN  BOY.    With  a  Frontispiece. 

Seventh  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
SONS  ^  OF    THE     MORNING.        Second 

Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 

THE  RIVER.    Third  Edition.    Cr.Bvo.    6s. 
THE  AMERICAN   PRISONER.     Fourth 

Edition.     Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
THE  SECRET  WOMAN.    Fourth  Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.    6s. 
KNO CK  AT  A  VENTURE.   Third  Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
THE  PORTREEVE.    Fourth  Edition.    Cr. 

8vo.    6s. 
THE  POACHER'S  WIFE.    Second  Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
THE  STRIKING  HOURS.  Second  Edition. 

Cr.  8vff.     6s. 

Pickthall  (Marmaduke).  SAID  THE 
FISHERMAN.  Eighth  Edition.  Cr.Bvo. 
6s. 

•Q1  (A.  T.  Quiller  Couch).  THE  WHITE 
WOLF.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

THE  MAYOR  OF  TROY.  Fourth  Edition. 
Cr.  8z>0.  6s. 

MERRY-GARDEN  AND  OTHER  STORIES. 
Cr.  Bvff.  6s. 


27 

Third  Edition. 


MAJOR   VIGOUREUX. 
Cr.  8v0.    6s. 

Querido  (Israel).  TOIL  OF  MEN.  Trans- 
lated  by  F.  S.  ARNOLD.  Cr.  Bv0.  6s. 

Rawson  (Maud  Stepney).  THE  EN- 
CHANTED GARDEN.  Fourth  Edition. 
Cr.  8z>fl.  6s. 

THE  EASY  GO  LUCKIES :  OR,  ONE  WAY 
OF  LIVING.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

HAPPINESS.    Second  Edition.   Cr.8v0.    6s. 

Rhys  .(Grace).  THE  BRIDE.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  8v0,  6s. 

Ridge  (W-  Pett).    ERB.    Second  Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.    6s. 
A  SON  OF  THE  STATE.     Third  Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.    3*.  6d. 

A  BREAKER  OF  LAWS.    Cr.  8vo.   3s.  6d. 
MRS.  GALER'S  BUSINESS.      Illustrated. 

Second  Edition.     Cr.  8v0.    6s. 
THE    WICKHAMSES.     Fourth    Edition. 

Cr.  8v0.     6s. 
NAME  OF   GARLAND.      Third  Edition. 

Cr.  8vo.    6s. 
SPLENDID  BROTHER.    Fourth  Edition. 

Cr.  8z/<7.     6s. 

Ritchie  (Mrs.  David  G.).  MAN  AND 
THE  CASSOCK.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Roberts  (C.  G.  D.).  THE  HEART  OF  THE 
ANCIENT  WOOD.  Cr.  8vo.  $s.  6d. 

Robins  (Elizabeth).     THE   CONVERT. 

Third  Edition.     Cr.  Bv0.    6s. 

Rosenkrantz  (Baron  Palle).  THE 
MAGISTRATE'S  OWN  CASE.  Cr. 
Bv0.  6s. 

Russell    (W.    Clark).       MY    DANISH 

SWEETHEART.    Illustrated.    Fifth 

Edition.     Cr.  Bvo.     6s. 
HIS    ISLAND    PRINCESS.       Illustrated. 

Second  Edition.     Cr.  8va.     6s. 
ABANDONED.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo.  6s. 
MASTER    ROCKAFELLAR'S    VOYAGE. 

Illustrated.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  $s.  6d. 

Sandys  (Sydney).  JACK  CARSTAIRS 
OF  THE  POWER  HOUSE.  Illustrated. 
Second  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

Sergeant  (Adeline).  THE  PASSION  OF 
PAUL  MARILLIER.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

*Shakespear  (Olivia).  UNCLE  HILARY. 
Cr.  Bvo.  6x. 

Sidgwiek  (Mrs.  Alfred).  THE  KINS- 
MAN. Illustrated.  Third  Edition.  Cr. 
8v0.  6s. 

THE  SEVERINS.  Fourth  Edition.  Cr. 
Bvo.  us.  ntt. 

Stewart  (Newton  V.).  A  SON  OF  THE 
EMPEROR  :  BEING  PASSAGES  FROM  THH 
LIFE  OF  ENZIO,  KING  OF  SARDINIA  AND 
CORSICA.  Cr.  Bvo.  6s. 

Swayne  (Martin  Lutrell).  THE  BISHOP 
AND  THE  LADY.  Second  Edition. 
Cr.  Bvff.  6s. 


28 


METHUEN  AND  COMPANY  LIMITED 


Thurston  (E.  Temple).  MIRAGE.  Fourth 
Edition,  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

Underbill  (Evelyn).  THE  COLUMN  OF 
DUST.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

Vorst  (Marie  Van).  THE  SENTIMEN- 
TAL ADVENTURES  OF  JIMMY  BUL- 
STRODE.  Cr.  8vo.  6s.  ' 

IN  AMBUSH.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  Zvo. 
6s. 

Waineman  (Paul).  THE  WIFE  OF 
NICHOLAS  FLEMING.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

Watson  (H.  B.  Marriott).  TWISTED 
EGLANTINE.  Illustrated.  Third  Edi- 
tion. Cr.  8vff.  6s. 

THE  HIGH  TOBY.  Third  Edition.  Cr. 
8vo.  6s. 

A  MIDSUMMER  DAY'S  DREAM.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

THE  CASTLE  BY  THE  SEA.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  8z>0.  6s. 

THE  PRIVATEERS.  Illustrated.  Second 
Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

A  POPPY  SHOW:  BEING  DIVERS  AND 
DIVERSE  TALES.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

THE  FLOWER  OF  THE  HEART.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 


.      THE    STORY    OF 
FECT.     Third  Edition. 


Webling 

VIRGINIA 

Cr.  8vfl.     6s. 
*THE  SPIRIT  OF  MIRTH.     Cr.tivo.    6s. 

Wells  (H.  G.).  THE  SEA  LADY.  Cr. 
Bv0.  6s.  Also  Medium  Zvo.  6d. 

Weyman  (Stanley).  UNDER  THE  RED 
ROBE.  Illustrated.  Twenty-third  Edition. 
Cr.Bv0.  6f. 


Whitby  (Beatrice).  THE  RESULT  OF 
AN  ACCIDENT.  Second  Edition.  Cr. 
8vo.  6s. 


THE  HEART  OF 
HINDUSTAN.  '  Second  Edition.  Cr.  8v0. 
6s. 


White  (Edmund). 
)U 


White  (Percy).   LOVE  AND  THE  WISE 
MEN.     Third  Edition.     Cr.Zvo.    6*. 


Williamson  (C.  N.  and  A.  M.).  THE 
LIGHTNING  CONDUCTOR:  The 
Strange  Adventures  of  a  Motor  Car.  Illus- 
trated. Seventeenth  Edition.  Cr.  8v0. 
6s.  Also  Cr.  8v0.  is.  net. 

THE  PRINCESS  PASSES  :  A  Romance  of 
a  Motor.  Illustrated.  Ninth  Edition. 
Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

MY  FRIEND  THE  CHAUFFEUR.  Illus- 
trated. Tenth  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

LADY  BETTY  ACROSS  THE  WATER. 
Eleventh  Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

THE  CAR  OF  DESTINY  AND  ITS 
ERRAND  IN  SPAIN.  Illustrated.  Fifth 
Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

THE  BOTOR  CHAPERON.  Illustrated. 
Sixth  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 

SCARLET  RUNNER.  Illustrated.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

SET  IN  SILVER.  Illustrated.  Third 
Edition.  Cr.  8vo.  6s. 

LORD  LOVELAND  DISCOVERS 
AMERICA.  Second  Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6s. 


Wyllarde  (Dolf).  THE  PATHWAY  OF 
THE  PIONEER  (Nous  Autres).  Fourth 
Edition.  Cr.  8v0.  6f. 


Books  for  Boys  and  Girls. 

Illustrated.     Crown  Svo.     3*.  6d. 


THE  GETTING  WELL  OF  DOROTHY.    By  Mrs. 

W.  K.  Clifford.    Second  Edition. 
ONLY  A  GUARD-ROOM   DOG.     By  Edith  E. 

Cuthell. 
MASTER    ROCKAFELLAR'S    VOYAGE.    By  W. 

Clark  Russell.    Fourth  Edition. 
SYD  BELTON  :    Or,  the  Boy  who  would  not 

go  to  Sea.     By  G.  Manville  Fenn.    Second 

Edition. 
THE  RED   GRANGE.    By  Mrs.   Molesworth. 

Second  Edition. 


A  GIRL  OF  THE  PEOPLE.    By  L.  T.  Meade. 
Fourth  Edition. 

HEPSY  GIPSY.    By  L.  T.  Meade.    zs.  6d. 

THE  HONOURABLE  Miss.     By  L.  T.  Meade 
Second  Edition. 

THERE  WAS  ONCE  A  PRINCE.    By  Mrs.  M.  E. 

Mann.  p. 

WHEN  ARNOLD  COMES  HOME.  By  Mrs.  M.  E. 
Mann. 


FICTION 


29 


The  Novels  of  Alexandre  Dumas. 

Medium  Zvo.    Price  £>d.    Double  Volumes^  is. 


ACT*. 

THB  ADVENTURES  OF  CAPTAIN  PAMPHILE. 

AMAURY. 

THE  BIRD  OF  FATE. 

THE  BLACK  TULIP. 

THE  CASTLE  OF  EPPSTEIN. 

CATHERINE  BLUM. 

CECILS. 

THE  CHATELET. 

THE   CHEVALIER   D'HARMENTAL.     (Double 

volume.) 

CHICOT  THE  JESTER. 
THE  COMTE  DK  MONTGOMERY. 
CONSCIENCE. 
THE  CONVICT'S  SON. 
THE  CORSICAN   BROTHERS;    and  OTHO  THE 

ARCHER. 

CROP-EARED  JACQUOT. 
DOM  GORENFLOT. 
THE  FATAL  COMBAT. 
THE  FENCING  MASTER. 
FERNANDE. 
GABRIEL  LAMBERT. 
GEORGES. 

THE  GREAT  MASSACRE. 
HENRI  DB  NAVARRE. 
HELENS  DE  CHAVERNY. 


THE  HOROSCOPE. 

LOUISE  DE  LA  VALLI&RE.    (Double  volume.) 
THE  MAN   IN   THE   IRON   MASK.    (Double 
volume.) 

MA!TRE  ADAM. 

THE  MOUTH  OF  HELL. 

NANON.    (Double  volume.) 

OLVMPIA. 

PAULINE  ;  PASCAL  BRUNO  ;  and  BONTEKOK. 

PERE  LA  RUINE. 

THE  PRINCE  OF  THIEVES. 

THE  REMINISCENCES  OF  ANTONY. 

ROBIN  HOOD. 

SAMUEL  GELB. 

THE  SNOWBALL  AND  THE  SULTANETTA. 

SVLVANDIRE. 

THE  TAKING  OF  CALAIS. 

TALES  OF  THE  SUPERNATURAL. 

TALES  OF  STRANGE  ADVENTURE. 

TALES  OF  TERROR. 

THE  THREE  MUSKETEERS.   (Double  volume.) 

THE  TRAGEDY  OF  NANTES. 

TWENTY  YEARS  AFTER.    (Double  volume.) 

THE  WILD-DUCK  SHOOTER. 

THE  WOLF-LEADER. 


Methuen's  Sixpenny  Books. 

Medium  %vo. 


AlbanesI    (E.   Maria).     LOVE    AND 

LOUISA. 

I   KNOW  A  MAIDEN. 
Anstey  (F.).    A  BAYARD  OF   BENGAL. 
Austen  (JO-    PRIDE  AND  PREJUDICE 
Bagot  (Richard).  A  ROMAN  MYSTERY. 
CASTING  OF  NETS. 
DONNA  DIANA. 

Balfour   (Andrew).     BY    STROKE    OF 
SWORD. 


Baring-Gould  (S-).    FURZE  BLOOM. 

CHEAP  JACK  ZITA. 

KITTY  ALONE. 

URITH. 

THE  BROOM  SQUIRE. 

IN  THE  ROAR  OF  THE.  SEA. 

NOEMI. 

A  BOOK  OF  FAIRY  TALES.    Illustrated. 

LITTLE  TU'PENNY. 

WINEFRED. 

THE  FROBISHERS. 

THE  QUEEN  OF  LOVE. 


METHUEN  AND 


ARMINELL. 

BLADYS  OF   THE  STEWPONEY. 

Barp  (Robert).    JENNIE  BAXTER. 
IN  THE  MIDST  OF  ALARMS. 
THE   COUNTESS   TEKLA. 
THE  MUTABLE  MANY. 

Benson  (E.  F.)-    DODO. 
THE  VINTAGE. 

Bronte  (Charlotte).    SHIRLEY. 

Brownell   (C.    L.).      THE    HEART    OF 
JAPAN. 

Burton  (J.  Bloundelle).    ACROSS    THE 
SALT  SEAS. 

Caffyn  (Mrs.).    ANNE  MAULEVERER. 

Capes    (Bernard).      THE    LAKE    OF 
WINE. 

Clifford   (Mrs.  W.    K.).     A  FLASH  OF 

SUMMER. 
MRS.   KEITH'S  CRIME. 

Corbett    (Julian).     A     BUSINESS    IN 
GREAT  WATERS. 

Croker  (Mrs.  B.  M.).    ANGEL. 
A  STATE  SECRET. 
PEGGY  OF  THE  BARTONS. 
JOHANNA. 

Dante    (Alighleri).      THE    DIVINE 

COMEDY  (Gary). 

Doyle  (A.  Conan).    ROUND  THE  RED 
LAMP. 

Duncan  (Sara  Jeannette).    A  VOYAGE 

OF  CONSOLATION. 
THOSE  DELIGHTFUL  AMERICANS. 

Eliot    (George).    THE  MILL  ON  THE 
FLOSS. 

Findlater    (Jane    H.).      THE    GREEN 
GRAVES   OF  BALGOWRIE. 

Gallon  (Tom).    RICKERBY'S  FOLLY. 

Gaskell  (Mrs.)-    CRANFORD. 
MARY   BARTON. 
NORTH  AND  SOUTH. 

Gerard    (Dorothea).      HOLY    MATRI- 
MONY. 

THE  CONQUEST  OF  LONDON. 
MADE  OF  MONEY. 

Gissing  (G.).  THE  TOWN  TRAVELLER. 
THE  CROWN  OF  LIFE. 

Glanville    (Ernest).     THE    INCA'S 

TREASURE. 
THE  KLOOF  BRIDE. 


COMPANY  LIMITED 

Gleifit  (Charles).    BUNTER'S  CRUISE. 

Grimm     (The    Brothers).       GRIMM'S 
FAIRY  TALES. 

Hope  (Anthony).    A  MAN  OF  MARK. 

A  CHANGE  OF  AIR. 

THE   CHRONICLES    OF   COUNT 

ANTONIO. 
PHROSO. 
THE  DOLLY  DIALOGUES. 

Hornung  (E.  W.).     DEAD  MEN  TELL 
NO  TALES. 

Ingraham  (J.  H.).    THE  THRONE  OF 
DAVID. 

Le   Queux   (W.1.     THE   HUNCHBACK 
OF  WESTMINSTER. 

Levett- Yeats  (S.  K.).    THE  TRAITOR'S 

WAY. 
ORRAIN. 

LInton   (E.    Lynn).     THE  TRUE   HIS- 
TORY OF  JOSHUA  DAVIDSON. 

Lyall  (Edna).    DERRICK  VAUGHAN. 

Malet  (Lucas).    THE  CARISSIMA. 
A  COUNSEL  OF  PERFECTION. 

Mann    (Mrs.    M.    E.).      MRS.    PETER 

HOWARD. 
A  LOST  ESTATE. 
THE  CEDAR  STAR. 
ONE  ANOTHER'S  BURDENS. 
THE  PATTEN  EXPERIMENT. 
A  WINTER'S  TALE. 

Marchmont   (A.  W.).     MISER  HOAD- 

LEY'S  SECRET. 
A  MOMENT'S  ERROR. 

Marryat  (Captain).    PETER  SIMPLE. 
JACOB  FAITHFUL. 

March  (Richard).  A  METAMORPHOSIS. 
THE  TWICKENHAM  PEERAGE. 
THE  GODDESS. 
THE  JOSS, 

Mason  (A.  E.  W.).    CLEMENTINA. 

Mathers  (Helen).    HONEY. 

GRIFF  OF  GRIFFITHSCOURT. 

SAM'S  SWEETHEART. 

THE  FERRYMAN. 

Meade  (Mrs.  L.  T.).    DRIFT. 

Miller  (Esther).    LIVING  LIES. 

Mitford  (Bertram).  THE  SIGN  OF  THE 
SPIDER. 

Montresor  (F.  F.).    THE  ALIEN. 


FICTION 


Morrison  (Arthur). 
THE  WALL. 


THE    HOLE    IN 
THE  RED  HOUSE. 


Nesbit  (E.). 

Norris  (W.  E.).    HIS  GRACE. 
GILES  INGILBY. 

THE  CREDIT  OF  THE  COUNTY. 
LORD  LEONARD  THE  LUCKLESS. 
MATTHEW  AUSTEN. 
CLARISSA  FURIOSA. 

Oliphant  (Mrs.).    THE  LADY'S  WALK. 
SIR  ROBERT'S  FORTUNE. 
THE  PRODIGALS. 
THE  TWO  MARYS. 

Oppenhelm  (E.  P.).    MASTER  OF  MEN 

Parker  (Gilbert).    THE  POMP  OF  THE 

LAVILETTES. 

WHEN  VALMOND  CAME  TO  PONTIAC. 
THE  TRAIL  OF  THE  SWORD. 

Pemberton    (Max).    THE   FOOTSTEPS 

OF  A  THRONE. 
I  CROWN  THEE  KING. 

Phillpotts  (Eden).    THE  HUMAN  BOY. 
CHILDREN  OF  THE  MIST. 
THE  POACHER'S  WIFE. 
THE  RIVER. 


Couch).      THE 


'Q'    (A.    T.    Quiller 
WHITE  WOLF. 


Ridge  (W.  Pett).  A  SON  OF  THE  STATE. 

LOST  PROPERTY. 

GEORGE  and  THE  GENERAL. 


ERB. 

Russell  (W.  Clark).    ABANDONED. 
A  MARRIAGE  AT  SEA. 
MY  DANISH  SWEETHEART. 
HIS  ISLAND  PRINCESS. 


THE  MASTER  OF 


Sergeant  (Adeline). 

BEECHWOOD. 
BALBARA'S  MONEY. 
THE  YELLOW  DIAMOND. 
THE  LOVE  THAT  OVERCAME. 

Sidgwlek  (Mrs.   Alfred).    THE    KINS- 

Surtees  (R.  S.).    HANDLEY  CROSS. 
MR.  SPONGE'S  SPORTING  TOUR. 
ASK  MAMMA. 

Waif  or  d  (Mrs.  L.  B.).    MR.  SMITH. 

COUSINS. 

THE  BABY'S  GRANDMOTHER. 

TROUBLESOME  DAUGHTERS. 

Wallace  (General  Lew).    BEN-HUR. 
THE  FAIR  GOD. 


Watson  (H.  B.  Marriott). 

TURERS. 


THE  ADVEN- 


*CAPTAIN  FORTUNE. 

Weekes  (A.  B.).    PRISONERS  OF  WAR. 

Wells  (H.  G.).    THE  SEA  LADY. 

White  (Percy).    A  PASSIONATE  PIL- 
GRIM. 


PRINTED  BY 

WILLIAM  CLOWES  AND  SONS,  LIMITED, 
LONDON  AND  BECCLES. 


PLEASE  DO  NOT  REMOVE 
CARDS  OR  SLIPS  FROM  THIS  POCKET 

UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO  LIBRARY 


Z 

723 

S27 


Savage,  Ernest  Albert 
Old  English  Libraries